This page copyright © 2003 Blackmask Online.
http://www.blackmask.com
Produced by Charles Franks, David King and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
THE LIFE OF THE RT. HON.
SIR CHARLES W. DILKE
BART., M.P.
BEGUN BY STEPHEN GWYNN, M.P.
COMPLETED AND EDITED BY
GERTRUDE M. TUCKWELL
LITERARY EXECUTRIX OF SIR CHARLES DILKE
WITH PORTRAITS AND ILLUSTRATIONS
IN TWO VOLUMES
VOL. II.
CONTENTS OF VOL. II.
CHAPTER
XXXIV. HOME AFFAIRS (OCTOBER, 1883, TO DECEMBER, 1884)
XXXV. EGYPT (1884)
XXXVI. FRANCHISE AND REDISTRIBUTION (JULY TO DECEMBER, 1884)
XXXVII. FOREIGN AFFAIRS IN 1884
XXXVIII. DIVIDED COUNSELS (JANUARY AND FEBRUARY, 1885)
XXXIX. THE FALL OF KHARTOUM AND THE PENJDEH INCIDENT
XL. REDISTRIBUTION: COERCION AND DEVOLUTION (1885)
XLI. FALL OF ADMINISTRATION (JUNE TO JULY, 1885)
XLII. OUT OF OFFICE (JULY, 1885)
XLIII. THE TURNING-POINT (JULY, 1885, TO JULY, 1886)
XLIV. THE RADICAL PROGRAMME VERSUS HOME RULE (JULY TO DECEMBER, 1885)
XLV. BEGINNING OF THE HOME RULE SPLIT (DECEMBER, 1885, TO FEBRUARY,
1886)
XLVI. THE FIRST HOME RULE BILL (FEBRUARY TO JULY, 1886)
XLVII. LADY DILKE—76, SLOANE STREET
XLVIII. FOREIGN POLICY
XLIX. PUBLIC LIFE AND RETURN TO PARLIAMENT (1886-1894)
L. INDIA AND FRANCE—RHODES AND BISMARCK (1886-1892)
LI. PERSONAL LIFE—IN OPPOSITION (1895-1904)
LII. LABOUR (1870-1911)
LIII. WORK FOR NATIVE RACES (1870-1911)
LIV. THE BRITISH ARMY
LV. IMPERIAL DEFENCE
LVI. ARMY AND NAVY IN PARLIAMENT
LVII. DEATH OF LADY DILKE—PARLIAMENT OF 1905
LVIII. FOREIGN AFFAIRS (1890-1910)
LIX. THE LAST YEARS
LX. LITERARY WORK AND INTERESTS
LXI. TABLE TALK
INDEX
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS TO VOL. II
SIR CHARLES W. DILKE IN THE YEAR 1908 From a drawing by W. Strang.
MRS. MARK PATTISON From a photograph taken about 1878.
SIR THOMAS WENTWORTH, 1ST BARON WENTWORTH (DIED MARCH 3RD, 1550-51) From a painting ascribed to Theodore Bernardi.
BISMARCK From a photograph given by him to Sir Charles W. Dilke.
SIR CHARLES W. DILKE ROWING From a photograph reproduced by permission of the Daily Mirror.
DOCKETT EDDY From photographs.
PYRFORD ROUGH From photographs.
LADY DILKE IN THE YEAR 1903 From a photograph by Thomson.
THE LIFE OF SIR CHARLES DILKE
I.
The interval between the Sessions of 1883 and 1884 was critical for the question of electoral reform which interested Liberals beyond all other questions, but involved the risk of bringing dissensions in the Cabinet to the point of open rupture. As the months went by, Mr. Chamberlain and Lord Hartington used less and less concealment of their differences, while it was well known to all the Cabinet that the alliance between Chamberlain and Dilke was complete and unconditional. Whoever broke with Chamberlain broke with Dilke. Fortunately a certain bond of personal sympathy, in spite of divergent views, existed between Lord Hartington and Sir Charles Dilke, and this bond largely helped to hold Mr. Gladstone's Government together.
In the negotiations which followed between the leaders of the two great Parties, Sir Charles Dilke was able to show the full measure of his value to the State. It was of first-rate importance that the Liberal Party should possess at that moment a representative with whom Lord Salisbury found it congenial to treat, and whom the most advanced Liberals trusted unreservedly to treat with Lord Salisbury.
The same confidence could hardly have been given by them to Lord Hartington, who held that “equalization of the franchise was pressing mainly on account of the pledges that had been given, and not much for any other reason.” [Footnote: Letter to Mr. Gladstone of October 24th, 1883, quoted by Mr. Bernard Holland in his Life of the Duke of Devonshire, vol. i., p. 395.] Most Liberals took a very different view of the need for this reform. Further, Lord Hartington held that franchise and redistribution should be treated simultaneously, and he was unwilling to extend the franchise in Ireland.
At a Cabinet on October 25th, 1883, the question of simultaneous or separate treatment of the problems had been settled. Mr. Gladstone, says Sir Charles, 'made a speech which meant franchise first and the rest nowhere.' On the Irish question, Sir Charles was instructed to get accurate statistics as to the effects of equalizing the franchise between boroughs and counties, and 'on Friday, November 16th,' he notes, 'I wrote to Chamberlain: “I have some awful figures for poor Hartington to swallow—700,000 county householders in the Irish counties.”' Lord Hartington still stuck to his point of linking redistribution and franchise.
But on November 22nd,
'Mr. Gladstone read a long and admirable memorandum in favour of
the
views held by him, by Chamberlain, and by me, as to franchise
and
redistribution—that is, franchise first, with a promise of
redistribution but no Bill; and Hartington received no support
after
this from any members of the Cabinet.'
There were, however, matters in which Lord Hartington's Conservative tendencies found an ally in the Prime Minister. On November 28th, 1883, at the Committee of the Cabinet on Local Government,
'Chamberlain noted: “Mr. Gladstone hesitates to disfranchise the
freeholders in boroughs—persons voting as householders in
boroughs
and as freeholders in the counties in which the boroughs are
constituted. I am in favour of one man one vote, and told him
so.”
Our not getting one man one vote was entirely Mr. Gladstone's
fault,
for the Cabinet expected and would have taken it, Hartington
alone
opposing, as he opposed everything all through.'
The question of widening the franchise in Ireland was still unsettled, and Mr. Chamberlain and Lord Hartington both made allusion to it in public speeches at this moment. The speeches, apart from their marked difference in general tone, were on this point in flat contradiction to each other, and on December 2nd Lord Hartington wrote to Mr. Gladstone with a threat of resignation. On that day he delivered at Accrington a long eulogy of the Whigs, who had 'formed a connecting link between the advanced party and those classes which, possessing property, powers, and influence, are naturally averse to change.' The Whigs it was, he contended, who had by their guidance and their action reduced changes in the direction of popular reform to the 'calm and peaceful process of constitutional acts.'
'At this moment there was a conflict raging between Chamberlain
and
Hartington, and in their autumn speeches each of them pretty
plainly
attacked the other's policy. Chamberlain wrote to me: “Why does
Hartington think aloud when he thinks one thing and is
going to do
the other? And why does he snub the Caucus when he has made up
his
mind to do exactly what they want? If he cannot learn to be a
little
more diplomatic, he will make a devil of a rum leader!” A
little
later Chamberlain gave me “passages from a speech which
ought to
be delivered: 'Yes, gentlemen, I entirely agree with Lord
Hartington. It is the business and duty of Radicals to lead
great
popular movements, and if they are fortunate enough to kindle
the
fire of national enthusiasm and to stir the hearts of the
people,
then it will be the high prerogative of the great Whig noble
who has
been waiting round the corner to direct and guide and moderate
the
movement which he has done all in his power to prevent and
discourage.'“
'The storm between Hartington and Chamberlain having broken out
again, Chamberlain wrote to me on December 5th, enclosing a
letter
of reproof from Mr. Gladstone, and saying: “I replied
casuistically
that I would endeavour to exclude from my speeches the
slightest
reference to Hartington, but that he was really too trying. I
reminded Mr. G. that I had asked if I were free to argue the
question, and that he had said: Yes—no one taking exception.”
In
the following week Chamberlain came to town and dined with me,
and we discussed the matter. Although Mr. Gladstone had blown
Chamberlain up, he was really much more angry with Hartington.'
It appears from the Life of the Duke of Devonshire that Mr. Gladstone continued through December his attempts to mediate. [Footnote: See Life of the Duke of Devonshire, by Mr. Bernard Holland, vol. i, p. 398 et seq.] The matter is thus related by Sir Charles, though not from first- hand knowledge, since he went to Toulon in the middle of December, and stayed there till January 8th, 1884:
'During my absence I had missed one Cabinet, the first that I
ever
missed, and perhaps the only one. It was held suddenly on
January
3rd, and I could not arrive in time. Mr. Gladstone had come up
from
Hawarden under the impression that Hartington was going to
resign,
because we would not produce a redistribution scheme along with
franchise. On the morning of the 3rd, however, he received a
letter
in which Hartington gave way on the understanding that Mr.
Gladstone
would state the general heads of his redistribution scheme. The
subject was not named at the Cabinet of the 3rd, which dealt
with
Egypt only. But the Cabinet adjourned to the 4th, and on
January 4th
discussed South Africa, and also ... received a statement from
Mr.
Gladstone as to his intention to state the heads of our
redistribution scheme in “very general terms.” On the 10th I
noted:
“The Cabinets have resulted in peace between Lord Hartington
and Mr.
Gladstone, but the Reform Bill will be less complete than I had
hoped.” “Mr. Gladstone calmed Hartington by promising not to
run
away from us after franchise and before redistribution, which
was
what Hartington feared he meant to do.”'
Discussion upon the detail of the Bill was resumed, and on January 23rd, 1884,
'the Chancellor (Lord Selborne), Hartington, Kimberley, and
Dodson,
supported by Mr. Gladstone, forced, against Harcourt,
Chamberlain,
and myself, a decision not to attach any condition of residence
to
the property vote.'
'On January 28th there was a meeting of the Committee of the
Cabinet
on the Franchise Bill in Mr. Gladstone's room. Chamberlain was
anxious to “make Hartington go out on franchise.” I asked him
how he
thought it was to be done, and he replied: “If he is restive
now,
raise the question of Mr. Gladstone's statement on
redistribution,
and oppose all limitations in that statement”; and he added
that Mr.
Gladstone had only agreed to make the statement unwillingly to
quiet
Hartington, and that if Hartington were not quieted Mr.
Gladstone
would go back about it. Chamberlain and I on this occasion
tried to
make the Franchise Bill more Radical, but failed, Mr. Gladstone
opposing us on old-fashioned grounds.'
'Chamberlain came to me' (on April 26th) 'about a plan which Mr.
Gladstone was to broach at the next Cabinet, for putting off
the
operation of the Franchise Act until January 1st, '86, in order
to
give time for redistribution to be dealt with. We decided to
oppose
it, on the ground that it would not improbably lead to our
being
forced into holding an election on the old franchise.'
At the beginning of the Session Sir Charles helped on the general policy of Radicalism by one of his many minor electoral reforms. This was a Bill to extend over the United Kingdom the right of keeping the poll open till eight o'clock at night, which he had secured as a privilege for Londoners in 1878. He notes that on February 11th he 'fought with Tory obstructives as to hours of polling, and won'; but the violent resistance which was offered at first did not continue, and the Bill passed quietly in July, after time had been given to discuss it in the constituencies.
'On this day (July 22nd) I had a long and curious conversation
with
Healy as to Irish redistribution and as to the hours of poll in
counties, with regard to which he was against extension, but
said
that he was forced to support it in public. He told me that his
private opinion was that the Land Act had quieted Ireland.'
The 'Representation of the People' Bill, as the franchise measure was called, was introduced on February 28th, 1884, and made steady progress, Liberals finding their task facilitated by the difficulties of their opponents.
'On May 7th I wrote to Chamberlain to say that I had to speak at
a
house dinner of the Devonshire Club that night, and to ask him
if
there was anything he wanted said, to which he replied: “Note
Randolph Churchill's letter to Salisbury with reference to the
Conservative Caucus, and the vindication of the Birmingham
one.” It
was impossible not to notice this important letter, which
revolutionized politics for some time.'
'May 14th.—After the Cabinet I was informed by
Chamberlain that a
week earlier, on Wednesday, May 7th, Randolph Churchill had
sent to
him to know whether, if he broke with the Conservatives, the
Birmingham Liberals would support him as an independent
candidate.'
Sir Charles's letter to his agent at this time sums up the political position:
'The Tory game is to delay the franchise until they have upset
us
upon Egypt, before the Franchise Bill has reached the Lords....
Our
side will be in a humour to treat as traitors any who do not
insist
that the one Bill and nothing else shall be had in view—in
face of
the tremendous struggle impending in the Lords.'
'On May 13th I had received a letter from Mr. Gladstone
in answer
to one from me in a matter which afterwards became important,
and
but for Chamberlain's strong stand would have forced me to
leave the
Government. I had so strong an opinion in favour of woman's
suffrage
that I could not undertake to vote against it, even when
proposed as
an amendment to a great Government Bill.'
Sir Charles had written as follows:
'ANTIBES,
'Easter Eve, '84.
'I had thought till lately that the Woman's Suffrage division in
Committee on the Franchise Bill would have been so hollow that
my
absence from it would not have mattered; but as I find that
Grosvenor thinks that it will not be hollow, it becomes my duty
to
write to you about it. I myself think Grosvenor wrong; the
woman's
suffrage people claim some 250 “friends,” but this they do by
counting all who, having voted with them once, have abstained
from
voting for many years, and who are really foes. The division
can
only be a close one if the Tory party as a body support the
view
which is Northcote's, I believe, and was Disraeli's, but many
of the
leaders would be bitterly opposed to such a course. Mr.
Disraeli
left the woman's suffrage amendment an open question on his own
Reform Bill, and forbade the Government Whips to tell against
the
amendment, but the mass of the Tory party voted in the
majority. On
this next occasion there will be a larger Liberal vote against
the
change than there was last year, and I do not believe that
there
will be a larger Tory vote in its favour. But, supposing that I
am
wrong and Grosvenor right, I should feel no difficulty in
voting
against the amendment on the grounds of tactics which would be
stated, provided that Fawcett and Courtney, who are the only
other
thick-and-thin supporters of woman's suffrage in the
Government,
voted also, but I cannot vote if they abstain. Under these
circumstances what had I better do?'
Mr. Gladstone wrote back on May 11th:
'The question as to the votes of members of the Government on
woman's suffrage is beyond me, and I have always intended to
ask the
Cabinet, and (like the Gordon rescue) at the proper time. The
distinction appears to me as clear as possible between
supporting a
thing in its right place and forcing it into its wrong place.
To
nail on to the extension of the franchise, founded upon
principles
already known and in use, a vast social question, which is
surely
entitled to be considered as such, appears to me in principle
very
doubtful. When to this is added the admirable pretext—nay, the
fair
argument—it would give to the House of Lords for “putting off"
the
Bill, I cannot see the ground for hesitation. But I quite
understand
what (I believe) is your view, that there should be one rule
for all
the members of the Government.'
'This was an important letter. The words “(like the Gordon
rescue)
at the proper time” seem to show that Mr. Gladstone had already
made
up his mind to send an expedition to Khartoum, although he
would not
say so. The body of the letter proved that Mr. Gladstone had a
very
strong opinion against me on the main point, and the
consultation of
the Cabinet (which was dead against woman suffrage), and the
one
rule for all members of the Government, meant that he intended
to
force my vote by a Cabinet resolution, and, killing two birds
with
one stone, to attack at the same time Fawcett, who had walked
out on
several questions, and announced his intention of walking out
on
others.
'By May 22nd I had finally made up my mind that I could not vote
against the woman franchise amendment—even as a mere matter of
tactics and deference to others—if Courtney and Fawcett went
out on
the matter. I could not speak to them about it because of the
“Cabinet secret” doctrine. Childers had been directed by the
Cabinet
to sound Courtney, because he was Courtney's official superior
in
the Treasury. Childers was to offer Courtney that if he would
vote
against the amendment he should be allowed to speak for woman
franchise on the merits, and that none of its opponents in the
Cabinet (that is, all except myself) should speak against it on
the
merits. I noted: “On the whole I think that we shall walk out,
and
not be turned out for so doing.” I again explained my position
to
Mr. Gladstone.... I felt that the majority of those voting for
woman
franchise on this occasion would be Tories, voting for party
reasons, and in order to upset the Bill. I was therefore
unwilling
to go out on this occasion, but thought I could not do
otherwise
than make common cause with Courtney. On the merits of woman
franchise I had and have a strong opinion. I always thought the
refusal of it contrary to the public interest. The refusal of
the
franchise also affects the whole position of women most
unfavourably.' [Footnote: Mrs. Fawcett wrote thanking him 'in
the
name of the friends of Women's Suffrage. Your being a member of
the
Cabinet made your position in the matter one of special
difficulty;
but I do assure you that our gratitude is real and unfeigned.']
On May 24th Sir Charles told the Cabinet what 'I had told Mr. Gladstone in a letter which I had written to him on Easter Eve, and renewed on the occasion when he made the reply which has been quoted above.'
When the amendment was reached, Dilke, with Fawcett and Courtney, abstained. This led to serious trouble. Sir Charles wrote on June 12th in his Diary:
'Hartington is very angry with me for not voting, and wants me
turned out for it. He has to vote every day for things which he
strongly disapproves, and this makes the position difficult. He
says
that my position was wholly different from that of Fawcett and
Courtney, because I was a party to the decision of the Cabinet,
and
that custom binds the minority in the collective decision of
Her
Majesty's servants. This is undoubtedly the accepted theory.
Poor
Hibbert was made to vote. [Footnote: Sir John Tomlinson Hibbert
(d.
1908), at this time Financial Secretary to the Treasury, was an
able
administrator, and held office in Mr. Gladstone's four
administrations. He assisted materially in the passing of the
Execution within Gaols Act, Married Women's Property Act, and
Clergy
Disabilities Act, and was keenly interested in the reform of
the
Poor Law.] I fear the Cabinet put the yoke, not of political
necessity, but of their personal prejudice against woman
suffrage,
on the necks of their followers.'
The matter came up at a Cabinet on June 14th, and was made worse because a letter from Lord Hartington, 'offensive in tone,' had been circulated by accident. However, Mr. Gladstone issued a minute about my walking out on woman's suffrage, which concluded by a proposal, if his colleagues concurred, to request me to remain in the Government. Thus ended a personal crisis which, to use the French phrase, had been 'open' since my letter to Mr. Gladstone dated 'Antibes, Easter Eve.'
'Chamberlain wrote to me: “It is settled”; and I wrote back: “It
is
settled. I would not have asked you to stand by me, as I have
no
constitutional case, and your conduct in so doing could not be
defended. I always count on your friendship, but this would
have
been too much.” He replied: “We are both right. You could not
ask
me, but if you had been requested to resign I should have gone
too.”
Chamberlain had previously informed the Cabinet that, though he
differed from me about woman's suffrage, and regretted the
course
that I had felt myself obliged to take, he intended to stand by
me
“to the fullest extent.”' [Footnote: The further negotiations
with
regard to Franchise and Redistribution in 1884, and the
'compact'
which ended them, are dealt with in Chapter XXXVI., infra, pp.
63-79.]
II.
While the great measure of the Session went steadily through its stages, various other questions were also occupying the Cabinet. The search for a new Speaker in succession to Sir Henry Brand, who had declared at the beginning of 1883 his unwillingness to retain office beyond that Session, was one, and not the least important, of these questions. Sir Henry James was first mentioned, and he refused.
'November, 1883. Some had thought of putting up Dodson, but the
Tories had announced that they should run Ridley in opposition
to
him. There was also a difficulty about filling Dodson's place.
Trevelyan was the only man who could be put into the Cabinet
without
causing the resignation of Courtney and Fawcett, and Mr.
Gladstone
was still in the humour which he had developed at the time of
the
offer of the Chief Secretaryship to me, and declared that he
would
not have the Chief Secretary in the Cabinet, the Viceroy being
in
it, for this would be to have two Kings of Brentford.'
On November 10th 'Childers seemed the favourite for Speakership,' but on the 12th it was decided that Herschell, Goschen, Arthur Peel, and Campbell-Bannerman, were to be offered the Speakership—in that order. It was known that Herschell would refuse, it was thought that Goschen would refuse on the ground of sight, and Peel on the ground of health, and it was intended that Campbell-Bannerman should have it. Herschell did refuse, but Goschen accepted, and had to be shown by his doctor that he could not see members across the House, that he would be capable of confusing Healy with Parnell.... Peel accepted, and in spite of his bad health took it, and has kept it till this day (1891).'
There was also continuous discussion behind the scenes as to the two important measures of local government reform—for London and for the country.
'By November 8th, 1883, I had succeeded in bringing Harcourt
round
on the London police matter ... to let the City keep their
police,
and then went to Mr. Gladstone.... After twelve o'clock at
night
Harcourt joined us, and it was agreed to put both London and
local
government in the Queen's Speech for 1884.'
Dilke spent much work upon the London Government Bill with Harcourt in January of that year; but the Bill, having passed its second reading, was not further proceeded with, owing to House of Commons difficulties. Sir Charles gives the true reason in a letter to his agent:
'One unfortunate thing about the London Bill is that no one in
the
House cares about it except Dilke, Firth, and the Prime
Minister,
and no one outside the House except the Liberal electors of
Chelsea.
This is the private hidden opinion of Harcourt and of the
Metropolitan Liberal members except Firth. I am personally so
strong
for the Bill that I have not at any time admitted this to
Harcourt,
and I have only hinted it to Firth....'
When Sir William Harcourt's Bill collapsed, Dilke attempted a minor improvement for the Metropolis by framing a City Guilds Bill, which he described to Mr. Gladstone as following the scheme of the Bills by which the Universities had been reformed. But the Chancellor, Lord Selborne, fought strongly against this proposal: and nothing came of it.
The great scheme for reforming Local Government in England and Wales was meanwhile being considered by the Committee to which it had been referred. Besides Sir Charles Dilke, who naturally acted as Chairman, the Committee consisted of Mr. Chamberlain, Lord Kimberley, Mr. Childers, Lord Carlingford, and Mr. Dodson (who were members of the Cabinet), and Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice. With them were Sir Henry Thring, the celebrated Parliamentary draughtsman, and Mr. Hugh Owen, the Permanent Secretary of the Local Government Board. The task of obtaining agreement, and even sometimes of maintaining order, in a Committee composed of persons representing such a variety of opinion, was no easy one, and it tested to the full the tact and ingenuity of the Chairman. Mr. Dodson, Sir Charles Dilke's immediate predecessor at the Local Government Board, and Lord Carlingford represented the views which had hitherto prevailed in favour of piecemeal and gradual reform. Mr. Chamberlain, Lord Kimberley, and Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice were, on the contrary, supporters of the large Bill which the Chairman had prepared; while Mr. Childers, as Chancellor of the Exchequer, was there mainly to keep a vigilant watch on the local authorities, who were suspected, and not without reason, of desiring to treat the Treasury as a sort of “milch cow,” a description which Mr. Gladstone had recently made current in a debate in the House of Commons, Sir Henry Thring was no mere draughtsman. He had had an immense experience of official life, had known every man of public importance over a long period of years, and had very determined views on most subjects, which he never hesitated to express in clear-cut language and without respect of persons. Mr. Lowe, it was asserted, had once observed at a Cabinet just before Thring entered the room: 'I think before he arrives we had better carry a preliminary resolution that we are all d——d fools.' As it also happened, Local Government was a subject on which Sir Henry Thring, and not without reason, prided himself as an expert, and the Committee over which Sir Charles Dilke presided consequently had Sir Henry Thring's views conveyed to them in unmistakable terms. One of his special objects of hostility was the Poor Law Union area, which he hoped ultimately to destroy. On the other hand, Mr. Hugh Owen, like nearly all the Local Government Board officials of that time, regarded the Poor Law and everything connected with it as sacred. The controversies were frequently fierce, and on one occasion a serious crisis almost arose owing to Lord Kimberley asking to be informed if Sir Henry Thring was preparing a Bill of his own or was acting on his instructions.
The Bill of 1884 contained almost everything now to be found within the corners of the two great measures of 1888 and 1894, which, the one passed by a Conservative, the other by a Liberal Government, entirely revolutionized the Local Government of England. It was, however, decided to have no Aldermen, but a few ex-officio seats were created on the County Council. Otherwise direct election was the method chosen for all the new Councils. The administration of the Poor Law was kept within the purview of the Bill, after a long controversy as to the method of electing the representatives of urban parishes on the local Poor Law authority, when such an authority included both a borough and a rural district; and the limit of population that was to entitle a borough to a complete independence from the county authority was raised from the figure originally proposed of 20,000 to 100,000 and upwards.
It had been part of Sir Charles Dilke's plan to include education within the framework of the Bill, making the Borough and District Councils the local education authority, with a limited superior jurisdiction in the County Council. But it was found that almost insurmountable difficulties would arise in adding so immense a proposal to an already large measure, and it had to be abandoned.
Mr. Gladstone expressed a decided view on one portion of the Bill only. He gave his strongest support to the proposal that the price of any increased contributions in the shape of Treasury grants should be the complete reform of the conflict of areas and jurisdictions, which added so much to the difficulties and the cost of local administration. [Footnote: In a speech made at Halifax on October 13th, 1885, which occupies nearly the whole of a page of the Times, Sir Charles Dilke, after the fall of the Government, gave a full account of the proposed measure.]
The question of female councillors inevitably found its way into the discussions, and it was decided in their favour, notwithstanding much divergence of opinion.
'“I am sorry,” Childers wrote, “about female councillors, but I
suppose I am in a minority, and that we shall soon have women
M.P.'s
and Cabinet Ministers.” This shows that we had decided to clear
up
the doubt as to the possibility of women serving as
councillors, and
distinctly to give them the opportunity of so doing. When
Ritchie
afterwards introduced portions of my Bill, he left this
doubtful,
and the Lady Sandhurst decision was the result.' [Footnote: See
for
“Lady Sandhurst decision,” infra, p. 17.]
Sir Charles differed from other members of the Committee in the desire to make the county and not the Local Government Board the sole appellate authority from the district. 'I would, indeed,' he says, 'have gone farther, had I been able to convince my colleagues, and have set up an elective Local Government Board for England.'
Owing to the Parliamentary position, progress with any large measures of reform was, however, difficult even in the preliminary stages; and the road seemed to get more encumbered every day, for the period now under review indicates the high-water mark of Parliamentary obstruction in the skilled hands of the Irish Party and Lord Randolph Churchill, who successfully defied the feeble reforms of procedure of 1882. So it came about that early in 1884 Sir Charles was found rather mournfully writing to Mr. Gladstone:
'We produced to-day our last draft of the Local Government Bill,
and
had our funeral meeting over it, I fear. I wish to tell you
with
what spirit and skill Edmond Fitzmaurice has gone into the
matter.
He is the only man I know who is fit to be President of this
Board.'
In the autumn of 1883 Sir Charles made what was rare with him, a kind of oratorical progress. He spoke at Glasgow, at Greenock, and lastly at Paisley, where he received the freedom of the burgh for his services connected with the commercial negotiations. His speech at Paisley naturally dealt with commercial policy, and drew an admiring letter from Sir Robert Morier, who was then just bringing to a head the offer of a commercial treaty with Spain. The Cabinet, however, had been much inclined to issue a general declaration on the subject,
'Mr. Gladstone and Lord Granville being against all commercial
treaties, I for good ones and against bad ones, and Chamberlain
for
punishing Italy for her conduct to us.' [Footnote: 'March 5th,
1883.—We turned to Tariff Treaties: Lord Granville and Mr.
Gladstone wishing for a general and abstract declaration
against
them, and I, with support of Childers, urging most strongly the
other view. The proposed declaration was a gratuitous piece of
folly, for we were not called on to say anything at all.']
When the proposed treaty with Spain, and the changes in duties which it would involve, were before the Cabinet on November 10th,
'I am afraid I played upon Mr. Gladstone's favourite weakness
(next
to praise of Montenegro)—namely, abuse of the Customs, a
department
for the routine of which he always had a perfect loathing.'
III.
Queen Victoria's demand for investigation into the housing of the poor [Footnote: See Vol. I., p. 509.] had led to prompt administrative action, planned by Sir Charles before he left for his Christmas holiday.
'While I was at Toulon there were issued from the Local
Government
Board the circulars on the Housing of the Working Class, which
I had
prepared before leaving London.... One circular, December 29th,
1883
... called on the Vestries to make use of the powers which they
possessed for regulating the condition of houses let in
lodgings.
Another, December 30th ... called attention to their powers
under
the Sanitary Acts, and under the Artisans and Labourers'
Dwellings
Acts; and one of the same date to a similar effect went to all
urban
sanitary districts throughout the country, while a further
circular
with digests of the laws was sent out on January 7th, 1884.
This
action was afterwards repeated by Chamberlain and others, and
taken
for new, and again by Walter Long.'
But, naturally, the first man to do it stirred up a hornets' nest. Punch of the first week in January, 1884, derides the 'Bitter Cry of Bumbledom' against Dilke and Mr. Hugh Owen, [Footnote: Years after Sir Hugh Owen, G.C.B., wrote to Dilke: 'I shall always remember that I owed my first step in the Order of the Bath to you.'] Secretary to the Local Government Board:
'Us to blame? That's a capital notion! Drat them and their
“statutes” and “digests”!
“Convenience of reference.” Ah! that is one of their imperent sly
jests.
Removal of Noosances? Yah! If we started on that lay
perniskers
There is more than a few in the Westries 'ud feel suthin'
singein'
their wiskers,
Or BUMBLE'S a Dutchman. Their Circ'lar—it's mighty
obliging—defines
'em,
The Noosances namely; I wonder if parties read Circ'lars
as signs
'em,
If so, Local Government Boarders must be most oncommonly knowin',
And I'd like to 'eave bricks at that DILKE and his long-winded
myrmidon OWEN.
The public's got Slums on the brain, and with sanitry bunkum's
have
busted.
We make a more wigorous use of the powers with which we're
entrusted!
Wy, if we are at it all day with their drains, ashpits, roofs,
walls,
and windies,
Wot time shall we 'ave for our feeds and our little porochial
shindies!
And all for the 'labouring classes'—the greediest,
ongratefullest
beggars.
I tell you these Radical lot and their rubbishy littery eggers,
Who talk of neglected old brooms, and would 'ave us turn
to at their
handles,
Are Noosances wus than bad smells and the rest o' their sanitry
“scandals.”'
Sir Charles's main object in local government was to decentralize, and he sought to move in this direction by stimulating the exercise of existing powers and the habit of responsibility in local popularly elected bodies. But inquiry was also necessary.
'On February 8th, 1884, it had been decided to appoint a Royal
Commission on the Housing of the Working Classes, and Mr.
Gladstone
had expressed his wish that I should be chairman of the
Commission,
on which the Prince of Wales desired to serve.'
'On the 9th it was settled that Bodley, my secretary, should be
secretary to the Royal Commission. I immediately wrote to
Manning to
ask him to serve, and he consented on February 12th.'
Lord Salisbury's name lent another distinction to the list, which was completed by February 16th. [Footnote: In addition to the Prince, the Cardinal, and Lord Salisbury, Dilke's Commission consisted of Lord Brownlow, Lord Carrington, Mr. Goschen, Sir Richard Cross, the Bishop of Bedford (Dr. Walsham How), Mr. E. Lyulph Stanley, Mr. McCullagh Torrens, Mr. Broadhurst, Mr. Jesse Collings, Mr. George Godwin, and Mr. Samuel Morley. To these were added later Mr. Dwyer Gray and Sir George Harrison, for Ireland and Scotland respectively.]
'A very difficult question arose about his precedence. I
referred it
to the Prince of Wales, who said that he thought Manning ought
to
take precedence, as a Prince, after Princes of the Blood, and
before
Lord Salisbury.'
The nice question was referred to Lord Salisbury and to many other authorities, and finally to Lord Sydney, who wrote, from the Board of Green Cloth, 'that in 1849, at the Queen's Levee at Dublin Castle, the Roman Catholic Primate followed the Protestant Archbishop, but he was not a Cardinal. A fortiori I presume a Cardinal as a Prince of the Holy Roman Empire would have precedence next to the Prince of Wales. It showed, however, extraordinary ignorance on the part of the Lord Steward to suppose that the Holy Roman Empire and the Papal Court were the same thing.' [Footnote: The story of how the question of precedence was settled in Manning's favour is given in detail in Mr. Bodley's Cardinal Manning, and Other Essays (1912).]
'It was on February 12th that I received Sir Henry Ponsonby's
letter
announcing the approval of the Queen to the Prince serving on
the
Commission as an ordinary member under my chairmanship, and the
Prince of Wales expressed his pleasure at the Queen's
approval.'
'On February 22nd the members of the Cabinet present (at a
meeting
at the Foreign Office) discussed my proposal to put Miss
Octavia
Hill on my Royal Commission, no woman having ever sat on one;
and
Harcourt having refused to sign the Commission if it contained
a
woman's name, Mr. Gladstone, Kimberley, and Northbrook sided
with
me, and Hartington with Harcourt. Lord Granville said that he
was
with me on the principle, but against me on the person. After
this
Mr. Gladstone went round, and said that the decision of the
Cabinet
was against me. Asquith put several women on a Royal Commission
a
few years later, but refused them the precedence to which they
were
entitled, and gave every male member precedence before them.'
Mr. Lyulph Stanley was included to represent his sister, Miss Maude Stanley, whom Sir Charles Dilke had wished to appoint.
Later in the year Sir Charles successfully asserted the principle for which he was contending, by putting women on the Metropolitan Asylums Board. Lady Ducie had the honour of the first invitation to serve, and Sir Charles afterwards added Miss Maude Stanley and others. The question of qualification was discussed, only to be set aside. The law officers
'knew the women would be knocked off if anyone raised the
question,
and in Lady Sandhurst's case this was afterwards made clear;
but no
one did raise it against my nominees, and they stayed on for
life.'
'March 7th.—I had now had several interviews with Lord
Salisbury
and the Prince of Wales about the Royal Commission, and the
first
meeting of the Commission itself was held on March 5th.... We
really
began our work on March 14th. My work was heavy at this time,
with
sittings of the Commission twice a week, for which I had to
prepare,
as I did all the examination in chief of the witnesses, and,
indeed,
found them all and corresponded with them in advance.'
'The Commission was dull, although it produced a certain amount
of
valuable evidence, and almost the only amusing incident which
occurred in the course of many months was Lord Salisbury making
a
rather wild suggestion, when Broadhurst put down his pen, and,
looking up in a pause, said with an astonished air, “Why, that
is
Socialism!” at which there was a loud laugh all round.'
'I wrote to Lord Salisbury on May 7th to ask him for his
suggestions
as to what I called “remedies” to be proposed by our
Commission, as
I had already made my own list, and wished from this time
forward to
examine each witness on the same heads, with a view to
collecting a
body of evidence for the Report, intended to lead to
recommendation
and legislation upon these particular points....'
Some of Lord Salisbury's suggestions were 'valuable, and still throw much light on his temporary Radicalism, which unfortunately soon wore off.'
'It is clear that on May 9th, 1884, he was contemplating
throwing
the rates upon the land, and making a long step towards
leasehold
enfranchisement. Lord Salisbury's proposal on this last head
was
virtually one for “judicial rents,” as far as principle went,
and
destructive of the old view of the rights of holders of landed
property—although, perhaps, not one carrying much advantage to
anybody!'
The Report of the Commission proposed the rating of vacant land, but before it was drafted Lord Salisbury condemned the proposal in a memorandum attached to the Report, which Mr. Goschen supported by another independent minute.
Sir Charles sent also a request for the suggestion of 'remedies' to Cardinal Manning, who, says a scribbled note, 'is our only revolutionary!'
'On Friday, May 16th, at the Commission the Cardinal handed me
his
list of suggestions, which were not only revolutionary, but
ill-
considered, and I have to note how curiously impracticable a
schemer, given to the wildest plans, this great ecclesiastic
showed
himself. He suggested the removal out of London, not only of
prisons
and infirmaries (which no doubt are under the control of public
authorities), but also of breweries, ironworks, and all
factories
not needed for daily or home work, as a means of giving us
areas for
housing the working class, suggestions the value or
practicability
of which I need hardly discuss.'
'On May 18th, I having proposed to add to the Royal Commission a
member for Ireland and a member for Scotland before we began to
take
the Scotch and Irish evidence, and having proposed Gray, the
Nationalist member and proprietor of the Freeman's Journal, who
was the highest Irish authority upon the subject, Ponsonby
replied:
“Although the Queen cannot say she has a high opinion of Mr.
Gray,
Her Majesty will approve of his appointment, and that of the
Lord
Provost of Edinburgh, on the Royal Commission.” Sir Henry
Ponsonby
was a worthy successor of General Grey—a wise counsellor of
much
prudence, invaluable to the Queen.'
'Early in June Chamberlain came a good deal to the Local
Government
Board to consider the evidence which he was to give before my
Commission. His view was mine—that in the Metropolis the
housing of
the working classes could only be dealt with by imposing the
most
stringent obligations on the owners of property on which
artisans'
dwellings already existed; and Chamberlain was willing to go so
far
as to reserve such property permanently for the object, with
State
interference to secure fair rents. I argued with him that a
strong
case could be made against him on such points as extension of
trade
from the City into Whitechapel, extension of fashionable
dwellings
from Mayfair into Chelsea, and so forth. He then fell back upon
a
proposal for exchange, and said that at all events there was no
practical alternative to his view, an opinion in which I
agreed. On
a later day in June the Cardinal wrote to me expressing his
regret
for absence from the Commission, “at which I should like to
have
seen Lord Salisbury examine Mr. Chamberlain.” But the
Commission
kept up its character for dulness, and nothing noteworthy
occurred.'
The Commission on Housing, to which so much of Sir Charles's time was devoted, had an importance, now forgotten, in the modern development of Social Reform.
'Up to five-and-twenty years ago,' said a writer in a daily
newspaper on Social Reform in 1910, 'when the living Sir
Charles
Dilke was the President of the Local Government Board, no one
cared
how the poor lived or fared. They could reside in the most
ramshackle tenements in insanitary slums, for which, by the
way,
they were charged exorbitant rents, far higher than what they
would
now pay for the well-ventilated and well-equipped
self-contained
houses of the London County Council and building companies
which
provide accommodation for the industrial classes. Sir Charles
saw
the abject and helpless condition of the people of London, and
resolved, when he succeeded to office, to try and remedy the
evils
under which they laboured. His enthusiasm in the cause of the
poor
caught on, and in a short time “slumming” became a fashionable
craze. Committees were formed—the premier one being that which
had
its headquarters at the Mansion House—to improve the dwellings
of
the poor. In a short time the movement became a great success,
and,
that there should be no falling back, medical officers of
health,
whose sole time was to be devoted to their duties, and
battalions of
sanitary inspectors, were appointed in every district in the
Metropolis.'
It cannot be said that 'no one cared,' for outside the great official movement which Sir Charles Dilke directed were the devoted social workers on whom he called for evidence at the Commission, and to whose labours he always paid tribute; nor must be forgotten the Queen's fine letter calling on her Ministers to act. But, as Miss Octavia Hill wrote to him on March 22nd, 1884, 'you among all men realize most clearly that action is more needed than words.'
The question of Housing is so inextricably bound up with all the conditions of the poor, with hours of work and with those questions of wages which Sir Charles had first studied with John Stuart Mill, that it is natural to find him presiding over another inquiry which, though prepared for in 1884, was carried out in the first weeks of 1885.
'At the beginning of the new year of 1885 there were completed
the
final arrangements for my presidency of the Industrial
Remuneration
Conference, which was held at the end of January at Prince's
Hall,
Piccadilly, on three mornings and three afternoons. A large sum
of
money had been given for the purpose of promoting the
consideration
of the best means for bringing about a more equal division of
the
products of industry between capital and labour, so that it
might
become possible for all to enjoy a fair share of material
comfort
and intellectual culture—possible for all to lead a dignified
life,
and less difficult to lead a good life. The trustees who were
appointed decided to promote a conference on the present system
whereby the products of industry are distributed between the
various
classes of the community, and the means whereby that system
should
be improved. They then divided the subject into subheads, and
asked
certain persons to read papers, and an extraordinarily
interesting
series of discussions was the result. In my own speech in
opening
the proceedings I called attention to the nature of the German
Governmental Socialism, and quoted Prince Bismarck's speeches,
showing what was the object which the Prussian Government had
in
view—namely, to try experiments as to the labour of man with
the
view “to reach a state of things in which no man could say: 'I
bear
the burden of society, but no one cares for me.'“ This
Conference
first introduced to London audiences all the leaders of the new
Unionism, and future chiefs of the Dockers' Strike. Among the
speakers were Arthur Balfour and John Burns, who told us of his
dismissal from his employment as an engineer at Brotherhoods
[Footnote: A great engineering firm at Chippenham in
Wiltshire.] for
attending as delegate of the “S.D.F.”'
'I am convinced,' wrote Mr. Burns in 1914 from the Office of the
Local Government Board, over which he then presided, 'that few,
if
any, conferences held in London in recent years have done more
good
for the cause of social progress than the Industrial
Remuneration
Conference of 1885. The Conference focussed public opinion and
sympathy upon a large number of important questions, which have
since made greater headway than they would have done if the
Conference had not taken place. I have the highest opinion of
the
value of its work, and of the good influence it exercised in
stimulating inquiry and action in many directions.'
Six years later, when Sir Charles was before the electors of the Forest of Dean as their chosen candidate, he discussed the whole question of limiting by law the hours of work; and he told them how his experience of those days spent in the chair of the Conference in 1885 had converted him 'from a position of absolute impartiality to one strongly favourable to legislative limitation.'
A speech delivered by him in January, 1884, to the Liberals of Bedford Park, brings together the two sides of his work. For him political reform lay at the very base of social reform; in his opinion the government of London and extension of the franchise ought not to be party questions at all; his desire was to call the whole people of the country into citizenship of the State, and he would make exercise of the voting power compulsory and universal. People said there was no 'magic in the vote.' He wanted as many citizens as possible to have the right to consider 'the sort of magic by which many persons contrived to live at all under the existing social conditions.'
A proof of his friendship for the cause of labour, and of his desire to associate manual workers with the administration, was given by him in a use of patronage, in which he departed from his principle of confining it to the men in his office, tendering the chance of official employment to two leading representatives of labour in August, 1884.
'I had a “good” appointment under the Local Government Board to
make, and I offered it not only to Broadhurst, but afterwards
to
Burt. I expected both of them to decline, which both did, but I
should have been glad if either of them would have taken it,
for
both were competent.'
IV.
As to his departmental work, Sir Charles notes in July, 1884:
'I have said but little of my work at the Local Government
Board,
because, though heavy, it was of an uninteresting nature.'
[Footnote: There are, however, many entries, of which this for
1884
is typical:
'September 8th.—With the Local Government Board Inspectors
Fleming
and Courtenay to the worst villages in England. I made my way
from
Bridport to Yeovil, Nettlecombe, Powerstock, Maiden Newton,
Taunton
and its neighbourhood, Wiveliscombe, Bridgwater, and North
Petherton.'
'Between September 21st and 27th I was visiting workhouses and
infirmaries every day, and on the 27th I completed my visits to
every workhouse, infirmary, and poor-law school in or belonging
to
Metropolitan Unions.]
'My chief new departure was in connection with the emigration of
pauper children, which had been long virtually prohibited, and
which
I once more authorized.'
Mr. Preston Thomas has fortunately preserved a note of another innovation. The Guardians of a certain union in Cambridgeshire had committed the offence of spending three shillings and threepence of public money on toys for sick pauper children in the workhouse infirmary. The case had occurred before, and the Board's legal advisers had held the expenditure to be unwarrantable, and had surcharged the offending Guardians. Dilke was questioned in the House about the matter, and admitted the previous decisions, but said that the Board had changed its mind. So the children at Wisbech kept their toys; and not only that, but a circular went out from Whitehall suggesting that workhouse girls should be supplied with a reasonable number of skipping-ropes and battledores and shuttlecocks.
The appearance of cholera in French and Spanish ports disquieted the public, and as early as July 25th, 1883,
'I circulated a draft of a Bill to meet the cholera scare, which
I
carried into law as the Diseases Prevention Act. I did not much
believe in cholera, but I took advantage of the scare to carry
some
useful clauses to deal with smallpox epidemics, the most
important
clause being one giving compulsory powers for acquiring
wharves, by
which we could clear the London smallpox hospitals, removing
the
patients to the Atlas and Castalia floating hospitals on the
Thames.
I was a strong partisan of the floating hospitals for smallpox.
I
used to pay frequent visits to them, and in the early summer of
1885
stayed there from Saturday to Monday; and I used also to go to
the
camp at Darenth to which we removed convalescents from the
ships.'
He notes that he was revaccinated before one of these visits:
'September, 1884.—My arm was in a frightful condition from the
vaccine disease, though I was still a teetotaller, now of about
ten
years' standing.'
During the autumn recess:
'In the course of this week I was every day inspecting schools
and
asylums, the imbecile asylums at Caterham, Leavesden, and many
others; and my smallpox wharves were also giving me much
trouble, as
Rotherhithe and the other places showed strong objections to
them,
which I was, however, able to remove.'
But the veteran official who has been already quoted attaches a very different importance to this whole matter. In France and Spain, says Mr. Preston Thomas, the Governments were chiefly concerned to deny the existence of any danger. In England the medical staff demanded such an increase in the number of inspectors as would enable them to take proper precautions at the ports.
'Fortunately, Sir Charles Dilke had become President of the
Board,
and carried with him a political weight which his two worthy,
but
not particularly influential, predecessors, Sclater-Booth and
Dodson, had not enjoyed. He had one or two passages of arms
with
Childers, the Chancellor of the Exchequer, when it was
attempted to
interfere with the estimates which he had put forward, and
which he
declined to defend in Parliament if they were curtailed. There
was
an appeal to the Premier, and Sir Charles Dilke had come off
victorious. So when he proposed largely to increase the medical
staff in order to make a sanitary survey of the entire coast,
the
Treasury's sanction was given, and the work was carried out
with
far-reaching results. The authorities of the ports ... were
impressed with a sense of their responsibilities; not only did
they
organize special arrangements for the inspection of ships from
infected countries, but they also recognized the necessity of
setting their own houses in order in a literal sense, and many
of
them for the first time displayed activity in providing pure
water,
efficient sewerage, and a prompt removal of nuisances.... The
communications of the Board's expert with the local authorities
and
their officers ... did something more than lay the foundations
of
that Public Health System ... which has saved us from any
outbreak
of cholera for the last quarter of a century, [Footnote:
Written in
1909.] and has reduced the mortality from preventable diseases
to a
rate which such countries as France and Germany may well envy.'
(Work and Play of a Government Inspector, p. 148.)
It should be noted, too, that the first definite action of the Housing Commission concerned the Local Government Board:
'It was decided to ask Parliament to alter its standing orders
with
regard to persons of the labouring class displaced under
Parliamentary Powers, and to insist on local inquiry in such
cases,
and the approval of the Local Government Board after it has
been
shown that suitable accommodation had been found for the people
displaced. This was done by resolution of both Houses of
Parliament.'
V.
The friendliness which had grown up between Sir Charles and Lord Salisbury, and was later in this year to be of public service, is illustrated by an amusing note in the Memoir. Sir Charles Dilke was never a clubman, and had incurred the remonstrances of Sir M. Grant Duff by refusing to take up membership of the Athenaeum, as he was entitled to do on entering the Cabinet. But there is a club more august than the Athenaeum, and here also Dilke showed indisposition to enter. He notes in May:
'Before this I had been much pressed to accept my election at
Grillion's Club on Lord Salisbury's nomination. The Club
considers
itself such an illustrious body that it elects candidates
without
telling them they are proposed, and I received notice of my
election
accompanied by some congratulations. I at first refused to
join, but
afterwards wrote to the secretary: “Carlingford has been to see
me
about Grillion's, and tells me that I should have the terrible
distinction of being the first man who ever declined to belong
to
it, an oddity which I cannot face, so ... I will ask your leave
to
withdraw my refusal.” On May 3rd I breakfasted at the Club for
the
first time, Mr. Gladstone and a good many other Front Bench
people,
chiefly Conservatives, being present.'
The meetings of the Housing Commission had also increased the frequency of intercourse between Sir Charles Dilke and the Prince of Wales, who was in this May
'showing a devotion to the work of my Commission which was quite
unusual with him, and he cut short his holiday and returned
from
Royat to London on purpose for our meeting.'
On January 11th, 1884, the Duke of Albany wrote to Sir Charles that he had hoped to call, but was not sure whether he had returned to England. 'I write to express a hope that your opinions will coincide with the request which I have made to Lord Derby ... namely, to succeed Lord Normanby as Governor of Victoria.' He referred to their talk at Claremont of his 'hopes, which were not realized, of going to Canada.' 'The Prince went on to say that, as I had been in Australia, I was “a more competent judge than some others of the Ministers as to the advisability of my appointment.”' He spoke of the matter as one in which he was 'vitally interested,' and his 'sincere trust' in Sir Charles's support. The Cabinet agreed to the appointment,
'unless the Queen persisted in her opposition. The matter had
been
discussed at Eastwell (where I stayed with the Duchess of
Edinburgh
from the 19th to the 21st) by me with the Duchess as well as
with
Princess Louise and Lorne, who were also there. The Duke of
Edinburgh was not there, but at Majorca in his ship. The party
consisted of Nigra, the Italian Ambassador, the Wolseleys, Lord
Baring and his sister Lady Emma, and Count Adlerberg of the
Russian
Embassy, in addition to the Princess Louise and Lome already
named.'
'On January 24th there was a regular Cabinet. The Queen had
written
that she would not allow Prince Leopold to go to Victoria.'
On March 28th 'we heard of the death of Prince Leopold,' codicils to whose will Sir Charles had witnessed in the preceding year. 'All newspapers wrote of the pleasant boy as though he had been a man of literary genius.'
But anxious as Sir Charles had been to further Prince Leopold's wishes, and in spite of his 'respect for his memory,' he could not allow a principle, for which he always fought, to be waived.
'The Queen wrote to Mr. Gladstone at this time (April 5th) with
regard to provision for the child and possible posthumous child
of
the Duke of Albany, and I wrote to Mr. Gladstone that I could
not
possibly agree to any provision for them, for which there was
no
exact precedent, without the Select Committee which I had
previously
been promised as regarded any new application.'
On April 22nd Mr. Gladstone alluded 'to a letter to the Queen, but he did not read it to us,' and Sir Charles again insisted 'upon inquiry before the proposal of any provision for which there was no direct precedent.'
'At the Cabinet of Monday, April 28th, we found that the Queen
was
indignant with us for our refusal to make further provision for
the
Duchess of Albany.... None of the precedents of the century
warranted provision for children in infancy. It was agreed that
Mr.
Gladstone was to write to the Queen again, but “our negative
answer
is only applicable to the case where the children are in
infancy.”
In other words, we did not wish to bind those who might come
after
us, but the phrase was not to commit us as to what we would do
in
five years' time.'
I.
At the close of 1883 the destruction of Hicks's army had made clear to all that the Soudan was, for the time at least, lost to Egypt; and close upon this disaster in the central region had followed defeats on the Red Sea coast. But Egyptian garrisons were holding out at Sinkat, some fifty miles from the port of Suakim, and at Tokar, only twenty miles from the coast. In October, 1883, a small force sent to relieve Sinkat was cut up by the Dervishes under Osman Digna; in November, a larger column of 500, accompanied by the British Consul, was utterly routed in an attempt to reach Tokar. General Baker, with his newly formed gendarmerie, was then ordered to Suakim. He desired to enlist the services of Zebehr Pasha, a famous leader of men, but a former dealer in slaves. To this the British authorities objected, and Zebehr was not sent. Baker went, attempted with 3,500 troops to reach Tokar, and on February 2nd, 1884, lost 2,000 of them near the wells of El Teb. Both Tokar and Sinkat soon after fell into the hands of the Dervishes.
Long before this event, the evacuation of the Soudan had been decreed. A peremptory mandate from the British Government was sent to Cherif Pasha, the Egyptian Prime Minister, who, as he had intimated that he would do, resigned rather than be responsible for giving up so vast a possession. On January 8th, Nubar took office to carry out the prescribed policy. But the problem was how to get away the garrisons, and, since England had ordered evacuation, the Egyptian Government looked to England for assistance.
'On January 16th I noted: “Baring wants to make us send a
British
officer to conduct the retreat from Khartoum. I have written to
Lord
Granville to protest.” Baring had been pressing for an answer
to his
suggestion named above. I had all along fought against the
“Hicks
Expedition,” and this seemed a consequence. The Egyptian
Government
had resigned, and the sole supporter of the abandonment policy
among
the Egyptians in Egypt was the Khedive himself; but Nubar was
sent
for, and accepted office (with a number of cyphers) to carry it
into
effect. On January 10th Lord Granville had telegraphed to
Baring,
without my knowledge, “Would Gordon or Wilson be of use?”
[Footnote:
Colonel Sir Charles Wilson. See his Life, by Sir Charles
Watson,
p. 244.] On the 11th Baring replied, “I do not think that the
services of Gordon or Wilson can be utilized at present”; and
after
a reply had been received I saw the telegrams. The earlier
Gordon
suggestions by Granville, now revealed by E. Fitzmaurice from
the
Granville Papers, and expounded in Cromer's (1908) book, were
never
before the Cabinet. [Footnote: Life of Lord Granville, vol.
ii., pp.
381, 382.]
'On the 14th Lord Granville telegraphed to Baring: “Can you give
further information as to prospects of retreat from (? for)
army and
residents at Khartoum, and measures taken? Can anything more be
done?” Power, our Consular Agent at Khartoum, had also been
told
that he might leave. On January 16th Baring telegraphed: “The
Egyptian Government would feel obliged if Her Majesty's
Government
would send out at once a qualified British officer to go to
Khartoum
with full powers, civil and military, to conduct the retreat.”
Lord
Granville then telegraphed for Gordon, and on the 18th I was
summoned suddenly to a meeting at the War Office in
Hartington's
room, at which were present, before I arrived, Hartington, Lord
Granville and Lord Northbrook, and Colonel Gordon. Gordon said
that
he believed that the danger at Khartoum had been “grossly
exaggerated,” and that the two Englishmen there had “lost their
heads”; he would be able to bring away the garrisons without
difficulty. We decided that he should go to Suakim to collect
information and report on the situation in the Soudan. This was
the
sole decision taken, but it was understood that if he found he
could
get across he should go on to Berber. Gordon started at night
on the
same day.
'On January 22nd the first subject mentioned was that of
Egyptian
finance, a Rothschild loan for six months being suggested, but
nothing settled. The Cabinet approved our action in sending
Gordon.
But they had before them a great deal more than what we had
done—namely, what he had done himself. On his road between
London
and Brindisi he had prepared a series of decrees which he
telegraphed to us and which we telegraphed to Baring. In these
he
announced the restoration to the various Sultans of the Soudan
of
their independence, and he made the Khedive say: “I have
commissioned General Gordon, late Governor-General of the
Soudan, to
proceed there as my representative, and to arrange with you"
(the
peoples of the Soudan) “for the evacuation of the country and
the
withdrawal of my troops.” He then made the Khedive appoint him
“Governor-General for the time necessary to accomplish the
evacuation.” He also telegraphed to the Hadendowa and Bishareen
Arabs of the desert between Suakim and Berber, directing them
to
meet him at Suakim, and saying that he should be there in
fourteen
days. In sending these we told Baring: “Suggestions made by
Gordon.
We have no local knowledge sufficient to judge. You may settle
terms, and act upon them at once, as time presses, or after
consultation with him.” Mr. Gladstone did not object, although
strongly opposed to our undertaking responsibility in the
Soudan,
because Gordon still spoke in every sentence of conducting the
evacuation; but reading his proclamations in the light of his
subsequent change of mind, and desire to stay in Khartoum and
be
supported by force, it seems clear that he had deceived us and
did
not really mean evacuation. This, however, could not yet be
seen
from the words he used. I wrote to Lord Granville on January
22nd,
to point out that in addition to the danger in the Soudan,
which had
been foreseen, there was a risk that Gordon might get himself
carried off alive into the desert by some of the Arab chiefs
that he
was to meet, and that in that case we should have to send an
expedition after him.
'On January 31st there was a meeting at the War Office about
Egypt
between Hartington, Lord Granville, Edmond Fitzmaurice and
myself.
As the facts about Gordon were beginning to be misrepresented
in the
Press, Lord Granville set them down in writing. [Footnote: See
Life
of Gladstone, vol. iii., pp. 152-155; Life of Granville,
vol. ii.,
pp. 381-385 and 512, where a letter from Lord Cromer on General
Gordon's instructions is printed; and chap. xvi. ('Gordon, and
the
Soudan') in The Development of the European Nations,
1870-1900, by
Dr. J. Holland Rose.] It had been stated, and was afterwards
repeated by Justin McCarthy in his history, that the mission on
which we sent Gordon “was in direct opposition to his own
ideas. He
was not in favour of the abandonment of the Soudan or the
evacuation
of Khartoum.” It had also been said that the whole mission had
been
forced upon us by the Press—i.e., by Stead, in the Pall
Mall
Gazette. Lord Granville gave me a memorandum saying that
Gordon had
acknowledged that the statements in the Pall Mall were
“not
accurate.” Lord Granville went on to say that he did not think
that
Gordon could be said to have “changed his mind. It appeared in
his
conversation with Wolseley on the Tuesday that he (Gordon) was
not
decided in his opinion, and that he was as likely to recommend
one
course as another.... I told him that we would not send him out
to
re-open the whole question, and he then declared himself ready
to go
out merely to help in the evacuation of the interior of the
Soudan.
He is not remarkably precise in conversation, though I found
him
much more so than Wolseley had led me to expect.”
'Lord Granville had previously written to me on this point: “The
papers seem to think that Gordon is a new discovery by the
Government under pressure of the Press. It happens that I
consulted
Malet on the subject months ago. But after communicating with
Cherif
he sent me an unfavourable reply. I subsequently consulted
Baring,
who agreed with Cherif that it was best not to do so. I
consulted
him again after the change of Ministry, with the same result.
On the
other hand Gordon was in Syria, having declared before leaving
England that he would not enter the Egyptian service. It was
only on
his return to England that I heard indirectly that, although he
had
no wish to go, he would willingly obey the orders of Her
Majesty's
Government and act under the instructions of Sir Evelyn Baring
and
the orders of General Stephenson. Having got the full
concurrence of
Sir E. Baring by telegraph, the matter was arranged.”
'The fact was that it was Wolseley, Gordon's friend, who
suggested
that he should be sent and who induced him to go; but
Wolseley's
account of the matter could not, I fear, be trusted, as he is
more
inclined to attack Gladstone than to let out anything which in
the
light of subsequent events might be unpleasant to himself.
'Edmond Fitzmaurice had drawn up an elaborate memorandum for our
meeting at the War Office, which I have, with my own
corrections. He
thought that the public was hostile to us on four grounds: our
non-interference to stop Hicks; [Footnote: General Hicks
advanced
west of the Nile, contrary to the views of Lord Dufferin, who
wished
him to limit his advance to the province lying between the
bifurcation of the Blue and White Nile. See the Life of
Dufferin,
by Alfred Lyall, vol. ii., pp. 56, 57.] our failure to withdraw
the
garrisons of Khartoum and of the Equatorial Provinces in time
to
avoid disaster; our failure to relieve Sinkat; and, on the
other
hand, our decision to force the Egyptians to evacuate the
Soudan in
the face of defeat, a decision which had overturned Cherif
Pasha.
With regard to Hicks, we could only tell the truth, which was
that
our policy was to limit, not extend, the sphere of our
responsibilities in Egypt; that we followed the advice we got,
which
was either for doing exactly what we did, or for a moderate
support
of Hicks, which latter we declined. Our opponents were
prophesying
after the event. We should have taken a great responsibility
had we
absolutely forbidden the Egyptian Government to make use of
their
own troops (not including any portion of the army officered by
English officers under Sir Evelyn Wood for the defence of Lower
Egypt) to crush the Mahdi. Hicks had at first defeated the
Mahdi in
every encounter and cleared him out of the whole country east
of the
Nile. [Footnote: Hicks Pasha complained that directly Lord
Dufferin
had left Cairo for Constantinople, he ceased to received
adequate
support from the Egyptian Government (Life of Dufferin.
vol. ii.,
p. 55).] The main point, however, and that of present
importance,
was our forcing upon the Egyptians the policy of evacuating the
Soudan after Hicks's defeat. Fitzmaurice wrote: “The Soudan
could
not be held without the assistance of England, and it is not a
British interest to hold the Soudan.... The cost of the Soudan
is
one of the causes which ruin the Egyptian Treasury.” Edmond
Fitzmaurice then went on to explain in his memorandum the
reasons
which had forced us to wait until January 4th before we had
told the
Egyptian Government as to withdrawal from the interior of the
Soudan, including Khartoum—“that the Ministers must carry out
the
advice offered them, or forfeit their places.”
'On January 9th we had been told from Khartoum that, if a
retreat
was ordered at once, it could be safely effected; and it was on
the
next day, the 10th, that we offered the services of Colonels
Gordon
and Sir Charles Wilson, which were declined. It was not till
January
16th that we were able to induce the Egyptians, even under
their new
withdrawal Government, to ask for a British officer, and on the
18th
Gordon was sent. Gordon, however—who had left us to go to
Suakim,
and for whom we had drawn up a route from Suakim to Berber, in
case
he should go forward, and negotiated with the tribes for his
free
passage, and of whom we had telegraphed to Baring, “He does not
wish
to go to Cairo”—went to Cairo, “at Baring's” suggestion. He
did not
even land at Alexandria, but he was stopped by Baring at Port
Said
when on his way to Suakim, Baring sending Sir Evelyn Wood to
meet
him. Baring had already given orders, through Nubar, to
commence the
evacuation. Gordon had telegraphed to us requesting us to send
Zebehr Pasha to Cyprus—that is, arbitrarily to arrest him and
deport him. Yet, when he reached Cairo, at his own wish he had
had
an interview with this very man, and shortly afterwards he
telegraphed to us, asking leave to take him to Khartoum and to
make
him virtually Governor of the Soudan, which, indeed, would have
been
entirely outside our power; for Forster, supported by the Anti-
Slavery Society and the Conservatives, would at once have upset
us
in the House of Commons and reversed the policy. Wolseley had
already begun to press as early as the 23rd for the sending of
an
expedition via Suakim and Berber.
'On January 26th Gordon had left for Khartoum without any
communication with us upon the question whether he should go,
and
the last thing we had from him before he started was a
memorandum in
which, among other things, he said of the Soudan: “Few men can
stand
its fearful monotony and deadly climate.” He insisted on
absolute
authority, and Stewart, who was with him, did the same for him,
and,
backing up his chief's arguments at this moment against Zebehr,
said
that Zebehr's return would undoubtedly be a misfortune to the
Soudanese, and also a direct encouragement to the slave trade.
'On February 1st we received a telegram from Baring, telling us
that
Gordon had taken with him proclamations of evacuation, and
other
proclamations less direct, with authority to issue those which
he
thought best; but “he fully understands that he is to carry out
the
policy of evacuation, in which he expressed to me his entire
agreement. I have sent home by last mail my instructions to
him,
which leave no doubt on this point, and which were drafted at
his
request and with his full approval.... There is no sort of
difference between his views and those entertained by Nubar
Pasha
and myself.” Here ended our responsibility, because it must be
remembered that Gordon at Khartoum was entirely outside our
reach,
and openly told us that he should not obey our orders when he
did
not choose to do so. From this moment we had only to please
ourselves as to whether we should disavow him and say that he
was
acting in defiance of instructions, and must be left to his
fate, or
whether we should send an expedition to get him out.
'Doubtless “we” wavered between these two opinions. Mr.
Gladstone
from the first moment that Gordon broke his orders was for the
former view. Lord Hartington from the first moment was for the
latter. Chamberlain and I supported Hartington, although we
fully
recognized Gordon's violations of his orders in much of his
action
at Khartoum, where he changed the policy agreed upon with
Baring and
with us to that expressed by him in the words, “Smash the
Mahdi.”
Many members of the Cabinet went backwards and forwards in
their
opinion, but the circumstances were of incredible difficulty,
and it
must be remembered that we were not sure of being allowed to
carry
out either policy; and not only was it difficult to decide
which of
the two was right, but it was also difficult to decide whether
either policy was possible—that is to say, whether the one
adopted
would not be immediately upset by a Parliamentary vote. The
Liberal
party in the House of Commons was divided on the matter, the
Whigs
generally wishing for an expedition, and the Radicals being hot
for
immediate abandonment of the Soudan, which meant abandonment of
Gordon. The Conservatives were divided; most of them probably
wished
for an expedition, but they were afraid to say so; and Randolph
Churchill, whose strength at this time was immense, was in full
agreement with Labouchere and Wilfrid Lawson, and was
denouncing the
retention of the Soudan as a violation of the principles of
freedom.
'Gordon on his way up and on his arrival at Khartoum issued
extraordinary proclamations. Arriving there alone, but with
incredible prestige, he was hailed as father of the people; he
burned the taxation books and the whips upon the public place;
he
released the prisoners from the gaol; he sent away the
commander of
the garrison with the words, “Rest assured you leave this place
as
safe as Kensington Park.” He declared the Mahdi “Sultan of
Kordofan.” Gordon, of all men in the world, sanctioned slavery
by
another written document; and he then asked us to send the arch
slave-driver Zebehr to his help, which we thought on Baring's
truthful opinion of the moment that we ought not to do, and
which we
certainly could not have done. I thought and still think that
Gordon
had lost his senses, as he had done on former critical
occasions in
his life; but the romantic element in his nature appealed to
me,
and, while I could not but admit that he had defied every
instruction which had been given to him, I should have sent an
expedition to bring him out, although thinking it probable that
when
Wolseley reached him he would have refused to come.'
While Gordon was on his way to Khartoum, which he reached on February 18th, the defeat at El Teb had occurred, and the question arose as to what should be done in the Eastern Soudan.
'On February 6th the Cabinet met twice, and at our second
meeting it
was decided to send marines to Suakim.
'On Thursday, February 7th, I visited the Admiralty with
Pauncefote
in order to take in hand the defence of the Red Sea coast
against
the Arabs, and then I went to the War Office, where I met
Hartington, Northbrook, Wolseley, and Cooper Key, in order to
concert steps. When I passed through the Secretary's room after
the
meeting, and stayed for a moment to talk with Hobart and
Fleetwood
Wilson, the Duke of Cambridge (whose room opened into theirs,
and
who had evidently been lying in wait for me) rushed out and
carried
me off into his room, and made much of me, with an enthusiastic
desire to help an expedition. At night, Hartington,
Chamberlain, and
I met in Hartington's room and decided to press for relief of
Gordon.
'On February 8th Chamberlain wrote to me, “I should like to
telegraph to Baring, 'If you think that employment of British
troops
could relieve beleaguered garrisons in Soudan without danger,
you
are authorized to concert measures with Evelyn Wood.'“ A
Cabinet was
called at the wish of Hartington, Chamberlain, and myself, for
this
day upon this point. Hartington, Harcourt, Northbrook,
Carlingford,
Chamberlain, and I, were for asking Gordon if a demonstration
at
Suakim would help him. Mr. Gladstone and Lord Granville, very
strong
the other way, broke up the meeting sooner than agree.'
'Gordon had acted as Governor-General of the Soudan without
having
told us that he had accepted this appointment, and we had had
to ask
on February 4th a question which had been answered by Baring on
the
5th, to the effect that Gordon had “at his own request” been
appointed Governor-General. On February 6th Baring had
telegraphed
stating that Gordon had said that it was possible he might go
to the
Mahdi and not be heard of for two months, as the Mahdi might
keep
him as a hostage for Zebehr. On the same day we telegraphed to
Baring approving his having told Gordon that there would be the
strongest objections to his placing himself in the Mahdi's
power. On
February 7th we received a despatch by post from Baring in
which he
informed us that, while Gordon would probably ask for Zebehr,
“it
would certainly not be desirable to send him ... for he is
manifestly animated by a feeling of deep resentment against
General
Gordon.” At the same time Baring forwarded a shorthand report
of the
meeting between Gordon, Zebehr, Baring, Stewart, Colonel
Watson, Sir
Evelyn Wood, and Nubar, at which Zebehr had told Gordon that he
had
entrusted his son to him, “and told you he was thenceforth your
son.
He was only sixteen years of age.... I entrusted my son to
you....
But you killed my son whom I entrusted to you. He was as your
own
son.” Gordon: “Well, well, I killed my own son. There is
an end of
it.” Zebehr: “And then you brought my wives and women
and children
in chains to Khartoum, a thing which for my name in the Soudan
was
most degrading.”
'By the same mail we received a despatch from Baring in which he
made it clear that Gordon's instructions had Gordon's full
approval.
“He expressed to me his entire concurrence in the instructions.
The
only suggestion he made was in connection with the passage in
which,
speaking of the policy of abandoning the Soudan, I had said, 'I
understand also that you entirely concur in the desirability of
adopting this policy.' General Gordon wished that I should add
the
words 'and that you think it should on no account be changed.'
These
words were accordingly added.”
'Between this Cabinet and the next we received, on February 9th,
a
telegram from Baring to the effect that he was sending home a
letter
from Gordon to the King of the Belgians in which he urged the
king
to appoint him Governor of the Equatorial Provinces, Gordon's
idea
being to go there from Khartoum; and Baring stated his own view
that
we should forbid Gordon to go south of Khartoum. In his letter,
which was dated February 1st, Gordon said that the King of the
Belgians had told him that he would take over the Provinces
with the
troops in them, when Gordon had been at Brussels immediately
before
we sent him out; but not one word had Gordon ever breathed of
this;
and when we first heard of it he was virtually beyond our
reach,
seated, when our answer arrived, at Khartoum, and little
disposed to
listen to us, although on some points, for a few days, he
pretended
to listen.
'On February 12th Baring telegraphed that he hoped that “H.M.G.
will
not change any of the main points of their policy”; but, as
will be
seen a little later, Baring soon changed his own, adopting the
new
policy of Gordon, and pressing it upon us.
'On February 12th it was decided, against Mr. Gladstone, to send
an
expedition to the Red Sea Coast.
'On February 13th we had before us a statement which had been
made
the previous day by Randolph Churchill, to the effect that in
the
summer of 1883 General Gordon had offered to go to the Soudan,
and
that the Government had telegraphed to him accepting his offer,
and
then written to him declining it. Lord Granville instructed me
to
say that the whole story was one gigantic concoction. I then
asked
Hartington if he knew anything about it; and Lord Wolseley
ultimately discovered that Randolph Churchill had confused the
Congo
with the Nile, an amusing example of his harum-scarum
recklessness.
Gordon had telegraphed from Syria in October for leave to
accept
service under the King of the Belgians on the Congo, and the
Commander-in-Chief had replied by telegraph that the Secretary
of
State declined to sanction his employment. In transmission the
word
“declines” was changed into “decides,” which exactly reversed
its
sense, so that Gordon had received a confirming letter
consistent
with the telegram as sent, but exactly reversing the sense of
the
telegram as received. He had told the story which Churchill had
heard, but altered from one side of Africa to the other.'
On February 14th Sir Charles made effective use of this blunder in the debate upon the vote of censure concerning Egypt. It was a debating speech which, he himself notes, 'had extraordinary success.' Lord Randolph Churchill had been more than usually aggressive, and Sir Charles hammered him with detailed facts. [Footnote: He comments on the 20th on the opinions expressed to him as to his powers of debate: 'This is a curious position for a man who has no natural gift of speech. I can remember when I was the worst speaker that ever spoke at all.'] The debate on this vote of censure, occasioned by the fall of Sinkat, occupied the House for five days. The motion was defeated by forty-nine.
'On February 14th I found that Lord Granville had not answered
an
important question from Baring about Wood's Egyptians which had
been
received by us on the 13th, and that because he had not seen
it. We
had started a red label as a danger-signal for pressing notes;
but
Lord Granville's room was full of red-labelled notes not
touched.'
He records his remonstrances with Lord Granville as to the non-employment of Sir Evelyn Wood's Egyptians. On February 18th there was a Cabinet 'partly upon this subject. It was decided to send reinforcements to Egypt.'
'On February 21st there was another Cabinet which again
discussed
the Egyptian question and decided to send Wood's Egyptians to
Assouan. On the 15th Gordon had reassured us by telling us that
all
communication between Cairo and the Soudan would be finally at
an
end within three months' (that is, that evacuation would be
easily
carried out). 'On February 18th we had heard that on the 17th
Gordon
had issued a proclamation saying that the Government would not
interfere with the buying and selling of slaves; and this
telegram,
having got out from Cairo, produced a storm in England. On the
19th
there occurred another matter which was considered by the
Cabinet at
the same time—the absolute refusal of Admiral Hewett, and very
proper refusal, to issue a proclamation calling on the chiefs
from
Suakim to go peacefully to meet Gordon at Khartoum, inasmuch as
the
Admiral knew “that English troops are about to be sent against
the
people in question.” The issue of this proclamation had been
recommended by Wolseley, who thinks that Governments exist for
the
purpose of deceiving enemies in war for the benefit of
generals.
'On the same day, February 19th, we had received a telegram
which
had been sent off from Khartoum by Gordon on the 18th, asking
that
Zebehr should be sent to the Soudan, “be made K.C.M.G., and
given
presents.” This was backed by Stewart, so far as that he said
that
someone should be sent, adding that he was not sure whether
Zebehr
was the best man. It was clear from Gordon's proposed
conditions
that Zebehr was to be free to prosecute the slave trade. In
another
memorandum on the same day Gordon said that we must “give a
commission to some man and promise him the moral support of
H.M.G.... It may be argued that H.M.G. would thus be giving ...
moral support to a man who will rule over a slave state....
This
nomination of my successor must ... be direct from Her
Majesty's
Government.... As for the man, H.M.G. should select one above
all
others, namely Zebehr.” Baring now backed this opinion up, so
that
we were face to face with an absolute change of front on the
part of
Gordon and Baring, and a partial change of front on the part of
Stewart. On the other hand, Baring, at the same time when he
told us
to appoint Zebehr, added: “I am quite certain that Zebehr hates
Gordon bitterly, and that he is very vindictive. I would not on
any
account risk putting Gordon in his power.... He is, to my
personal
knowledge, exceedingly untruthful.... I cannot recommend his
being
promised the moral support of Her Majesty's Government. He
would
scarcely understand the phrase, and, moreover, I do not think
he
would attach importance to any support which was not
material.... I
doubt the utility of making conditions. Zebehr would probably
not
observe them long.” Baring further proposed that Zebehr should
be
given money, and he left us to judge of the effect of the whole
scheme on public opinion in England. Colonel Watson, who had
been
present at the meeting between Zebehr and Gordon, informed us
that
to let Gordon and Zebehr be together in the Soudan “would
entail the
death of either one or other of them.” On the 21st Gordon
telegraphed to the newspapers explaining away his slave trade
proclamation, but its terms were even worse than could have
been
gathered from the first summary, which was all that we had
received.
'On February 21st we received the text of Gordon's proclamation,
which contained the words, “I confer upon you these rights,
that
henceforth none shall interfere with your property,” and spoke
with
apparent regret of “severe measures taken by Government for the
suppression of slave traffic, and seizure and punishment of all
concerned.”
'On February 26th there was a meeting of Mr. Gladstone,
Hartington,
Childers, Chamberlain, Dodson, and myself, to approve a
telegram
from Hartington to General Graham; [Footnote: General Graham
was in
command of the expedition to Suakim.] and on the next day
again, the
27th, a meeting of Lord Granville, Hartington, Northbrook, and
myself, which decided to invite the Turk to show himself at the
Red
Sea ports. On the 29th there was a Cabinet at which it was
decided
that the Turk must approve our future ruler of the Soudan, and
that
British troops were to go as far as Assouan if Baring thought
it
necessary.
'On February 27th Gordon had frightened us out of our senses by
telegraphing that, having put out his programme of peace, and
allowed time to elapse, he was now sending out his troops to
show
his force; and another telegram from him said: “Expedition
starts at
once to attack rebels.” On the same day he telegraphed that he
had
issued a proclamation “that British troops are now on their
way, and
in a few days will reach Khartoum.” It was very difficult to
know
what to do with this amazing lie: solemnly to point out to him
by
telegraph that it was a lie was hardly of much use with a man
of
Gordon's stamp; and what was done was to send a strong private
telegram to Baring to communicate with him about it, but the
result
was not encouraging, for it was the first ground for the
desperate
quarrel which Gordon afterwards picked with Baring, and for his
charge against Baring of inciting the Government to drive him
to his
death.
'On the next day, February 28th, Gordon, having heard that
Zebehr
was refused, telegraphed his policy of smashing up the Mahdi,
which,
however, he seemed inclined to attempt with a most inadequate
force.
“Mahdi must be smashed up. Mahdi is most unpopular, and with
care
and time could be smashed.... If you decide on smashing Mahdi,
then
send another hundred thousand pounds, and send 200 Indian
troops to
Wady Haifa, and an officer to Dongola under pretence to look
out
quarters for troops.... At present it would be comparatively
easy to
destroy Mahdi.” Gordon had also telegraphed to Baring to
recommend
that 3,000 black Egyptian troops should be kept in the Soudan,
and
completely throwing over the evacuation policy. Baring added
for
himself: “There are obviously many contradictions in General
Gordon's different proposals”; but he went on to express his
agreement in Gordon's new policy, strongly supported the
selection
of Zebehr, and sneered at us for having regard to uninstructed
opinion in England. On the same day Gordon telegraphed: “If a
hundred British troops were sent to Assouan or Wady Halfa, they
would run no more risk than Nile tourists, and would have the
best
effect.” At the same time Baring said: “I certainly would not
risk
sending so small a body as 100 men.” It will be seen in how
great a
difficulty the Government were placed; but Baring's position
was, in
fact, as difficult as our own. We were evidently dealing with a
wild
man under the influence of that climate of Central Africa which
acts
even upon the sanest men like strong drink.
'On the same day Gordon telegraphed to us completely changing
his
ground about Suakim. He had previously prevented our doing
anything
except trying to relieve the towns blockaded, but on March 1st
told
us to do something to draw the Hadendowa down to Suakim. On the
2nd,
General Graham having beaten the Arabs at Teb, the Admiral
asked us
to send more troops and to threaten Osman Digna's main force, a
suggestion which concurred with Gordon's. And on March 5th the
Cabinet met and decided that, while it was impossible to send
Zebehr
to the Soudan, General Graham was to be allowed to attack Osman
Digna's main force.... Chamberlain then suggested that I should
go
to Egypt: Hartington evidently thought that somebody should go,
and
thought he had better go himself. Lord Granville would not have
either, as might have been expected.... I suggested a way out
of the
Zebehr difficulty, and wrote to Chamberlain: “If I were sent
out to
do this, I believe I should get away the forces from the
interior
and have Zebehr elected, entirely without our action, by the
Notables at Khartoum. On the whole, this would do if we did not
do
it. This would, in my opinion, be improved by Turkish approval
under
Turkish suzerainty, but that you do not like.” Chamberlain
answered:
“Perhaps we cannot help having Zebehr, but surely we ought not
to
promote him, directly or indirectly; not only because he is a
slave-
hunter, but also because he will probably attack Egypt sooner
or
later, and very likely with the help of our subsidy.” I
replied: “I
am quite clear that we must not set up Zebehr, but if we retire
we
cannot prevent his election by the Notables; and they would
elect
him.” In the meantime Gordon had completely thrown over
Baring's
suggestion that Zebehr should be sent (but so sent that he and
Gordon should not be in the Soudan together) by telegraphing
that
the combination at Khartoum of Zebehr and himself was “an
absolute
necessity,” and that it would be “absolutely necessary” for him
to
stay at Khartoum with Zebehr for four months; and Stewart had
now
completely come over to Gordon's policy about Zebehr
personally. On
the other hand, Baring and the military authorities in Egypt
were
unanimously opposed to the idea of sending a small British
force to
Wady Halfa.
'On March 7th it was decided to give an inland district to the
Abyssinians, but not to offer them a port (which was what they
wanted), on account of its not being ours to give away from the
Turks. The Cabinet would not hear of receiving a Turkish
Commissioner at Cairo.
'On March 11th we further considered pressing demands from
Gordon
and Baring for Zebehr. Mr. Gladstone had taken to his bed, but
was
known to be strongly in favour of sending Zebehr. The Cabinet
were
unanimous the other way, and Hartington was sent to see Mr.
Gladstone, we waiting till he returned. When he came back, he
laconically stated what had passed as follows: “He thinks it
very
likely that we cannot make the House swallow Zebehr, but he
thinks
he could.” Morley has told this, but the words which he took
verbally from me are less good. [Footnote: Life of Gladstone, vol.
iii., p. 159.] Baring on the 6th had recommended a further
attack on
Osman Digna, which he thought might open the Berber route. On
the
9th we received Gordon's replies to our telegrams of the 5th,
showing that he had done nothing towards the evacuation of
Khartoum
except by sending away the sick. He admitted that it was
possible
that “Zebehr, who hates the tribes, did stir up the fires of
revolt,
in hopes that he would be sent to quell it. It is the irony of
fate
that he will get his wish if sent up.” On the same day Baring
informed us that it was clear that Gordon now had no influence
outside Khartoum, and that he contemplated the despatch of
British
troops. The Anti-Slavery Society had strongly protested against
the
employment of Zebehr, and they pointed out to us the records of
murders “in which this man has stood the foremost and the
principal
actor.... Countenance ... of such an individual by the British
Government would be a degradation for England and a scandal to
Europe.” W. E. Forster, amid loud cheers from the
Conservatives,
protested in advance in the House of Commons against the policy
of
sending Zebehr. On March 11th we had received in the morning
from
Baring twelve telegrams from Gordon, of the most extraordinary
nature, which Baring had answered: “I am most anxious to help
and
support you in every way, but I find it very difficult to
understand
exactly what it is you want.” Besides deciding that Zebehr
could not
be sent, the Cabinet changed its mind about the employment of
Turks
in the Red Sea, and decided that they could not be allowed to
go
there at present.
'On March 13th the matter was again considered by a Cabinet,
which
was not called a Cabinet as Mr. Gladstone was in bed and
Chamberlain
was at Birmingham, and on the 14th we met again, still
retaining our
opinion; and on Sunday, the 16th, Mr. Gladstone at last
unwillingly
gave up Zebehr as impossible. [Footnote: Life of Granville, vol.
ii., p. 388.]
'I had been at this time working out the facts connected with
the
two routes to Khartoum in case an expedition should be sent,
and had
made up my own mind in favour of the Nile route; Wolseley still
being the other way.
'On March 17th, I wrote to Lord Northbrook to protest against a
proclamation which had been issued by the Admiral and General
at
Suakim offering a reward for Osman Digna, and I wrote also to
Hartington upon the same subject, stating that I would not
defend
it, and that if it were “not disapproved, and the disapproval
made
public, I cannot remain a member of the Government.” Northbrook
would not admit that he had disapproved it, but Hartington did,
and
also informed me that Northbrook had telegraphed. Lord
Granville
agreed with me that the proclamation was not defensible, and it
was
as a fact withdrawn, although the Admiral was very angry.
'Mr. Gladstone had gone down to Coombe, near Wimbledon. On March
22nd we held a Cabinet without him.... Harcourt was now writing
to
me in favour of the view “that we must get out of Egypt as soon
as
possible at any price. The idea of our administering it or of
the
Egyptian army defending it is equally out of the question.” On
the
25th we had another Cabinet without Mr. Gladstone. Turning to
Gordon, we decided that a force was not to be sent to Berber;
but I
noted in my diary: “It will have to be sent next autumn,
I
believe”; but when I said to Berber, it must be remembered, of
course, that there were two ways of reaching Berber, and Lord
Hartington, Brett, and I, now turned steadily to the
consideration
of which of those two ways should be taken. It will be
remembered
that we already had a report in print as to the Suakim-Berber
route.
[Footnote: See p. 33; 'We had drawn up a route from Suakim to
Berber.'] We now obtained from Wolseley a general report, which
was
afterwards printed and circulated to the Cabinet on April 8th.
Lord
Wolseley, preparing for the sending of a military force to
Khartoum
this autumn, stated that his force must be exclusively British,
for
he doubted whether the very best of our Indian regiments could
stand
the charges of the Arabs, besides which our natives took the
field
encumbered with followers. Lord Roberts, who was not given to
boasting, told me, long afterwards, that he, on the other hand,
was
sure that he could have marched from Suakim to the Nile and
Khartoum
with an exclusively Indian force. It is the case that our best
Gurkha troops have sometimes stood when white troops have run.
Wolseley had now come round to a boat expedition, which I had
been
for a long time urging, upon information which I had obtained
for
myself from the Admiralty, and which was afterwards printed by
the
Foreign Intelligence Committee at the Admiralty, and circulated
to
the Cabinet in April, a further document upon the subject being
circulated to the Cabinet in May. It must be remembered that
the
date of passing the cataracts was settled for us by the high
Nile,
and that there was only one time of year at which the
expedition
could be safely sent.
'The Cabinet of March 25th further decided that Graham must soon
be
brought away from Suakim.
'On the next evening, March 26th, when the Ministers were dining
with the Speaker, we received a very unpleasant telegram from
Baring, pointing, we thought, to a possible resignation unless
it
was promised to send an expedition to Khartoum. I suggested the
following answer: “We adhere to our instructions of the 25th,
160
Secret. We cannot send an expedition now, and entertain the
gravest
objection to contemplating an expedition in the autumn.” This
answer
was rejected in favour of one suggested by Mr. Gladstone and
Lord
Granville. Our telegram 160 Secret had been an absolute
refusal, and
my additional words had been intended by me slightly to open
the
door, which was as much as I could hope that the Cabinet would
do.
But the telegram actually sent on March 28th (165 Secret,
extended
in 191) was to the effect that we were unable to alter the
instructions, and it was accompanied by two long despatches,
virtually written by Harcourt, and afterwards laid before
Parliament, explaining our reasons for not sending Zebehr and
for
not sending an expedition. Gordon had been communicating with
us
with difficulty, as the telegraph was broken from time to time,
but
he had told us that if he was to evacuate Khartoum he wished to
resign his commission and to take all his steam vessels and
stores
to the equatorial provinces, “which he would consider under the
King
of the Belgians.” This Baring had told him he must not do.
Baring
had rejected every possible alternative except the sending of
Zebehr, and Zebehr we could not have sent. In discussing the
question of an expedition to Khartoum, Baring had told us that
Gordon was “not in any immediate danger. He has provisions for
six
months.” Gordon himself had telegraphed: “As I have been
inconsistent about Zebehr, it is my fault, and I should bear
the
blame if Zebehr is sent, and should put up with the
inconvenience if
he is not.” He had himself told us that he had provisions for
six
months, but had after this informed us that provisions were
still
coming in freely to Khartoum—as late as after March 15th, a
week
later than the date at which he had told us that he had six
months'
provisions in the town. I had made up my mind that we must send
an
expedition, but I did not agree with Baring that it was
physically
possible to send an expedition at this moment, and thought that
if
sent at high Nile it would be in time. On the 23rd, after
Gordon's
defeat, by treachery and shooting, of the two black Pashas,
Gordon
telegraphed: “I think we are now safe, and that as the Nile
rises we
shall account for the rebels.” This we received on March 31st.
'On March 27th there was a Cabinet without Chamberlain, who was
listening to George Russell's speech which I had got him leave
to
make, and without Mr. Gladstone, who was still ill. The Cabinet
decided against an expedition to Khartoum, but the Chancellor'
(Lord
Selborne) 'gave us to understand that he should resign if one
were
not sent in the autumn, and Harcourt intimated that he should
resign
if one were sent. Lord Granville observed that no Cabinet could
last
a day if it was to be exposed to going to pieces on differences
as
regards the future. Harcourt proposed to “clear out” of Egypt
immediately. Lord Granville won an easy victory over him by
proving
that only three weeks ago he had wanted to take Egypt under our
protection. Harcourt then said that as long ago as November,
1883,
he had spoken in favour of clearing out. “Yes,” said Lord
Granville,
“so you did; but I said three weeks ago.”
'On March 29th there was a Cabinet at Coombe Warren. Mr.
Gladstone
seemed pretty well, and had at least one good laugh. He still
regretted Zebehr. The Cabinet considered Gordon, what we should
do
with slavery at Suakim, and House of Commons business.'
About this date the main body of the British troops was withdrawn from Suakim in accordance with the decision of March 25th. They had inflicted defeats on Osman Digna at El Teb, and again at Tamanieb; many Dervishes and not a few English had been killed, but no effect of moment had been produced, and the road to Berber was not opened.
A new complication now arose. Egypt was presented with Europe's total claims for the losses to Europeans in the burnings at Alexandria. They amounted to four millions and a half. How was this demand to be met? Under the Law of Liquidation established in 1880, Egypt could not borrow without the consent of the five Powers who had constituted the Commission of Liquidation. The demand presented to Egypt had to be considered by the one Power which was now de facto supreme in Egypt.
'On April 2nd there was an important Cabinet called on Egyptian
finance. It began, of course, on something else. We discussed
the
future of Suakim; the replies to be given in the House on the
next
day as to Gordon; and then Childers' views upon Egyptian
finance;
while we were considering these, there came a letter from
Northcote
with the questions that he intended to put on the next day'
(questions which could only be answered by a full statement of
policy on all the points of the Egyptian problem). 'After going
back
to this, we went on again to finance, and decided to call a
conference of the Great Powers to alter the Law of Liquidation.
Mr.
Gladstone had unwillingly consented to meet the Powers by
proposing
to reduce the charge for the British army; and he was anxious
to get
the money for the British taxpayer out of a borrowing operation
on
the future value of the Canal Shares. Chamberlain and I decided
that
if he did this the Tories would declare that Mr. Gladstone had
become a pensioner on the bounty of Lord Beaconsfield. There
was
some talk at this Cabinet as to whether we should guarantee the
Egyptian debt, to which I was opposed. Chamberlain had at one
time
been friendly to such an operation, but had now “gone round” on
the
ground that we could not “carry it against the Tories and the
Radicals.” “Is there anything else?” said Chamberlain to Mr.
Gladstone as the Cabinet was breaking up. “No,” said Mr.
Gladstone,
“we have done our Egyptian business and we are an Egyptian
Government.”'
II.
From this time forward the 'Egyptian Government' at Westminster had two main subjects of concern—the question of extricating Gordon with the garrisons, and the question of dealing with the international situation, partly diplomatic and partly financial. France, increasingly unfriendly to Great Britain, was above all unfriendly in regard to Egypt: while Bismarck, doing his best to foment this quarrel, was at the same time weakening Great Britain by menaces in Africa and Australasia, and the danger of a Russian advance in Central Asia hung like a thundercloud over the whole situation. [Footnote: Sir Charles wrote to Mr. Brett on November 15th, 1884: 'I told Herbert Bismarck when he was here that it was very silly of his father to get in the way of our Egypt plans, for France would not go to war about them, and therefore, after threatening, he would have to look on and see the things he had threatened against done quietly.']
There were three groups of opinion in the Government in regard to the Soudan. The first was for an expedition which should carry with it the consequence of occupation more or less prolonged. Another was against any expedition and in favour of immediate evacuation. A third section— including Sir Charles Dilke and Mr. Chamberlain—accepted the need of an expedition, but was determined that occupation should not follow. It was incumbent on this last-named group to suggest a positive policy, and Dilke, as will be seen, had his plan ready. There was a further decision to be taken. When once an expedition was in contemplation, the route and the character of the expedition had to be fixed. On this matter also Sir Charles had early formed a resolve, but neither he nor anyone else could pin the Cabinet to a clear course of action.
'At this time' (April 2nd) 'Chamberlain wrote to me of Egypt:
“Once
more Hartington, and you and I, are at opposite poles. For one,
I do
not mean to be forced any further in the direction of
protectorate.”
'Although they would not admit it, the Cabinet were rapidly
coming
round at this time to an autumn Gordon expedition, and
Chamberlain
wrote to me: “I believe it will come to this in the end”; while
Northbrook was in favour of an expedition. I then made up a
list
from private information showing that six of us were favourable
to
an expedition, as against five the other way—several members
having
made no statement either way. Those for an expedition were
Hartington, Northbrook, the Chancellor (Lord Selborne), Derby,
Chamberlain, and myself; and those against it, Mr. Gladstone,
Lord
Granville, Harcourt, Kimberley, and Dodson. On April 21st,
Egypt was
discussed without decision, though with the note by me: “The
majority now begin to see that an October expedition is
certain.”
'On the 23rd a Cabinet ... considered the possibility of
reaching
Berber.... After the Cabinet of April 23rd, I advocated a naval
expedition by the Nile on the ground that the Admiralty were
likely
to do the thing better than the War Office. [Footnote: A review
by
Sir Charles in the Athenaeum of October 24th, 1908,
deals with the
Life of Lord Northbrook, by Sir Bernard Mallet, and his
allusions
to Lord Northbrook's consideration, as early as April, of a
'rescue
and retire' expedition by the Nile route for the autumn, 'it
being
assumed that the boats then ordered could not pass the various
cataracts before High Nile.' See Life of Lord Northbrook, pp.
185-186. A review by Sir Charles of March 28th, 1908, in the
same
paper, of Modern Egypt, by the Earl of Cromer, also
deals with
Lord Northbrook's pressure for a Nile Expedition in March,
1884.] On
April 28th, Berber, Khartoum, and Gordon, on which there was
nothing
new, but Hartington insisted on a large and important military
expedition.'
'On April 29th Baring had now come over about Egypt, and
attended a
Cabinet to state his views. I saw him privately, and settled
with
him the details for a possible Nile expedition “small and
early.”
The difficulty was at the sixth cataract. He also broached to
me his
scheme for a new control by the four Powers already represented
on
the Caisse de la Dette—namely, England, France, Austria, and
Italy,
with an English president.'
'At the next Cabinet there was a proposal by Hartington that
there
should be a vote of thanks to Sir Gerald Graham and Admiral
Hewett
for the Suakim expedition—a proposal which the Cabinet
rejected,
having had quite enough of votes of thanks on the former
occasion
when Wolseley and Beauchamp Seymour were in question. The next
matter was what we should say about our Law of Liquidation
Conference, on which there arose an awkward question as to what
should happen in the probable case of the representatives of
the
Powers not being unanimous. There was every reason to suppose
that
the French would not agree to anything, and precedents went to
show
that unanimity was necessary to render valid the decisions of a
conference. Indeed, there was no precedent as regards questions
of
principle which told the other way; and at the Congress of
Berlin
Prince Bismarck had stated, as recorded in the first protocol,
that
as regarded substantive proposals it was an incontestable
principle
that the minority should not be bound to acquiesce in a vote of
a
majority.
'Then came the consideration of the action to be taken by the
Egyptian Government towards Mr. O'Kelly, M.P., [Footnote: Mr.
James
O'Kelly, then M.P. for Koscommon, a very adventurous war
correspondent. He died in 1916.] Parnell's friend, who had been
trying to join the Mahdi. We next considered Lord Salisbury's
relations towards Tewfik as Khedive, as affected by the violent
attacks of many Conservative members, put up by Broadley, upon
Tewfik's character. Randolph Churchill had made a most
ferocious
series of attacks upon the Khedive, without one atom of truth
in
them. It is a curious example of his forgetful flightiness,
that
when, a few years later, he went to Egypt, he was struck with
wonder
at the Khedive's refusal to receive him. The terms of the
French
acceptance of our invitation to the Conference were discussed,
as
were the House of Commons questions as to Gordon, and the offer
of
Mr. Guy Dawnay, M.P., to go as a messenger to Gordon at his own
cost. Then followed the internal condition of Egypt, as to
which
Baring's views were stated by me; then Harrar; then the
employment
of negroes or Turks for the Egyptian army; then the Turks at
Suakim;
then the Somali coast.
'On the same day I had an interview with the ex-Khedive Ismail,
who
had gone downhill. He always had a certain difficulty in
collecting
his ideas and putting them into words, but on this occasion it
went
farther than I had previously known. He wished to impress on me
the
necessity for defending Egypt against the Mahdi at some given
point
upon the Nile, when occurred that incident of his continually
working up to the name of the place and forgetting it.
[Footnote:
See Chapter XXX., Vol. I., p. 487.]
'On May 5th there was a Cabinet. We considered the vote of
censure
as to Gordon, and decided that time must be given for it; and I
then
had some correspondence with Northbrook across the table as to
an
expedition. I said: “Northbrook, I should be glad to know all
you
know against the Nile route. Ismail, who knows all about it,
thinks
it quite possible.” Northbrook replied: “My objections are
uncertainty of getting steamers up at all (we know nothing of
the
140 miles beyond Wady Halfa), and necessity of assistance from
natives, which may not be given. Key” (Sir Cooper Key) “is in
rather
a delicate position, as he does not like to go against
Wolseley,
whose opinion is for the Nile, and the responsibility is with
the
W.O.”
'On May 7th there was another Cabinet. It was decided that Nubar
need not be brought to London for the Conference, that a fresh
place
in some other unhappy portion of the world must be found for
Clifford Lloyd; [Footnote: A Resident Magistrate who had come
violently into collision with the Nationalists in Ireland, and
who
had also proved himself a storm centre in Egypt, as he
afterwards
did in Mauritius.] and one was found, and he again fought with
the
local authorities as he had fought in Ireland and in Egypt.
With
regard to the attitude of France, it was decided that we could
not,
so long as we remained in Egypt, put up with a new
international
control. It was decided to bring the Turks to Suakim, although
this
decision was afterwards reversed. We then wasted much of our
time on
the consideration of what should be our attitude on the vote of
censure which was pending in the House. Harcourt had drawn an
amendment for Mr. Gladstone on which they had agreed.
Chamberlain
and I had agreed to support a mere negative, and we talked the
others over....
'On May 11th Fitzmaurice wrote to me complaining that no
definite
instructions had been given him with regard to the conduct of
the
Gordon debate' (on the vote of censure), [Footnote: See
Hansard,
vol. cclxxxviii., 3rd series, debate of May 13th, 1884] 'as was
usual in such important cases, but stating that he expected me
to
speak. On the next day, May 12th, I learnt that Hartington had
refused to speak, although he was finally made to do so by Mr.
Gladstone. On Tuesday, May 13th, I made a good speech from
12.10 to
1.10 a.m.—too late for the reporters. “The debate has (I noted
in
my diary) been the best I ever heard. Mr. Gladstone was not so
good
as usual, while Hartington and I were neither better nor worse
than
usual. But Churchill, Forster, Cowen, John Morley, and Beach,
all
spoke far above their usual level; and the rest were good. A
memorable debate, which I do not expect to see excelled for
interest
and fire, and I am glad to have had the honour to wind it up
for the
Liberal party.” Afterwards I noted that it “does not read
well.”
'On May 14th Cabinet again decided that Nubar must not come over
for
the Conference; discussed internal affairs of Egypt, then the
Conference again; and then called in Sir Evelyn Baring and
discussed
with him the same matters of Clifford Lloyd, Nubar, Conference,
the
Turks and the Red Sea ports, what was to be said to Waddington
about
the Conference, and the detail of a scheme of Childers upon
Egyptian
finance, which was extraordinarily unpopular with the Cabinet.
'On May 17th at noon there was a full Cabinet (Spencer being
present), and a long one. The first matter discussed was the
Queen
and Conference, [Footnote: Proposed Conference of the Powers on
the
Law of Liquidation.] and a strong objection on the part of Mr.
Gladstone to tell Parliament anything about the Conference.
Chamberlain wrote to me on this: “What a queer twist this
objection
of Mr. G. is!” To which I replied: “I really wish he would have
gone
to Coombe for this lovely day and let us go on without him. He
has
wasted an hour and a half. Mr. G. will fight a whole day in
Cabinet
to avoid telling Parliament something, and then after all will
tell
them twice as much in reply to Ashmead Bartlett.” On this
Chamberlain wrote:
“Here lies Mr. G., who has left us repining,
While he is, no doubt, still engaged in refining;
And explaining distinctions to Peter and Paul,
Who faintly protest that distinctions so small
Were never submitted to saints to perplex them,
Until the Prime Minister came up to vex them.”
[Footnote: These were notes passed during the sitting of the Cabinet. On Mr. Gladstone's inconvenient habit of giving information at question time, see Vol. I., pp. 307, 384, 459, 535; and infra, p. 118.]
'The Cabinet decided to send a telegram to Gordon through
Zebehr, in
order to obtain safe conveyance for it, offering free use of
money
among the tribes.
'To Grant Duff I wrote on May 17th: “The Queen is much against
our
arrangements with France. If we 'let them out' we spoil them,
and if
we don't we shall be condemned for a 'secret negotiation with
France
by a moribund Cabinet.' Yet, though we look very wrong, we
are
right.”'
'On the 19th it was decided that the Nile was to be patrolled by
the
Navy as far as Wady Halfa.'
This was in the direction of the military policy which Sir Charles favoured, but in which he was not to succeed. His diplomatic proposals now have to be considered.
'At this time I sent a box round the Cabinet as to the
neutralization of Egypt, Northbrook assenting. In a minute
dated May
22nd, Lord Northbrook wrote: “I am disposed to think it would
be
wise to propose at once an international guarantee of the
neutrality
of Egypt, (1) It would give a substance and solidity to the
French
assurances.” (To Grant Duff I wrote on the 22nd: “We have got
from
France an engagement not to go to Egypt when we come away, and
never
at any future time, except by the authority of Europe.”) “(2)
Without it I hardly see a chance of escaping from
annexation.... All
the circumstances of Egypt ... point to this solution, and ...
the
release of Egypt from the Soudan makes the solution possible.”
Chamberlain wrote: “I agree entirely with Dilke and Northbrook.
(1)
As to the intrinsic importance of such a proposal. If adopted
it
secures every essential British interest, and promises relief
from
the intolerable burden of a continued occupation. I am strongly
in
favour of making the proposal at once. It will give a real
guarantee
to the Powers of our good faith and intention to clear out of
the
country. (2) I attach great importance to it as forming a
definite
policy.... To make Egypt the 'Belgium of the East' is an object
easily popularized. The phrase will carry the proposal.”
Kimberley
wrote: “I agree with Northbrook and Dilke. The neutralization
of
Egypt will be a gain in itself, irrespective altogether of the
question of its internal administration. It would also ...
render it
easy to establish a firm domestic Government in so far as it
would
put an end to the rivalries ... which exercise a very
disturbing
influence on all Egyptian affairs.—K.” This minute received
the
support of the signatures of the Chancellor, Harcourt, and
Childers.
Lord Derby wrote: “I agree so entirely with the views of Lord
Northbrook and Sir Charles Dilke that I need add nothing to
what
they have written. There is only one alternative in the
long-run;
guaranteed neutrality or annexation.—D., May 23.” Carlingford
also
agreed, but Hartington strongly dissented; and although Lord
Granville agreed with us, Hartington's dissent was so fierce
that he
succeeded in preventing Mr. Gladstone from expressing an
opinion,
and the view taken by ten members of the Cabinet remained
without
effect.
'... On May 24th, the next matter discussed was the
neutralization
of Egypt, which Mr. Gladstone decided, in face of Hartington's
minute, was “not to be immediately proposed.”' [Footnote: The
offer
of neutralization was, however, made. See infra, Chapter
XXXVIII.,
pp. 94, 97.]
'We then returned to our old business of Waddington and the
Conference. Mr. Gladstone next complained that he had been
catechized in the House of Commons on Monday, May 19th, as to
whether he “told most lies on Monday or on Thursday.” We then
discussed the desirability of making a statement in the House
as to
the number of years that our troops would remain in Egypt;
Northbrook and Hartington suggesting either five years or three
years from January, 1885, and Carlingford suggesting one year,
in
which he was supported by the Prime Minister and myself; but
three
years prevailed. Next came Morocco; and then a Gordon
expedition—Mr. Gladstone speaking strongly against it.
'On May 27th there was a Cabinet before the Whitsuntide recess.
It
was decided what statement was to be made to Parliament about
the
Conference. Lord Granville had told Waddington that we should
not
stay more than five years in Egypt at the outside, and
Hartington,
who himself had been willing to limit our stay to three years,
now
fought violently against a limitation even to five. Chamberlain
wrote to me: “As usual—the question having been twice settled,
Hartington, in a minority of one, raises the whole question
again.
It is direct, unmitigated, and unconcealed obstruction.” We
then
discussed the expedition to Khartoum and the making of a
Suakim-
Berber railway, but it was decided that orders were not yet to
be
given. On the next day Mr. Gladstone, who had gone to Hawarden,
wrote:
'“My Dear Northbrook,
'“I have received and read this morning Sir Cooper Key's very
interesting paper on an expedition to Khartoum. I write,
however, to
suggest that it would be a great advantage if two suggestions
it
contains were to be fully examined and developed. (1) The
small
river expedition which he thinks practicable. (2) The small
desert
expedition from Korosko to which he also adverts as an
auxiliary
method.... Clear as is the case for the railway from Suakim, as
against the large expedition by the Nile, in every other view
it is
attended with the most formidable difficulties of a moral and
political kind ... whether the 'turning of the first sod' of a
Soudan railway will not be the substitution for an Egyptian
domination there, of an English domination ... more unnatural,
more
costly, more destructive, and altogether without foundation in
public right. It would be an immense advantage that the
expedition
(should one be needed) should be one occupying little time, and
leaving no trace behind it.
'“Yours sincerely,
'“W. E. Gladstone.”
'Of this letter a copy was made by Edward Hamilton, and enclosed
to
me with an autograph letter from Mr. Gladstone.
'On May 31st I had received a further letter from Mr. Gladstone
about the Soudan expedition, in which he said: “Suakim and
Berber
route has utterly beaten Nile route for a large expedition....
But
the question of a small expedition has hardly yet been touched,
while some believe Gordon is or will be free, and there need be
no
expedition at all.” I sent this letter to Lord Northbrook, and
to
Lord Hartington, pointing out that Colonel Sartorius had
written a
letter to the papers in favour of an expedition of a thousand
picked
men armed with repeating rifles; and after receiving replies, I
wrote to Mr. Gladstone on June 4th that I had not had much
encouragement from Hartington and Northbrook, the fact being
that
Hartington was determined on giving Wolseley his big job.
[Footnote:
See Life of Granville, vol. ii., p. 395.]
'On June 6th Lord Granville called a meeting to ask us whether,
Waddington having now agreed to all our demands, we could
devise
some plan of getting out of them. He said that for his own part
he
should not have asked the question, but that Hartington had
suggested it.... He said: “I must rather complain of
Hartington's
conduct—from so intimate a friend. If it had been Dodson I
should
have been very angry.” After such an introduction, the meeting
could
hardly come to a conclusion favourable to Hartington's views.
'On June 9th Sir Henry Ponsonby came to see me before the
Cabinet,
wishing to talk to me before he spoke to any other member, as
the
Queen thought that I was the most in agreement with her views,
which
was not the case, as regarded evacuation. He discussed with me
two
points: First the term of years, as to which I explained that,
under
the agreement, if at the end of three and a half years any one
Power
thought we had better stay, and we ourselves wished to stay,
then we
could stay. It was not my wish that we should. Secondly, as to
the
union of Bulgaria and East Roumelia, about which I did not
care, and
as to which I suggested that the Queen should propose to Lord
Granville to take counsel with Austria. [Footnote: The union
took
place in 1885.] At the Cabinet which followed we discussed the
words
of our promise to lay our French agreements before Parliament,
and
also our answer as to the Turks and Suakim. The French having
written us a disagreeable despatch, we agreed that they must be
made
to take it back.
'On the next day, June 10th, there was a Cabinet to begin the
railway from Suakim. and to consider the draft despatch to
Waddington, and as the Government at this time was not very
strong,
it was decided to leave for our successors a Cabinet minute
upon the
subject of our relations at this time with France. After the
Cabinet
I had to see Mr. Gladstone from Lord Granville upon the
question
whether we should insist on a casting vote on the Caisse. Mr.
Gladstone, against the unanimous opinion of the Cabinet,
replied:
“No, not to the point of breaking off.”'
On June 12th Sir Charles made two notes in his Diary of that date:
'I think that if Mr. Gladstone was to stay in, and live on, we
should come as regards Egypt to evacuation and neutralization.
Under
the Tories, or under Hartington, the status quo may be
tried for a
long time.'
'When Bismarck offered Egypt to Dizzy, it was in order to
embroil
England with France.'
III.
From this point onwards in the Memoir the focus of the Egyptian question changes; attention is centred on the diplomatic questions arising out of the financial problem.
As between England and France the issue concerned itself with the proposal to pay less than the promised interest on previously existing loans. The French view, expressed through M. Barrere, the French agent in Egypt, was that interest need not be reduced; the alternative view was that the bondholders must make a sacrifice of part of their interest, at any rate for some period of years, in return for the better security they were obtaining.
'On July 3rd Barrere called and explained to me a scheme of his
on
Egyptian finance, in which he was now highly skilled, having
been
French Agent in Egypt for some time. I put the matter before
Lord
Granville, who sent it to Mr. Gladstone and Childers. Barrere
argued
that it was not necessary to reduce interest, or, to use the
slang
of the moment, to “cut the coupon.” We called a meeting of the
Commons Ministers, and Chamberlain announced that he should
resign
if the coupon were not cut.
'July 18th, 1884.—We had virtually decided on declaring Egypt
bankrupt in order to force the hands of the French, but
Waddington,
at a meeting with Childers, had broached a plan, which had
originally been suggested by the Germans, for a temporary
reduction
of interest, to be reconsidered at the end of a certain number
of
years.' (These proposals were discussed at the Conference,
which met
in the latter half of July, held seven sittings, and then broke
down
without arriving at a conclusion on August 1st.) 'The question
now
raised was—at the end of what number of years? The French said
three, and we decided to propose ten; but with a willingness to
take
six or even five; we advancing 4 1/2 millions instead of 8, or,
in
other words, leaving out the indemnities due by Egypt. If this
arrangement failed, then we were to fall back on bankruptcy.
Harcourt was much against declaring bankruptcy, and in favour
of the
policy of “scuttle.” Hartington was against bankruptcy, and for
paying the differences ourselves; so as to force us into
annexation.
Spencer, Childers, Chamberlain, and I, were for bankruptcy or
for a
strong threat of bankruptcy.
'On July 21st there was a meeting of members of the Cabinet
after
questions, at which Mr. Gladstone, Lord Granville, Hartington,
Harcourt, Childers, and I, were present. The French had backed
out
of their proposals, and we considered a new scheme of
Childers's to
put all administrative charges in Egypt before interest of
debt, a
scheme which it was certain that the French would refuse.
Harcourt
was again violent against bankruptcy, which he announced he
thought
grossly “illegal,” as if there were such a thing as illegality
in
such affairs.
'On August 2nd there was a full Cabinet, every member being
present,
and we had to consider whether, the Conference having broken
down,
Baring should go back to Egypt or remain at the Foreign Office
and
continue to advise us. Lord Granville proposed that he should
remain, and that Malet should go to Egypt. Chamberlain proposed
that
Goschen should go. Childers proposed J. K. Cross. [Footnote:
Under-Secretary for India.] Dufferin was mentioned; then Lord
Granville proposed Northbrook. All other names were immediately
withdrawn, and Northbrook took time to consider, but evidently
meant
to go, and decided, I think, in the course of the same evening.
Baring was then called in, and we once more began to chop straw
by
considering the “ulterior consequences” of the collapse of the
Conference—i.e., bankruptcy. Lastly, Gordon was dealt with,
and
it was decided that a supplementary estimate should be
proposed,
with the understanding that we should spend more if it was
wanted. I
wrote to Chamberlain: “We always have two subjects—(a)
Conference,
(b) Gordon.” And he wrote back: “The first always taking up two
or
three hours; and the second five minutes at the fag end of
business.”
'On August 3rd I noted “we are going to send Northbrook to Egypt
to
put down Barrere.”
'On August 5th we considered the instructions to Northbrook, or
rather whether he should have any at all, and if so, what they
should be. Northbrook read us a scheme which he had written,
which
attempted to conciliate Turkey and Italy, so as to have great
naval
strength in the Mediterranean and to prevent all chance of a
sudden
occupation of Egypt by France. We were to express our continued
determination not to annex. We were to stay five years at the
request of the Sultan. We were again to propose to the Powers
those
arrangements with regard to the Canal which we had proposed
already.
We were to pay the indemnities in stock; and the next coupon in
full; and we were to promise for the future not less than 4 per
cent, on privileged stocks, and not less than 3 per cent, on
the
Unified debt, while we were in Egypt. Indian troops were to
hold
Massowah. Harcourt, in reply, read a written counter-statement,
again proposing to “scuttle,” and again threatening us that we
should have war with France. Hartington again spoke for a
guarantee
by us of the whole Egyptian debt. After Hartington's
observations
the discussion was, as usual, adjourned. Chamberlain and I
decided
that we would ask for our old term of three and a half years'
occupation, as against Northbrook's five. Next came Gordon, and
Hartington proposed that we should embody some militia.
'On August 6th there was another Cabinet, and the first question
was
that of Northbrook's scheme. Lord Granville agreed to a
temporary
use of Turkish troops provided that they were to leave Egypt
when we
left. Chamberlain would not agree, and wished to stick to
Northbrook's phrase only inviting “co-operation.” This view
prevailed, and it was decided that if the Turks proposed to
send a
commissioner, we were to refuse. But the question of troops was
really left open for more discussion. Next came the question of
an
advance of nearly a million which had been made by Rothschild
to
Egypt, and we asked him, as a favour to ourselves, to let it
run,
which was all he wanted us to do. Northbrook, who is not
strong, had
been a good deal fatigued with the discussion on his scheme,
and
instead of sleeping (his usual practice at a Cabinet) on this
occasion fainted, and we had to get up and look after him at
this
point.
'On August 26th I received a letter from Hartington, saying that
Northbrook was going to Osborne at the end of the week, and
starting
for Egypt from there. Hartington told me he was coming up to
meet
him, and he afterwards wrote to me to fix an appointment at the
War
Office on the 29th. This I kept. Northbrook was deplorably
weak. He
had returned from Rosebery's completely under the influence of
Mr.
Gladstone's pro-French views. [Footnote: At Dalmeny Lord
Northbrook
“met Mr. and Mrs. Gladstone.” See Life of Lord Northbrook, p.
190.]
He had settled to spend a day at Walmer, and had telegraphed to
Lord
Lyons to meet him there. His plan now was to ask the French
Government to send a man to Egypt in order that he and the
Frenchman
might settle matters together. Hartington and I pointed out to
him
that the Frenchman's instructions from his Government must
either be
to refuse all reduction of interest, or to consent to it upon
obtaining from us a better political position than that given
to
France by the Anglo-French agreement. We explained to him that
it
would be impossible for us to tolerate such proposals. I wrote
to
Chamberlain a full account of the interview.
'September 22nd.—We decided with reference to Egyptian finance
that Chamberlain should write a strong letter to Lord Granville
protesting against any British advance to Egypt, unless
accompanied
by a cutting of the coupon. He did so, and on September 25th
sent me
a copy, and I sent the copy to Childers, and wrote myself to
Lord
Granville. On the 27th I received a memorandum from Chamberlain
as
to Lord Granville, Lord Derby, and Bismarck.
'Chamberlain's memorandum was a fierce denunciation of the
principles laid down in Northbrook's despatch No. 4, dated
September
13th, and received September 22nd.' [Footnote: Lord Northbrook
had
arrived in Egypt.]
Controversy now raged over Lord Northbrook's scheme, and added to the difficulties of the Cabinet, which was divided on the question of lowering or not lowering the rate of interest.
'On 19th November the second matter mentioned was Northbrook's
scheme, against which I fought hard.... I pointed out that
early in
April, when Mr. Gladstone had wished to borrow on the future
value
of the Canal shares, that proposal had not been accepted, and
we
laid down the principle that it was for the bondholders to make
sacrifices. On July 3rd we had decided that the coupon must be
“cut.” On July 18th the whole Cabinet had taken the same view
except
Harcourt and the Chancellor, and four members—Childers,
Spencer,
Chamberlain, and I—had advocated distinct bankruptcy. On
August 2nd
we had seen Baring to lay our plans for bankruptcy. On August
5th
Northbrook himself had proposed a reduction of the interest. On
August 29th there had been a general agreement to the same
effect.
Northbrook's policy had enormously sent up Egyptian stocks.
After my
strong observations the opinions stood: Mr. Gladstone,
Childers,
Chamberlain, Harcourt, Trevelyan, and Dilke against
Northbrook's
scheme; for it, Lord Granville, the Chancellor, Hartington,
Spencer,
Kimberley, Derby, Carlingford, and Northbrook himself. All the
Lords
on one side, curiously enough, and all the Sirs and Mr.'s on
the
other; eight to six against us. But I noted: “Mr. Gladstone is
so
strong that we shall win.” “As we did.”' [Footnote: Letter from
Sir
Charles to Mr. Brett (afterwards Lord Esher):
Local Government Board,
Whitehall,
November 19th, 1884.
'My policy has always been bankruptcy and stand the shot,
and if
we had stuck to that we should have had no trouble with the
Powers;
but indiscretions have made that difficult. It is not pleasant
to be
called in too late. I quite agree in your general view, but how
can
the bondholder be got to make sacrifices without his consent?']
'At the meeting of the Cabinet of December 2nd, Egyptian finance
again came up. We were informed that Prince Bismarck suggested
oral
communications among ambassadors. For this Malet proposed
Paris, and
we replied Berlin.'
IV.
During this time the Government continued to waver as to the Soudan expedition.
On June 21st
'with regard to Gordon it was decided to wait ten days before
settling anything, and to see whether we heard from him in
reply to
the silly questions which had been asked.'
On June 27th came the definitive news that Berber had fallen on May 26th. On July 5th
'We discussed the Egyptian army of the future, and then the
question
of whether we should send an expedition to Khartoum, as to
which we
again could come to no decision; Mr. Gladstone still opposing.'
Dilke, backed by Chamberlain, was still pressing the military solution which he favoured. On July 16th
'Hartington on this occasion gave up the Berber-Suakim route,
and
pressed for a decision as to an immediate expedition by the
Nile. He
was supported by the Chancellor, Northbrook, Carlingford, and
Dodson. Mr. Gladstone, Harcourt, and Childers opposed.
'Chamberlain and I opposed a large expedition by the Nile, and
supported a small expedition, under the control of the navy,
with a
body of picked men. Baring was called in about the police in
Egypt,
and his views in support of Nubar were approved. Nubar was to
have
his own way in the appointment of Inspectors of Police in
Egypt.'
'On July 22nd we found that Mr. Gladstone had again taken up
Zebehr,
and was anxious to send him to Khartoum in order to avoid a
British
expedition.
'On July 25th there was a full Cabinet, Spencer being present,
which
first discussed the Conference and then the Gordon expedition,
for
which for the first time a large majority of the Cabinet
pronounced.
The issue was narrowed down to that of sending some sort of
British
force to or towards Dongola; and this was supported by
Hartington,
the Chancellor, Derby, Northbrook, Spencer, Carlingford,
Dodson,
Chamberlain, and me, while on the other side were only Mr.
Gladstone, Harcourt, and Kimberley. Lord Granville said
nothing. By
the stoutness of their resistance the three for the moment
prevailed
over the nine.
'On July 31st a storm was brewing about Gordon, and Harcourt
went
about declaring that the Government would break up upon the
question. On the next day, August 1st, a way out of the
difficulty
was found in an agreement that we should ask for a small vote
of
credit, which we were to use or not as should be thought right
later.'
It must be remembered that communications with Gordon were now interrupted, though occasionally renewed, and this added to the confusion.
'On September 17th we received a telegram from Gordon which
looked
as though he were perfectly mad, although some of the other
telegrams from him sent at the same time were sane enough.'
Since Parliament had risen and the Cabinet scattered, preparations had been going on apace.
'When Hartington came to me on September 15th he told me that he
had
already spent “L750,000 out of the L300,000” for the Gordon
expedition.' [Footnote: 'On August 9th Lord Hartington again
asked
us for permission to embody militia or call out a portion of
the
First-Class Army Reserve.']
'On October 4th Chamberlain had written strongly against
Wolseley's
great expedition, Harcourt was still opposing the whole thing.
After
this meeting of the Cabinet Northbrook wrote to Gordon a long
letter
based on the Cabinet decision. He stated that the expedition
under
Wolseley was not sent for the purpose of defeating the Mahdi,
but
only of enabling the Egyptian garrison of Khartoum, the civil
employees and their families, with Gordon, to return to Egypt.
He
offered the Grand Cross of the Bath' (to Gordon) 'as from the
Queen
personally. He explained our refusal of Zebehr, and he
suggested the
placing at Khartoum of the Mudir of Dongola. It was easy,
however,
to write to Gordon, but it was not easy to get the letters to
him;
and we had to attempt even to send them by Tripoli and the
desert.'
[Footnote: As to the last communications with Gordon, see
Life of
Granville, vol. ii., pp. 397-399. Besides the authorities
already
quoted, the Parliamentary Papers Nos. 2, 6, 12, 13, and 25, for
1884, may be referred to.]
That is the last detailed reference to Gordon in the Memoir until February 5th, 1885, when the news of the fall of Khartoum reached London. The matter had passed out of the hands of the Cabinet into those of the soldiers.
This comment in the Diary may fitly end this chapter:
'On February 20th I noted (conversation, I think, not printed),
Lord
Acton says of Gladstone: “Cannot make up my mind whether he is
not
wholly unconscious when working himself up to a change of
position.
After watching him do it, I think that he is so. He lives
completely
in what for the moment he chooses to believe.”'
In the summer of 1884 the Government Bill for extension of the franchise had strong and even passionate support throughout the country; but that policy threatened a breach with Lord Hartington, who in the opinion of many was by prescriptive right Mr. Gladstone's successor. Still more entangling were the difficulties in respect of Egypt, over which the Government was so hopelessly divided that no coherent policy could be pursued. Sir Charles notes that on July 18th Mr. Gladstone,
'who had the greatest abhorrence for City dinners, proposed the
extinction of the Lord Mayor's ministerial banquet; the fact
being
that the Government of London Bill and the failure to send an
expedition to Khartoum had made the Ministry so unpopular in
the
City that he did not think it wise to subject himself to the
torture
which such banquets are to him.'
'The Tory game,' Sir Charles wrote on May 24th, 1884, to his
agent,
'is to delay the franchise until they have upset us upon Egypt,
before the Franchise Bill has reached the Lords.' [Footnote:
This
letter is also quoted in Chapter XXXIV.]
When the Franchise Bill went up to the Lords in the first week of July, it was rejected for a reasoned amendment which declined to alter the franchise except as part of a scheme dealing with redistribution of seats.
'On July 5th there was a Cabinet to consider what was called the
crisis—our relations with the House of Lords over the
franchise,
and Spencer was present.... The question to be considered was
that
of dissolution or an autumn Session. Lord Granville,
Hartington, and
Lord Derby were for an immediate dissolution on the old
franchise,
which was at once negatived.'
'On June 21st there was mentioned the attitude of the House of
Lords. Lord Granville said something in favour of life
peerages. I
asked Chamberlain whether he thought that it was seriously
meant,
and writing passed between us in which he replied: “Serious, I
think”; to which I answered: “You won't have it, will you?”
Answer:
“No.”'
'On July 7th Mr. Gladstone explained to me his plan for dealing
with
the House of Lords, which was not so objectionable to me as the
schemes known as “Reform of the House of Lords.” It was to
imitate
the French constitution, and in cases of difference to make the
two
Houses sit in Congress and vote together. From the practical
point
of view it would be as difficult to carry as the abolition of
the
House of Lords, and if carried would not be of much use to the
Liberal party except on occasions when their majority was
absolutely
overwhelming.
'On July 8th offers of compromise came to us from the Lords, but
they would not offer terms which we could accept. We decided to
propose to them a solemn resolution by both Houses pledging us
to
redistribution. This they refused.'
The extent of real agreement which existed between the two sides had not yet been divined; and it was Sir Charles who set on foot the work which finally averted conflict.
'Early in July I began to take time by the forelock by
preparing,
without instructions from the Cabinet, a Redistribution scheme;
and
the first memoranda drawn up by Sir John Lambert for my use
were
written in that month, although it was not till after
Parliament had
separated for the recess that we got seriously to work. In the
evening of July 14th Mr. Gladstone broached to me his views on
Redistribution, and we practically hatched the Bill.'
Party feeling ran high, and the Queen intervened.
'On July 9th in the morning Sir Henry Ponsonby came up to see
the
Duke of Richmond and some of us, and tried to settle the
deadlock,
but failed.... The Cabinet decided that Chamberlain must not
take
the chair at a meeting at the Agricultural Hall to denounce the
House of Lords.'
Liberals in general were, however, speaking out, and at a Cabinet a week later they had 'some fun with Hartington concerning his Lancashire meetings, with strong resolutions directed against the House of Lords for doing that which he privately approved.' Also, there was a tremendous demonstration in the Metropolis.
'On July 21st I saw the Franchise Demonstration on this day from
the
Speaker's window, the procession passing from three till six.'
'After the Cabinet on August 5th we congratulated Chamberlain
upon
his Birmingham franchise meeting, and he told us that
Birmingham was
“thirsting for the blood of the Lords”—saying to Bright: “You
are
too lenient with them. We won't stand them any longer.” I told
him
that as the Times had said that he was too violent, I
had no doubt
the Queen would say so also, to which he replied: “Probably,
and if
she does I shall most likely ... deny her right to criticise my
speeches, although she may, if she likes, dismiss me, in which
case
I will lead an agitation against the Lords in the country.” I
answered: “Yes, but you cannot go alone in such a case, and
therefore should not appear to contemplate doing so.” He
replied: “I
am not going, but perhaps she can dismiss me. What then? I am
not
going to tie my tongue.” I retorted: “In that case it would
surely
be even more essential than usual that I should go too.” He
closed
the matter by saying: “If it really arose out of the agitation
against the Lords and the interference of the Crown with the
liberty
of speech of ministers, I do not see how a Radical could stay
in.
Remember, I have observed Mr. Gladstone's limits. I have said
nothing about the future; only denounced past action.”'
Mr. Chamberlain's outside agitation coincided with Sir Charles's work towards a peaceful solution. On August 9th
'A Committee of the Cabinet was appointed to deal with
Redistribution—to consist of Hartington, Kimberley, Childers,
Chamberlain, and me, with the addition of Lefevre. They forgot
James, who was anxious to be on it, [Footnote: Sir Charles
wrote to
Sir Henry James on the matter, and received a reply admitting
that
he had been “slightly touched” by the omission of his name, but
saying that he would still give his services.] but I soon got
rid of
the Committee and went on by myself with Lambert.'
Parliament was prorogued on August 14th, but very soon compromise was in the air.
'On August 21st and 22nd I had interviews with Hartington at his
wish, nominally to talk over the sending of Wolseley to Egypt,
but
really to see what I thought of a compromise with the Lords on
the
basis of Lord Cowper's letter in the Times—introduction
of the
Redistribution Bill in October.'
The situation was profoundly modified by speeches from Lord Salisbury, which made it clear that the plan “hatched” between Mr. Gladstone and Sir Charles was not likely to have any terrors for him. Lord Kimberley wrote in September:
'Now that Salisbury is going in for electoral districts, it will
become a sort of open competition which party can go furthest.
I
should not be surprised if he were to trump us by proposing to
abolish the House of Lords.'
'I had now decided to agree with Lord Salisbury in advance, and
divide the counties into single-member districts if Mr.
Gladstone
would let me; and Trevelyan, to whom I had broached my scheme,
wrote: “I very much approve of the scheme of dividing counties.
I
hope to goodness you will be able to carry it out.”'
The original draft, completed on September 18th, followed the lines laid down in consultation with Mr. Gladstone. The object of obtaining fair representation, and doing away with over-representation of vested interests, was thus attacked and began with two great industrial centres.
The scheme for England treated Lancashire and Yorkshire as urban throughout, and divided them into single-member districts; but the remaining 'rural' counties of England were divided into two-member districts. Thus, 'the net increase of county members was 53.' Boroughs which had less than 10,000 inhabitants (53 in all) were merged into the counties; those with a population of between 10,000 and under 40,000, which had two members, lost one. Thus, having added to the under-represented, Sir Charles took from the over-represented, and adds: 'this gave us 33 more seats.' Sir Charles in a secret memorandum added that he thought the fixing of so low a limit as 10,000 showed 'an altogether indefensible tenderness to vested interests.' 'I should carry the loss of one member far higher than the 40,000 line adopted, and should take away one member up to the point at which I began to give two' to a new constituency. Dilke was in favour of carrying merger of small boroughs to a greater extent than was adopted in the Act.
'Summing up, on our English borough scheme,' he said, 'I am
struck
by its extreme timidity. I do not see how it is to stand
the
revolutionary criticism of Lord Salisbury.' 'My plan for the
Metropolis gave to it its legitimate proportion of members: 55
in
all.... These figures should be compared with 22—the previous
number.'
As to Ireland, he admitted that 'if you take its population as a whole it was over-represented in our plan; yet the difference in favour of Ireland is very small; moreover, Wales is vastly better treated than Ireland.' Lord Spencer 'thought there would be a howl from Belfast,' and wished for the representation of minorities. 'But the Irish Government made no practical proposal,' and the whole of this intricate business was left almost entirely to Sir Charles.
'On September 29th Mr. Gladstone wrote at length conveying his
general approval of my plan, and stating that he did not intend
to
“handle” the Bill in the House of Commons; and so wished to
defer to
the opinions of his colleagues. He gave me leave to add 12
members
to the House for Scotland, instead of taking the 12 from
England;
and he congratulated me upon the “wonderful progress” which I
had
made.... On the same day on which I had received Mr.
Gladstone's
letter I saw one from Sir Henry Ponsonby to Mr. Gladstone with
Mr.
Gladstone's reply. Sir Henry Ponsonby made proposals.... Mr.
Gladstone had refused both for the present; the former with
scorn
and the latter with argument. [Footnote: The first was “that
the
Lords should read the Franchise Bill a second time, and then
pass a
resolution declaring that they would go into Committee as soon
as
the Redistribution Bill reached them.”]
'On September 30th further letters were circulated, one from Sir
Henry Ponsonby on the 27th, in which he said that the reform of
the
House of Lords must in any case come, but must come later, and
that
he would see the leaders of the Opposition about the second
suggestion of his previous letter as it had not been absolutely
refused (the suggestion being that the Lords should provide in
the
Franchise Bill that it should come into force on January 1st,
1886,
unless the Redistribution Bill were sooner passed).
'On October 4th Hartington made a speech which produced a storm
upon
this subject of Compromise as to Reform.' (He proposed that the
Lords should pass the Franchise Bill 'after seeing the
conditions of
the Redistribution Bill and satisfying themselves that they
were
fair.') 'But Mr. Gladstone went with Chamberlain and myself
against
any compromise.'
Mr. Chamberlain put the point that no bargain could be considered unless the Franchise Bill were first passed without conditions very plainly in a speech on October 7th, and next day at the Cabinet
'Mr. Gladstone expressed his approval of Chamberlain's speech of
the
previous night, and attacked Hartington for his earlier one. It
seemed to me that at this moment Lord Salisbury might have
caught
Hartington by offering the compromise which Hartington had
suggested.... I refused to discuss Redistribution with the
Cabinet,
telling Chamberlain that they would “drive me wild with little
peddling points.”'
The appreciation of Sir Charles's competence was general. It was not limited to Parliament, and he met the expression of it when he appeared on the platform in three great centres of the Lancashire industrial democracy.
'On Tuesday, October 14th, I spoke at Oldham, and on October
15th at
the Free Trade Hall, Manchester, and on the 16th at Stockport.
I had
a wonderful reception at all these meetings, but especially at
the
Manchester meeting.'
Sir Charles's personal record served the party well, for the Tory cry was that the Liberals wished to preserve the inequalities of the existing divisions. To this he answered by appealing to the projects which he had introduced year after year, and recalling their reception from the Tory Government:
'I have preached for redistribution in the desert, I have
advocated
it unceasingly for years, I have been a bore upon it in
Parliament
and out; even the franchise is no less important in my eyes as
being
that which I have a dozen times called “the necessary first
step to
a complete redistribution” than in and for itself.
Redistribution
is, however, if possible, of even more tremendous difficulty
than
importance. It offers a greater hold than any other subject to
the
arts of blocking and delay.' [Footnote: October 14th, at
Oldham.]
'On October 17th Spencer reported from Balmoral that the Queen
was
much pleased with her “Speech”; but not so with other people's
speeches, being angry at the violence of the language used.'
Lord Salisbury had declared that if Birmingham was going to march on London, he hoped Mr. Chamberlain would head the procession and get his head broken for his pains. Mr. Chamberlain retorted that he would gladly head the procession if Lord Salisbury would promise to come and meet it, and then, if his own head were broken, 'it should be broken in very good company.' On October 21st
'I was sent for by Mr. Gladstone about Chamberlain's speech, and
wrote to Chamberlain to ask him if he could tone it down a
little.... On October 22nd at the Cabinet Chamberlain told me
that
he was willing to adopt the words of my letter in explanation
of his
speech.'
He agreed to write for publication a letter to one of his Quaker constituents; but it was judged insufficient.
'On October 28th Mr. Gladstone wrote to me: “I thought you and I
were perfectly agreed about the unfortunate expressions in
Chamberlain's speech ... and in the expectation that his letter
...
would fully meet the case. I own that in my opinion it did not
come
up to the mark. All I had really wished was a note conceived in
the
same spirit as that in which he withdrew the 'jackal' because
it
gave offence. Can nothing more be done? You saw a recent letter
of
mine in defence, written when I thought the objections taken
not to
be just. I am precluded from writing any such letter with the
facts
as they now stand, but I hope that you may be able to bring
them to
the standard of our reasonable expectations.” I sent this
letter to
Chamberlain, as was intended, with a note from me to say that
it was
clear that the Queen had written Mr. Gladstone a second letter
about
the matter, and asked whether I should say that I thought
Chamberlain's letter met the case; and Chamberlain replied:
“Yes. I
cannot and will not do more.” This I communicated to Mr.
Gladstone. Randolph Churchill had taken the matter up. He
accused
Chamberlain of having advocated violence, and was loudly
threatening, even to me, that there should be “somebody killed
at
Birmingham next time.” Chamberlain told me that Randolph had
tried
to get up a march against Highbury on the part of the
Birmingham
Tory roughs; but they were still on speaking terms, and often
chatting together at the smoking-room at the House. On the same
day,
the 28th, late in the evening Mr. Gladstone sent for me about
the
Chamberlain matter, and said of the Queen: “She not only
attacks him
but me through him, and says I pay a great deal too much
attention
to him.” When Chamberlain and I went home, as we almost always
did,
together in one cab, he broke out, evidently much worried and
excited, against Mr. Gladstone.
'Next day I warned Mr. Gladstone that it would not take much to
make
a serious row.'
On October 15th Sir Charles wrote to Sir M. Grant Duff that he expected 'they would sit till February, and send the Bill up a third time.' On October 24th Mr. Gladstone was inclined to resign at the second rejection, which was taken for a certainty. But as to the final issue, it was becoming daily clearer that the Commons were going to win against the Lords. Even in the home counties Liberalism had become aggressive.
'October 24th.—Franchise and Redistribution seemed well in view
when I discovered on this day that Nathaniel Rothschild, who
had
lately looked on Buckinghamshire as his own, was now down on
his
knees to Carrington about it.' Work now began on the details of
the
draft Bill.
'On October 25th there was a full meeting of my Committee of the
Cabinet on Redistribution. I took the chair, and Hartington,
Kimberley, Childers, Chamberlain, James, and Lefevre, sat round
the
table. I got my own way in everything, and succeeded in raising
the
10,000 limit of merger to 15,000. Mr. Gladstone, who disliked
the
change, and who was the strongest Conservative living upon the
subject, yielded to it on the same night by letter.'
Sir Charles now threw himself into getting as big a measure as possible by a 'truce of God' between the parties.
'On October 29th Mr. Gladstone told me that Lord Carnarvon had
proposed to him that they should meet in order to come to some
conclusion about Redistribution. He had declined, but had
tried,
through Sir Erskine May, to induce the Tories to appoint a
Committee
of their own to draw up a scheme. I saw Sir Erskine May and
told him
to tell Northcote that I would accept, and press the acceptance
of,
any scheme not obviously unfair, and not containing minority
representation, which I should be unable to carry.'
'On October 31st there was a Cabinet which was Trevelyan's
first,
and very glad he and his wife were to escape from Ireland,
[Footnote: The Chief Secretaryship was offered to Mr. Shaw
Lefevre,
who refused on the same ground as had previously been taken by
Sir
Charles. Without Cabinet rank he was not prepared to accept it.
Sir
Henry Campbell-Bannerman was then appointed. Mr. Lefevre
entered the
Cabinet as Postmaster-General after the death of Mr. Fawcett,
which
occurred on November 6th, 1884.] which had aged him
dreadfully....
On the question of Reform Hartington told us that he had had
several
interviews with Sir Michael Beach, who had expressly stated
that he
was not authorized by his party to make suggestions, but had
proposed total merger up to 25,000, and loss of the second seat
up
to 80,000. I, to clinch the matter, at once volunteered to draw
up a
scheme on this basis.'
'James called my attention to some communications in the
Conservative newspapers, stating that he had it on very high
authority (which with James always meant Randolph Churchill)
that
the extremely large schemes hinted at were Lord Salisbury's,
and
would be supported by the whole Conservative party; but these
schemes suggested minority-representation in urban districts,
with
single-member constituencies in counties; or, as Chamberlain
said,
“Tory minority represented in towns, and Liberal minority
extinguished in county.” Lord Salisbury, however, was only
keeping
his friends in good humour with minority-representation. In the
evening Randolph Churchill sent me a message that he wished to
have
a conference with me about Redistribution, and by an
arrangement
made through Sir Erskine May, we met in the Office of the
Serjeant-
at-Arms. He then told me that Beach's scheme was his, and that
he
was convinced that an agreement might be come to on those
lines. I
assured him of my warm support for a large scheme. I think this
was
the occasion (about this time) when Randolph, who was thinking
of
going to India, vented his anger as to Salisbury. Winston
Churchill
told me in March, 1901, that his father had come to terms with
Salisbury as to the future Tory Government before he started
for
India. I told him this could not be, as the possibility of
forming
one depended on the Irish, and that Lord Salisbury could not at
this
early date have agreed to buy them by the promises of (1)
Enquiry
into Spencer's police, (2) no Coercion, (3) a Viceroy
personally
favourable to Home Rule.
'In the evening I dined with the Duchess of Manchester to meet
the
Dufferins, on which occasion Dufferin shone, but his health and
spirits were now beginning to decline. Hartington was at the
dinner,
and told me that he had had a fresh interview with Beach, this
time
at his (Hartington's) request.
'On Saturday, November 1st, I had some correspondence with
Hartington about these interviews, of which I warmly approved;
and
on the 3rd Hartington wrote to me that he was going to see
Beach
again that day, and I placed all my scheme before him for
communication to the Conservative front bench.'
Publicly there was war.
'On November 4th was the laying of the foundation-stone of the
National Liberal Club, at which Harcourt, after saying that he
was a
moderate politician, compared the House of Lords to Sodom and
Gomorrah.'
But privately
'on this day Hartington again saw Beach, and afterwards
Churchill.... Beach said that Lord Salisbury unreservedly
accepted
the Queen's suggestion for a meeting of the leaders....
Conferences
went on, but all through the month Beach declined to take a
“representative character, or negotiate in such a way as would
commit his party”—to use Hartington's words. Hartington now
thought
“Mr. Gladstone would be able either to come to terms with Lord
Salisbury or to put him completely in the wrong.” Hartington
added:
“Beach very much regrets the Lowther and John Manners
speeches,”'
and probably Lord Hartington expressed regret for Sir William Harcourt's references to Sodom and Gomorrah.
'On the 6th there was a meeting of my Committee on
Redistribution to
consider Beach's proposals, at which I took the chair, but did
little else, and left all the talking to the others, and their
view
came to this—that they were quite willing to agree to the Tory
revolutionary scheme, provided the Tories would take the odium
with
the House of Commons of proposing it.'
'On November 7th the Cabinet decided that I should be joined to
Hartington as recognized plenipotentiary.'
On the 10th
'I proposed and Mr. Gladstone agreed to write to Lord Salisbury
“distinctly accepting the Queen's offers.” On November 11th we
confirmed our decisions at the last Cabinet as to completely
taking
away from Lord Salisbury the power of saying that he had
accepted
and we declined the Queen's proposals, by unreservedly
supporting
Mr. Gladstone's letter to the Queen.'
On November 15th Mr. Gladstone informed the Cabinet that the Lords were unyielding.
'Northcote had taken tea with him on the previous evening. The
Lords
would not part with the Franchise Bill till the Redistribution
Bill
was in their House. As regarded Lord Salisbury and Sir Stafford
Northcote, Mr. Gladstone considered the door absolutely closed,
but
he was informed that the Duke of Richmond and Lord Cairns did
not
agree with the leaders. We then drew up a statement to be made
on
Monday, November 17th, in both Houses of Parliament as to the
steps
we had taken to produce conciliation, Harcourt saying: “This is
the
apple-woman spitting on her old apples and shining 'em
up!”—the
fact being that it was only done to put the Lords in the
wrong.'
'On Monday, November 17th, when I returned from Sandringham, I
had
to see Lord Rowton, who had been sent to me by the Prince of
Wales
to try and produce a settlement of the Redistribution
difficulty,
but we only sat and smiled at one another; he saying that he
had
come because he had been told to come, and I saying that I had
nothing new to tell him, for Lord Salisbury knew all we had to
say.'
'On November 19th there was a Cabinet. The first matter
mentioned
was the arrangement with the Conservatives for an interview,
and at
four o'clock on this day, November 19th, occurred the first
meeting
of the parties: an interview between Lord Salisbury and Sir
Stafford
Northcote on the one side, and Mr. Gladstone and Lord Granville
on
the other. Lord Salisbury had written to me about it already,
and
had privately seen my papers the previous day at the
Commission, and
had asked me a great number of questions, and I had given him
my
division of the Metropolis and of Lancashire at his wish, and
received from him the following note: “I do not know whether it
will
be possible to discuss the application of the one-member
principle
to the Counties and the Metropolitan Constituencies and the
suburbs
of the larger towns.” The hesitating way in which he asked
shows
that we might have avoided the single-members had we fought
upon the
point. But, as I liked them myself, I fought the other way,
against
Mr. Gladstone. At the interview between the leaders of the two
parties and the two Houses it was merely decided that the real
interview should take place on Saturday, November 22nd, at noon
between the two Conservative chiefs and Mr. Gladstone, Lord
Hartington, and me, Lord Granville being left out as knowing
nothing
of the subject. On November 21st I continued my private
conference
with Lord Salisbury at the Royal Commission, and we settled who
the
Boundary Commissioners should be. On Saturday, November 22nd, I
had
a conference with Chamberlain before going to the meeting with
Lord
Salisbury. Chamberlain was in favour of two-member seats as
against
single members, especially for boroughs. He was as clear as was
Lord
Salisbury that the single-member system would damage the
Liberal
party in the Metropolis.
'In the afternoon the Conference took place, and there never was
so
friendly and pleasant a meeting. I fully described it in three
letters to Chamberlain, in which I said, among other things:
“It
looks as though Lord Salisbury is really anxious that we should
pass
our Bill.” No memorandum on this day passed in writing, and the
written compact was concluded between Lord Salisbury and me
only on
November 28th. The meeting of the 22nd was known at the time as
the
Downing Street meeting; and the other as “the Arlington Street
compact.”
'On Sunday, November 23rd, Lord Salisbury wrote to me a letter
which
I sent on to Mr. Gladstone and which he kept. Mr. Gladstone
replied
on the same day undertaking to move the adjournment of the
House for
a week, and showing that he was not at all sure that Lord
Salisbury,
having got from us the whole of our scheme and given us nothing
in
writing which was worth anything, did not mean to sell us.
Chamberlain wrote on the same day in reply to my letters, “I
cannot
make head or tail of Salisbury. He appears to be swallowing
every
word that he has ever written or spoken about
Redistribution.... I
wonder if he will carry his party with him.... On the whole,
you
seem to be doing very well.”'
Discussion now went on by correspondence between Sir Charles and Lord Salisbury, and it touched subjects which might easily have led to friction. Lord Salisbury proposed to create a number of urban constituencies by grouping; his plan being to get the small towns taken out of rural districts which he looked upon as otherwise Conservative, and to group them with small manufacturing boroughs:
'I was aghast at this suggestion, because it was a very
difficult
thing, in a Parliamentary sense, to create a few such groups in
England; and if the thing was to be carried far and not
confined to
a few cases only it would entirely have destroyed the whole of
the
work that we had done, because all the counties would have had
their
numbers altered. I therefore fought stoutly for my own scheme,
which
I succeeded in carrying almost untouched. Lord Salisbury's
letter
crossed one from me to him in which, after Mr. Gladstone's
leave
(conveyed in the words “I see no objection to sending him this
excellent and succinct paper marked Secret"), I had
communicated to
Lord Salisbury my views and the grounds on which they were
based.'
'On the 26th, at four o'clock, we met at Downing Street, all
five
being present.... Lord Salisbury, yielding to my reasoning,
gave up
grouping,' on the understanding that the Boundary Commissioners
were
'to keep the urban patches as far as possible by themselves....
Ultimately it was settled that single-member districts should
be
universal in counties, and that we should leave open for the
present
the question of how far it should be applied to boroughs.'
Lord Salisbury wished to retain the minority clause in places where he thought it had worked well, but he did not ask for it in Birmingham and Glasgow. 'All this showed great indecision,' says Sir Charles, and he observes that 'Lord Salisbury did not seem to me thoroughly to understand his subject.' It is probable, at all events, that he was no match on the details either for Sir Charles or for Mr. Gladstone, who, after the Conference, thus summed up his impressions in a letter dated November 26th:
'My Dear Dilke,
'I send you herewith for your consideration a first sketch which
I
have made of a possible communication to-morrow after the
Cabinet
from us to the Legates of the opposite party. I think that if
the
Cabinet make it an ultimatum we should be safe with it.
There was
a careful abstention to-day on their side from anything beyond
praising this or that, and at the outset they spoke of the
one-member system for boroughs “with exceptions” as what they
desired.
'Yours sincerely,
'W. E. Gladstone.'
'Mr. Gladstone's memorandum was on my lines. On the next
morning,
November 27th, Mr. Gladstone, Lord Granville, Hartington, I,
and
Chamberlain met before the Cabinet at 11 o'clock, and kept the
Cabinet waiting, the Cabinet having been called for twelve, and
Redistribution alone being considered at it. I announced at the
Cabinet that the Tories proposed and we accepted single-member
districts universally in counties, boundaries to be drawn by a
commission who were to separate urban from rural as far as
possible,
without grouping and without creating constituencies of utterly
eccentric shape. The names of the commissioners had been
settled,
and both sides were pledged to accept their proposals, unless
the
two sides agreed to differ from them. [Footnote: At the meeting
of
the 26th 'it was agreed that the Boundary Commissioners should
consist of those gentlemen who had been advising me.']
'The Tories proposed single-member districts almost everywhere
in
boroughs, and only positively named one exception—the City of
London—but were evidently prepared to make some exceptions.
They
made our agreement on this point the condition of passing the
Franchise Bill, of giving up the decrease of the Irish members
from
103 to 100 which they urged, of giving up all forms of minority
vote, and of giving up grouping. My own opinion and that of the
Prime Minister were in favour of agreement. Hartington, who
much
disliked what he thought would be the extinction of the Whigs
by an
omnipresent caucus for candidates' selection, was hostile to
the
single-member system. I pointed out that we already proposed in
our
amended scheme 120 single-member borough seats out of 284
borough
seats. We had thrown out to the Tories a question as to whether
they
would accept, say, 184 single-borough seats, and give us, say,
not
more than 100 for double-member seats; or, if they liked,
two-thirds
and one-third; and they did not positively decline this
suggestion.
Mr. Gladstone proposed to “save from compulsory division those
urban
constituencies, not Metropolitan, which, now possessing dual
representation, are to have their representation neither
increased
nor diminished.” (This was the ultimate agreement.) Also, that
“cities and towns which are to receive four members and
upwards, ten
in number, should have one central or principal area set apart
with
two members.” (This was purely personal on Mr. Gladstone's part
and
was universally rejected.)
'I argued warmly in favour of supporting Lord Salisbury's scheme
(upon which he and I were absolutely agreed), I being delighted
at
having got seven more members for the Metropolis than were
given by
my scheme in its last form after the Cabinet had cut it down.
In
order to secure Chamberlain's support I told him “I might be
able to
save a seat for you and give the extended Birmingham seven if
you
liked to make that a condition, but in that case I must get one
somewhere for Glasgow also out of the rest of Scotland, which
is
skinning flints.”
'The reception of our proposals by the Cabinet, to which
Grosvenor'
(the Chief Whip) 'had been called in, was not altogether
favourable.
Childers talked about resigning, and Grosvenor was most
hostile. We
had the enormous advantage, however, that Chamberlain and I and
Mr.
Gladstone were the only three people who understood the
subject, so
that the others were unable to fight except in the form known
as
swearing at large. I was sent off from the Cabinet to Lord
Salisbury
to tell him that we could agree. At three o'clock we had a
further
conference with the Conservative leaders, and came to an
agreement
on my base, Chamberlain, who was somewhat hostile, yielding to
me, I
going in and out to him, for he was at Downing Street in
another
room.'
Next day memoranda were exchanged between the parties to the Conference, and Mr. Gladstone was pledged to stand by the heads set down in his memoranda, and accept no provision outside of these without Sir Stafford Northcote's agreement. One detail is of interest as illustrating Mr. Gladstone's inherited Conservatism, which comes out all through these negotiations.
'Mr. Gladstone in sending this (memorandum) to me said: “You
will
see that Salisbury stands upon our printed statement as to
Universities.” Mr. Gladstone, knowing that I was strongly
opposed to
University representation, took this matter upon himself. He
proposed a more general form of words in place of Lord
Salisbury's
pledge against new matters, and, as for Universities, wrote:
“Assure
Salisbury that I personally will bind myself out and out
to this
proposition.”'
'In the afternoon I went to Lord Salisbury to settle the terms
of
agreement, and had to go four times from him to Mr. Gladstone,
and
four times back again, before we finished....
'The next day I lunched with Mr. Gladstone to meet Miss Mary
Anderson, the actress, and Princess Louise. I received at lunch
a
letter from Lord Salisbury making a few reservations ... none
of
them difficult of acceptance.
'On December 2nd I got a note from Harcourt—to ask what I had
been
doing with the British Constitution in his absence. On December
8th
I had a serious grumble from Spencer from Dublin as to my
having
settled with Salisbury who were to be the Irish Commissioners,
and
only asked the Irish Government after the thing was done. I had
undoubtedly been wrong, and can only say that Spencer let me
off
cheaply....'
Sir Charles's holiday in the South of France, whither he went on December 17th, was broken by copies of a correspondence between Lord Spencer and Lord Salisbury, the latter writing 'with much sound and fury' on the question of another Conservative Boundary Commissioner for Ireland. 'Lord Salisbury had always been so extremely soft and sweet to me that it was a revelation to find him writing to Spencer in the style of Harcourt or of Chamberlain when in a passion.'
'Sir Stafford Northcote also wrote to me upon the subject, and
passing on to Scotland in his letter, added, “It is, I think,
understood that we may have a free fight over the grouping of
Scotch
boroughs.” This question of the Scotch boroughs was afterwards
referred to me and Charles Dalrymple (M.P. for Buteshire), and
I
gave Dalrymple one or two changes that he wanted, which, I
think,
did not matter.'
Such difficulties were few and subordinate. The scheme was settled in principle, for after the Arlington Street compact
'I wrote the letter to the Boundary Commissioners the same
night,
and after I had signed their instructions on December 5th I had
a
pause in my Redistribution work for some time.'
But at the end of December Lord Hartington wrote:
'I think it will take two of us all our time to work the Bill
through; and you know so much more about it than anybody else
that
you must necessarily take the greatest share of the details';
and ended with an invitation to Sir Charles to stay at Hardwick to do some preliminary work on the measure.
I.
During 1884 'I warned Lord Granville, Mr. Gladstone, Fitzmaurice, and Childers, that I should not in future be able to speak on foreign affairs on account of the terrible work of the Redistribution Bill, and of the Royal Commission,' for 'I was now so busy with the preparation for working the Redistribution Bill through the House, and with the Report of the Royal Commission, that I objected to receiving Foreign Office papers not sent to other members of the Cabinet ... but Lord Granville insisted that I should still see them, and circulated a letter to that effect.'
During 1884 and 1885 Foreign Office work was not only exacting, but was connected with acute disagreements in the Ministry itself. It has been seen how closely Sir Charles was occupied with the Egyptian question, and how constantly he found himself opposed to Lord Hartington in his views of policy. Moreover, out of the Egyptian difficulty there sprang a general divergence from France, and this led to action by France in various quarters of the globe calculated to offend British susceptibilities and to injure British prestige. Sir Charles, friend of France as he was, had been strong for resenting and resisting such action, and this attitude had brought him into conflict with those who on the whole had supported him in Egyptian matters. A new factor was now introduced. Bismarck had previously been content to urge on the French in their colonization policy, but in 1884 the German Chancellor, who in 1883 had been working out his schemes of national insurance, found his hand forced by the Colonial party, and, in view of the coming German elections, could no longer afford to ignore them. Bismarck, 'contrary to his conviction and his will,' said Lord Ampthill, accepted a policy of colonization, which had the secondary effect of harassing and humiliating the British Liberal Administration. [Footnote: Life of Granville, vol. ii., p. 355.] Sir Charles, who realized that every such annexation meant the exclusion of British trade from an actual or potential market, fought for strong British action, but he fought against the older Liberals of the Cabinet. Again and again the Radical leaders were overborne by Mr. Gladstone.
The German Government had demanded protection for a German firm of traders who had established themselves in the territory of Angra Pequena, on the west coast of Africa, 280 miles south of Walfisch Bay. Lord Granville, after considerable delays, caused chiefly by the necessity of consulting the Colonial Office, which in its turn had to consult the Cape Government, where a change of Ministry was impending, objected to the declaration of a German protectorate.
'June 14th, 1884.—At a Cabinet at Lord Granville's house on
Conference.... Waddington waiting in another room.
'H. Bismarck was also in the house, and had been very rude to
Lord
Granville about Angra Pequena, which was mentioned to the
Cabinet,
which would do nothing.
'June 2lth—... Angra Pequena was mentioned, and it was decided
that
Bismarck, who was greatly irritated with the Government, was to
have
all he wanted.
'On September 22nd Chamberlain came to me on his return from
abroad.
He told me that H. Bismarck had told him that the German
Chancellor
was very angry at having had no answer to a full statement of
German
views as to Angra Pequena and other colonial matters, which had
been
sent to Lord Granville on August 30th, and he was astonished to
learn that the Cabinet had not seen his letter....
'On the 27th Lord Granville had in the meantime written: “I will
send you my letter and Bismarck's answer, but I do not wish the
correspondence to be mentioned.... My only excuse, but a good
one,
for acting merely as a medium between the German Government and
the
Colonial Office, was that I had continually the most positive
assurances in London, and still more in Berlin, that Bismarck
was
dead against German colonization—as he was.”'
[Footnote: On this
chapter of African history, see Life of Granville, vol.
ii., chap.
x., passim.]
This was the first of a series of instances in which, to Sir Charles's great disgust, the British Foreign and Colonial Offices 'lay down to Germany.'
Since the annexation of part of New Guinea by Queensland had been disavowed in April, 1883, all Australia was vehemently concerned over the ultimate fate of this territory, and pressed the home Government to forestall other Powers by occupying it.
'June 27th we discussed New Guinea, as to which Lord Derby was
getting into serious trouble.
'On July 5th there was a Cabinet called to consider what was
called
the “crisis”—our relation with the House of Lords over the
Franchise. But so peculiar is the British Empire that, although
the
Cabinet was called upon this question, we immediately proceeded
to
consider for the greater portion of the day matters in Sumatra,
in
the Malay Archipelago, and the Pacific, and ... the affairs of
New
Guinea and so forth. Harcourt, Lord Selborne, and Mr. Gladstone
violently opposed the occupation of New Guinea—Harcourt and
Mr.
Gladstone on anti-imperialistic grounds, and Lord Selborne on
grounds connected with the protection of the aborigines against
the
rapacity and violence of the Queensland settlers. Hartington,
Lord
Granville, Derby, Kimberley, Chamberlain, and I, took the
Australian
view. The matter was adjourned, as matters always are adjourned
when
the Prime Minister is against the Cabinet.'
'August 6th.—We then attacked New Guinea, most of us wanting
annexation, some protectorate, and decided on the latter to
please
the Chancellor and Mr. Gladstone.'
'August 9th.—We first discussed German colonies in the South
Seas.
Bismarck had seized North New Guinea, and we decided to stick
to the
long peninsula which faces both north and south.'
Bismarck's immediate answer was to annex, not only the north coast, but what is now called the Bismarck Archipelago.
'October 4th.—Next came New Guinea. Were we to insist, as we
had
done previously, on keeping the Germans off the north coast of
the
long eastern peninsula? The previous decision was reversed. The
Cabinet, however, vetoed a suggestion for the joint commission
with
Germany as to land claims in the Pacific Islands being allowed
to
meddle in New Guinea. We then decided to annex one quarter, and
several members of the Cabinet expressed a hope that this
time the
thing would “really be done.”' [Footnote: A useful sketch of
these
events has recently appeared in the paper read before the Royal
Geographical Society by Sir Everard Im Thurn, K.C.M.G. See
Journal, vol. xlv., No. 5, April, 1915.]
These instances did not stand alone. Two native chiefs in the Cameroons had so far back as 1882 proposed to be taken under British protection, and Sir Charles had pressed acceptance of their offer. The matter had been discussed in the Cabinet, and Lord Derby and Lord Granville were still debating what should be done, when a German expedition seized the territory.
'On September 18th I received from Chamberlain a letter from
Leipsic, in which he said: “The Cameroons! It is enough to make
one
sick. As you say, we decided to assume the protectorate
eighteen
months ago, and I thought it was all settled. If the Board of
Trade
or Local Government Board managed their business after the
fashion
of the Foreign Office and Colonial Office, you and I would
deserve
to be hung.”'
Those who thought with Sir Charles felt considerable anxiety about possibilities on the East Coast of Africa. The Cameroons were lost, but a protectorate over Zanzibar had been offered, and Zanzibar was the outlet for an important trading district, which the forward party thought of securing. The Prime Minister was opposed to all such schemes. 'On December 14th Mr. Gladstone broke out against the proposed annexations in what is now called the Kilimanjaro district.'
He wrote to Sir Charles: 'Terribly have I been puzzled and perplexed on finding a group of the soberest men among us to have concocted a scheme such as that touching the mountain country behind Zanzibar with an unrememberable name. There must somewhere or other be reasons for it which have not come before me. I have asked Granville whether it may not stand over for a while.' [Footnote: The allusion is to the treaties with native chiefs which were negotiated by Mr. (afterwards Sir) Harry Johnston in 1883-84. These treaties were the foundation of what is now known as British East Africa, and related mainly to the Kilimanjaro and Taveita districts. It would appear that Mr. Gladstone himself had at first expressed an interest in the development of British influence 'over this hinterland of snow mountains and elevated plateaux,' to which his attention had been drawn by the report of Mr. Joseph Thomson. Speaking subsequently at the Colonial Institute, Sir Harry Johnston said that 'about twenty years ago he was making preparations for his first expedition to British Africa. He had a very distinguished predecessor, whom he regarded as the real originator of British East Africa: Mr. Joseph Thomson, who died all too young in 1895. His great journey from Mombasa was commenced in 1882 and finished in 1884.... His reports sent home to the Royal Geographical Society had attracted the attention of Mr. Gladstone; and there was another British statesman, Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, who perhaps more than most of his colleagues saw the possibility of a white man's settlement in Equatorial Africa, and who chose to select him (Sir H. Johnston) as one agency by which this work should be commenced.' (Journal of the Royal Colonial Institute, 1903-04, No. 5, p. 317.) The territory covered by the Kilimanjaro Treaties was ceded to Germany under the arrangement made at the end of 1885, but the remainder has continued to be British (see Sir Harry Johnston, A History of the Colonization of Africa by Alien Races, pp. 376-409.]
Mr. Gladstone could not bring himself to understand that the great States of Europe had, almost without premeditation, moved into a field of policy which involved the apportionment of regions scarcely yet known in any detail to the geographers; nor did he realize the far-reaching consequences of the acquisition or refusal of some of these districts. The question of the Congo, for example, involved, as Sir Robert Morier had foreseen, the settlement of the whole West African coast. In April Sir Charles had recorded how he
'had to read up African papers, and found reason to fear that
the
King of the Belgians was contemplating the sale of his Congo
dominions to France. We had a meeting at the Foreign Office in
the
afternoon, [Footnote: April 26th, 1884.] at which were present
Lord
Granville, Kimberley, Chamberlain, myself, and Fitzmaurice,
and,
finding that we could not possibly carry our Congo Treaty with
Portugal, we determined to find a way out by referring it to
the
Powers.' [Footnote: The following extract from an article in
the
Quarterly Review explains the importance attached by Sir
Charles
to this Congo treaty, and the far-reaching results which it
would
have had:
'In 1875 the results of Lieutenant Cameron's great journey
across
Africa became known.... They revealed ... the material for a
Central
African Empire awaiting the enterprise of a European or an
Asiatic
power. There is now little doubt that, had the famous treaty
negotiated by Sir Charles Dilke, Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, and
Sir
Robert Morier in 1884, been ratified and carried out ... the
Congo
Basin would have been added to the British Empire, together
with
Delagoa Bay and Nyasaland, before its time; with Dahomey also,
and
an all-British West African Coast between Sierra Leone and the
Gaboon.' (Quarterly Review, January, 1906.)
It would perhaps have been more accurate had the author spoken of the 'treaty proposed to be negotiated.' The original plan of Sir Robert Morier—part of a large scheme for the settlement of all outstanding questions with Portugal—contemplated inter alia some territorial acquisition on the Congo by Great Britain. But the Cabinet put a veto on this. The Foreign Office had therefore to fall back on the alternative but less ambitious plan contained in the Anglo-Portuguese Treaty of 1884, which was never ratified, owing to the opposition of Germany. (Life of Granville, vol. ii., chap. x.; and supra, I. 418. See also on this subject the observations of Sir Harry Johnston in his History, quoted above, pp. 277, 278, 343, 405.)]
In October he goes on to relate how
'Lord Granville had been frightened by Plessen, the Prussian,
coming
to invite him to a Conference at Berlin, but explained that he
had
been much relieved on finding, as he put it, that it was only
about
the Congo. It was, however, the famous Africa Conference which
virtually settled the whole future of the Dark Continent.'
Sir Charles notes the result in January, 1885:
'The sittings of the West African Conference, as it was called,
were
at this time taking place at Berlin, and the General Act was
signed
in the following month—that of February, 1885. [Footnote: He
notes
in this month, February 4th, at “a meeting at the Admiralty of
all
the Ministers in town, Childers and I stand alone in support of
Portugal as regards the Congo. I stated very freely what I
still
believe, that we had behaved shamefully to the Portuguese; but
this
neither convinced Lord Granville at the time, nor excused the
subsequent behaviour of the Portuguese.” On February 11th Sir
Charles wrote to a diplomatic friend: “I cannot quite follow
the
present phase of Congo, but I hope that nothing will be done to
back
up the rascally association against Portugal. I believe that
Portugal will seize the disputed territory, and I certainly
should
if I were the Portuguese Ministry.”] I was very busy with this
work,
in which I had long taken a deep interest, and was much
relieved
when I found that what I thought the folly of the House of
Commons
in upsetting our Congo Treaty, and preventing a general
arrangement
with the Portuguese as regarded both West Africa and South-East
Africa, had turned out better than could have been anticipated,
owing to the interposition of the Germans. My joy was
short-lived,
for King Leopold has not kept his promises.'
The interests thus claimed or created beyond the seas had to be defended upon the seas. Either Great Britain must be prepared to abate her pretensions, or she must strengthen her power to enforce them. Dilke and Chamberlain were strongly against giving way to anything which could be regarded as usurpation. Mr. Gladstone, on the other hand, pointed out that to maintain a control, or veto, over the allocation of unappropriated portions of the globe meant large increase of naval expenditure, and he set his face against both. On December 2nd
'Naval expenditure was mentioned. The Cabinet had been about to
agree both to Northbrook's proposals (for Egypt) and to the
sums
suggested for the defence of coaling-stations, when Mr.
Gladstone
suddenly broke out, told us that he did not much care for
himself,
as he now intended to retire, but that had he been twenty-five
years
younger nothing could have induced him to consent. A loan he
would
not tolerate. Then there was a general veer round, and all went
against the fortifications. Mr. Gladstone, however, said that
he
should retire as soon as the Redistribution Bill was carried.'
The affairs of South Africa, where Great Britain was consolidating her position, are also touched on in 1884.
'On March 22nd we had another Cabinet without Mr. Gladstone. The
first matter discussed was Zululand, Chamberlain opposing
Kimberley
and Derby, who wished to increase the British Protectorate. At
last
Kimberley said: “I see the Cabinet do not want more niggers,”
and
dropped the scheme.
'On May 17th ... we decided to defend the Zululand reserve
against
all comers.'
Later in the year there are entries as to the annexation of Bechuanaland:
October 4th, 'Bechuanaland was discussed, as to which Chamberlain wanted to go to war with the Boers, and had written to me.'
And on November 11th 'there was a Cabinet called on the Bechuanaland trouble, and we discussed votes of money for the Gordon and Bechuanaland expeditions.'
II.
During this year the Central Asian question, always of first-rate interest to Sir Charles, constantly claimed his attention.
'On February 22nd there was a meeting at the Foreign Office
which
was intended to be a meeting about my Central Asian scheme, but
which developed into a virtual Cabinet. There were present Mr.
Gladstone, Hartington, Kimberley, Northbrook, myself,
Fitzmaurice,
and J. K. Cross, Undersecretary of State for India. The
delimitation
of the Afghan frontier was further considered and pretty much
decided.
'Pleasures of Office. I dined with the Dean of Westminster, and
was
called away in the middle of dinner to make a speech about
Central
Asia, and got back again for coffee.'
'On March 5th Hartington suggested that we should recommence the
Quetta railroad, and it was decided to give a hint to Lord
Ripon to
ask for it.'
'August 5th.—Lord Granville informed us that the Shah was
alarmed
at the Russian advance upon the Persian frontier, and asked us
for
promises.
'August 7th.—There was a meeting of the Central Asian
Committee....
Lord Granville, Hartington, Kimberley, I, and Fitzmaurice were
present, with Philip Currie. As to the amount of support to be
given
to Persia Lord Granville wrote an excellent despatch, while we
were
talking. It was settled that we were to repeat our statements
at St.
Petersburg at a convenient opportunity, but to ask the Shah
that, as
an earnest of his good intentions towards us, the Persian
rivers
should be thrown open to our trade—not a bad touchstone. We
discussed the Afghan boundary, and decided that, if the
Russians
would not agree to our proposed starting-point for the
delimitation,
we would send an Afghan British Commission without them to make
our
own, delimitation.'
'November 18th.—Edmond Fitzmaurice consulted me as to Central
Asia.
The Russians had agreed in principle to the delimitation, but
...
had made much delay in questions of detail.'
On the Committee Sir Charles and Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice were unequally yoked with the lethargic Secretary of State for War. Lord Fitzmaurice has vivid recollection of Lord Hartington's entry at one sitting half an hour late, after his fashion. The question turned on the probable action of some Afghan chiefs, whereupon Lord Hartington broke silence by observing reflectively: “I wonder what an Afghan chief is like.” Sir Charles, with a glance at the high-nosed, bearded, deliberate face of his colleague, pushed a scribbled note to Lord Edmond: “I expect an Afghan chief is very like the Right Honourable the Marquis of Hartington.”'
Sir Charles's interest in this Central Asian question, where political and military interests lay so close together, led to a correspondence, and the correspondence to a friendship, with Lord Roberts.
'In March I received a letter from Sir Frederick Roberts, not
yet
personally known to me, in which he enclosed a memorandum by
him
called “Is an Invasion of India by Russia Possible?” In his
letter
he said that he had given up the idea of returning to Kandahar,
and
only desired that we should make ourselves secure upon our new
frontier, improve our relations with the Afghans, and clearly
show
that we could not allow the Russians to establish themselves in
Northern Afghanistan. In his printed paper he showed that
Persia
might be looked upon as virtually Russian, and that what we had
to
do was to prevent Afghanistan falling into the same position.
He
incidentally admitted the strength of the view of those of us
who
had advocated the evacuation of Kandahar by saying that the
Afghans
“must be assured that we have no designs upon their country,
and
that even should circumstances require a British occupation of
Kandahar, the direction of all internal affairs would be left
in
their hands; we must guarantee them the integrity of their
kingdom.”
He strongly supported my view that no time should be lost in
defining the northern boundary of Afghanistan.
'Roberts went on to lay down the principle that the main body of
a
Russian army destined for the invasion of India must advance by
Herat and Girishk on Kandahar, whence, if not defeated, the
Russians
must move by Ghazni, Kabul, and the Khyber. Sir Frederick
Roberts
pointed out that India could not place in the field, under the
then
conditions, more than 40,000 men, with from 130 to 140 guns.
Part of
the native army could be relied on, but, writing as
Commander-in-
Chief in Madras, he pointed out that the Southern Indian Sepoys
had
not the courage and physique to fight against Russian troops,
or
even against natives from the north. On the other hand, many of
our
northern native troops would be of doubtful loyalty in the
event of
Russia becoming predominant in Afghanistan. “Sir Fred” laid
down
the principle of completing railway communication to a point
near
Kandahar, with a bridge across the Indus near Sukkur, and
generally
described the plan of a vigorous offensive on the Kandahar side
and
a defensive on the Khyber line, which has since been adopted.'
'At the end of May I received from Sir Frederick Roberts a
letter in
reply to mine, acknowledging the receipt of the Defence of
India
papers which I have named. I had told him that the real danger
was
that Russia would detach Herat by local intrigue without
appearing,
and that I did not see how we could prevent this alarming
danger.
Sir Frederick admitted the truth of my view, and again pointed
out
the importance of trying to win the friendship of the Afghans.
He
favoured my proposals for the delimitation of the northern
frontier
of Afghanistan. “But I much doubt Russia's now agreeing to any
proposal of the sort.” He ended by expressing his gratification
at
our issue of the order for the completion of the railway to
Quetta
and Pishin.'
Discussions preliminary to the Budget occupied the Cabinet in January, 1884, and Mr. Childers announced that the Army and Navy Estimates would leave him with a deficit, chiefly because the newly introduced parcel post had been 'a disastrous failure.'
'In the course of this Cabinet of January 24th, I for the first
time
stated my views on the subject of army reform. I have a slip of
paper which passed backwards and forwards between Chamberlain
and
myself, headed “The condition of the army.” I wrote: “Do you
remember my saying one night in our cab to you that I could not
go
to the W.O. because of my views upon this very point?”
Chamberlain
wrote back: “But that really is the reason why you should go. I
have
the lowest opinion of army administration wherever I can test
it—
contracts, for instance. It is most ludicrously inefficient.”
To
which I replied: “The Duke of Cambridge and the old soldiers
and the
Queen would make it very nearly hopeless.”'
The War Office never tempted Sir Charles as did the Admiralty, where, he wrote to Lord Granville in 1885, 'I fear I should be extravagant.'
III.
A holiday home in the South of France had ceased to be easily accessible to the 'most hard-worked member of the Government.' Though for many years he retained his little villa of 'La Sainte Campagne' near Toulon, nestling in its olive groves with, from windows and cliff, the view of the red porphyry rocks across the deep blue of the bay, he had for some time been negotiating for the purchase of strips of land by the riverside near Shepperton, and among the pines at Pyrford.
In 1883 the building of the cottage at Dockett Eddy was begun, over the door of which he set this inscription:
“Parva sed apta mihi, sed nulli obnoxia, sed non Sordida, parta meo sed tamen aere, domus.”
[Footnote: Thus rendered in English by the Rev. W. Tuckwell:
''Tis tiny, but it suits me quite,
Invades no jealous neighbour's right;
'Tis neat and clean, and—pleasant thought—
I earned the cash with which 'twas bought.'
(It was bought out of his official salary.)]
This was to be always his riverside home, and in it he always slept, even after the larger house had been built near by. There he was one of the river's most jealous guardians, and in this year notes that he
'gave evidence before the Select Committee on the River Thames,
and
was instrumental in securing the insertion of a clause in the
Bill,
afterwards produced by the Committee, which put an end to
shooting
on the Thames, and did a great deal to protect the quiet of the
river.'
The Dockett cottage was not finished till 1885, and:
'On Saturday, March 21st, I took a holiday on the river,
starting
down with my punt from Taplow Court, and bringing her down to
Dockett Eddy, of which I now took possession, the little house
being
now finished.'
On May 22nd, 1884,
'I settled to go on Whitsun Tuesday to look at Lord Onslow's
land at
Pyrford, for a winter house. I had forgotten that my ancestor
Sir R.
Parkhurst had been Lord of the Manor of Pyrford, and that my
ancestor Sir Edward Zouche had lived even nearer to my new
purchase,
at old Woking St. Peter, whence I hear his bells.'
Late in the year
'I settled on my motto for my cottage at Pyrford—a line of
Ruskin,
“This is the true nature of Home,—it is the place of Peace.”
'The selection meant in my mind that home was about to exist
once
more for me.'
'In July, 1884, Mrs. Mark Pattison had been left a widow by the
death of the Rector of Lincoln College. She went to live at The
Lodge, Headington, near Oxford.
'Later in the year we became privately engaged, and told Mr. and
Mrs. Frank Pattison, Mrs. Westlake, Mrs. Earle, and Mrs. Grant
Duff,
as well as Chamberlain, but no one else. It was decided that
others
should not be told until much later, and to Lord Granville, who
(without mentioning a name) congratulated me, I had to feign
ignorance of what he meant. Mrs. Pattison settled to go to
India in
February, March, or April, 1885, to stay with the Governor of
Madras
and Mrs. Grant Duff in the hills, and to return in September or
October for our wedding, which before her departure was fixed
for
October. Before the return there happened Emilia's typhoid
fever at
Ootacamund, and our terrible misfortunes; but the date of
October,
1885, was fated to remain the date, and Chamberlain, who had,
before
Emilia left, consented to be best man, was best man still. The
place
of the wedding alone was changed—from Christ Church Cathedral,
Oxford, to the parish church of Chelsea. Mrs. Grant Duff wrote
to us
on being told a most pleasant letter.
'Chamberlain wrote the best letter of his life to her.'
This was the letter:
'40, Prince's Gardens, S.W.,
'November 5th, 1884.
'My Dear Mrs. Pattison,
'Dilke has told me his great secret, and I sympathize with him
so
warmly in the new prospects of happiness which are opening for
him
that I have asked leave to write to you and to offer my hearty
congratulations.
'I venture to think that we are already friends, and this adds
greatly to the pleasure which this intelligence has given me.
'For many years I have been on the most intimate terms with your
future husband; and while I share the general opinion of the
world
as to his talents and force of character, I have better reason
than
any other man to appreciate his generosity and goodness, and
the
chivalrous delicacy which a natural reserve conceals from
casual
acquaintance.
'I prize his friendship as the best gift of my public life, and
I
rejoice unfeignedly that he will have a companion so well able
to
share his noblest ambitions and to brighten his life.
'I know that you will forgive me this intrusion, which is
justified
by the fact that next to yourself I am more interested than
anyone
in the change which will bring so much happiness to my dear
friend.
'Believe me always,
'Yours most sincerely,
'J. Chamberlain.'
At the close of 1884 Mr. Gladstone's colleagues expected that he would resign, and it appears that he had really thought of doing so, provided that a ministry could be formed under Lord Hartington's leadership. Franchise and Redistribution were virtually settled, and there was no legislative proposal before either the Cabinet or the country on which Lord Hartington was in marked disagreement with his colleagues. But they were still 'an Egyptian Government,' and here differences seemed to be irreconcilable.
'The Egyptian policy of the Government had now become thoroughly
unpopular, and those of us who, although we had favoured
intervention as necessary at the time, had deplored alike the
engagements of our predecessors which had made it necessary,
and the
occupation which, unnecessarily in my opinion, followed it,
were as
unpopular as were those like Hartington, and the majority of
the
peers in the Cabinet, who had insisted not only on going, but
on
staying—at least in Cairo. It is curious to reflect how
intervention in the East is judged by subsequent complications
which
do not affect the principle. The intervention of 1860-61 in
Syria
gave considerable popularity to the Government who agreed to
it, and
to Lord Dufferin who conducted it on the spot; and it was as
popular
in France which found the troops, as in England which found the
man.
By that intervention Syria was pacified and war in the East
prevented, and ultimately it was followed by evacuation and
reversion to what diplomatists style in their jargon “an
improved
status quo.”
'It is too often now (1891) forgotten that we actually proposed
in
1884 to France (in connection with a Conference which took
place,
obtaining therefore to some extent, it might be contended,
valuable
consideration for our proposal) that we would, at or before the
expiration of our occupation, propose to the Powers and to the
Porte
a scheme for the neutralization of Egypt on the basis of the
principles applied to Belgium. A document which we printed at
the
beginning of 1885 gave our suggested wording for the
neutralization
treaty, declaring that Egypt should be an independent and
perpetually neutral State under the guarantee of the
contracting
parties; limiting the strength of the Egyptian army, the claim
of
Turkey to military aid from Egypt, and so forth.'
The suggestion was not welcomed by the Powers.
'On New Year's Day I left Antibes for Paris, which I reached on
Friday, the 2nd January, and quitted for London on Saturday,
the
3rd.
'Chamberlain wrote to me that Mr. Gladstone was threatened with
a
return of his illness, that he required rest, that Egypt had
been
for the moment tided over, though it might at any moment break
up
the Government. It had been decided to send a firm but
courteous
despatch to France demanding immediate consideration of our
proposals, failing which we should “take our own course.”
Chamberlain, however, added, “What that course is to be is the
question on which agreement appears impossible. It is 'scuttle
and
bankruptcy' against 'protectorate and guarantee.' Sufficient
unto
the day is the evil thereof.”'
Mr. Gladstone was with Dilke and Chamberlain in opposing protectorate or guarantee in any shape. But there were other questions of Imperial policy upon which the Imperialism of these two Ministers divided them from Mr. Gladstone.
'New Guinea had also been discussed, and Chamberlain was for
demanding explanations from the Germans. Zululand had been
mentioned. Chamberlain supported the annexation of the coast of
Pondoland: Mr. Gladstone, with the support of Trevelyan,
“opposing
any attempt to anticipate Germany.”
'On Sunday, January 4th, Chamberlain wrote again from
Birmingham.
His letter shows that I was anxious for resignation on the
Egyptian
question, and Chamberlain replied that he could not find a
satisfactory boat to leave the ship in, and that he thought
that the
Government had more lives than a cat. Chamberlain added that he
had
to speak on January 5th, and should find it difficult to steer
between Jingoism and peace-at-any-price.'
'He also was engaged in preparing a programme for the future to
be
set forth at Ipswich. This last was the memorable “Unauthorized
Programme.”'
A first instalment of this programme was given by Mr. Chamberlain in a speech at Birmingham, which advocated restriction of game-preserving, provision of land for agricultural labourers, and better housing. The accusations of Communism brought against Mr. Chamberlain began at this point; and they, of course, redoubled after he had proposed on January 10th at Ipswich to give local bodies power for compulsory acquisition of land.
At this juncture Mr. Chamberlain was absent from London, and communicating only by letter with Sir Charles, whom he had not seen since the middle of December, when Sir Charles crossed to Paris, on his way to Toulon; and before the unauthorized programme was launched Lord Hartington contemplated forming a Government which would have given the foremost positions to Dilke and Chamberlain.
'On the morning of January 5th Harcourt had told me that Mr.
Gladstone intended to resign, and that Lord Granville would
follow
Mr. Gladstone, in which case Hartington intended to make him,
Harcourt, Chancellor, to move Lord Derby and Childers, to put
in
Rosebery, [Footnote: As Secretary for the Colonies.] to offer
Chamberlain the Chancellorship of the Exchequer, and me the
Secretaryship of State for Foreign Affairs. But, great as were
the
offices proposed, Chamberlain and I could not have consented to
remain in if Mr. Gladstone had gone out notoriously
dissatisfied. If
he had gone out on grounds of health alone, it would, of
course,
have been another matter.'
In a letter,
'probably of Monday morning, January 5th, Chamberlain said that
Mr.
Gladstone's retirement was possible, and might be necessary;
that
Hartington and Harcourt could bring it about; but that we must
be
most careful not to allow them to say that we had been engaged
in an
intrigue with them against Mr. Gladstone. He thought that we
ought
to tell them frankly that we could enter into no negotiations
with
them, and to put this in a Memorandum to which we could
afterwards
appeal. On the other hand, he was willing to state his views as
to
policy, provided all reference to personal questions was
avoided. As
his Egyptian policy, he stated “immediate bankruptcy,
communication
to the Powers of our fixed intention to leave, declaration that
we
would not allow intervention by other Powers in our place, and
Conference to settle details of neutralization.” As to domestic
policy, he agreed in my suggestion that we should insist upon
an
immediate Civil List Committee, and proposed an inquiry into
labour.
He gave me leave to discuss his letter with Harcourt (“the
latter
has always been a most loyal friend, though he can not be
expected
to agree with us in everything"), and I did so before the
Cabinet of
January 7th.'
By this time Mr. Chamberlain had come to London, and there is no indication that his speech at Birmingham had created friction. But the party which wished to offer resistance to Germany's high-handed policy had been strengthened by a new instance of usurpation.
'Mr. Gladstone was absent from this Cabinet. The first matter
discussed was that of Samoa raised by me. There had been
received on
the night of the 6th from the Governor of New Zealand a
telegram
saying that the Germans had made a treaty giving the whole
authority
of Government to the German Consul. While Muenster had been
telling
Lord Granville that Germany would take no step hostile to
Samoan
independence, the Germans had sent warships there with secret
orders, and had hoisted their flag in various parts of the
islands.
The next subject mentioned was that of Zanzibar, and it was
decided
that we should warn Germany that we would not brook
interference
there. At the same time I had much doubt whether Lord Granville
would act upon the instructions of the Cabinet in this matter,
and
my doubts were justified. The third matter was that of the
Pondo
coast, and also the coast of Zululand. Mr. Gladstone alone
objecting
to a protectorate and being absent, it was decided to have
one.'
'Then came the old question of sending troops to Suakim;
[Footnote:
Colonial troops were offered about this time, and the Diary
contains
the entry, February 20th: “The sending of a Colonial force to
Suakim. Hartington and Derby had snubbed the Colonists, and
were
snubbed by the Cabinet in consequence.”] then that of Egyptian
Finance, on which Harcourt broached his scheme by which the
United
Kingdom was to pay the difference caused by a reduction of the
rate
of interest, to which scheme Chamberlain and I were opposed. We
were
informed that the Queen “most strongly protested against our
binding
ourselves to leave Egypt.”'
Meanwhile the Radicals in the Cabinet considered their concerted action in view of a change of leadership.
'We settled during the Cabinet that Trevelyan, Chamberlain, and
I
should meet at my room at the Local Government Board, directly
the
Cabinet was over, to discuss the terms on which we would join a
Hartington administration; and we did so, finding Egypt and my
proposed inquiry into the Civil List the only real
difficulties. The
Civil List could be got over, as it was certain that the Whigs
would
give in to pressure from us upon this point. But Harcourt had
informed us that our Egyptian policy made the formation of a
Government impossible, as Hartington would not consent to
accept
office on our Egyptian policy.'
It was very difficult to come to an agreement about Egypt. Lord Derby had declared that the only alternatives were guaranteed neutrality or annexation. Dilke and Chamberlain stood for the former, considering their duty done if they prevented occupation by any other European Power, and took steps to establish internal order—which meant completing the organization of an Egyptian army. There was a third policy; for Lord Hartington, who repeatedly in public repudiated the idea of annexation, insisted upon the retention of a single control during a prolonged occupation. In this he had the strongest backing from the Queen.
'Chamberlain at our meeting added a fresh proviso—namely, that
Parnell or some other Irishman should be Chief Secretary. I
afterwards informed Harcourt of Chamberlain's views, adding
that
Chamberlain was willing to avoid all personal questions,
although he
much wished that John Morley should be in the Cabinet,
[Footnote:
Sir Charles had noted his own strong wish to this effect in the
previous year.] that he wholly rejected Harcourt's plan for
Egypt as
being a bribe to buy off the Powers, forced on us by unworthy
fears.
Chamberlain wished, if his own Egyptian policy was not adopted,
to
simply evacuate the country.
'Chamberlain, I was empowered to say, had also mentioned the
English
land question, and was opposed to allowing Lord Salisbury to
come
in,' as this, he said to Sir Charles, 'would surely be a
hopeless
confession of weakness, and give him a chance with the new
electors.
'I argued against Chamberlain's Egyptian policy, not on the
merits,
but on the chances of our getting our own way.
'“I doubt our getting our way as to bankruptcy, and am not sure
that
we ought to put that forward as sole or chief cause for not
joining
Hartington.” To this Chamberlain replied: “True. But how can we
join
another Government without any settled policy about Egypt?
Harcourt's alternative is impossible; then what is there? I
should
refuse to join Hartington unless we can agree as to Egypt
policy,
and if we do agree, there can in that case be no reason for
letting
Salisbury in.”'
Egypt was in Sir Charles's view the main, but not the only, difficulty. The Government policy of 'lying down to Germany' was another. At the same date:
'January 7th, Chamberlain and I had a conference with regard to
Samoa, in which I pointed out that if we quarrelled with France
about Egypt she would have all Europe behind her, whereas in
our
dealings with Germany about Samoa, Zanzibar, and other matters,
Germany would stand alone.' [Footnote: A letter to Lord
Hartington
from his secretary, Mr. Brett, which is quoted by Mr. Bernard
Holland (Life of Duke of Devonshire, vol. ii, pp. 38,
39),
suggests that the Hartington section had difficulty in
reconciling
Sir Charles's attitude on other Imperial matters with his
Egyptian
policy: “It would indeed be a farce, after all the fuss about
the
Cameroons and Angra Pequena, to allow Suakim, which is the port
of
Khartoum, and the Nile to pass into the hands of foreigners.”
The
answer is, first, that Sir Charles would certainly never have
consented to let any port in Egypt or the Soudan pass into the
hands
of any European Power: his proposal was neutralization of Egypt
under international guarantee; and, secondly, that the
questions
were governed by different conditions, which he set out in
conference with Mr. Chamberlain about Samoa.]
January 9th, 'I had decided that if I resigned, or if I refused to join a Hartington administration, I should mention four subjects—Egypt, Samoa, Zanzibar, and (probably) the Civil List inquiry (if I were not completely satisfied). On the same day I was at work on our draft despatch to Sir Edward Malet as to Zanzibar, which had been settled on the 8th after the Cabinet of the 7th, but which did not go off until the 14th. On January 14th I noted in my Diary, “The Zanzibar despatch went. Seven days' delay. I know that two days' delay was caused by the necessity of sending to Osborne and to the Prime Minister, but why seven days?”
'On January 21st the first matter discussed was that of New
Guinea,
in which we found ourselves in difficulties caused by absence
of
jurisdiction over foreigners, and we agreed in consequence to
annexation.'
The situation with Germany was undoubtedly grave, but ought not, Sir Charles maintained, to entail the sacrifice of Zanzibar. On February 24th Count Muenster, the German Ambassador, told Mr. Alfred de Rothschild that he expected to be withdrawn, but that New Guinea was the only serious matter in dispute.
'On Tuesday, February 24th, I breakfasted at Alfred de
Rothschild's
house, to meet the German Ambassador, Count Muenster, at the
latter's
wish. Alfred de Rothschild did not sit down with us, and we
were
tete-a-tete. Muenster was very free in his remarks about
Bismarck.
“No one ever contradicts him.” “He sees none but flatterers.”
“His
life is a period to be got through.”'
Two March entries are apposite here:
'On Wednesday, March 4th, Rosebery wrote to me to ask me to dine
with him to meet “Herbert Bismarck,” who had suddenly arrived,
but I
was engaged to the Speaker's dinner, and had to put off seeing
young
Bismarck till Thursday, the 5th. He had come over to try to
force us
to dismiss Lord Granville and Lord Derby. I noted in my Diary:
[Footnote: Sir Charles's Diaries, to portions of which certain
biographers had access, are at this point quoted by Lord Edmond
Fitzmaurice in his Life of Lord Granville, vol. ii., p.
430. The
passage runs: “Negotiations with Germany on the vexed colonial
questions were meanwhile proceeding, more particularly with
regard
to New Guinea. Sir Julian Pauncefote proposed a plan which it
was
hoped might satisfy the German Chancellor, and Count Herbert
Bismarck reappeared as co-negotiator with Count Muenster in
London.
Lord Rosebery, who had just joined the Cabinet as Lord Privy
Seal,
also took part in the negotiations. 'Herbert Bismarck came over
again,' Sir Charles Dilke noted; 'if at his former visit he had
only
tried to get us to dismiss Lord Derby, on this occasion he
wanted us
to dismiss Lord Granville and Lord Derby.'“] “He puts us in a
difficult position as individuals, for how can we say to this
personally friendly fellow that we do not think Lord
Granville's
speech in the Lords on Friday foolish, or how say that we think
that
the allusion to old Bismarck's dislike of Muenster in a recent
despatch from Malet ought to have been published.”
'On Friday, March 6th, I saw Herbert Bismarck again twice.... I
having expressed anxiety about Zanzibar, he told me that his
father
had directed him to say that he “considered Zanzibar as
independent
as Turkey or Russia.” It is to my mind shameful that, after
this,
Lord Granville should have begun and Lord Salisbury have
rapidly
completed arrangements by which the Zanzibar mainland, the
whole
trade of which was in our hands, was handed over to Germany.'
'On March 7th we discussed Herbert Bismarck's views on the
Cameroons, on German claims in New Guinea (on this head we
settled
with him), and on Pondoland.'
While the difficulties with Germany were being discussed, differences as to Egyptian policy and our relations with France continued.
On January 20th, Egypt once more threatened to break up the Government. France had proposed an international Commission of Inquiry into the financial situation.
'We discussed a French proposal which, as I wrote to the
Chancellor,
had at least one advantage—namely, “that it re-forms the
majority
in the Cabinet by uniting two of the three parties—yours and
mine.”
Mr. Gladstone, Lord Granville, Kimberley, Derby, Harcourt, the
Chancellor, Trevelyan, and Dilke, eight in all, supported
taking the
new French proposals as a basis. Chamberlain was absent ill.
Northbrook, Hartington, Childers, to my astonishment, and
Carlingford were against us. After the Cabinet Hartington wrote
to
Mr. Gladstone to say that he “could not accept the decision,”
and
Northbrook supported him.' Next day, however, 'when we turned
to
Egyptian finance, Trevelyan went over from our side to the
other.
Mr. Gladstone announced that what we had decided on the
previous day
was not to prevent our arguing against the French proposed
inquiry,
and thus Hartington was kept in.'
'On January 23rd I forwarded to Chamberlain a letter from
Sandringham, which showed that the Queen had been alarmed at
the
possibility that my proposed Civil List inquiry might affect
not
only new grants, but also the Civil List arrangements made at
the
beginning of the reign. Chamberlain made a Delphic reply that,
on
the one hand, inquiry would be a farce if it did not include
the
existing Civil List, but that on the other hand there could be
no
intention to make any change in the arrangements with the
Queen.'
'On January 28th, I heard from Sandringham that the Prince of
Wales
was going to Osborne the next day, and would broach to the
Queen his
friendliness to the idea of a new settlement of the Civil List.
Chamberlain was anxious that no difficulty should be made by us
on
the occasion of the marriage of Princess Beatrice. He wrote: “
If
alone, I should wait for something or somebody to turn up.
Before
Prince Edward wants an allowance who knows what may happen? But
I am
perfectly ready to follow your lead or to lead to your
prompting.”'
All arrangements were being made on the assumption that Lord Hartington would become Prime Minister.
'I had been left by Mr. Gladstone in a certain doubt as to
whether I
was to be completely responsible for the Redistribution Bill,
or
whether Hartington was to share the responsibility. I wrote to
Hartington: “Mr. Gladstone sends me everything on
Redistribution,
and expresses no opinion of his own. Northcote and Salisbury
write
to me only, and the whole thing is more and more in my hands.
If I
let things drift, it is clear that I shall practically have
sole
charge of the Bill, for no one else will know anything about
it. I
do not shrink from this at all. It is work I like. But, as you
will
probably be called on to form an Administration immediately
after
the passing of the Bill, don't you think it would look well,
and
that our people and the Press and the country would like it, if
you
were to take charge of the Bill? If so, I had better have two
or
three days' work at it with you.”
'Hartington had asked me to stay with him at Hardwick to talk it
over, but it was only a Saturday to Monday visit from January
10th
to 12th, and there were many people in the house, and our whole
conversation was but very short; and Hartington continued to
show
but little desire to work at the detail, and the Bill could
only be
handled by those who knew its detail.'
Although the Opposition leaders had accepted the compact, it was at this time quite uncertain whether the House of Commons would consent to the Redistribution scheme—affecting as it did the interests of every member. The Fourth Party had not been consulted in the arrangement, and inevitable friction followed.
'On January 27th I had a correspondence with Northcote in
reference
to some mischief which had been made by Randolph Churchill.
Northcote had been told by the Conservative Chief Whip, “Dilke
told
Randolph that the Government would have given more grouping if
we
had pressed for it.” The Conservative party being angry at the
absence of grouping of the boroughs, Northcote had taken up the
point, but he now wrote: “Whatever Churchill said must have
been in
the nature of an inference of his own from what had previously
passed, from which he had probably gathered that the Government
were
ready to concede grouping.” But there was a lady in the case
who had
gossiped about what Northcote had said to her, and he promised
to
write to the offender.'
'On January 13th Mr. Gladstone wrote as to the Redistribution
Bill:
“The difficulty as I see it about communication with Northcote
is
that he seems to have little weight of influence, and to be
afraid
or unwilling to assume any responsibility. I have usually found
him
reasonable in his own views, but obliged to reserve his
judgment
until after consulting his friends, which consultations I have
found
always to end badly. On the other hand, it is, of course,
necessary
to pay him due respect. What may prove to be best under these
circumstances is—(1) not to be bound always to consult HIM,
(2) to
consult him freely on the easier and smaller matters, but (3)
in a
stiff question, such as the numbers of the House may prove to
be, to
get at Salisbury if possible, under whose wing Northcote will,
I
think, mostly be content to walk, (4) Or, if Salisbury cannot
be got
alone, then Northcote and Salisbury would be far preferable to
Northcote alone.”'
All these difficulties had to be met by Sir Charles. When the Bill actually came before the House, 'Mr. Gladstone instructed James to assist me in the conduct of it. But practically I had it to myself.' Lord Hartington had rendered invaluable service in the preliminary negotiations. But for such laborious work of detail as was needed to carry through this Bill, neither temperament nor surroundings had fitted him. His Hardwick home is thus described by Sir Charles in a letter which he wrote to Mrs. Pattison:
'I am writing in my bedroom, which is—bed and all—that of Mary
Queen of Scots, who was the prisoner of Bess of Hardwick. It is
a
wonderful house, indeed—enormous, and yet completely covered
with
the tapestry and the pictures of the time.... The casement
windows
have never been touched since Queen Elizabeth was here, and are
enormous. (There is a local proverb which speaks of the hall as
“all
window and no wall.”) The result is that, in spite of heavy
hanging
curtains, the candles are blown out if you go near the
windows....
The portrait of the first Cavendish—who was usher of Cardinal
Wolsey, and who married Bess of Hardwick, the richest lady of
the
day—is exactly like Hartington, but a vulgar Hartington—fat
and
greasy—a Hartington who might have kept a public-house.'
Mr. Chamberlain wrote to Sir Charles at Hardwick concerning his host:
'The true Whig tradition is to keep abreast of the movement
which
they would willingly restrain, and do nothing to quicken, but
it is
difficult for a man of Hartington's temperament to make the
sacrifice of pride which these tactics require.'
Mr. Chamberlain's Ipswich speech had made its mark, and Sir Charles notes 'the beginning of the terror caused by the unauthorized programme' in 'a letter which I received from Lord Salisbury, who was at Florence, as to my draft Report of the Housing Commission.'
'Lord Salisbury had greatly changed his views since he had
sketched
out socialistic proposals for me in his own hand. He now
complained
of that which I had said on “the burning questions of
expropriation,
betterment, and land tenure,” and thought that Chamberlain's
evidence had affected the report, and that such views “must now
be
considered in the light of the doctrines as to land he has
recently
laid down.”'
That letter, received on January 30th, must have been written two days earlier, and evidently at that moment there were plans of forming an administration which should exclude the Radicals.
'On January 28th Harcourt told me that he had stopped the Queen
deciding to send for Goschen to form a Whig Ministry if we were
beaten or if Mr. Gladstone resigned by telling her that Goschen
would refuse, or that, if he consented, no one would join him.'
On January 29th, at Birmingham, Mr. Chamberlain made reply to his critics in a speech which added to the Ipswich programme manhood suffrage and payment of members, and which further declared that the sanctity of public property far exceeded that of private property. If land, for instance, had been 'lost or wasted or stolen,' some equivalent for it must be found, and some compensation exacted from the wrongdoers. [Footnote: 'The ransom theory,' afterwards alluded to (see Chapter XLIV., p. 182).]
These utterances from a member of the Cabinet were not likely to pass unchallenged.
'On Monday, February 2nd, Chamberlain telegraphed to me that he
was
coming up on the next day, Tuesday, the 3rd, on purpose to see
me on
an important matter; and on the morning of the 3rd I received
in a
secret box the letters about which he was coming. There was one
from
Mr. Gladstone complaining of the unauthorized programme, and a
draft
proposed reply, and Chamberlain added: “Take them (Mr.
Gladstone's
letters and enclosures from the Whigs) in connection with the
Times articles. There is to be a dead set evidently....
There are
three possibilities. (1) Mr. Gladstone may wish me to resign.
(2) A
vote of censure may be proposed in the House of Commons and
carried.
(3) Mr. Gladstone may defend me, and in so doing may to all
intents
and purposes censure me in such a way as to entail my
resignation.
The first would not, I think, do me any harm. The second would
do me
good. The third would not be pleasant. My object in proposed
reply
is to make Mr. G. speak more plainly, and to let me know where
I
stand. I have spoken in the first person because (until I see
you) I
have no right to assume that you will accept a joint
responsibility.
But I think you will, and then if we go out or are forced out
there
will be a devil of a row. I have been speaking to Schnadhorst
to-day
on the possibility. He says (you must take the opinion for what
it
is worth) that it would strengthen us in the country.... I
assume
Trevelyan would go with Mr. G.... I shall want to know what you
think of it all, and whether you have any alterations to
propose in
the reply.”
'I noted: “I, of course, make common cause. The Whigs want to
force
him into a row with Mr. G., who, they think, will break him in
place
of his breaking Hartington after Mr. G. is gone.” I admitted to
Chamberlain when we met on February 3rd that there was, as he
said,
a dead set at him, and that the Pall Mall for a wonder
was backing
it up. On his first point I was sure that Mr. Gladstone did not
wish
for his resignation, and knew that I should go too. On the
second, I
doubted any member being ready to bell the cat; and on the
third
point I was sure that Mr. Gladstone's defence of Chamberlain
would
not be such as to entail his resignation.'
Sir Charles thought, and told Chamberlain, that the object of the Whigs was to force them 'to war with Mr. G. who is strong, and not with Hartington,' against whom the Radicals would hold winning cards. 'We therefore play into their hands by going NOW.' Meanwhile, he took up a fighting attitude towards the rest of the world.
'I had written to Mr. Gladstone very strongly backing up
Chamberlain's right to express his individual opinion upon the
questions of the future, and pointing out his patience in not
repudiating some of Hartington's remarks, and saying that I
could
not let him go out alone.'
'On February 4th I heard from Chamberlain ... thanking me for
getting Carrington, who represented my Department in the Lords,
to
make a pro-Chamberlain speech.'
This was the more valuable because the whole Press was against the “unauthorized programme.” At the same time, Sir Charles did not fail to point out that their position was an unsound one, writing first:
'Our words as to the future are too wide. They would cover my
preaching a Republic for two years hence, or your preaching the
nationalization of land without compensation for the next
Parliament.'
He urged also that the precedent which Mr. Chamberlain sought to establish was two-edged.
February 5th, 'At night I gave Chamberlain a hint that some day others might turn against him that freedom of speech which he claimed as against Hartington; and he prepared a document which, under the form of standing out for full right of free speech, really yielded the whole point. He covered his retreat with great skill, and the document as corrected by me would be valuable if it could be found. I have no copy, but have memoranda which passed between us, in one of which I begged him to keep the draft with my corrections as representing our joint view, inasmuch as it might be important in the future. Chamberlain notes, in a minute which I have, his acceptance of the general doctrine, with a declaration that the present was an exceptional period; that there was a new departure under the franchise reform, that it was essential to give a general direction to the discussion, that his actual proposals were moderate, and such as only to point to, firstly, a revision of taxation which Mr. Gladstone himself had advocated, details being open, but the principle being to secure equality of sacrifice; secondly, the extension of power of local authorities on lines already conceded in Ireland.'
The two allies were fighting a hard fight at a critical moment. At such times even the closest friends naturally seek to reassure each other, and to a letter from Sir Charles Mr. Chamberlain made this reply, January 11th:
'The malice and ingenuity of men is so great that I should be
afraid
they would some day break our friendship if it had not
victoriously
stood the strain of public life for so many years. I will swear
that
I will never do anything knowingly to imperil it, and I hope
that we
are both agreed that if by any chance either of us should think
that
he has the slightest cause of complaint he will not keep it to
himself for a day, but will have a frank explanation. In this
case I
shall feel safe, for I am certain that any mistake would be
immediately repaired by whoever might be in fault.'
'On the morning of Thursday, February 5th, 1885, at 3 a.m.,
Brett
went to Lord Granville with the news of the fall of Khartoum.
He
used to tell how he had been wholly unable to find the old
gentleman, and how the servants had ultimately asserted that
their
master was at Walmer—which he was not. At the same hour the
news
was sold by a War Office messenger to one of the News Agencies.
The
resident clerk at the War Office had written to Thompson, of
the War
Office, in an unsealed envelope, instead of putting the
despatch
into a box. It did not matter much on this occasion, but it
might
matter in a great European war. A Cabinet was immediately
summoned
for the next day. [Footnote: The following correspondence
between
Mr. Brett (now Viscount Eslier) and Sir Charles throws light on
the
summoning of the Cabinet:
War Office,
Thursday morning, 3 a.m.
Here is some bad news.
No Ministers in town, except you and Chamberlain!
Have tried Lord G. and Lord Northbrook. No results!
So things must take their chance. There ought to have been a
Cabinet
to-morrow; but suppose it is not possible.
R.B.
Please return enclosed. Will send you a copy later. Have you any
suggestion to make?
You will see that W. proposes to keep this secret. Not possible
for
long in this Office.
Sir Charles Dilke to Mr. Brett.
Telegraph to Mr. G. and Hartington to come up to-day, and
call a
Cabinet for to-morrow at 11 a.m. Make Hamilton telegraph to all
Ministers at once. I'm prepared to take it on myself if you
like,
but you can send this to Chamberlain if he agrees.
I agree certainly.—J. C.
Local Government Board,
February 5th, 1885.
It is absurd not to make them come up to-day in face of
Wolseley's
“It is most essential that I shall have the earliest
possible
decision.“] Only three subjects were discussed: Khartoum,
secrecy,
and the question of the Italians as against the Turks in the
Red
Sea.'
On February 7th, 'The next matter was Wolseley, who had confused us by greatly varying his statements.... Next came a proposal that Gordon should be bought from the Mahdi.'
'On February 9th Mr. Gladstone mentioned his intention to bring
in
Rosebery and Lefevre as members of the Cabinet. It was decided
that
the Italians should be allowed to go to Kassala—a decision
which
was afterwards reversed. The French views on Egyptian finance
were
named, the despatch of Indian troops to Suakim again discussed.
Wolseley having asked that General Greaves should be sent to
Suakim,
Childers said that the Queen and Duke of Cambridge had stopped
that
officer's promotion because he “belonged to the Ashantee gang"
(Wolseley's friends), and that the Duke had now complained that
he
did not know him. Chamberlain proposed that we should invite
the
Canadian Government to send a force to Suakim; and, finally,
Childers was allowed to mention finance, which had been the
object
for which the Cabinet was called.
'On February 10th I wrote to Chamberlain that Rosebery and
Lefevre
would help the Cabinet with the public, but would weaken us in
the
Cabinet.
'On February 11th there was another Cabinet, five members being
absent—namely, the Chancellor, Carlingford, Spencer,
Chamberlain,
and Trevelyan—owing to the suddenness of the call. It was on
the
Suakim command, Mr. Gladstone being very obstinate for Greaves,
as
against Graham with Greaves for Chief of Staff—a compromise. I
supported Hartington—I do not know why—and we beat Mr.
Gladstone
by 5 to 4. Both officers were inferior men, and Graham did but
badly. Probably Greaves would have done no better....
'Mr. Gladstone complained that he and Hartington had received at
Carnforth on the 5th a disagreeable telegram en clair
from the
Queen, and Mr. Gladstone was very anxious to know whether the
Tories
had found it out, asking anxiously, “What are the
station-master's
politics?”
'February 13th ... I was with Harcourt when Rosebery came to be
sworn in, so I took the opportunity of making Rosebery help us
to
make Lord Derby uncomfortable for proposing to refuse the
troops
offered by the colony of New South Wales.
'We began to discuss our Soudan policy with some anxiety.
'Courtney and Morley had insisted in private letters that we
should
only rescue, and not attack the rebels, and the Times
agreed with
them—unless we intended to stay in the country and establish a
Government. Wolseley's policy would be represented as one of
“smash
and retire,” and it was for this reason that Chamberlain
pressed
negotiations with the Mahdi, as he thought we should be
stronger if
we could show that the Mahdi had rejected a fair offer. It was
on
February 13th that Hartington most strongly pressed his
proposal for
the Suakim railroad, and invited me to be a member of a Cabinet
Committee to consider the proposal.'
'On Monday, February 16th, the first matter discussed was the
Russian answer as regards Egyptian finance. The Soudan was put
off
till the next day, Chamberlain making a strong speech first
upon our
policy. Hartington asked for five million, to include the cost
of
his Suakim-Berber railway, and for leave to call out reserves.
'On February 19th I had an interview with Mr. Gladstone, and
found
him anxious to be turned out on the vote of censure. Indeed, he
was
longing for it, in the firm belief that, if turned out, he
would
come back after the dissolution in November, while, if not
turned
out, he would be more likely to be beaten.
'On February 20th the subjects discussed were Egypt (Finance and
Suez Canal) and the sending a colonial force to Suakim.
Chamberlain
had developed to Childers at the same meeting a proposal that
Hartington should form a Ministry to carry on the Soudan War,
with
the loyal support of those of us who went out with Mr.
Gladstone.
'On February 25th, Goschen having asked for assurances as to the
Berber railway, Chamberlain wrote to me saying that if
Hartington
gave them, it might be a sufficient cause for our resignation,
as we
were not prepared to commit the country to establishing settled
government in any part of the Soudan. Chamberlain proposed that
we
should resign before the division, and that the Government
being
beaten, there should then be brought about the establishment of
what
he called the combination or patriotic Government, which meant
a
Hartington administration. I, on the whole, preferred to go on
as we
were, so I stopped a box of Hartington's which was going round
the
Cabinet, and proposed an alteration of form which prevented
Chamberlain going out on these assurances.
'During the debate I went away to dine, and, not having heard
the
middle of Harcourt's speech, asked Chamberlain whether Harcourt
had
tried to answer any of Goschen's questions, to which
Chamberlain
answered, “Not one. He asked questions in turn,” which is a
good
description of Harcourt's style. I then wrote on a slip of
paper,
“Forster is taking notes”; and Chamberlain replied, “Forster—
against slavery, against Zebehr, [Footnote: Zebehr was arrested
in
Cairo on the ground of treasonable correspondence with the
Mahdi,
and interned at Gibraltar, but later was allowed to return to
Cairo.
He died in January, 1903.] and of course generally in favour of
a
crusade,” a note which is also characteristic—of both these
men.
'At four o'clock in the morning of February 28th, when we got
our
majority of 14, after the first division, Mr. Gladstone, who
wanted
to go out, said to Childers and myself, “That will do.” This
was
indeed a Delphic utterance.'
Sir Charles himself spoke, at Mr. Gladstone's request, at great length in the third day's debate on February 26th, but it was 'only a debating speech.'
'After we had had a sleep, we met in Cabinet on Saturday,
February
28th. Lord Granville and Childers now anxious to go. Harcourt,
who
had at night been against going, was now anxious to go. This
was a
curious and interesting Cabinet. Lord Granville and Lord Derby,
who
were at loggerheads both with Bismarck and with their
colleagues,
were strong that we should resign, and they got some support
from
Chamberlain, Northbrook, Childers, and Hartington. Lefevre,
[Footnote: Lord Eversley, then Mr. Shaw Lefevre, had joined the
Cabinet after the news from Khartoum. Lord Rosebery had
accepted the
Privy Seal. Lord Eversley says that on February 28th opinions
were
evenly divided, but that one member refused to express an
opinion on
the ground of his recent admission. See, too, Life of
Granville,
vol. ii., pp. 421-422.] who had only just come in, and
Trevelyan
were strong for staying in, as was Carlingford; but the other
members of the Cabinet either wobbled backwards and forwards,
or did
not care. At last it was decided by the casting vote of Mr.
Gladstone, if one may use the phrase when there was no actual
voting, that we should try to go on at present so as to carry
the
Seats Bill ourselves.
'We then turned to the Berber railway, and decided that it
should be
a temporary or contractor's line made only so far as might be
necessary for purely military reasons. We then decided that
Wolseley
should not be allowed to make himself Governor-General of the
Soudan.
'After the Cabinet Chamberlain and I continued our discussion as
to
his strong wish to resign. I told him that I wanted to finish
the
Seats Bill, that I thought Lord Salisbury might refuse or make
conditions with regard to coming in, that Mr. Gladstone would
not
lead in opposition, and that we should seem to be driving him
into
complete retirement, and I asked whether we were justified in
running away.'
Meantime the financial business of the year had to go on, and part of it was a demand for increased naval expenditure, to which, as has been seen already, Mr. Gladstone was opposed.
'The Navy Estimates were first discussed, and then the Army, and
a
sum asked for for the fortification of coaling-stations was
refused,
and also a sum asked for for defending the home merchant ports.
We
all of us were guilty of unwise haste on this occasion, for the
demand was right; but the chief blame must fall rather on
Childers,
Hartington, and the others who had been at the War Office than
upon
those who sinned in ignorance.'
This decision against naval expenditure was a cause of embarrassment to the Government in the country, for a strong 'big navy' campaign followed. The real question at issue in the Cabinet became that of taxation. On March 2nd, and again in April, Sir Charles 'warned Mr. Gladstone against Childers's proposed Budget'—the rock on which they finally made shipwreck. 'Mr. Gladstone replied: “The subject of your note has weighed heavily on my mind, and I shall endeavour to be prepared for our meeting.” I now sent him a memorandum after consultation with Chamberlain.'
What Sir Charles wrote in 1885 is nowadays matter of common argument; it was novel then in the mouth of a practical politician:
'I stated at length that, as head of the Poor Law department, I
ought to have knowledge of the pressure of taxation upon the
incomes
of the poor. As Chairman of the Royal Commission on the Housing
of
the Working Classes, I had had to hear a great deal of evidence
upon
the subject of the income of the working classes, and as
Chairman of
the recent Conference on Industrial Remuneration had had
special
opportunities of further examining the question. It was my
opinion
that the position of the agricultural labourers had declined,
and
that the Whig or Conservative minority on my Commission,
represented
by Mr. Goschen and Lord Brownlow, admitted this contention of
mine
as regarded the south of England. The labourers of the south
were
unable to procure milk, and relied largely on beer as an
article of
food. Their wages had but slightly increased in the twenty
years
since 1865, and had decreased considerably since 1879. Food had
slightly risen in price, clothes were nominally cheaper, but
the
same amount of wear for the money was not obtainable, and house
rent
(where house rent was paid by the labourers) had greatly risen.
An
enormous proportion of the income of the rich escaped taxation:
fifty millions a year of their foreign income at the least. The
uncertainty of employment placed the labourer even lower as a
partaker in the income of the country than the statisticians
placed
him. The calculations of employers, upon which the estimates of
statisticians were based, were founded upon the higher earnings
of
the best workers; and when the matter was examined, it was
found
that variation of wages, loss of time, and failure of work,
much
lowered the average earnings. The taxation of the working
classes
rose to a higher percentage than that of the upper and middle
classes. Mr. Dudley Baxter, who was a Conservative, had
admitted
this, and had advocated a reduction in the tobacco duty and the
malt
tax. Since that time the tobacco duty had been raised, and the
duties pressing upon beer had been rather raised than lowered.'
Sir Charles's insistence upon this matter is all the more notable because foreign complications were rapidly accumulating, and they were of a gravity which might well have seemed to dwarf all questions of the incidence of taxation.
There were not only the difficulties with Germany. There was also the Soudan, where a large body of British troops was engaged, in a country the perils of which England had now to realize.
'On March 7th there was a Cabinet as to the Suakim-Berber
railway.
Northbrook and I, soon joined by Harcourt and Chamberlain, were
in
favour of stopping our impossible campaign. I argued that when
we
decided to destroy the power of the Mahdi, it was on Wolseley's
telling us that he hoped possibly to take Khartoum at once. For
some
weeks after that he had intended to take Berber. Then he had
told us
that he at least could occupy Abu Hamed. Now he was in full
retreat,
and both his lines of supply—namely, that up the Nile and that
from
Suakim—seemed equally difficult. The Chancellor wrote on a
slip of
paper for me: “We seem to be fighting three enemies at once.
(1) The
Mahdi; (2) certain of our people here; (3) Wolseley.” Nothing
was
settled, and we passed on to Egyptian finance.'
March 11th, 'In the evening a despatch was circulated in which Wolseley said: “Please tell Lord Granville that I cannot wait any longer, and I must issue proclamation, and will do so on my own authority if I do not receive answer to this by the 14th. I hope I may be allowed to issue it as Governor-General.”
'I at once wrote, “I understood that we had decided that
he was
not to be Governor-General, and that the proclamation should
not be
issued in the terms proposed”; on which Lord Granville wrote,
“Yes.
Cabinet to-morrow.—G.”
'On Thursday, March 12th, the first matter discussed was that of
the
arrest of Zebehr. Then came Wolseley's proclamation, which was
vetoed. We decided that he should not be allowed to make
himself
Governor-General of the Soudan.'
It now seemed more than likely that the British Government would have work on its hands which would render the employment of an army in the Soudan very undesirable; for more serious than the Mahdi's movements on the Nile, more serious than the operations of German Admirals in the Pacific, was the menace of a Russian advance upon Afghanistan.
Arrangements had been made for the demarcation of the Afghan frontier which Sir Charles had persistently urged. A British Commissioner had been appointed in July, 1884, but at the end of the following November Russia was still parleying on questions of detail. These, however, seemed to have been at length resolved; and in January, 1885, the British Commissioner was waiting in the neighbourhood of Herat for the Russian Commissioners to join in the work of fixing the boundaries. But the Russians did not appear; they were, says Sir Charles, 'intriguing at Penjdeh, and preparing for the blow which later on they struck against the Afghans.' The Amir evidently felt this, for he renewed the proposal that he should pay a state visit to the Viceroy, and on January 23rd Dilke wrote to Grant Duff that this had been accepted.
February 4th, 'On this day I received a letter from Sir Robert Sandeman at Quetta, in which he thanked me for the assistance that I had given him in the retention of Sibi, Pishin, and the Khojak. “It was greatly due to your support of my representations on the subject that our influence on this frontier is at present all-powerful.”'
On February 5th, a few hours after the fall of Khartoum was published,
'there was a meeting of Ministers as to Central Asia. We decided
on
a reply to Russia drawn up by myself and Kimberley, Lord
Granville
and Northbrook somewhat dissenting, and Fitzmaurice and Philip
Currie taking no part.
'On February 18th we had a meeting of the Central Asia Committee
at
the Foreign Office with regard to the Russian advance in the
direction of Penjdeh, Lord Granville, Hartington, Northbrook,
Kimberley, myself, Fitzmaurice, and Currie. We ordered Sir
Peter
Lumsden' (Chief of the Boundary Commission), 'in the event of a
Russian advance on Herat, to throw himself and escort into that
city, and to aid the Afghan defence.'
On March 12th, after deciding to limit Lord Wolseley's schemes in the Soudan, 'we took a decision that war preparations against Russia should be made in India.'
'On the 20th we decided that if the Russians continued to
advance,
20,000 troops should be concentrated at Quetta. We next gave
instructions to Lord Dufferin with regard to what he was to say
to
the Amir of Afghanistan at the interview which was about to
take
place between them, and authorized him to renew our guarantee.
There
was either a regular or irregular Cabinet on March 24th. We
decided
that if the Russians advanced upon Herat, the advance should be
treated as a casus belli, and orders to this effect were
sent to
Dufferin. At the meeting on April 2nd the Viceroy, Lord
Dufferin,
assured the Amir in the presence of his Prime Minister, of Mr.
Durand, and of Captain Talbot, “that a Russian advance on Herat
should be met by war all over the world.”'
'On April 8th, in public durbar, the Amir, without contradiction
from Lord Dufferin, said: “The British Government has declared
it
will assist me in repelling any foreign enemy.”'
Sir Charles was now discussing by letter with Sir Frederick Roberts the proposals which were preferred by the Defence Committee in India for the defence of the North-West Frontier, with special emphasis on the further question whether there was any point at which England could strike at Russia. [Footnote: See Appendix following on this chapter, pp. 122, 123.]
Early in April sittings of the Housing Commission in Scotland occasioned Dilke's absence from a Cabinet at which important phases of the Central Asian question were discussed.
April 4th, 'Chamberlain wrote to me an account of all that passed, pointing out that the Russian answer bade us “give up everything, and they offer us absolutely nothing by way of concession in return. This attitude really leaves us no alternative. I am very uncomfortable about it, because the more I study the matter the more I think that the Russians are right both in form and in substance—i.e., they have the pretexts on their side, and they also have a strong argument in favour of their line, both on the matter of territorial right, and also on the ground that this line is the only one which insures any chance of permanent peace. But we cannot have the pill forced down our throats by Russia without inquiry, or discussion on equal terms.... Harcourt declares that we have 'closed the door of Peace and opened the door of War.' The only difference between us is that he is inclined to accept the alternative of the Russian zone which has been already refused, and as to which the present Note says in effect that, though they are ready to go back to this zone, yet it will be of no use, as they are determined in the end to stick to their line.”'
'On Thursday, April 9th, there was a Cabinet, which I also
missed,
and which considered the conflict at Penjdeh.' [Footnote: On
March
20th, General Komarof with a Russian force had attacked and
routed
an Afghan army in the valley of Penjdeh.]
Every day now had its Cabinet. On April 11th, 13th, and 14th evacuation of the Soudan was discussed, but Lord Hartington, by a threat of resignation, secured repeated postponements.
'This question was mixed up by some members of the Cabinet with
that
of Afghanistan, inasmuch as they said that we could not fight
Russia
in Afghanistan, and go on in the Soudan as well; upon which Mr.
Gladstone said of the Soudan, “I am not prepared to go on upon
any
terms, Russia or no Russia.”
A new trouble was added when the Egyptian Government suppressed the Bosphore Egyptien, a local paper published in French, and closed the printing office. Against this the French protested, and in the course of the quarrel actually broke off diplomatic relations with the Egyptian Government, which, considering the relations between that Ministry and the protecting force of Great Britain, pushed unfriendliness very far. Ultimately the Bosphore was allowed to appear and to print what it chose, until it died a natural death.
'On Monday, April 13th, came a proposal from the Russian
Ambassador,
made through Lefevre and Brett, but which was really from
Stead;
Brett meaning Stead. Curiously enough, it was a proposal of
Chamberlain's, of which he had previously told us, which had
come
back to him in this way. Chamberlain consulted me as to whether
he
should tell Mr. Gladstone that it was his, and I told him that
I
thought he had better not, as I thought it was more likely to
be
successful as coming from the Russian Ambassador and Stead than
as
coming from him. It virtually amounted to the plan of
Arbitration
which was ultimately adopted, although as a fact the
Arbitration
never took place.'
'On Wednesday, 15th, there was an informal Cabinet, at which I
was
not present, because the Seats Bill was in Committee in the
House at
the same time. A form of words with regard to the Soudan was
agreed
upon which united Hartington with the others.'
'On Thursday, the 16th, Mr. Gladstone misinformed the House of
Commons—the inevitable result from time to time of his habit
of
answering without notice questions upon dangerous subjects. A
meeting had taken place between Lord Granville, Kimberley, and
Philip Currie on our side, and Staal, the Russian Ambassador,
and
Lessar, the Russian expert, at which Lord Granville showed that
we
meant to let Penjdeh go. Lessar paid a newspaper for its
support by
telling them. Mr. Gladstone was asked, and replied that he knew
nothing about the matter, while he suggested that Penjdeh was
not to
be given up.'
'On the 18th the Queen agreed to retirement from the Soudan,
with
reservation of future liberty of action.' Whatever happened
about
Penjdeh, it was certain that resistance would be offered to
Russia.
'On this day, Monday, April 20th, there was a Cabinet, at which
it
was decided to ask for eleven millions in the vote of credit.
We
then discussed Lumsden's despatch of explanation as to the
Penjdeh
incident, which we decided should be published. The vote of
credit
was really partly for Russia and partly for the Soudan, and a
question arose whether it should be proposed as one or as two,
and
we decided for one. After which we went back again to the
Budget,
and the minority proposed a penny increase on the income tax as
against the increase on beer, after which the Budget was
adjourned
to April 30th, it being decided then that the vote of credit
should
be taken first.'
'On April 20th I received from the Communalist General Cluseret
a
long letter in which he offered, on the ground of his profound
sympathy, his services to England against Russia in the event
of
war—a document which would have done him little good had it
seen
the light when he afterwards stood successfully for my
electoral
division in the Var, at a time when French sympathy for Russia
was
predominant.
'On Tuesday, April 21st, after the Cabinet, I had told Mr.
Gladstone
that I could not agree to the increase of the taxation on beer,
and
Mr. Gladstone wrote to me twice on that day about the matter. I
was
not very sure of Harcourt standing by us, and knew that the
pressure
was great, inasmuch as, in addition to the two letters from Mr.
Gladstone, I received one from Edward Hamilton, also dated the
21st,
in which he made the strongest appeal to me on personal grounds
not
to worry Mr. Gladstone by resignations. He said that Mr.
Gladstone
was overburdened, and that it would take very little to break
him
down. Edward Hamilton wrote: “It is a peculiarity of his ...
that,
while he can stand the strain of a grave political crisis such
as a
question involving peace or war, he succumbs to the strain of a
personal question.... Mr. Gladstone, I know, feels that any
secession, especially of one who has a reputation not confined
to
this country, would necessarily weaken greatly the Government,
and
from a national point of view this is of all times a moment
when
there ought to be a strong Government which can confront Europe
and
face the varied difficulties. No one would more gladly escape
from
office than Mr. G. himself; but the more attractive is the
prospect
of freedom, the less does he dare allow himself to contemplate
it.”'
Mr. Gladstone wrote saying that such a secession at such a time would be serious for the Government, but also, he thought, serious for the seceder, and Sir Charles replied:
Local Government Board,
Whitehall,
April 21st, 1885.
'I should always let the consideration of what was due to my
friends
weigh with me as much as any man, I feel sure, and I am also
certain
that considerations of personal loyalty to yourself are as
strong
with me now as they are with any member of the Cabinet. I
should
never let the other class of considerations—i.e., those
personal
to myself—weigh with me at all. Because I am fond of work I am
supposed to be ambitious; but I fancy few politicians are less
so,
and I do not mind unpopularity, which, after all, generally
rights
itself in the course of years. I knew that this matter would be
a
very serious one before I went into it, and I should not have
said
what I did had I not felt forced to do so.
'If others go with me, the extent of our unpopularity and
consequent
loss of future usefulness will depend on our own conduct, and
if we
do our duty by firmly supporting the Government through its
foreign
and general difficulties, I do not think that even the party
will be
ungenerous to us.'
But Sir Charles finally yielded, and drove a bargain.
'On April 24th I had decided at Chamberlain's strong wish to
yield
to Childers as to the beer duty; Childers promising in return
to
take the Princess Beatrice Committee of Inquiry demand upon
himself.
'May 9th, the Queen now wished for immediate inquiry—that is,
in
other words, preferred the Parliament she knew to the new
Parliament. The Government proposed “next year.” It was agreed
that
the Government were to guide the Committee whenever it might
sit,
and that the Chancellor of the Exchequer should be in the
Chair.
'Mr. Gladstone wrote me a letter to ease off my surrender on
beer
duties, by pointing out the importance of the proposals which
were
being made to put realty in the same position as personalty as
to
Death Duties. “This must in all likelihood lead to a very
serious
struggle with the Tories, for it strikes at the very heart of
class-preference, which is the central point of what I call the
lower and what is now the prevalent Toryism.”'
In the great debate of April 27th, in which Mr. Gladstone proposed a vote of credit for eleven millions, of which six and a half were for war preparation in view of the collision between the Afghans and Russians at Penjdeh,
'Mr. Gladstone made perhaps the most remarkable speech that even
he
ever delivered, and I have his notes for it with a map I drew
for
him before he spoke, to show him the position of the various
places.
[Footnote: On this speech see the Life of Gladstone,
vol. iii., p.
184; Life of Granville, vol. ii., p. 440.] At this time
I wrote to
Hartington to suggest that if we were forced into war with
Russia we
should attack the Russians at Vladivostock, and the
Intelligence
Department wrote a memorandum upon the subject. I also sent
round a
paper pointing out that we should fight at the greatest
advantage
from a Pacific base, that the help of China would be of moment,
and
that Chinese troops drilled and officered by Englishmen would
be
irresistible; and Northbrook strongly backed me up. Lumsden was
sending us most violent telegrams, and while I was preparing
for war
I was also asking for the recall of Lumsden in favour of
Colonel
Stewart. Lord Granville wrote: “Lumsden was a bad appointment,
and I
for a moment wished to recall him. But it would be condemned
here as
an immense knock-under.” [Footnote: See the Life of
Granville,
vol. ii., pp. 441, 442.] I also suggested that the engineers
for
whom the Amir had asked should be carefully picked, and should
have
a private Indian allowance for keeping us informed of what
passed at
Kabul, and Lord Granville conveyed the suggestion by telegraph
to
Lord Dufferin. (This was afterwards done.)'
Russia unexpectedly withdrew.
'On May 2nd there was a sudden Cabinet on the Russian acceptance
of
arbitration, Harcourt, Chamberlain, and Carlingford being
absent.
Kimberley, the Chancellor, Northbrook, Derby, and I were for
immediate acceptance of the offer; Hartington against; Lord
Granville for amiably getting out of it; Trevelyan and Lefevre
silent; Rosebery late. Mr. Gladstone at first sided with Lord
Granville, then came half way to us, and then proposed that we
should wait a bit till Condie Stephen reached us. I replied by
showing that Condie Stephen was a Jingo, the friend of Drummond
Wolff and of Bowles of Vanity Fair, and would make
things worse.
Then Mr. Gladstone came completely to our side. Childers drew
up in
Cabinet the form for the declaration as to the Select Committee
on
the Civil List, and I agreed to it. I wrote what had passed to
Chamberlain, who was at Birmingham, and he replied on the next
day
that he trusted that the information about Russia would be
immediately communicated to the House, and went on: “But, then,
what
becomes of the vote of credit and the Budget? It seems cheeky
to ask
for 6 1/2 millions of Preparations when the matter is
practically
settled.”
'On May 7th the Herat boundary was discussed and a line settled,
and
it was decided that either the German Emperor or the King of
Denmark
should be named as the Arbitrator about Penjdeh.' Later, 'There
was
a meeting of the Commons Ministers to discuss the situation
created
by the refusal by Russia of the German Emperor as Arbitrator,
the
Queen having previously refused the King of Denmark. The Queen
had
ultimately to yield. But, as I have said, the arbitration,
although
agreed on, never took place at all.'
The demarcation of frontier for which Sir Charles had so long contended was carried through without any marked incident, largely owing to the skill of Sir J. West Ridgeway, who had succeeded Sir Peter Lumsden.
APPENDIX
The Memoir gives the following account of the proposals made for defence of the North-West Frontier in India in the spring of 1885, and some observations arising from them:
'The general idea was to hold the northern route by an
entrenched
position, and, as regards the southern or flank road, to
fortify the
mountains before Quetta. Roads and railways were to be made for
concentration in the direction of Kandahar, and Sir Frederick
Roberts afterwards very wisely noted, “It is impossible to
threaten
Russia's base, but we should do all in our power to keep it as
far
away as possible.” Unfortunately, Sir Frederick Roberts
afterwards
forgot this, and suggested the possibility of advance upon
Herat
with the view to attack Russia at her Sarakhs base. The
suggestions
made in 1885 with regard to Kashmir and the Gromul Pass were
acted
upon in 1890. Sir Donald Stewart, however, went on to recommend
a
railway extension from Peshawur towards Kabul, and Sir
Frederick
Roberts, with greater judgment, on succeeding him, vetoed this
scheme. Lord Kitchener revived it, but was not allowed to
complete
his work. Sir Donald Stewart's committee recommended the tunnel
at
the Khojak, which was carried out. Roberts reported against it,
and
he was right.
'On the whole, when Sir Frederick Roberts sent me his view on
the
defence proposals, I was struck with the contrast between the
completeness of the manner in which a defence scheme for India
has
been considered, and the incompleteness, to say the least of
it, of
all strategic plans at home. Sir Charles Macgregor put on
record at
the same time his view that a mere offensive on the North-West
Frontier of India would be folly, if not madness, and that it
would
be necessary also to undertake offensive operations against
Russia.
Quite so, according to all rules of war, and if ultimate defeat
is
to be avoided. Unfortunately, however, it is not easy to attack
Russia, and the proposals made by Sir Charles Macgregor would
not
bear investigation. Sir Frederick Roberts himself afterwards
tried
his hand at proposals of his own in a Memorandum entitled,
“What are
Russia's vulnerable points?” But I do not know that he was more
successful, and I fear that his first question, “Has Russia any
vulnerable points?” must, if we are looking to permanency, and
not
to merely temporary measures, be answered in the negative,
except as
regards Vladivostock—a case I put. After much correspondence
with
me on this last memorandum, Sir Frederick Roberts quoted me,
without
naming me, as having, to his regret, informed him that English
public opinion would oppose a Turkish alliance, that a Turkish
alliance would not be of much use if we could obtain it, and
that
apart even from these considerations we could not obtain it if
we
wished.'
The importance which Sir Charles attached to Vladivostock, as the vulnerable point at which Russia could be attacked in time of war, explains his regret when Port Hamilton, which threatened Vladivostock, was abandoned. [Footnote: See Life of Lord Granville, vol. ii., p. 440; and Europe and the Far East, by Sir Robert K. Douglas, pp. 190, 248, 249.]
'May, 1885.—The Port Hamilton matter began about this time. We
had
seized it, and, as Northbrook and I agreed, “for naval reasons
we
ought to keep it.” Northbrook also wrote that he was laying a
cable
from Shanghai to Port Hamilton, which he thought a most
important
precaution in time of war; but Port Hamilton was afterwards
given up
because the sailors found it dull—an insufficient reason.'
I.
The year 1885 saw the Seats Bill, with its numerous compromises in detail, passed into law, but not without attendant difficulties.
'On Ash Wednesday, February 18th, I saw Sir Stafford Northcote,
and
settled with him, in view of the meeting of the House on the
next
day, the whole course of affairs for the 19th and 20th, under
guise
of discussing details of the Seats Bill. After we had parted,
Northcote wrote to me that on consideration he had come to the
conclusion that he must give notice of a vote of censure, but
our
amicable communication continued on the next day. “On
consideration,” with Northcote, always meant “After bullying by
Randolph.”'
In the process of settlement there were constant meetings with Lord Salisbury and Sir Stafford Northcote together, with Lord John Manners, with Sir Michael Hicks Beach; while on the Conservative scheme for Irish grouping
'I saw Healy for them, to discover if the thing could be done by
general consent; and, although Healy did not oppose right out,
the
prospect of an agreement on details was far from promising.
Healy
and I took the opportunity to discuss the Parnell-Chamberlain
Irish
National Board scheme, of which I had written to Grant Duff on
January 23rd, “Chamberlain has a grand scheme for an Irish
Board.”'
March 6th.—'Healy having told me that he was sure Lord Salisbury had “rigged” the Irish Boundary Commission, and I having written this to Spencer, I received an indignant denial. “If indignation were justified at anything that Healy says, I should indignantly deny his accusation.”'
'Between March 11th and 13th the Conservatives had given me a
good
deal of trouble by trying, under pressure from their friends,
to
vary the Seats Agreement upon several points.... They then
attacked
the two-member towns in England, which, it may be remembered,
had
been insisted on by Mr. Gladstone against my wish; and
Northcote
wrote: “Lord Salisbury and I never liked that privilegium, and
wished to have single-member constituencies everywhere”; he
tried
hard to get me to reopen the question, knowing doubtless that I
was
with him on the merits. He continued to press the question as
late
as March 15th, when he wrote: “Our men are getting hard to
hold,
and, having twice walked through the lobby almost alone, I have
no
taste for repeating the operation.” Conference with Lord
Salisbury
followed, and the final stages were reached: from Monday, March
23rd, I had the Seats Bill in Committee four days a week.'
The essential fact in these dealings is that emphasized by Mr. Howel Thomas, Secretary to the Boundary Commission:
'No political or other pressure would induce Sir Charles—and
the
strongest pressure was used again and again—even to
contemplate a
departure from the spirit of the compact. When once an
agreement
became possible, he would spare no trouble to modify details.
But
without agreement, however strong the argument for a change,
nothing
was listened to.'
'On May 6th I received from Sir John Lambert, the retired
Permanent
Secretary of the Local Government Board, a most grateful letter
about the Privy Councillorship, which had been announced to him
by
Mr. Gladstone, and which no man ever more greatly deserved as
an
honour, or by his character more greatly honoured.' [Footnote:
John
Lambert's letter to Sir Charles contained these words: 'I have
had
the opportunity of assisting you in a work which has placed you
in
the very foremost rank of statesmen, and I have formed a
friendship
which is one of the most gratifying incidents of my declining
years.']
'On the morning of May 9th I received a letter from Northcote,
congratulating me on the manner in which I had conducted the
Redistribution Bill “through its difficult stages.... Let me
thank
you once more for the great consideration, as well as the
perfect
loyalty, with which you have dealt with the numerous questions,
and
congratulate you on having brought your ship so well into
port.”'
[Footnote: Upon a table in the larger drawing-room at 76,
Sloane
Street there stood always a bronze 'Victory' sent by Sir George
Trevelyan to Sir Charles to celebrate the passing of the
Redistribution Bill, with these words:
'Dear Dilke,—The bronze is a Victory on a globe. The Victory is
obvious. The globe below signifies the manner in which your
conduct
of the Redistribution Bill got the Tory Press under your feet.
I am
pleased to think that, as a work of art, it may pass muster
even
before such an artist as the future Lady Dilke.... It is a copy
of a
Herculaneum bronze.... I cannot help hoping that you will think
it
not unworthy of the event which it is meant to commemorate.']
But 'port' was not finally reached till after the fall of the Ministry in June.
Work on the Housing Commission was also practically completed. Throughout the year the Report had been under discussion.
On February 16th 'I told Chamberlain that the Labourers' Ireland Committee had “advised taking of land under compulsory powers in order to attach it to cottages”—a proposal which was afterwards carried; to which Chamberlain replied: “And your Commission?” and I answered: “We shall, I hope, but Lord Salisbury is jibbing since your speeches" (on the unauthorized programme).
'On March 11th, at the meeting of my Housing Commission, Lord
Salisbury proposed what Goschen at once described as
“Revolution,”
and Broadhurst “Socialism.” He wanted to give public money out
of
taxes to London. It may have been silly, but it was not either
revolutionary or socialistic.'
When it came to the point of acting on the Report, the Tory leader was very far from revolutionary; on June 4th,
'I was also seeing Lord Salisbury as to the Housing Commission
Bills, which he was to introduce into the House of Lords,
[Footnote:
Sir Charles was to take charge of the measures in the Commons.]
He
was strongly opposed to putting it into the power of Boards of
Guardians “to build out of the rates as many cottages, with
half-
acres attached, as they like, taking for the purpose any land
they please.” In another letter he wrote: “I should provide
that—
(1) The Local Authority must pass a petition to the Local
Government
Board to apply the Acts. (2) The Local Government Board must
send
down and inquire with a long notice. (3) If the Local
Government
Board inspector reports (i.) that the poorer classes of the
parish
are not, and are not likely to be, sufficiently housed without
the
application of the Acts; (ii.) that the Acts can be applied
without
ultimate loss to the ratepayers, then a vote of the local
authorities should be sufficient to apply the Acts. It would be
better that a sufficient interval should be passed in these
processes to insure that the second vote should be given by a
newly
elected local authority.”'
On April 4th to 9th the Housing Commission visited Scotland.
'On the evening of April 4th I dined with the Lord Provost of
Edinburgh. On Easter Day I attended the Kirk with the Lord
Provost,
hearing a magnificent sermon by Principal Caird, and in the
evening
dined with the Lord Advocate. On Easter Tuesday I dined with
the
Convention of Royal Burghs. On Thursday, April 9th, we left
Edinburgh for London.'
There remained only the question of inquiring and reporting with regard to Ireland, and here perplexities abounded.
As far back as February 7th at the Cabinet, 'the third matter discussed was that of the proposed visit of the Prince of Wales to Dublin as a member of my Commission, or, by himself, in advance of the visit of the Commission. It was decided that Parliament could not be asked for his expenses without trouble with the Irish.'
April 9th.—'I now began discussing with Spencer the conditions on which the Commission was to appear at Dublin, with regard to which there were great difficulties. Gray was on the Commission, but could not be Spencer's guest in any way, although, on the other hand, he and his friends were willing to receive me in spite of my being a member of the Government. [Footnote: Mr. Dwyer Gray, Nationalist member for Carlow in 1885. In 1886 he represented St. Stephen's Green, Dublin.] Spencer, in inviting me to stay with him, wrote: “I do not think you will fear the denunciation of United Ireland.”
'On April 17th I entered in my diary, after the meeting of the
Royal
Commission at which we signed our report: “Pleasures of
Ireland. If
we stay with Spencer, the Irish witnesses say that they will
not
appear before the Commission; and if we do not, I am told that
the
'loyalists' will not appear.” On this day I wrote to Grant
Duff: “I
may go” (out) “with Chamberlain over Budget [Footnote:
Correspondence with Mr. Gladstone on the Budget and the Beer
Tax has
been given in the previous chapter, pp. 118-120.] or over Irish
Coercion.” He replied, and my rejoinder will be found below.'
[Footnote: Sir Charles's summary of this letter will be found
in
this chapter (p. 143).]
Trouble had arisen also over Mr. Childers's wish to increase the duty on sparkling wines. This Sir Charles strongly opposed
'on the ground that it would upset the French and make them
withdraw
the most favoured nation treatment which I had won, and the
matter
was adjourned.'
'On Saturday, May 16th, there was another Cabinet. Childers
proposed
to raise the wine duties, to reduce by one-half his proposed
increase on spirits, and to limit to one year his increase on
beer.
We all agreed, against Childers, to postpone any announcement
of
changes for three weeks, and Childers, thinking that this meant
that
we had agreed not to take his proposals, said that he would
resign.'
April 24th.—'I had now received Spencer's consent to my quitting the Viceregal Lodge, when at Dublin at Whitsuntide, for one evening, to attend a party at Gray's, which was the virtual condition of our not being boycotted by the Nationalists.'
Negotiations between the Irish party and both English parties were at this time in the air, and it will be seen that this visit to Ireland became connected with political issues quite different from its ostensible and non-controversial object.
II.
Early in 1885 anti-Irish feeling, which to some extent had been allayed, was again roused by dynamite outrages. One bomb was exploded in the Tower of London, and two in the precincts of Parliament. The general temper may be judged by an entry of February 7th:
'I remonstrated with Harcourt as to the restrictions at the
House,
which he and the Speaker had agreed on, so far as they affected
the
Press. I said that it was ridiculous to shut out little Lucy,
the
“Toby” of Punch, and Harcourt gravely assured me that
Lucy was a
man who would willingly bring dynamite into the House himself;
after
which I had no more to say.'
It was in face of this feeling that Mr. Chamberlain had drafted a scheme giving very large powers of self-government to an Irish popularly elected body.
When Sir Charles was declaring for resignation, he received a communication which made the Irish matter pressing.
'On April 22nd Cardinal Manning wrote to me that he had some
information of importance which he wished for an opportunity of
making known to me, and he begged me to come to him on my way
to
Whitehall on the morrow. I had to see Lord Salisbury and Sir
Stafford Northcote as to the Seats Bill, and it was not until
the
afternoon that I was able to see the Cardinal. He spoke in the
name
of Croke and another Roman Catholic Irish Archbishop, and of
five
Irish Roman Catholic Bishops who had been staying with him, the
latter being a deputation of five to Rome who represented “the
14
Bishops.” He said that Croke had become frightened of the
extreme
Nationalists. The Cardinal declared that the Roman Catholic
clergy
were ready to pacify Ireland if we would pass Chamberlain's
Local
Government Ireland Scheme, with a Central Board such as
Chamberlain
proposed. The Bishops and clergy would be prepared to denounce,
not
only separation, but also an Irish Parliament. I had reason to
know
that Lord Spencer was unfavourable to any negotiation with
Cardinal
Manning, but on the 24th, having that day again seen Manning,
who
put the dots on the “i's” and volunteered that if the Irish
Bishops
got the elective board for Ireland they would denounce as
revolutionary an Irish Parliament, I wrote to Mr. Gladstone
stating
Manning's views, and suggesting that Chamberlain should see the
Cardinal on the morrow. [Footnote: See the next two pages,
where
accounts of these interviews and correspondence occur.]
'I said in my letter to Mr. Gladstone: “I knew that the Pope, in
sending for the Bishops to Rome, had acted on Manning's advice.
I
also knew that Manning bitterly resented Errington's visits to
Rome.
This was all I knew on the subject until to-day, when Manning
suddenly proposed to me to bring about peace and good-will in
Ireland on the basis of Chamberlain's Local Government and
Central
Board Scheme.... Manning has got a pledge from the Roman
Catholic
Bishops, including even Archbishop Croke ... and from Davitt,
to
denounce separation. He has got from the Bishops, including
Croke, a
declaration against an Irish Parliament, provided they obtain
the
Local Government Central Board. I suggested that he should see
Chamberlain at once, and learn secretly the details of his
proposals. He said nothing of coercion, and I, of course,
avoided
the subject, as I did not know whether a coercion Bill is to be
proposed. I should suggest that Manning be encouraged to let
the
Pope have Chamberlain's scheme.”
'I sent this memorandum to Chamberlain and to Lord Spencer, as
well
as to Mr. Gladstone, and Chamberlain wrote: “I am quite willing
to
call on the Cardinal if Mr. Gladstone approves.” Lord Spencer
wrote:
“The question of Mr. Chamberlain's seeing the Cardinal with a
view
of his scheme being made known to the Pope is for Mr.
Gladstone's
decision, but I would venture to say that he should not
disclose his
plan to the Cardinal unless the Cabinet agree to it.” This last
memorandum from Lord Spencer is dated the 25th, but on the 24th
Chamberlain, Mr. Gladstone having consented, had seen the
Cardinal.
I also saw the Cardinal again on the 25th, and he told me that
in
his opinion it was essential that Dr. Walsh should be made
Archbishop of Dublin. He also told me that he was going to see
Parnell on the Chamberlain scheme. On April 30th the Cardinal
saw
Parnell, and told him that the Bishops would support
Chamberlain in
the Local Government of Ireland scheme. Parnell promised that
he
would support it, and would not obstruct the Crimes Bill. So
O'Shea
told me, and showed me a paper unsigned, which purported to be,
and
which, knowing the hand, I believe was, Parnell's writing,
somewhat
to this effect. On the 28th a Committee of the Cabinet had been
appointed on Chamberlain's Irish Local Government and Central
Council scheme. On May 1st the Cardinal told me of his
interview
with Parnell, and of a more completely satisfactory interview
between himself and Sexton.
'The scheme was one which proposed the establishment in Ireland
of a
national elective Council, to which were to be referred matters
at
present in the hands of some four Boards at Dublin Castle. Mr.
Gladstone's consent to Chamberlain's interview with the
Cardinal had
been given in conversation at the House of Commons on the 23rd,
and
I have a letter from Mr. Gladstone stating this. I had
probably, for
some reason which I forget, both written and spoken to him
after my
first interview with Manning on the 22nd, and put the matter
again
in a letter (possibly to go to Spencer) on the 24th. I have
also a
letter from Chamberlain on the 24th, saying that his interview
with
Manning “quite confirms your minute, and the position is
hopeful.”
With regard to the Cardinal's insisting upon Walsh, and his
anger at
Errington's interference, I had a letter which I sent to Lord
Spencer, and which he kept, but returned my minute referring to
the
Cardinal's letter, endorsed only “S. 25-4-85.” Chamberlain also
wrote on the same day, again stating that his interview with
the
Cardinal had been highly satisfactory, and adding: “Do not let
Mr.
Errington meddle with the Archbishopric of Dublin.” On April
26th
the Cardinal had again written to me about the Errington
business
and the See of Dublin, and this second letter on the subject I
kept.
The only new point in it was that contained in the following
phrase:
“I have an impression that efforts have been made to represent
Dr.
Walsh as a Nationalist. He is not more so than I am; and
whether
that is excessive or obstructive you will judge.”
'On Tuesday, April 28th, the Cardinal again spoke to me as to
the
archbishopric, expressing his great vexation as to Spencer's
action
through Errington. I sent a minute to Spencer which he
returned,
writing, with regard to Manning's moderate opinions: “I wish it
may
be so. Responsibility does wonders. Maynooth is so bad that the
Pope
is now discussing it with the Bishops.” Dr. Walsh, Manning's
candidate, was President of Maynooth. I sent Spencer's minute
to
Chamberlain, who returned it with a strong minute of his own
for
Spencer, who again wrote: “H.E. the Cardinal is wrong in his
estimate of Dr. Walsh.” On April 30th Manning wrote mentioning
a
further conversation with Parnell, and adding: “The result is
that I
strongly advise the prompt introduction of the scheme I have in
writing. It cannot be known too soon. But both on general and
on
particular reasons I hope that neither you nor your friend will
dream of the act you spoke of. Government are pledged in their
first
Queen's Speech to county government in Ireland. Let them redeem
their pledge. All the rest will follow.” The “act,” of course,
was
resignation.'
'At the Cabinet Committee of May 1st on Ireland, Carlingford and
Harcourt, in Spencer's interest, violently attacked
Chamberlain's
scheme; Hartington less violently; Childers, Lefevre, and
Trevelyan
supported. Spencer seeming to waver, Harcourt rather turned
round,
and Mr. Gladstone afterwards told Chamberlain that
Carlingford's
opposition did not matter.
'On May 1st I again saw Manning, who told me of further
interviews
with Parnell and Sexton. I noted in my diary: “2nd to 6th. The
Irish
row—Mr. Gladstone between Chamberlain and Spencer: the deep
sea and
the devil, or the devil and the deep sea—continues.”
'On May 7th the Cardinal wrote: “How can the Standard
have got the
Irish scheme? Nothing is secret and nobody is safe. My copy of
it is
both safe and secret.” On May 8th I wrote to Grant Duff:
“Chamberlain and I have a big Irish Local Government scheme on
hand,
which is backed by the R. C. Bishops—which may either pacify
Ireland or break up the Government.” On the 9th, Harcourt
having
come over, Chamberlain's scheme received the support of all the
Commoners except Hartington, and was opposed by all the peers
except
Lord Granville. Mr. Gladstone said to me in leaving the room:
“Within six years, if it pleases God to spare their lives, they
will
be repenting in ashes.” At night he wrote to Lord Spencer and
to
Hartington that he intended to go out upon this question.
'During Sunday, May 10th, Harcourt tried hard to patch matters
up on
the basis of “No Home Rule, no coercion, no remedial
legislation, no
Ireland at all.”'
On May 13th 'Cardinal Manning dined with me, and we further discussed the position of Chamberlain's scheme.'
Then suddenly a new and complicating factor was introduced:
'On Friday, May 15th, there was another Cabinet, from which
Trevelyan was absent through illness. A Land Purchase Ireland
Bill
was suddenly presented to us, to which I expressed strong
opposition, unless it were to be accompanied by “Chamberlain's
Local
Government scheme”; and a Coercion Bill was also presented to
us,
against which Chamberlain, Lefevre, and I, protested. We,
however,
declared that we would yield as regards some points in the
Coercion
Bill provided the Land Purchase Bill were dropped or the “Local
Government measure” introduced.' [Footnote: A Land Purchase
Bill had
been proposed in the end of April, 1884, by Lord Spencer, which
after preliminary consideration by a Committee was discussed in
Cabinet.
'I opposed the whole thing. Lord Derby gave five reasons against
it,
all five unanswerable, and then supported it. Northbrook agreed
with
me. Childers, supported by a unanimous Cabinet committee,
proposed a
scheme of Chamberlain's suggestion for advancing the whole
purchase
money. Spencer proposed three-fourths. Mr. Gladstone had a
scheme of
his own which nobody could understand. Spencer insisted on
counting
heads. Lord Granville, who would, of course, have supported Mr.
Gladstone, had gone away. Trevelyan, who had been called in,
was not
allowed to vote, and the result was that the majority
pronounced
against Chamberlain's scheme; Spencer who was for
three-fourths, and
I against the whole thing, voting together with Carlingford,
Northbrook, the Chancellor, Hartington, and Dodson—a scratch
lot—against Mr. Gladstone, Childers, Harcourt, Kimberley,
Derby,
and Chamberlain.']
'On Sunday, May 17th, I dined with Edward Levy Lawson,
[Footnote:
Afterwards the first Lord Burnham.] and met the Prince of Wales
and
Randolph Churchill; and Randolph told the Prince and myself
that
which he had previously told the Irish members—namely, that
Salisbury had promised to have no coercion; but I noted in my
diary
that I did not believe this. I was wrong, for Salisbury
afterwards
said at Newport that his mind had been made up against coercion
long
before the change of Government. I knew that Randolph had seen
Parnell, as I had twice seen them together in Gosset's room,
which
only Randolph and I ever used before 5 p m.'
There were now two separate subjects of division leading to resignations in the Cabinet. There were those who would resign unless coercion was renewed, and there was the Chancellor of the Exchequer, who was resigning because he could not get his way as to the Budget. His resignation was 'suspended'; but Mr. Gladstone was evidently anxious to be out of it all.
'On the Sunday Childers informed us that he would go on for
three
weeks. On Wednesday afternoon, May 20th, Mr. Gladstone spoke to
me
at the House, and told me that he would go on until the end of
the
Session, and would then resign, and that Hartington would try
to
form a Government, although he might fail in getting one that
could
agree on Irish proposals. Mr. Gladstone said nothing about land
purchase, but in the course of the afternoon he suddenly
announced
publicly the introduction of a Land Purchase Bill, thinking, I
believe, that he had Chamberlain's consent to a Bill limited to
one
year. I at once wrote him a letter of resignation, and then
sent off
for Chamberlain, Lefevre, and Trevelyan.
'Chamberlain's interview with Mr. Gladstone that had misled the
latter had taken place after the Cabinet of Saturday—I think
on the
morning of Monday, the 18th—and their meeting was on the
subject of
Childers's Budget proposals. Chamberlain, writing to me about
it,
said: “We are likely to want four millions less money.
Therefore,
says Childers, let us have a new Budget and clap an additional
tax
of L300,000 on wine.” Chamberlain also wrote to me, after his
interview with Mr. Gladstone, on the Monday afternoon, telling
me
that Randolph Churchill was going to give notice of a Committee
to
inquire into the state of Ireland, that Churchill thought that
we
should be out by that time and supporting him, and that he
contemplated a separation from his own leaders, and a union, on
a
Radical Irish policy for “Local Government,” and against
coercion,
of the two sides from below the gangway. Chamberlain added
that, if
the Russian matter “were out of the way, Mr. Gladstone would
let us
go, and I think we must go.” This correspondence had
left me
unaware of any change in Chamberlain's view, if there was any,
about
the Land Purchase Bill. As soon as Chamberlain reached the
House on
the 20th, and heard from me what I had done, he also wrote a
letter
of resignation; but he was not pleased, and perhaps rightly, at
my
having taken so strong a step without consulting him on the
precise
point.
'In Chamberlain's letter, which was sent at 6 p.m. on the 20th,
he
said: “Dear Mr. Gladstone,—I have heard with great surprise
that
you have this afternoon given notice of the introduction of a
Land
Purchase Bill for Ireland, unaccompanied by any reference to
the
large scheme of Local Government, the promise of which for next
year
was the condition of the assent given by Sir Charles Dilke and
myself to the proposal for dealing with Land Purchase during
the
present Session. I am convinced that a measure of the kind
suggested
by Lord Spencer will have a distinct tendency to increase the
agitation for a separation between the two countries, and at
the
same time will seriously prejudice the success of any such
scheme of
Local Government as I have submitted to the Cabinet.... In the
circumstances I feel that I have no alternative but to place my
resignation in your hands.”
'On the morning of May 21st Lefevre informed us that he should
go
with us, and also wrote a letter of resignation, in which he
said
that he did not agree with us as to Land Purchase, but that as
we
went he must go, too, on coercion.
'Mr. Gladstone sent for me on the 21st, and I suggested a way
out,
in our acceptance of the Land Purchase Bill, with a promise of
“the
Local Government Scheme” for 1886. Mr. Gladstone fell in with
this
view, and proposed that at Dublin, for which I was starting on
Friday morning, May 22nd, I should try to get Spencer's consent
to
the limitation of the new Coercion Bill to a single year, and
the
promise of the “Local Government Bill” for 1886. On the 21st
Mr.
Gladstone wrote to me several times, as did also Chamberlain.
Mr.
Gladstone had written to Chamberlain on the night of the 20th:
“I
have never been in greater surprise than at the fresh trouble
developed this afternoon. I believed myself to be acting
entirely
within the lines of your and Dilke's concurrence, and surely I
am
right in thinking that you could not have supposed that the
notice
of an intention to bring in a Bill offered the occasion on
which to
refer to the distinct though allied subject of Local
Government.
What I understood to be your and Dilke's procedure was to agree
to a
Land Purchase Bill with a provision of funds for one year,
which
would leave the whole measure ... dependent on a fresh judgment
which might be associated with Local Government as its
condition. It
seems to me to be a matter which we may perfectly well
consider, and
hope to arrange, in what terms reference shall be made to Local
Government when the Bill is brought in. Will not that be the
time to
part, if part we must, which I do not believe? I send a copy of
this
to Dilke, and will only add, to the expression of my surprise,
my
deep concern.”
'When I received a letter from Mr. Gladstone, enclosing a copy
of
his to Chamberlain, I replied (first showing my answer to
Lefevre
and sending it to Chamberlain) to the effect that the proposal
to
introduce a Land Purchase Bill had been discussed by and
rejected by
the Cabinet, that I could not concur in the reversal of its
judgment, and that, thinking as I did that a deliberate opinion
of
the Cabinet had been disregarded without warrant, and having,
so
thinking, resigned, I should be unable to attend any meeting of
the
Cabinet if one were summoned. I have a letter from Chamberlain
to Mr
Gladstone dated 21st, and two later ones from Mr. Gladstone to
myself. Chamberlain said:
'“My Dear Mr. Gladstone,
'“I fear there has been a serious misapprehension on both sides
with
respect to a Land Purchase Bill, and I take blame to myself if
I did
not express myself with sufficient clearness. I certainly never
imagined that the promise of introduction would be made without
further reference to the Cabinet, or without some definite
decision
as to Local Government. I doubt very much if it is wise or even
right to attempt to cover over the serious differences of
principle
that have lately disclosed themselves in the Cabinet. I think
it is
now certain that they will cause a split in the new Parliament,
and
it seems hardly fair to the constituencies that this should
only be
admitted after they have discharged their functions, and when
they
are unable to influence the result.
'“I am,
'“Yours sincerely,
'“J. CHAMBERLAIN.”
'They did “cause” a split in the new Parliament, but
Spencer the
Coercionist and Chamberlain the Nationalist had changed
places!'
'I do not know which of Mr. Gladstone's two letters dated the
21st
is the earlier. In the one Mr. Gladstone wrote: “I hope that my
note
may have shown you that the time for considering your
difficulty (if
there be one) has not arrived. Please to tell me if this is so,
as
if it were not I should have to summon the Cabinet this
afternoon to
report what has happened. The messenger will wait for an
answer.—
Yours sincerely, W. E. Gladstone.—This is also for
Chamberlain.” I
replied somewhat curtly that if there were a Cabinet I could
not
attend. The other letter referred to a conversation which had
taken
place between Hamilton and Chamberlain, and said that the
latter was
“willing that his letter should stand as non avenu until
after the
recess—i.e. (so I understand it), we should, before the Bill
is
introduced, consider in what terms the subject of Local
Government
should be referred to when the Bill is introduced. I am not
trying
to bind you to this understanding, but if you and he will come
here
at 3.0 we will try to get at the bottom of the matter.” My
reply
was:
'“21st May.
'“I certainly cannot withdraw my resignation unless the incident
is
explained to the whole of the members of the Cabinet. If you
could
see your way to circulate a box explaining that we were not
consenting parties to the reversal of the opinion of the
Cabinet,
then I would try to help find some way out. I am, however,
hopeless
as to the wisdom of doing so. We differ so completely on the
questions which will occupy the time of Parliament for the
remainder
of the Session that I feel that the Cabinet cannot hold
together
with advantage to the country. Lefevre strongly agrees with
this
view Northbrook and Hartington, who, with Lefevre, were against
Chamberlain and myself on the merits, evidently felt as amazed
as we
were at the reversal of the decision.”'
'At this moment Chamberlain wrote to Mrs. Pattison' (in India)
'to
say that the times were “most anxious. Mr. Gladstone is
certainly
going to retire soon, and the influence which has held together
discordant elements will be removed with him. Fortunately, we
know
our own minds, and are not deficient in resolution, but it is
not
always easy to see clearly the right times and way of giving
effect
to our decisions. I do not myself believe that the struggle
between
us and the Whigs can be long postponed. It has nearly come over
the
question of Ireland, and even now we may be compelled to break
off
on this vital point. In any case we shall not join another
Government nor meet another Parliament without a decision; and
if it
is against our views, the split will be final and complete, and
we
shall be out of office until we can lead a purely Radical
Administration. We must win in the end, but the contest will be
a
bitter one, and may lead us farther than we contemplate at
present.... I was dining last Saturday with Lord Ripon, who
professed to be well pleased ... and declared his full adhesion
to
the new gospel; but the majority of his class and school are
getting
thoroughly frightened, and will probably quicken and intensify
the
movement by setting themselves against it, instead of trying to
guide and direct it. A good deal depends on Lord Hartington. He
is
constitutionally contemptuous of, and unsympathetic with, the
democratic sentiment of the times.”
'By our telegrams of May 21st, I saw that on the 20th Sir John
Kirk,
our man at Zanzibar, had been snubbed by Lord Granville, and I
felt
that if I went out upon the Irish Question I should be able at
least
to speak my mind as to the manner in which we had pandered to
the
Germans on the Zanzibar coast.
'On May 21st I wrote to Grant Duff: “Mr. G. will resign at the
end
of the session. I rather doubt Hartington being able to form a
Government.”
'On the morning of Friday, May 22nd, I left for Dublin, and by
teatime was at the Viceregal Lodge.'
On the previous day Sir Charles had written:
'Local Government Board,
'May 21st, 1885.
'My Dear Grant Duff,
'Off to Ireland, where I expect to be Boycotted by both sides
[Footnote: It turned out the other way.]—by the Nationalists
because I stay with Spencer, and by the Orangemen because we
sit at
the Mansion House.
'Yours,
'Chs. W. D.'
'As Mr. Gladstone at our last interview had bid me convert
Spencer
if I could, and virtually promised that he would support our
views
if Spencer would, I had asked Trevelyan and Harcourt to back me
up
in letters. Harcourt made delay. Trevelyan wrote on the 23rd:
“I am
sorry the whole thing is in the newspapers, and see in it
another
reason for getting it settled. If you and Chamberlain make it a
point to have the Bill for a year, I should be glad to see the
concession made. The concession on the part of those who take
another view would not be greater than was made by those of us
who
objected to have a Land Bill that was not based upon a new
system of
Local Government.”
'Early in the morning of Saturday, the 23rd, before the meeting
of
my Commission at the City Hall, I had had a long talk with
Spencer,
and I felt, more strongly than I ever had before, that his
position
in Dublin was untenable, and that he ought to be allowed to go.
On
Whit Sunday I attended church with Spencer, and in the
afternoon
took him for the only walk which he had enjoyed for a long
time. We
passed the spot where Lord Frederick Cavendish was killed, and
accompanied by a single aide-de-camp, but watched at a distance
by
two policemen in plain clothes, and met at every street corner
by
two others, walked to the strawberry gardens, and on our
return, it
being a lovely Sunday when the Wicklow Mountains were at their
best
and the hawthorn in bloom, met thousands of Dublin people
driving
out to the strawberry gardens on cars. In the course of the
whole
long walk but one man lifted his hat to Spencer, who was
universally
recognized, but assailed by the majority of those we met with
shouts
of, “Who killed Myles Joyce?” [Footnote: One of several men
hanged
for the Maamtrasna murders. All the other men sentenced
protested
that Myles Joyce was innocent, and died protesting it. Strong
efforts were made to gain a reprieve for this lad.] while some
varied the proceedings by calling “Murderer!” after him. A few
days
later, when I was driving with Lady Spencer in an open
carriage, a
well-dressed bicyclist came riding through the cavalry escort,
and
in a quiet, conversational tone observed to us, “Who killed
Myles
Joyce?” At his dinner-party on the Sunday evening Spencer told
us
that a Roman Catholic priest [Footnote: Father Healy, parish
priest
of Bray, and most famous of modern Irish talkers.] who was
present
(the Vicar of Bray, I think, but not the Bray) was the
only priest
in Ireland who would enter his walls, while the Castle was
boycotted
by every Archbishop and Bishop. On Monday morning, the 25th,
Whit
Monday, I paid a visit to the Mansion House at the request of
the
Lord Mayor of Dublin, taking by Spencer's leave the Viceregal
carriages there, where they had in his second viceroyalty not
been
before, and was received by the Lord Mayor in state, which
consisted
in much exhibition of the most gorgeous porter (in green and
gold)
that my eyes had ever beheld. I afterwards went on to see
Hamilton,
[Footnote: Sir Robert Hamilton, who had succeeded Mr. Bourke as
the
permanent head of Dublin Castle.] the Under-Secretary. He
offered us
as a maximum County Boards plus a Central Education Board for
Ireland, to administer all the grants with rating powers, and
to be
called a great experiment to be extended if it answered. In the
evening I discussed this with Spencer, who went a little
farther,
and offered, in addition to County Boards, four elective
Central
Boards for Ireland, to discharge much the same duties which
Chamberlain's scheme gave to the Central Board; but Spencer
obstinately refused to take the plunge of making the four
Boards
into one Board. It was on this point that we broke off; and he
never
got farther forward until after the Government had gone out. He
has
since declared that his conversion to a more advanced Home Rule
scheme than that of Chamberlain, which he had refused, was
caused by
the return of a certain majority of Nationalist members; but he
was
perfectly aware at this time what that majority would be, and I
confess that I have never been able to understand why Hamilton
and
Spencer should have held out as they did in May against the
moderate
scheme, and have supported the extreme one as early as July,
which I
believe to have been the case. Had Spencer yielded at this
moment,
it is at least possible that the Irish question would have been
settled. At all events, there has never been in our time so
fair a
chance of settlement.
'On Tuesday, the 26th, I heard from Lefevre, who wrote strongly
against the Coercion Bill for Spencer's benefit, but added in a
separate letter that he regarded the notice in the
Birmingham Post
as indicating that Chamberlain had been talking freely about
the
dissensions in the Cabinet, and that if this was so he
considered it
unfortunate, as tending to increase the difficulty of getting
any
further concessions from Spencer or other members of the
Cabinet who
favoured coercion.
'On Tuesday evening the Commission dined with Gray, and met Dr.
Walsh, the new Archbishop; but at Dr. Walsh's wish I had gone
to
Gray's house half an hour before dinner to see the Archbishop
privately, and to be thanked by him for the part that I had
taken in
trying to prevent opposition to the choice. In the evening Gray
had
a party at which both sides were represented, Chief Justice
Morris
being among those present. Gray's house, although the Spencers
disliked him, was one at which the parties always met as much
as is
possible at all in Ireland. When Gray came out of gaol after
his
imprisonment he gave a small dinner, at which were present the
Judge
who had sentenced him, the gaoler who had had him in custody,
and
the prosecuting counsel. The most interesting man at Gray's was
Fottrell, the man whose memoirs ought to be interesting, for he
had
acted as intermediary between the Castle (that is, Hamilton)
and
Parnell at the time when secret communications were passing
between
them, although openly they were at war.
'Dickson, the Ulster Liberal member, [Footnote: M.P. For
Dungannon,
Tyrone, 1880-1885. He afterwards became a leading Unionist.]
was at
Gray's, and he announced that he had at last come over to
Chamberlain's scheme. Now, Hartington was crossing the next day
to
stay at the Viceregal Lodge, and was to speak at Belfast under
Dickson's auspices, and the announcement of Dickson's change of
front was a startling blow to him and Spencer.
'On the morning of Wednesday, the 27th, I wrote to Grant Duff:
“A
pretty pass you Whigs have brought this country to! I really
think
we Radicals ought to be allowed to try. We certainly could not
do it
worse. 'Poland' has been a byword, yet Poland is far
less of a
weakness to Russia than Ireland to us, and the Russians have
now the
Polish peasantry with them, if they have the towns and nobles
against them. We have no friends in Ireland. All
our policy has
aimed at conciliating at least Ulster, and now Ulster is fast
becoming as Nationalist as Cork. The Liberals carried Belfast
freeholders in the late Antrim election to the cry of 'Down
with
coercion!' and 'No special legislation!' Hartington comes
to-night,
and I shall try to arrange some compromise with him and Spencer
as
to the future—probably an Irish elective education Council.”
'On the evening of the 27th I had a long conference with
Hartington
and Spencer, in which I “worked” Dickson much. Before this I
had had
the third meeting of my Commission, and then a public meeting
in
connection with the Dublin Ladies' Central Association, a body
dealing with the Housing of the Working Classes. On the morning
of
May 28th Spencer came into my bedroom before eight o'clock, and
told
me that Hartington was very ill, suffering from sleeplessness
and
fever, and that it would be quite impossible for him to make
his
Belfast speech.... Dickson soon came to the Viceregal Lodge,
and
earnestly begged me to go to Belfast in Hartington's place, but
under the circumstances I felt that it was impossible that I
should
do so, although he promised me that a special train should be
waiting at the last moment if I would change my mind.
'I received this day a letter from Cardinal Manning strongly
urging
that Chamberlain, Lefevre, and I, should stay in. “If you and
the
like of you leave the Whigs, they will fall back and unite in
resisting you. So long as you are in contact with them, they
will
yield to reason. These are the thoughts of an Old Testament
Radical.” But the Old Testament Radical went on to make
proposals to
me with regard to the Roman Catholic vote in Chelsea which
would
have astonished the Old Testament prophets.
'Another letter which I received this day was from O'Shea about
Parnell's opinions on the Coercion Bill, but it is so obscure
that I
can make nothing of it. It was on a suggestion of Lefevre's
with
regard to bringing the Coercion Bill into force only by
“proclamation.” It shows, however, if O'Shea is to be believed,
that
Parnell was willing to accept a coercion measure of some kind,
or,
at all events, to haggle about its terms, if publicly resisting
it
as a whole.
'By the same post I received a letter from Heneage [Footnote:
Mr.
Edward Heneage, for many years M.P. for Grimsby, and for a
short
time Chancellor of the Duchy of Lancaster in 1886. He was
afterwards
a leading Unionist.] professing to state the general view of
the
House of Commons, and pronouncing in favour of a liberal policy
towards Ireland. “(1) Non-renewal of the Crimes Act. (2)
Amendment
of the jury laws. (3) Amendment of the purchase clauses. (4)
Abolition of the Lord Lieutenancy. (5) Improvement of Local
Government.” This I showed to Spencer, with a memorandum of my
own
in which I said that it was “a curious letter from a Whig.”
Spencer
wrote on my memorandum in returning the letter: “It is an odd
letter.... He wrote to me the other day about the abolition of
the
Lord Lieutenancy, rather apologizing for bringing it on. I
replied
deprecating any movement which might not go with action. To
denounce
an office without at once abolishing it would weaken the hands
of
him who filled it.”
'I wrote to Lefevre and Chamberlain that Hartington had come
very
well, and was very well at dinner, but bored at having to
speak.
“Walker told him what I told him as to the unwisdom of speaking
in
favour of coercion in Belfast immediately after the
anti-coercion
speeches of the Liberals at the Antrim election; and to-day he
is
ill. I do not know how far the two things are connected; but
the
papers will say they are.”
'I lunched with Sir Edward Guinness and sat in the Speaker's
chair
of the Irish Parliament; dined with Sir Robert Hamilton at the
Yacht
Club at Kingstown; slept on board the boat and crossed next
day;
spent Saturday to Tuesday at Dockett Eddy; and on Tuesday was
at the
State Concert, where several of us tried to patch up some means
of
being able to meet in Cabinet on June 5th. On Thursday, June
4th, I
had a long talk with Mr. Gladstone, and, on his agreeing to
support
the Heneage-Lefevre-O'Shea proposal, now supported by
Chamberlain,
for only bringing the Coercion Bill into force by a
proclamation,
agreed to attend the Cabinet the next day, but without
withdrawing
my resignation, which remained “suspended.”
'I began on the 3rd and ended on the 5th June a letter to Grant
Duff
in reply to one from him bidding me not break off from the
Government on any but a clear and obvious issue. I told him
that (1)
Radicals in a minority would only ever get their way by often
threatening to go, even on secondary points, and that they must
not
threaten unless they “meant it.” (2) Mr. G. insisted he was
“going.”
“Therefore we have to count with Hartington. We doubt if we can
form
part of a Hartington Government, and we can't do so if we do
not ...
impose our terms by threats.... This is why I have been forcing
the
pace of late.... Chamberlain is a little timid just now, in
view of
the elections and the fury of the Pall Mall. I could not
drive
Chamberlain out without his free consent, so I am rather tied.
Still, we shall (June 5th) get our own way, I fancy, at
to-day's
Cabinet.”
'On the morning of June 5th my position in attending the Cabinet
was
weakened, if not made ridiculous, by a letter from Spencer in
which
he refused the Heneage-Lefevre-O'Shea compromise. But I went
all the
same, for I was not supposed to know what he had written to Mr.
Gladstone. The first matter discussed was the Budget. I opposed
the
proposed increase of the wine duties from 1s. to 1s. 3d., and
from
2s. 6d. to 3s. (all bottled wine to be at the 3s. rate). I
carried
with me at first all except Mr. Gladstone against Childers, and
at
last Mr. Gladstone also. Childers then left the room; Mr.
Gladstone,
Lord Granville, Harcourt, and the Chancellor, one by one, went
after
him, but he would not come back. The Guards at Alexandria were
mentioned, and then Spencer's letter to Mr. Gladstone against
the
proclamation clause read, whereon Chamberlain and I protested
against coercion as a whole, and no decision upon any point was
come
to.
'On June 6th I dined at Harcourt's Queen's Birthday dinner, and
afterwards attended Lady Granville's Foreign Office party, but
these
were expiring festivities.
'On Monday, June 8th, there was a Cabinet, at which the first
matter
was Irish Coercion and the proclamation clause. Spencer now
offered
proclamation by the Viceroy (i.e., not by the Government in
London, which was our proposal) for all the Bill except the
intimidation part, but refused to have it for the boycotting
clause.
Trevelyan now joined Chamberlain, Lefevre, and myself, in
opposing
Spencer; the others supported him, but tried to make him yield.
We
decided that if he yielded we should ask that a statement to
the
Cabinet should be promised to precede proclamation.'
On June 8th Mr. Childers moved the second reading of his Budget Bill, which was met by an amendment moved by Sir Michael Hicks Beach, condemning the proposed increase upon beer and spirits without any corresponding increase on wine, and declining to increase the duty on real property until promised changes were made in regard to local taxation.
'I made a good debating Budget speech, of which Sir John Lambert
wrote “In Tea, Domine, spero,” and I replied: “Since the time
of Sir
Thomas More all these profane 'good things' have come from
devout
Catholics.”'
Other leading men followed, and Mr. Gladstone summed up by saying that you must tax either alcohol or tea and sugar. But the division went against him: 6 Liberals voted with the Tories, and 76 were absent. The majority against the Government was 12. The end had at length come.
On June 8th, as has been seen, the Government were defeated by a majority of 12.
'On June 9th there was a further Cabinet. We had been beaten on
the
Budget, but in the meantime Spencer had yielded, and Mr.
Gladstone
was very anxious to be able to say that we were all agreed.
Therefore we discussed a Coercion Bill in the first place, but
the
four of us at once refused to agree to Spencer's concession as
sufficient.' [Footnote: Namely, that the Coercion Bill should
only
have effect after a special proclamation had been issued. Sir
Charles Dilke notes, September 20th, 1891, the receipt of a
letter
from Mr. Chamberlain, thanking him for extracts from his Memoir
of
1884-85 on Irish affairs, and saying that where it dealt with
the
same points it tallied exactly with his recollections.] 'It
passes
my understanding, therefore, how Mr. Gladstone is able to
pronounce,
as he has done, “unfounded” the statement that the Cabinet was
at
odds upon the Irish question at the moment of its defeat. Three
of
us had resigned on it, and our letters were in his pocket. The
next
matter discussed was resignation, which did not take a minute;
and
then the question of what Customs dues should be levied....
'After the Cabinet there was a levee, at which I had some
conversation with Lord Salisbury as to the Redistribution Bill
in
the Lords, and his reply showed that he meant to form a
Government.'
'On June 10th my discussions with Lord Salisbury as to the
Redistribution Bill were continued, and it was decided that the
Bill
was to go forward in spite of the Ministerial crisis, although
this
was resisted by the Fourth Party in the House of Commons.'
On the previous evening Sir Charles Dilke addressed an audience at the City Liberal Club in a speech of unwonted passion. Confidently anticipating that the Redistribution Bill would go through in spite of any change of Ministry and the resistance of the Fourth Party, he dwelt on the magnitude of the change for which he had so long wrought. But the central point of the speech was a eulogy of Mr Gladstone, which reflected the temper of a scene that had passed in the House of Commons the same day, and he demanded in the name of Liberalism that the battle should be won, 'not only with his great name, but under his actual leadership.'
This was the declaration of the Radicals against all thought of a Hartington Administration. Referring to the speech, he writes:
'I was greatly congratulated on this day on a speech which I had
made at a house dinner of the City Liberal Club on the 9th.
Chamberlain wrote: “Your speech was admirable, and I have heard
from
one who was present that the effect was electrical. You never
did
better in your life.” He went on to agree with me in my wish
that
Herbert Gladstone should be appointed Chief Whip for the
Opposition,
and then to say that we must be very careful what we did, or
“we
shall destroy the Tory Government before it has done our work.”
I
had asked him to sit to Holl for a portrait for me, and he said
that
he would do so, but that he was going to speak all over the
country
in support of the unauthorized programme. He did sit, and a
very
fine picture was the result.' [Footnote: Now at the National
Portrait Gallery, to which Sir Charles bequeathed it.]
'On Saturday, June 13th, I presided at the Cobden Club dinner,
at
which Chamberlain was also present, and our speeches attracted
some
attention.' [Footnote: Sir Charles from the chair advocated
'destroying the monopoly in land,' and 'establishing an Irish
control of Irish affairs.' Chamberlain advocated 'some great
measure
of devolution by which the Imperial Parliament shall retain its
supremacy, but shall nevertheless relegate to subordinate
authorities the control and administration of their local
business,'
and added: 'I think it is a consolation to my right hon. friend
as
well as to myself that our hands are free, and that our voices
may
now be lifted up in the cause of freedom and justice.']
'On Tuesday, the 16th, we had a meeting of the leaders, at which
were present Lords Selborne, Northbrook, Carlingford, Derby,
Kimberley, Mr. Gladstone, Harcourt, Childers, Chamberlain,
Lefevre,
and myself. Salisbury, through Arthur Balfour, had verbally
asked
for (1) priority for Supply; (2) if we would, supposing that we
opposed their Budget, support them in borrowing by Exchequer
Bills.
We decided to make as little reply as possible. In Winston
Churchill's Life of his father he says we promised
“facilities,” but
we refused.'
'Randolph Churchill sounded me to know if in the event of his
taking
office he could sit for Birmingham, and Chamberlain answered:
“If R.
C. takes office without coercion, we should not oppose
him. If
with, I should certainly fight to accentuate the
betrayal.”
'On the afternoon of June 16th I had a serious talk with
Chamberlain
about manhood suffrage, which he had advocated in a speech,
pointing
out to him that this question of manhood as against adult
suffrage
(i.e., including women) was the only one on which we differed,
and
the only question which seemed likely to divide us. The outcome
of
our talk was that we should postpone as long as possible the
inevitable difference, and make it last as short a time as
possible
by postponing it till the very moment when the thing was likely
to
be carried. When the time came that our people should be raving
for
manhood suffrage, and that I should have to join the Tories in
carrying adult suffrage as against it, I might, if in office,
have
to go out by myself, but this could not be avoided.' [Footnote:
A
memorandum on this subject by Sir Charles, published by the
Society
for Promoting Adult Suffrage, in the last years of his life, is
quoted on p. 409 of this volume.]
'On the 16th, also, I wrote to Grant Duff that there was “no
liking
for Ireland or the Irish,” but “an almost universal feeling now
in
both parties that some form of Home Rule must be tried. My own
belief is that it will be tried too late, as all our remedies
have
been.”
'I told him how I had written to solicit a peerage for him, and
that
the Liberals would be in office again in “January,” and when
his
term of office was to expire—a true prophecy.'
'On June 18th there was another Cabinet of the outgoing
Ministers,
although Hartington and Lord Granville were not present. There
were
present Mr. Gladstone, Lord Selborne, Carlingford, Northbrook,
Kimberley, Derby, Rosebery, Harcourt, Childers, Trevelyan,
Lefevre,
Chamberlain, and myself. Mr. Gladstone had heard on the
previous
night from the Queen, enclosing a letter from Lord Salisbury to
her,
asking for an undertaking that we would support him on his
Budget
and in Supply, as he could not now dissolve. We again refused
to
give any but very general assurances.
'On June 19th, Randolph Churchill having blown up Northcote'
(who
had been removed to the Upper House), 'and shown his power by
making
himself Dictator, now wished for freedom and some excuse for
preventing the formation of a Government, and a curious letter
from
him was forwarded to me by Chamberlain. In Chamberlain's
covering
letter there is the first allusion to our proposed tour in
Ireland.
'On Saturday, June 20th, there was a last Cabinet or “full
meeting"
of outgoing Ministers, all being present except Spencer and our
two
racing men—Hartington and Rosebery. We further considered the
question of “assurances,” at the renewed suggestion of the
Queen,
and finally declined to give them. Though this was called as a
Cabinet, Mrs. Gladstone was in the room. Saturday to Monday I
spent
in a last visit to the smallpox camp at Darenth. On Monday, the
22nd, I made a fighting speech at a meeting at the Welsh chapel
in
Radnor Street at Chelsea; [Footnote: The speech advocated not
merely
Home Rule, but Home Rule all round. Sir Charles expressed a
wish to
“study in Ireland a plan for the devolution to Welsh, Scottish,
and
Irish bodies of much business which Parliament is incompetent
to
discharge, and which at the present time is badly done or not
done
at all.”
“The principles of decentralization which ought to be applied
are
clear to those who know the two kingdoms and the Principality,
but
the details must be studied on the spot. As regards Wales and
Scotland, no great controversial questions are likely to arise.
But
as regards the Irish details, it is the intention of Mr.
Chamberlain
and myself to inquire in Ireland of those who know Ireland
best.
Officials in Ireland, contrary to public belief, are many of
them in
favour of decentralization, but still more are the Bishops and
clergy of various denominations, legal authorities, and the
like.
Some writers who have recently attacked a proposal which has
been
made to abolish in Ireland what is known as 'Dublin Castle' are
unaware, apparently, of the fact that not only officials of the
highest experience, and many statesmen on both sides who know
Ireland well, are agreed on the necessity for the abolition,
but
that those who have had the most recent experience in the
office of
Viceroy are themselves sharers in the decentralization view
which
now prevails.”] and on Wednesday, June 24th, I left my office.
'My successor was Arthur Balfour, and I initiated him into the
business of the Local Government Board at his request, after a
first
interview at Sloane Street. As late as June 21st Harcourt had
made
up his mind that the Tories would be unable to form a
Government,
and that it was his painful duty to come back; and he wrote to
me
that he had informed Mr. Gladstone that “I would stand by him
if he
agreed to come back whatever might happen.” Chamberlain
wrote on
this that it was impossible if Spencer remained. “It will be
bad for
us and for the settlement of the Irish question.”
'Chamberlain and I were now intending to visit Ireland, but
Manning
declined to give us letters, and wrote on June 25th: “What am I
to
do? I am afraid of your Midlothian in Ireland. How can I be
godfather to Hengist and Horsa?” I replied:
'“Dear Cardinal Manning,
'“I fear I have made myself far from clear. You speak of a
Midlothian. I should not for a moment have dreamt of asking you
for
letters had not that been most carefully guarded against. We
are not
going to make a single speech or to attend any dinner, meeting,
or
reception, in any part of Ireland. Our journey is private, and
our
wish is to visit the Catholic Archbishops and Bishops and to
find
out what they want. It has sprung from your own suggestion, and
from
my conversation, held also at your suggestion, with Dr. Walsh.
It
would not conduce to any possibility of settlement and of
future
peace if, after proposing, at your suggestion, to go to men
like the
Archbishops Croke and Walsh, we should have to state that we
renounce our visit because they refuse to receive us. You know
what
passed as to Dr. Walsh, and you know that if Mr. Gladstone had
reformed his Government we had made that matter one of our
conditions. Surely that was pretty clear evidence of our desire
to
act with you in a matter which is certainly above all party.
But it
is 'now or never.'“
'On the same day Chamberlain wrote proposing that we should meet
Trevelyan and Lefevre at fixed and short intervals to produce
concerted action, and consulting me as to whether we should
include
Morley. The first consultation took place at my Royal
Commission
office at noon on July 4th, and Morley was present as well as
Trevelyan, and I think Lefevre.'
'On June 27th I had a last fight with Mr. Gladstone. The
outgoing
Government had given a baronetcy to Errington, personally my
friend,
but a baronetcy given under circumstances which I thought
politically discreditable, and I protested strongly. I told Mr.
Gladstone that it had long been my opinion that there is
insufficient consultation of the opinion of the party, as well
as of
Cabinets and ex-Cabinets, on questions of the deepest moment.
“For
example, since I have been a member of the 'Inner Circle,' many
decisions of the gravest moment as to Irish affairs have been
taken
without reference to the general opinion of the leaders or of
the
party. When Mr. Forster first induced Lord Granville to give
letters
to Mr. Errington, I stated my own view in favour of the
appointment
of an official representative of this country to the Roman
Church,
if there was work which must be done between the Government and
that
Church. I always protested against the secret arrangement, and
the
last straw has been the resistance to Walsh.” Such was my
private
note.'
'Chamberlain wrote: “Mr. G. has yielded to Lord G., and has done
an
act unfair to us and without notice. I have seen O'Shea. I
think the
'visit' may yet be all right.” I wrote to Mr. Gladstone:
'“I feel bound to express my dismay at seeing this day that
honours
have been conferred on that excellent fellow Errington at a
moment
when it will be felt by the great majority of people who do not
see
round corners that he is rewarded for the fight made by him on
behalf of the defeated policy of resistance to the selection as
Roman Catholic Archbishop of Dublin of the accomplished
gentleman on
whom the whole Irish Roman Catholic clergy and people had set
their
hearts. I have already described to Lord Granville in your
presence
what I thought the fatal results of this policy of interference
against a unanimous Irish sentiment in the choice of the great
Roman
Catholic dignitaries in Ireland—a policy which has, in the
belief
of the thoughtful men of all parties, among whom I may name
privately the new Lord Chancellor of Ireland, [Footnote: Mr.
Gibson,
afterwards created Lord Ashbourne.] undone the effects of your
Land
Acts of 1871 and 1881, and made the resistance to the Union
stronger
and more unanimous than it ever was before. Surely such an
intention
as that to specially honour Mr. Errington at such a moment
might
have been named to me when I so strongly expressed before you
and
Lord Granville my opinion of the policy. Mr. Forster, the
initiator
of the Errington policy, has returned to the Liberal front
bench,
and sat next to me there. I fear I must take the opportunity of
leaving it, as I do not see how I can fail to express the
opinion I
hold of the conferring of special honour at such a moment on
Mr.
Errington.” [Footnote: A letter from Mr. Gladstone to Mr,
Errington,
dated June 30th, 1885, is given in the Life of Granville, vol.
ii., p. 292.]
'Mr. Gladstone replied:
'“1, Richmond Terrace,
'“June 27th, 1885.
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“I feel that the coincidence of the Walsh appointment with the
Errington baronetcy is unfortunate, but I think that the grant
of
the baronetcy or of something in that sense is unavoidable. I
regard
Gibson's confidential disclosure to you as an absurd
exaggeration
indulged in for party purposes. The policy, and any ingratitude
to
an agent of it, are wholly different matters; and your
disapproval
of the first never conveyed to my mind the idea of speaking to
you
about the second. You are aware of the immense stress laid by
Spencer on the Errington mission, which Granville more
traditionally
(as I think) supported. For my part, I never did more than
acquiesce
in it, and I think it highly probable that no such thing will
be
renewed. As to 'diplomatic relations' with the Pope, I am
entirely
opposed to them.
'“Sincerely yours,
'“W. E. Gladstone.”
'I was not opposed to diplomatic relations with the Pope, but to
the
extraordinary anomalies involved in the Mission that was no
Mission.
My conversation with Gibson had been at a party at Lady
Ridley's,
where I congratulated him upon his high office. He began with a
laugh: “I am popular with all parties. Whose congratulations do
you
think were the first that I received?” A happy inspiration
struck
me, and I at once answered “Walsh”—a lucky guess which
completely
puzzled him, for he said, “Who told you?”
'Chamberlain wrote the next day: “Reflection confirms me in the
opinion that Mr. Gladstone has not treated us well. I cannot
resist
the conclusion that on both occasions he concealed his
intentions,
knowing that we disapproved of them, and in order to force our
hands. I would cordially join in a protest against this,
although,
as I have already told you, I do not think the last
proceeding—in
the matter of Errington—will justify a formal secession.
People
generally, especially in the country, cannot understand the
importance of the matter, and would not back up our quarrel.”
'Chamberlain, writing on June 27th or 28th, [Footnote: It was on
June 17th that Mr. Chamberlain had delivered his famous
denunciation
of Dublin Castle, and had declared that “the pacification of
Ireland
depends, I believe, on the concession to Ireland of the right
to
govern itself in the matter of its purely domestic government.”
He
went on to speak of an Irishman being at every step controlled
by
“an English official, appointed by a foreign Government.”]
said: “On
the greatest issue between us and the Whigs Mr. G. is on our
side,
and has told Harcourt that if he stands at the General Election
he
will make this a prominent feature in his platform, and will
adopt
in principle our scheme—Local Government and devolution. This
will
immensely strengthen our position if we finally decide to press
the
matter. I say 'if' because I wait to have more positive
assurances
as to Parnell's present attitude. If he throws us over, I do
not
believe that we can go farther at present, but O'Shea remains
confident that matters will come right.”'
On June 29th, Sir Charles replied to Mr. Gladstone:
'My Dear Sir,
'Harcourt, Chamberlain, and Lefevre, have all lectured me, and
the
former tells me that you have accepted a proposal to stand
again for
Midlothian. This is so great a thing that smaller ones must not
be
allowed to make even small discords, so please put my letter of
Saturday in the fire, and forgive me for having put you to the
trouble of reading and replying to it. I fancy that overwork
and
long-continued loss of all holidays except Sundays have told
upon
me, and that I must be inclined to take too serious a view of
things.
'Sincerely yours,
'Charles W. Dilke.'
'On June 30th Chamberlain wrote: “Ireland. I heard some days ago
from the Duchess of St. Albans, and replied that we would
certainly
call if anywhere in her neighbourhood” (near Clonmel). “Next
time I
see you we may make some progress with our plans. I have a most
satisfactory letter from Davitt—voluntary on his part, and
assuring
us that United Ireland [Footnote: United Ireland,
then edited by
Mr. William O'Brien and Mr. T. M. Healy, discouraged the
visit.]
does not represent the views of the Nationalist party. See also
an
article in the Nation, and Davitt's own speech at Hyde
Park.
[Footnote: Davitt's leanings were always much stronger towards
English Radicalism than those of most among his colleagues. But
the
decisive attitude was that of Mr. Parnell, whose power was then
paramount, not only in Cork, but throughout all Ireland. He
discussed the project with one of his colleagues, Mr. John
O'Connor,
to whom he expressed the view that Mr. Chamberlain was aspiring
to
replace Mr. Gladstone in the leadership, and that he would do
nothing which could assist him in this purpose, because he
thought
that he “could squeeze more out of Gladstone than he could out
of
Chamberlain.”] I shall reply rather effusively. I cannot
altogether
acquit Parnell of duplicity. I think he fears our visit, and
that we
may cut him out. I am sure that neither he nor anyone else will
succeed in boycotting us. Parnell does not admit this feeling,
but I
am losing confidence in his honesty. We can go to Ashley's and
decline Cork.”' [Footnote: Mr. Evelyn Ashley, who had been
Under-
Secretary of the Colonies in the Gladstone Government, had a
house
and property at Classiebawn in Sligo, which had once belonged
to
Lord Palmerston.]
'I hear very encouraging accounts of the feeling in the country.
I
am assured that we (the Radicals) never held so strong a
position—
that the counties will be swept for the Liberals, and that the
whole
atmosphere of the House of Commons will be changed after
November. I
firmly believe that this is true. A little patience, and we
shall
secure all we have fought for.'
'On June 30th I wrote fully to Mrs. Pattison, who was ill of
typhoid
in the Madras hills, but without my yet knowing it. “I've been
thinking over grave words I would say to you about politics.” I
went
on to say that politics were not to me amusement. “I could not
have
heart to live such a life at all if the religion of life did
not
surround my politics. I chat the chatter about persons and
ambitions
that others chat, and, in my perpetual brain fatigue, shirk the
trouble of trying to put into words thoughts which I fancy you
must
exactly share. How can you share them if you are never shown
they're
there? Dear Lady, please to try and feel, however unable I am
to
express it, that my life is now one, and that there are not
things
to pick among, and things to be cast aside, but duties only,
which
are pleasures in the doing of them well, and which you must
help me
do. It is in old age that power comes. An old man in English
politics may exert enormous power without effort, and with no
drain
at all upon his health and vital force. The work of thirty or
forty
years of political life goes in England to the building-up of
political reputation and position. During that long period no
power
is exercised except by irregular means, such as the use of
threats
of resignation. It is in old age only that power comes that can
be
used legitimately and peacefully by the once-strong man. I'm
still
young enough, and have of illusions yearly crops sufficient to
believe that it can be used for good, and that it is a plain
duty so
to use it, and I would not remain in political life did I not
think
so.”'
After Lord Salisbury had formed, in June, 1885, what was called the 'stop-gap Government,' charged with carrying on business till the General Election fixed for the following winter, the heads of the Liberal party began to mature their plans. It soon became evident that the cardinal fact to be decided was whether Mr. Gladstone should continue to lead. This, again, was found to depend upon the policy adopted in relation to Ireland.
The Irish Question was at the moment in an extraordinary position. Lord Salisbury had appointed Lord Carnarvon, a known sympathizer with Home Rule, as Viceroy. Further, the Tory leaders in the House of Commons were refusing to take any responsibility for the actions of Lord Spencer, which were challenged especially in regard to the verdict upon one of the men sentenced for the Maamtrasna murders. This put Sir Charles and Mr. Chamberlain, who had always disapproved the policy of coercion, in a very difficult position, the more difficult because Mr. Trevelyan, a member of their inner Radical group, was jointly concerned with Lord Spencer to defend these actions.
'On July 4th I received from Maynooth a letter of thanks from
Dr.
Walsh for my congratulations on his appointment to the
Archbishopric
of Dublin, and he expressed the hope that we should meet in
Dublin
when I came over with Chamberlain. On the same day, Saturday,
July
4th, there took place at noon at my office a meeting of
Chamberlain,
Trevelyan, Lefevre, John Morley, and myself, in which we
discussed
the proposed mission of Wolff to Egypt, resolving that we would
oppose it unless the Conservative Government should drop it. We
were
wrong, for it afterwards turned out that they meant evacuation.
Next
the proposed movement on Dongola, which we did not believe to
be
seriously intended; then the proposal to increase the wine
duty,
which I was able to announce (on Foreign Office information)
that I
knew that Lord Salisbury would drop; then the succession
duties,
with regard to which we decided to support a motion to be
brought
forward by Dillwyn; then police enfranchisement, we deciding
that I
was to move an instruction on going into Committee to extend
the
Bill, so as to shorten the period of residence for all
electors.'
'Before we separated we discussed the inquiry proposed by the
Irish
members into the Maamtrasna business. Trevelyan thought that he
was
obliged in honour to speak against inquiry, but we decided that
he
must not press for a division in resistance to the Irish
demand.'
'On Monday, July 6th, I presided over my Royal Commission in the
morning, and in the evening dined at Grillion's Club. In the
afternoon Mr. Gladstone sent for me, and told me that whether
he
would lead that party or would not, at the dissolution, or in
the
new Parliament, would depend on whether the main plank in the
programme was what I called Home Rule or what Chamberlain
called the
National Council scheme, or only the ordinary scheme of Local
Government for all parts of the United Kingdom. If the latter
alone
was to be contemplated, he said that others would suffice for
the
task. Parnell's acquiescence in the Home Rule scheme he thought
essential. If Parnell, having got more from the Tories, was
going to
oppose, he, Mr. Gladstone, could not go on: and he evidently
thought
that I should have the means of discovering what would be
Parnell's
attitude. Parnell had, of course, been for what I believe was
really
his own scheme, suggested to Chamberlain by O'Shea. But he was
now
in league with R. Churchill and Lord Carnarvon. I advised Mr.
Gladstone to deal directly with Parnell, but he said that he
would
not, and I noted in my diary that he and Parnell were equally
tortuous in their methods. Mr. Gladstone, failing me, as he
said,
would deal with Grosvenor and Mrs. O'Shea. But it was clear to
me
that he had already tried this channel.'
'On the next day I received interesting letters from Dr. Walsh
and
Sir Frederick Roberts. The latter completely destroyed the
foolish
War Office plan of preparing for a campaign in the Black Sea,
and
once more laid down the principle that England must go to war
with
Russia rather than permit her to occupy any portion of
Afghanistan
in face of our interest and of our pledge to the contrary.
'Dr. Walsh wrote that in going to Rome he was by no means
determined
to accept the archbishopric. “I am not Archbishop; acceptance
is an
essential point, and I have a view of certain matters to set
before
His Holiness before that stage is reached. I have sent on to
Rome a
written statement of my views, that the matter may be
considered
before I arrive there. I am thoroughly convinced that there is
another position in which I could be far more useful both for
Church
and country. The Archbishopric of Dublin, now that it can be
dealt
with as a purely ecclesiastical matter, can be very easily
provided
for.”
'I suppose that Dr. Walsh wished to be Papal Legate. He went on
to
say:
'“As to the Bishops you should see, I would say, in the South,
as
you begin there, Cashel and Limerick (Cloyne, unfortunately, is
very
deaf; otherwise I should like you to meet him). In the West,
Galway, Elphin, Achonry. In the North, Raphoe (of whom
Mr.
Childers can tell you something), Clogher, Ardagh, Meath, and
Down
and Connor. In this province of Dublin our Bishops are either
very
old or very young in the episcopacy: they could not give you
much
information. All I have mentioned are generally on the popular
side.
Of those on the less popular or nonpopular side, we have Cork,
Kerry, and Coadjutor of Clonfert. Clonfert himself is on
the most
advanced National lines. But his views are rather general. It
might
be well to see him. He is a great admirer of Davitt's.
'“I remain, my dear Sir Charles,
'“Sincerely yours,
'“William J. Walsh.”
'I sent this letter to Chamberlain, who replied that it was very
satisfactory.
'On Saturday, July 11th, we had another meeting of our “party,”
I
again being in the chair, Chamberlain, Lefevre, and John
Morley,
being present, and Trevelyan absent. We decided that
Chamberlain,
Lefevre, and Dilke should see Mr. Gladstone as to the
Maamtrasna
inquiry, in which we were strongly opposed to Spencer. With
regard
to the organization of the Liberal party, which meant the
adoption
of Schnadhorst by the party, Chamberlain, Lefevre, and Dilke,
were
also to see Mr. Gladstone.
'On Saturday evening I went down to Dockett, where I stayed till
Monday, Cyril Flower spending with me the day of Sunday, July
12th.
On Monday, July 13th, I again presided at my Royal Commission,
and
again dined at Grillion's.
'On the same day Chamberlain, Lefevre, and I, saw Mr. Gladstone.
After talking over Maamtrasna, I repeated a statement which
O'Shea
had made to me, namely, that Fottrell [Footnote: Sir Charles,
during
his visit to Dublin, had been much impressed by Mr. Fottrell,
who
had acted as intermediary between the Castle and the
Nationalists
(see p. 140). He wrote to Mrs. Pattison that Mr. Fottrell and
Sir
Robert Hamilton were the only two men who counted in that
city.] had
had a two-hours interview with Randolph Churchill on Home Rule.
I
also informed Mr. Gladstone that O'Shea had shown me a letter
from
Alfred Austin,' (afterwards Poet Laureate) 'a hot Tory
leader-writer
on the Standard, asking to be introduced to Parnell for
the
benefit of the country. Lefevre having gone away, Chamberlain
and I
talked with Mr. Gladstone as to organization. It was decided
that we
should have an interview with him on the subject (Grosvenor to
be
present) the next day.
'I was going out a good deal this week, and on the Wednesday was
at
parties at Lady Salisbury's, at the Austrian Embassy, and at
the
Duchess of Westminster's, and at one of them met Harcourt and
arranged for a meeting on Thursday, July 16th, at my Commission
office in Parliament Street, with Chamberlain and Harcourt, to
discuss Schnadhorst; Harcourt favouring our view that he should
be
adopted by the party, which was done, and the National Liberal
Federation installed at Parliament Street. But the Whips
“captured"
it! On Friday, July 17th, Chamberlain and his son dined with me
to
meet Harcourt and Gray of the Irish party and Freeman's
Journal.
'On Saturday, July 18th, we had our usual cabal, Trevelyan being
again absent, and the same four present as on the previous
Saturday.
We discussed the proposed Royal Commission on the depression of
trade; land purchase, Ireland; party organization; and the land
question.
'On July 22nd I heard from Mr. Gladstone:
'“1, Richmond Terrace,
'“July 21st, 1885.
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“I cannot forbear writing to express the hope that you and
Chamberlain may be able to say or do something to remove the
appearance now presented to the world of a disposition on your
parts
to sever yourselves from the executive, and especially from the
judicial administration of Ireland as it was carried on by
Spencer
under the late Government. You may question my title to attempt
interference with your free action by the expression of such a
hope,
and I am not careful to assure you in this matter or certain
that I
can make good such a title in argument. But we have been for
five
years in the same boat, on most troubled waters, without having
during the worst three years of the five a single man of the
company
thrown overboard. I have never in my life known the
bonds of union
so strained by the pure stress of circumstances; a good intent
on
all sides has enabled them to hold. Is there any reason why at
this
moment they should part? A rupture may come on questions of
future
policy; I am not sure that it will. But if it is to arrive, let
it
come in the course of nature as events develop themselves. At
the
present moment there appears to be set up an idea of difference
about matters which lie in the past, and for which we are all
plenarily responsible. The position is settled in all its
elements,
and cannot be altered. The frightful discredit with which the
new
Government has covered itself by its treatment of Spencer has
drawn
attention away from the signs of at least passive discord among
us,
signs which might otherwise have drawn upon us pretty sharp
criticism. It appears to me that hesitation on the part of any
of us
as to our own responsibility for Spencer's acts can only be
mischievous to the party and the late Cabinet, but will and
must be
far more mischievous to any who may betray such disinclination.
Even
with the Irish party it can, I imagine, do nothing to atone for
past
offences, inasmuch as it is but a negative proceeding; while
from
Randolph, Hicks Beach, and Gorst, positive support is to be had
in
what I cannot but consider a foolish as well as guilty crusade
against the administration of criminal justice in Ireland;
which may
possibly be defective, but, with all its defects, whatever they
may
be, is, I apprehend, the only defence of the life and property
of
the poor. It will be the legislation of the future, and not
this
most unjust attack upon Spencer, which will have to determine
hereafter your relations with Ireland, and the 'National'
party. I
may be wrong, but it seems to me easy, and in some ways
advantageous, to say: 'My mind is open to consider at large any
proposals acceptable to Ireland for the development and
security of
her liberties, but I will not sap the foundations of order and
of
public right by unsettling rules, common to all parties, under
which
criminal justice has been continuously administered, and
dragging
for the first time the prerogative of mercy within the vortex
of
party conflict.' I dare say I may have said too much in the way
of
argument on a matter which seems to me hardly to call for
argument,
but a naked suggestion would have appeared even less
considerate
than the letter which I have written, prompted by strong
feeling and
clear conviction.
'“Yours sincerely,
'“W. E. Gladstone.”
'I sent the letter to Chamberlain, asking whether he thought he
could say at Hackney, where he was about to speak, anything
flattering to Spencer, and he replied: “I am not certain that I
shall say anything about Spencer; at most it would be only a
personal tribute.”'
With these words ends the story of Sir Charles Dilke's official relations with his party.
* * * * *
Looking back on that story, Sir George Trevelyan writes: 'I never knew a man of his age—hardly ever a man of any age—more powerful and admired than was Dilke during his management of the Redistribution Bill in 1885.' This influence had been built up by the long years of sustained work, of which the story has been told in his own words.
He combined two unusual characteristics: he was one of the Radical leaders at home, and he also carried extraordinary authority on the subject of foreign affairs both here and on the Continent.
The depth of his convictions as a Radical is attested by a note to Mr. Frank Hill, [Footnote: Undated, but evidently written about this time.] editor of the Daily News: 'As a man I feel going out on this occasion very much indeed, but Chamberlain and I are trustees for others, and from the point of view of English Radicalism I have no doubt.' Yet Radicalism never fettered his capacity for working with all men for the great questions which are beyond party, and uniting their efforts on big issues of foreign policy.
It was this gift which frequently made him more the spokesman of the House of Commons than of party in Government counsels. The approval of the House of Commons was, in his opinion, essential to the development of foreign policy, and his views as to the undesirability of unnecessary concealment were strong. While recognizing that everything could not be disclosed, he thought that the House of Commons should be in the Government's confidence as far as possible in diplomatic relations, and he looked on the tendency to surround all official proceedings with secrecy as more worthy of a bureaucrat than a statesman. Bismarck, Dilke said in 1876, was the diplomatist of foreign Europe who was never believed because he told the truth. He had no sympathy with the isolation of Great Britain, which had been a feature of our policy during his early career. But when Lord Beaconsfield would have plunged into a war with Russia in 1878, without an ally or a friend, he opposed that policy as suicidal. Of that policy he said at that time: 'English Radicals of the present day do not bound their sympathies by the Channel ... a Europe without England is as incomplete, and as badly balanced, and as heavily weighted against freedom, as that which I, two years ago, denounced to you—a Europe without France. The time may come when England will have to fight for her existence, but for Heaven's sake let us not commit the folly of plunging into war at a moment when all Europe would be hostile to our armies—not one Power allied to the English cause.' [Footnote: Vol. I., Chapter XVI., p. 239.] The keynote of his policy was friendship with France. His experience in the Franco-German War had for ever changed the friendly impression which led him first to follow the German forces into the field.
Germany at war and Germany in a conquered country taught him in 1870-71 a lesson never to be forgotten, and affected his whole attitude to that Great Power. It has been seen how in the eighties he opposed, to the point of contemplated resignation of office, the Governmental tendency to accept German aggression—'to lie down' under it, as he said; and he fought for the retention of the New Guinea Coast and Zanzibar in 1884-85, as later he fought against Lord Salisbury as to the surrender of Heligoland. [Footnote: Present Position of European Politics, p. 242.]
It was this courage as well as consistency of policy that bound Gambetta to him, and made Bismarck wish that he should be sent to Berlin at a critical moment in 1885 'to have a talk.' [Footnote: Life of Lord Granville, vol. ii., p. 439.] Strong men recognize one another.
[Greek: ou thruon, ou malachaen avemos pote, tus de megistas ae druas ae platanous oide chamai katagein.]
[Footnote: It is not the rush or mallow that the wind can lay low, but the largest oaks and plane-trees.]
Lucian in “Anthologia.”
I.
When Mr. Gladstone's Ministry left office in the summer of 1885, there seemed to be in all England no man for whom the future held out more assured and brilliant promise than Sir Charles Dilke. He was still young, not having completed his forty-second year; in the Cabinet only Lord Rosebery was his junior; he had seventeen years of unremitting Parliamentary service to his credit, and in the House of Commons his prestige was extraordinary. His own judgment and that of all skilled observers regarded his party's abandonment of office as temporary: the General Election would inevitably bring them back with a new lease of power, and with an Administration reorganized in such fashion that the Radicals would no longer find themselves overbalanced in the shaping of policy. The Dilke-Chamberlain alliance, which had during the past five years been increasingly influential, would in the next Parliament become openly authoritative; and, as matters looked at the moment, it was Sir Charles, and not Mr. Chamberlain, who seemed likely to take the foremost place.
Chamberlain's dazzling popular success had been of the kind to which a certain unpopularity attaches. Moderate men of both parties were prone to impute it to demagogism, and Dilke was in the fortunate position of seeing those Radical principles for which he stood advocated by his ally with a force of combined invective and argument which has had few parallels in political history, while to him fell the task, suited to his temperament, of reasoned discussion. Those who denounced Chamberlain's vehemence could hardly fail to point a comparison with Dilke's unfailing courtesy, his steady adherence to argument, his avoidance of the appeal to passion. Some strong natures have the quality of making enemies, some the gift for making friends, outside their own immediate circle, and Sir Charles Dilke possessed the more genial endowment.
This capacity for engendering good-will in those whom he encountered certainly did not spring from any undue respect of persons. Members of the Royal Family, whose privileges he had assailed, were constant in their friendliness; high Tories such as Lord Salisbury, whose principles he combated on every platform, liked him, and were not slow to show it. On the other hand, the friendship which Sir Charles inspired did not proceed, as is sometimes the case, from a mere casual bounty of nature. In Parliament his colleagues liked him, but this, assuredly, was not without cause. No member of the Ministry had given so much service outside his own department. Lord Granville wrote at this time: 'I have not seen you alone since the smash, or I should have told you how much I feel the support you have given me both when we were together at the F.O. and quite as much since. I shall not soon forget it.' Sir William Harcourt at the Home Office, Sir Henry James in the conduct of the Corrupt Practices Bill, had been beholden to him for no ordinary assistance. Moreover, as he was good to work with, so he was good to work under. Those who served him at the Local Government Board remember him as in no way prompt to praise; but if a suggestion was made to him, he never failed to identify it with the suggester, recognizing its source in adopting it. If he made a mistake and was set right, he admitted his error—a trait very rare in Ministers, who feel that they have constantly as amateurs to direct the decision of experts, and are therefore chary of such admissions. Sir Charles always gave his men their due, and he took care that they should not be treated as machines. When colleagues called on him at his office, and found him with one of his staff, he never allowed the subordinate to be ignored in greetings. The Minister in a hurry would be stopped with, 'I think you know So-and-so.' These are small matters to set down, but by such small things men indicate their nature; and one of the oldest servants in that office summed up the matter in a sentence which is not the less interesting because it brings in another name. 'When Sir Charles Dilke was at the Local Government Board,' he said, 'the feeling towards the President, from the heads of departments down to the messengers in the hall, was the same as it was in the time of Mr. Walter Long, and I can say no more than that.'
Nobody, perhaps, has a better right to be counted fortunate than a man who can feel that he is strong, that he is liked, and that he is successfully promoting principles of government for his fellow-countrymen in which he sincerely believes. In July, 1885, Sir Charles Dilke had all these grounds for satisfaction, and in no common measure. Of course there were anxieties, politically speaking; Mr. Gladstone's future course of action was uncertain, and Mr. Gladstone was so great a force that he might at any time derange all calculations—as, in point of fact, he did. Still, time was on the side of the Radicals, and from day to day they held what they called 'cabals' of the group formed by Chamberlain, Shaw-Lefevre, Trevelyan, Morley, and Dilke himself. At these meetings Sir Charles regularly presided.
The work of the Commission on Housing was in its last stages; its chairman was able to announce on July 1st, when laying the foundation-stone of some artisans' dwellings in Hoxton, that the Commission's Bill would be introduced in the Lords by Lord Salisbury, and that he himself would have charge of it in the Commons. For a man who had so laboured during the past five years such duties as these were child's play, and Sir Charles was able for the first time for many months to take his share in social enjoyments. He dined repeatedly at Grillion's; he went to parties at famous houses both of his political allies and political opponents; above all, he found time for restful days upon his beloved river. He went to Henley in that July with his old rowing comrade Steavenson 'to see Bristowe's fine Trinity Hall eight'; he spent Sunday, July 12th, at Dockett in company with Mr. Cyril Flower; and for the next Sunday, the 19th, he was engaged to be at Taplow Court with Mr. W. H. Grenfell, famous among oarsmen. But of that day more has to be written.
Throughout the month one dark cloud had hung over him: Mrs. Pattison was grievously ill in the Madras hills, and not until the fourth week in July did he know even the nature of her illness. It was typhoid, and it left her weak to face what had to come, like a 'bolt from the blue,' upon her and her future husband. Her first marriage had brought her discipline rather than happiness; now in the middle years of life her vivid nature was blossoming out again in the promise of union with a man before whom there lay open an illustrious career. Illness struck her down, and while she lay convalescent there came to her as black a message as ever tried the heart of any woman.
* * * * *
II.
On the evening of Saturday, July 18th, Sir Charles Dilke was entertained at a dinner given by the Reform Club—a very rare distinction—to celebrate the passing of the Redistribution Bill into law. From this ceremony, which crowned and recognized his greatest personal achievement, he returned late, and found at his house a letter from an old family friend who asked him to call on the following Sunday morning on grave business. He then learnt that the wife of a Liberal member of Parliament had volunteered a 'confession' to her husband, in which she stated that she had been unfaithful to him with Sir Charles immediately after her marriage.
His note in his private diary on Sunday is: '19th.—Early heard of the charge against me. Put myself in hands of J. B. Balfour, and afterwards of Chamberlain and James.'
Later Sir Charles Dilke went down to Taplow, and spent the day there. This accusation found him separated from his future wife by many thousand miles; worse than that, she had been dangerously ill; the risk to her of a telegraphed message must be great; yet there was the chance from day to day that newspaper rumour might anticipate direct tidings from him to her. He was 'in as great misery as perhaps ever fell upon a man.'
He returned next morning to preside at the last meeting of the Commission on Housing, when, he says, 'the Prince of Wales proposed a vote of thanks to me in an extremely cordial speech.' From that attitude of friendliness the future King Edward never departed.
'I had a dinner-party in the evening, which was one of several
in
preparation for our Ward meetings in Chelsea, which I had to
continue to hold in spite of my private miseries.
'I was engaged on the one night for which none of these dinners
had
been fixed to dine with Lord and Lady Salisbury, and to attend
the
Princess of Wales's Ball at Marlborough House, and I wrote to
put
off my engagements, for which I was much blamed; but I think
that I
was right.'
For three or four days Sir Henry James, Mr. Chamberlain, and Mr. J. B. Balfour, the Lord Advocate of Mr. Gladstone's Ministry, moved to secure a court of inquiry which would act without prejudice to the right of legal action. But within the week it was certain that public proceedings would be taken.
The blow had come suddenly; it came with dramatic incidence at the moment when Sir Charles's prestige was most effectively recognized; and from the moment that it fell he knew that the whole tenor of his life was altered. On Thursday, July 23rd, four days afterwards, he wrote in his Diary of the time this judgment:
'Left for the last time the House of Commons, where I have
attained
some distinction. It is curious that only a week ago
Chamberlain and
I had agreed, at his wish and suggestion, that I should be the
future leader, as being more popular in the House, though less
in
the country, than he was, and that only three days ago Mr.
Gladstone
had expressed the same wish. Such a charge, even if disproved,
which
is not easy against perjured evidence picked up with care, is
fatal
to supreme usefulness in politics. In the case of a public man
a
charge is always believed by many, even though disproved, and I
should be weighted by it through life. I prefer, therefore, at
once
to contemplate leaving public life.'
Upon the first sentence of this he added in a marginal note, written after his marriage with Mrs. Mark Pattison, and after he had, in spite of that first decision, returned to the House of Commons: 'Chamberlain overpersuaded Emilia, and, through her, me, but he was wrong.'
Of honourable ambition Sir Charles Dilke had as much as any man. Yet in the innermost record of these days—in those letters which, not yet daring to despatch them, he wrote to his future wife—there is not a hint of his personal loss, not a word of the career that he saw broken. These things had no place in the rush of feeling which overwhelmed him, and left him for the moment unable to trust his own judgment or assert his own will.
Through the months of Mrs. Pattison's absence in India one note had been constant in his letters—the reiterated anticipation of what he hoped to bring her. Up to the middle of July his letters, apart from the news of his daily life, are filled with joyful forecast, not of his own happiness, but of his and hers together—of his happiness in seeing her happy. When the stroke fell, the note, even though it changed, was the same in essence: 'I feel this may kill you—and it will kill me either if it kills you or if you don't believe me.'
That was written down within an hour after he had the news. Never afterwards did he consider the possibility of her failing him.
The next day he wrote:
'Taplow Court, Taplow,
July 20th.
'The only thing I can do in future is to devote myself entirely
to
you and helping in your work. To that the remainder of
my life
must be dedicated. I fancy you will have the courage to believe
me
whatever is by madness and malevolence brought against me....'
He wrote again:
'The less you turn from me, and the more you are true—and of
course
you will be all true ... —the more misery and not the less is
it to
me to bring these horrors on you. This thing is not true, but
none
the less do I bring these horrors on you.'
So desperate was the tumult in Sir Charles Dilke's mind that Mr. Chamberlain strove to tranquillize him by a change of scene. Some spot, such as is to be found in Sir Charles's own holiday land of Provence, at first occurred to his friend, though this would have meant the cancelling of all Mr. Chamberlain's public engagements at that most critical moment in politics. But Sir Charles instead went down to Highbury, where he passed his days much in the open air, playing lawn tennis and riding with his host's son, Mr Austen Chamberlain.
Here he rapidly came back to something of his normal self. As news had been telegraphed of Mrs. Pattison's gradual recovery, it was decided to inform her of what had happened. Mr. Chamberlain undertook the delicate task of wording the communications. She telegraphed back at once that full assurance of her trust and of her loyalty on which Sir Charles had counted. But it was characteristic of her not to stop there. A telegram from Mrs. Pattison to the Times announcing her engagement to Sir Charles Dilke immediately followed on public intimation of the proceedings for divorce. Lord Granville wrote to Sir Charles: 'I wish you joy most sincerely. The announcement says much for the woman whom you have chosen.'
Yet days were to come when the storm was so fierce about Sir Charles Dilke and 'the woman whom he had chosen' that few cared to face it in support of the accused man and the wife who had claimed her share in his destiny.
When those days came, they found no broken spirit to meet them. Through his affections, and only through his affections, this man could be driven out of his strongholds of will and judgment; when that inner life was assured, he faced the rest with equanimity. He writes:
'August 28th.—I continue to be much better in health and
spirit.
I was five and a half weeks more or less knocked over; I am
strong
and well, and really happy in you and for you, and confident
and all
that you could wish me to be these last few days.'
Mrs. Pattison, before she left Ceylon on her way to England, sent him a telegram, the reply to which was written to meet her at Port Said: 'Nothing ever made me so happy.... Though it has been a frightful blow, I am well now; and the blow was only a blow to me because of you.'
At first sympathy and support were proffered in ample measure. On being formally notified of proceedings in the divorce case, he wrote at once a letter to the Liberal Association of Chelsea, in which he declared that the charge against him was untrue and that he looked forward with confidence to the result of a judicial inquiry; but at the same time he offered to withdraw his candidature for the seat at the forthcoming election, if the Council thought him in the circumstances an undesirable candidate. To this offer the Council replied by reiterating their confidence in him. About the same time, yielding to Chamberlain's advice, he returned to the House of Commons while the Housing Bill was in Committee, and took part in the proceedings as usual.
The Prince of Wales, to whom he communicated news of his engagement before the public announcement, wrote warm congratulations and wishes for dispersal of the overhanging trouble. Mr. Gladstone, who had frequent occasion to write to him on public business, in one of these political letters added congratulations on the engagement, though he had made no allusion to the Divorce Court proceedings. But Mr. Gladstone's chief private secretary, Sir Edward Hamilton, had written at the first publication of them this assurance:
'You may depend upon it that your friends (among whom I hope I
may
be counted) are feeling for you and will stand by you; and, if
I am
not mistaken, I believe your constituents will equally befriend
you;
indeed, I am convinced that the masses are much more fair and
just
than the upper classes. Anything that interfered with your
political
career would not only be a political calamity, but a national
one;
and I do not for a moment think that any such interference need
be
apprehended.'
This letter represented the attitude that was generally observed towards Sir Charles Dilke by political associates till after the first trial.
Mr. Chamberlain's support was unwavering, though there were some who anticipated that the misfortunes of the one man might disastrously affect the political career of the other.
It is true that by the amazing irony of fate which interpenetrated this whole situation the Tories gained in Mr. Chamberlain their most powerful ally, and that Sir Charles had to encounter all the accumulated prejudice which the 'unauthorized programme' had gathered in Tory bosoms. But none of these things could be foreseen when Chamberlain, then in the full flood of his Radical propaganda, invited Sir Charles to make his temporary home at Highbury. Here, accordingly, he stayed on through August and the early part of September, breaking his stay only by two short absences. There still lived on at Chichester old Mr. Dilke's brother, a survivor of the close-knit family group, preserving the same intense affectionate interest in Charles Dilke's career. To him this blow was mortal. Sir Charles paid him in the close of August his yearly visit: ten days later he was recalled to attend the old man's funeral in the Cathedral cloisters.
In the middle of September he crossed to France, and waited at Saint Germain for Mrs. Pattison, who reached Paris in the last days of the month. On October 1st Sir Charles crossed to London; she followed the next day, and on the 3rd they were married at Chelsea Parish Church. Mr. Chamberlain acted as best man.
III.
Return to England meant a return to work. The General Election was fixed for November; and from August onwards Dilke had been drawn back by correspondents and by consultations with Chamberlain into the stream of politics, which then ran broken and turbulent with eddies and cross-currents innumerable. Chamberlain, sustaining alone the advanced campaign, wrote even before the marriage to solicit help at the earliest moment; and from October onwards the two Radicals were as closely associated as ever—but with a difference. Circumstances had begun the work of Sir Charles's effacement.
When the election came, his success was personal; London went against the Liberals, his old colleague Mr. Firth failed, so did Mr. George Russell in another part of the borough, which was now split into several constituencies; but Chelsea itself stood to its own man. The elections were over on December 19th. Before that date it was apparent that the Irish party held the balance of power, and Mr. Gladstone had already indicated his acceptance of Home Rule. [Footnote: Chapter XLV., p. 196.]
Parliament met early, and by January 28th, 1886, the Tory Government had resigned. Mr. Gladstone, in framing his new Administration, thought it impossible to include a man suffering under a charge yet untried, and wrote:
'February 2nd, 1886
'My Dear Dilke,
'I write you, on this first day of my going regularly to my
arduous
work, to express my profound regret that any circumstances of
the
moment should deprive me of the opportunity and the hope of
enlisting on behalf of a new Government the great capacity
which you
have proved in a variety of spheres and forms for rendering
good and
great service to Crown and country.
'You will understand how absolutely recognition on my part of an
external barrier is separate from any want of inward
confidence, the
last idea I should wish to convey.
'Nor can I close without fervently expressing to you my desire
that
there may be reserved you a long and honourable career of
public
distinction.
'Believe me always,
'Yours sincerely,
'W. E. Gladstone.'
Less than a fortnight later the divorce case was heard: the charge against Sir Charles was dismissed with costs, the Judge saying expressly that there was no case for him to answer.
The Prime Minister's attitude made it inevitable that while the case was untried Sir Charles should be excluded from the new Ministry; but not less inevitably his position before the world was prejudiced by that exclusion. Had Parliament met, as it usually meets, in February; had the whole thing so happened that the judgment had been given before the Ministry came to be formed, exclusion would have been all but impossible. We may take it that Mr. Chamberlain would have insisted on Sir Charles's inclusion as a condition of his own adherence; it would have been to the interest of every Gladstonian and of every follower of Chamberlain to maintain the judgment. As it was, the effect of Sir Charles's exclusion had been to prepare the way for a vehement campaign directed against him by a section of the Press.
By the law a wife's confession of misconduct is evidence against herself, entitling the husband to a divorce; but if unsupported by other witnesses it is no evidence against the co-respondent. But a question arose which afterwards became of capital importance. Should Sir Charles go into the witness-box, deny on oath the unsworn charges made against him, and submit himself to cross-examination? His counsel decided that there was no evidence to answer; they did not put their client into the box, and the course was held by the Judge to be the correct one.
In reply to the Attorney-General's representation that there was no case whatever which Sir Charles Dilke was called to answer, Mr. Justice Butt said that he could not see the shadow of a case. In his judgment he said: 'A statement such as has been made by the respondent in this case is not one of those things which in common fairness ought for one moment to be weighed in the balance against a person in the position of Sir Charles Dilke. Under these circumstances, I have no hesitation whatever in saying that counsel have been well advised in suggesting the course which they have induced Sir Charles Dilke to take, and the petition, as against him, must be dismissed with costs.'
Dilke himself notes: 'On Friday, February 12th, the trial took place, and lasted but a short time, Sir Henry James and Sir Charles Russell not putting me into the box, and Sir Charles Butt almost inviting them to take that course. Lord Granville had written to me: “Will you forgive my intruding two words of advice? Put yourself unreservedly into the hands of someone who, like our two law officers, unites sense with knowledge of the law.” I had done this, and had throughout acted entirely through James, Russell, and Chamberlain. In court and during the remainder of the day, Chamberlain, James, and Russell, were triumphant....'
For the moment it seemed as if misfortune had ended in triumph. Congratulations poured in upon both Sir Charles and his wife; the official leaders welcomed the judgment. Mr. Chamberlain sent an express message to Downing Street: 'Case against Dilke dismissed with costs, but the petitioner has got his divorce against his wife.' Mr. Gladstone answered: 'My dear Chamberlain, I have received your prompt report with the utmost pleasure.' Sir William Harcourt wrote direct:
'Dear Dilke,—So glad to hear of the result and of your relief
from
your great trouble.—Yours ever, W. V. H.'
Lady Dilke's friends wrote to her, congratulating her on the reward that her courage and her loyalty had reaped.
But in Sir Charles's Diary of that date, where notes of any personal character are few indeed, this is written on the day after the case was heard, in comment on the action of a certain section of the Press:
'Renewed attempt to drive me out of public life. But I won't go
now.
In July I said to Emilia and to Chamberlain: “Here is the whole
truth—and I am an innocent man; but let me go out quietly, and
some
day people will be sorry and I shall recover a different sort
of
usefulness.” They would not let me go. Now I won't go.'
A man other than innocent would have rested on the strong judgment in his favour and let agitation die down, but the attacks continued and Dilke would not wait their passing. Chamberlain was included in these attacks, 'for having kept me out of the box,' and wrote in reply to Sir Charles: 'I was only too glad to be able in any way to share your burdens, and if I can act as a lightning conductor, so much the better.... Of course, if you were quite clear that you ought to go into the box, it is still possible to do so, either by action for libel or probably by intervention of the Queen's Proctor.'
'This was the first suggestion made to me of any possibility of a rehearing of the case ... and though Hartington, James, and Russell, were all under the impression that I should find no further difficulty, it was the course which I ultimately took,' and which he pressed on with characteristic tenacity. And here laymen may be permitted to marvel at the fallibility of eminent lawyers. 'No one, of all these great lawyers,' foresaw the position in which he would be placed as a result of his application. Yet from the moment that this procedure was adopted it was possible that he might be judged without those resources of defence which are open to the meanest subject charged with an offence.
In March Sir Charles Dilke applied to the Queen's Proctor for his intervention in order that the case might be reheard. The application failed. In April he moved again, this time by a public letter, and this time the Queen's Proctor yielded. Application was made in the Court of Probate and Divorce to the President, Sir James Hannen, that Sir Charles Dilke should be made a party to the intervention or reinstated in the suit.
The President laid down that Sir Charles was no party to the suit, and had now no right to appear except as a witness, and might not be represented by counsel. The question was then taken to the Court of Appeal, but, on strictly technical grounds, the Court held that Sir Charles was no longer a party, and that he could not be allowed to intervene. Thus the first judgment, by declaring him innocent and awarding him costs as one unjustly accused, led straight to his undoing. He had been struck out of the case; he was now a mere member of the general public. There never were, probably, legal proceedings in which from first to last law and justice were more widely asunder.
Sir Charles Dilke was, in fact, in the position from which Sir Henry James had sought to protect him—the position described in the course of his pleading for reinstatement:
'I have no desire to put forward any claim for my client other
than
one founded on justice, but I cannot imagine a more cruel
position
than that in which Sir Charles Dilke would be placed in having
a
grave charge against him tried while the duty of defending his
interest was committed to hands other than those of his own
advisers.'
The consequences which flowed from the technical construction put upon the situation were these: In reality Sir Charles Dilke was the defendant on trial for his political life and his personal honour. Yet although Sir Henry James and Sir Charles Russell were there in court ready briefed, neither was allowed to speak. Dilke's case against his accuser had to be dealt with by the counsel for the Queen's Proctor, Sir Walter Phillimore, who, though a skilled ecclesiastical lawyer, was comparatively inexperienced in the cross-examination of witnesses and in Nisi Prius procedure, and was opposed by Mr. Henry Matthews, the most skilled cross-examiner at the bar. Sir Walter Phillimore also stated publicly, and properly, that it was not his 'duty to represent and defend Sir Charles Dilke.' So strictly was this view acted upon that Sir Charles did not once meet Sir Walter Phillimore in consultation; and witnesses whom he believed to be essential to his case were never called. But that was not all. According to the practice of that court, all the information given by Dilke was at once communicated to the other side; but as Sir Charles was not a party to the suit, the Queen's Proctor did not communicate to him what he learned from that other side.
In an ordinary trial the witnesses of the accusers are heard first. And this order is recognized as giving the greatest prospect of justice, since if the defence is first disclosed the accuser may adjust details in the charge so as, at the last moment, to deprive the defence of that fair-play which the first order of hearing is designed to secure. The only possible disproof which Sir Charles could offer was an alibi. It was of vital importance to him that the accusation should be fixed to dates, places, days, hours, even minutes, with the utmost possible precision. Then he might, even after the lapse of years, establish the falsity of a charge by proof that he was elsewhere at the time specified. But in this case, owing to the form that the proceedings took, the opportunity which of right belongs to the defence was given to the accuser. The accusation being technically brought by the Queen's Proctor, who alleged that the divorce had been obtained by false evidence, Sir Charles Dilke was produced as his witness, and had at the beginning of the proceedings to disclose his defence.
Further, and even more important, the issue put to the jury was limited in the most prejudicial way.
'On the former occasion,' said Sir James Hannen, 'it was for the
petitioner to prove that his wife had committed adultery with
Sir
Charles Dilke.' (This, as has been seen, the petitioner failed
to
prove against Sir Charles Dilke; the petitioner had to pay Sir
Charles's costs.) 'On this occasion it is for the Queen's
Proctor to
prove that the respondent did not commit adultery with Sir
Charles
Dilke.'
How this negative was to be proved in any circumstances it is difficult to see, and under the conditions Sir Charles had no chance to attack the accusation brought against him.
Sir Charles's own comment in his Diary of the time was:
'July 16th—My case tried again. I not a party,
and—though really
tried by a kind of Star Chamber—not represented, not allowed
to
cross-examine, not allowed to call witnesses; and under such
circumstances the trial could have but one result, which was
that
the jury, directed to decide if they were in doubt that the
Queen's
Proctor had not established his case, would take that negative
course. The trial lasted from Friday, 16th, to Friday, 23rd,
inclusive, and the jury decided, as they could not have helped
deciding, and as I should have decided had I been one of them.'
The situation may be thus summed up:
In the first trial the petitioner failed to produce any legal evidence whatever of the guilt of Sir Charles Dilke; in the second the Queen's Proctor failed to prove his innocence. [Footnote: Technically the verdict, by dismissing the Queen's Proctor's intervention, confirmed the original judgment, which dismissed Sir Charles from the case.]
The verdict of the jury at the second trial was not a verdict of Guilty against Sir Charles; it was a declaration that his innocence was not proven, the question put to the Jury by the clerk after their return into Court following the words of the Act of Parliament, and being whether the decree nisi for the dissolution of the marriage of the petitioner and the respondent was obtained contrary to the justice of the case by reason of material facts not being brought to the knowledge of the Court. The Jury's answer followed the same words. [Footnote: See report in Daily News, Saturday, July 24th, 1886.] When we add to that the conditions under which the question was tried, we see that they were such as to make the proof of innocence impossible.
Those about Sir Charles at this time remember how even at that bitter moment he began to look round for any method by which his case might be reheard. He wrote to Sir Henry James that it would be a proper course for himself to invite a trial for perjury; and though Lady Dilke was so ill 'from sick and sleepless nights' that she had been ordered at once to Royat, he waited for three weeks before accompanying her abroad, to give time for action to be taken, and wrote to Sir Richard Webster (then Attorney-General) practically inviting a prosecution.
He did not abandon hope of a rehearing, and worked for many years in the trust that the evidence accumulated by himself and his friends might be so used, nor did he cease his efforts till counsel in consultation finally assured him 'that no means were open to Sir Charles Dilke to retry his case.'
Sir Eyre Crowe, a friend valued for his own as well as for his father's sake (Sir Joseph Crowe, to whom Sir Charles was much attached), wrote at the time of Sir Charles's death: 'How he bore for long years the sorrow and misfortunes of his lot had something heroic about it. I only once talked to him about these things, and was intensely struck by his Roman attitude.' It was the only attitude possible to such a man. Placed by his country's laws in the situation of one officially acquitted by a decision which was interpreted into a charge of guilt; forced then, in defence of his honour, into the position of a defendant who is debarred from means of defence; assured after long effort that no legal means were open to him to attempt again that defence, he solemnly declared his innocence, and was thereafter silent.
'By-and-by it will be remembered that as a fact the issue was never fairly represented and never fairly met,' was the estimate of Sir Francis Jeune, afterwards President of the Divorce Court. And from the first there were many lawyers and thinking men and women who would have endorsed it. From the first also there were those who believed Sir Charles's word. Among such faithful friends, Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, Sir Robert Collins, Mr. Cyril Flower, Mrs. Westlake and Mr. Westlake, Q.C., Mr. Thursfield of the Times, Mr. Chamberlain, Sir Francis and Lady Jeune, Sir Charles's old college friend Judge Steavenson, stand out in memory. He himself says: 'I received after the trial ... a vast number of letters from people who wrote to express their belief in me. Some, as, for example, from Dr. Hatch' (the eminent Oxford theologian) 'and his wife, and from Dr. Percival, Head-master of Rugby, [Footnote: Dr. Percival was President of Trinity College, Oxford, till 1887, when he went to Rugby. He became Bishop of Hereford.] and his wife, were from firm friends of Emilia, brought to me by their belief in her; some from friends, some from political foes, of all sorts—all breathing confidence and devotion.'
Mr. Chamberlain wrote: 'I feel bitterly my powerlessness to do or say anything useful at the present time.' In such a case the testimony of intimates is weighty, and Sir John Gorst sent in June, 1913, his recollection of words used by Mr. Chamberlain in the autumn of 1886: 'I assure you that, as a man of honour, I don't believe the charges made against him. If you had been in and out of his house at all times as I have been, you would see they were impossible.'
Then as now there existed a certain body of opinion which would have discriminated between a man's private honour and his public usefulness, holding that the nation which throws aside a great public servant because of charges of personal immorality is confusing issues, and sacrificing the country's welfare to private questions. Whatever is to be said for this view, it was one to which Sir Charles Dilke wished to owe nothing. He did not share it, and those whose adherence he acknowledged were those who believed his word. From different sources, then, Sir Charles had found confidence and support, but they were small stay in that gradually accumulating torrent of misfortune.
As the Press campaign had developed in the spring, he found himself avoided in Parliament and in society. In the House, where a few months before he had again and again been the Government spokesman and representative, he was retired into the ranks of private members. This short Parliament of 1886 came to an end in June, and, in the General Election which followed, London went solidly against Home Rule; and Sir Charles, though as compared with other Gladstonian Liberals he did well, found himself rejected by the constituency which had stood by him in four contests. Such a reverse occurs in the life of almost every prominent politician, and, though harassing, is of no determining import. For Sir Charles Dilke at this moment it was a cruel blow. The personal discredit against which he had to fight coincided with the discredit of his party; and when the jury came to their decision in July, after a week in which the newspapers had been filled daily with columns of scandalous detail, public feeling assumed a character of bitter personal hostility.
'Sir Charles's fall,' says the chronicler of that period, Mr. Justin McCarthy, 'is like that of a tower. He stood high above every rising English statesman, and but for what has happened he must have been Prime Minister after Gladstone.' [Footnote: This article appeared in a Canadian journal after the second trial.]
[Footnote: This chapter and the next cover the same dates as the preceding chapter, which contains the record of other than political events, while these deal with the political history of the time.]
The period between July, 1885, and July, 1886, determined the course of English history for a generation. At the beginning of this period, Sir Charles Dilke was one of the three men on the Liberal side who, after Mr. Gladstone, counted most, and he commanded more general approval than either Chamberlain or Hartington. But from the first rumour of his personal misfortune his influence rapidly dwindled; when the period closed, many of those who had been his political associates had left him, and from Mr. Chamberlain, in political life, he was irretrievably sundered.
In July, 1885, the much-talked-of visit of the Radical leaders to Ireland was abandoned, owing, it appears, to the change in Sir Charles's personal fortunes. Meanwhile the first-fruits of the Tory alliance with Parnellism had begun to appear, and on July 21st Mr. Gladstone had made, as has been seen, [Footnote: See p.158] a powerful appeal to his Radical colleagues for support of Lord Spencer—addressing it, after his invariable custom, to Dilke. It was the last time that he did so, and he wrote then without knowledge of the blow which had already fallen on Sir Charles.
In the end Mr. Gladstone's appeal was disregarded, and, when Lord Spencer's policy was assailed in the House, the Press noted the significant absence of Dilke and Chamberlain from the front bench. It would have been more significant had not Sir Charles been then engrossed with his personal concerns. Not until the last days of August was he 'sufficiently recovered from the blow to be able to take some interest in politics'; and then it was merely to take an interest, not to take a part. Yet already the crucial question for Liberal policy had begun to define itself.
On August 24th, Parnell, speaking in Ireland, declared that the one plank in Ireland's platform was National independence. In reply, Lord Hartington, speaking at Waterfoot in Lancashire, declared his confidence that no British party would concede Parnell's demand. But Lord Hartington did not confine his speech to this
'A speech by Hartington in Lancashire read to Chamberlain and
myself
like a declaration of war against the unauthorized programme
and its
author; and when Rosebery wrote to me to congratulate me on my
coming marriage, I replied in this sense. I had a good deal of
correspondence with James as to what should be the nature of
Chamberlain's reply at Warrington on Tuesday, September 8th,
James
trying to patch up things: “The ransom theory [Footnote: Mr.
Chamberlain on January 29th, 1885, at Birmingham: “I hold that
the
sanctity of public property is greater than even that of
private
property, and that, if it has been lost or wasted or stolen,
some
equivalent must be found for it, and some compensation may
fairly be
exacted from the wrongdoer.” See Chapter XXXVIII., p. 105.]
startled
a good many people, and dissent from it was to be expected. But
surely such dissent does not cause a man to be unfit to be in
the
Liberal ranks....” James also sent me a memorandum from which I
extracted the following sentence: “If it be once introduced as
an
admitted principle that no man can take office without
stipulating
for the success of every question to which he may have given a
support, and if every man in Government is to be bound to
reject all
concessions to those with whom he has on any point ever
differed,
the practical constitution of this country would be
overthrown....”
On September 5th Chamberlain had received a letter from
Harcourt
which I afterwards considered with him “I set store by your
declaration that you will try to be as moderate as you can. You
have
no idea how moderate you can be till you try. I am not the
least
despondent about the state of affairs. The Liberal party has a
Pentecostian gift of tongues, and the Parthians, Medes,
Elamites,
and others, require to have the gospel preached to them in very
different languages.... I suppose that Bosebery reported to you
his
phrase that 'he had expressed himself on the land question more
clumsily even than usual!' It is impossible to be angry with
such
frankness....”'
Lord Rosebery had written at the same time to Sir Charles that the real trouble arose from 'clumsiness of arrangement,' and quoted Lord Hartington's words as accepting this view.
'John Morley wrote also on September 4th to Chamberlain that
Goschen
was rather wrathful that Hartington should be so slow and
infrequent
in speaking while he, Chamberlain, was so active, but that he
did
not believe Hartington meant war.'
None adverted to the difficulty, which was nevertheless the central one, of reaching an agreement concerning an Irish policy. Mr. Morley was right when he said that there was not going to be 'war' in the Liberal party over questions of English reform. The question which was to split the party was Ireland, and Chamberlain in his Warrington speech joined Hartington in repudiating Parnell's demand. But Mr. Chamberlain saw what Lord Hartington did not, that a Liberal party must have a positive policy, and his conception of a Liberal policy during these months was to force the pace on social questions and leave Ireland alone.
At these critical moments of August and September, 1885, Sir Charles was a guest in Mr. Chamberlain's house, and was in consultation with him; but it was a consultation to which one of the two brought a mind preoccupied with his own most vital concerns. Scarcely a month had gone by since the petition had been filed, in July, 1885; much less than a month since he had been on the very edge of a complete breakdown. He had been dragged back, almost against his will and against his judgment, into political life by that imperious personality with which he had been so long associated in equal comradeship. Under the old conditions Sir Charles and Mr. Chamberlain would have inevitably influenced each other's action, and it is at least possible that Sir Charles's gift for bringing men together and concentrating on essentials might have altered the whole course of events. But it is clear, from what followed later, that under the conditions which existed there was no thorough discussion between them, since the line which Sir Charles took on Ireland when the dividing of the ways came was a surprise to his friend.
'On September 10th, 1885, there came a letter from Mr.
Gladstone,
addressed to Chamberlain and myself. Chamberlain replied, after
consultation, in our joint names.'
They developed their views as to their programme of English as distinct from Irish reforms.
'Mr. Gladstone wished to issue an address (to his constituents
with
a view to the General Election), and had got Hartington to ask
him
to do so, and he now wanted us also to ask him. We stipulated
that
we must have (1) power to local authorities to take land for
housing, allotments, and so forth, and (2) free schools:
otherwise,
while we could not object to his issuing his own address, we
could
not offer to support or join a future Government.'
'On the 15th Chamberlain wrote to me to Paris that he gathered
Mr.
G. intended to issue immediately, without waiting his reply.'
He would write, however, asking for further allusions to compulsory powers for taking land, and asked Sir Charles to write direct about registration.
On September 20th Mr. Chamberlain wrote again, enclosing a copy of his letter to Mr. Gladstone, and stating his opinion that the manifesto was bad, and that he regarded it, especially the part referring to free schools and education, [Footnote: Mr. Gladstone was never at any time in harmony with the views of the more advanced section of his own party on education. See the account of the curious controversy between him and Lord Russell during the last days of the latter's leadership of the Liberal party (Life of Granville, vol. i., pp. 516, 517).] as a slap in the face to himself and Sir Charles. He added that he had written frankly to Mr. Gladstone, telling him that he was dissatisfied, and expressed his opinion that Mr. Gladstone would give way, and that his reign could not last long. Through the somewhat involved phraseology of Mr. Gladstone's letter, it seemed possible to extract some hope in regard to extra powers for local authorities, and a revision of taxation in favour of the working classes. He concluded by saying that if his party could get a majority, he would make their terms on joining the Government, and regretting that Sir Charles was not still staying with him.
The letter to Mr. Gladstone spoke of the manifesto as a blow to the Radical party, and went on to say that, in the event of the Liberal party returning in full power to office, he would offer loyal support, as far as possible, to any Government that might be formed, but that the joining any Administration formed on the narrow basis of the programme now presented would be impossible. It ended with the words: 'Dilke has left me, but, from a letter I have received from him, I am justified in saying that he shares my views.'
'I told Chamberlain that in my first speech (and I had two to
make
shortly after my proposed marriage in October) I intended to
attack
Reform of the House of Lords from the Single Chamber point of
view.'
He replied urging Sir Charles to give this question prominence and importance, and to do so in the name of the Radical Party, as expressing their policy, for fear that even Radical candidates should be under some misapprehension. He also authorized him to use his (Mr. Chamberlain's) name, as concurring in the views expressed.
'On the 25th I received a letter from Chamberlain containing Mr.
Gladstone's reply:
'“My Dear Chamberlain,
'“Were I engaged (which Heaven forfend) in the formation of a
new
Liberal Government, and were your letter of yesterday an answer
to
some invitation to join it, then I should have read the
letter
with great regret; but I pointed out to you (as I think), in a
previous letter, that it would (as far as I could judge) be an
entire mistake to lay down a credo of Liberal policy for
a new
Government at the present juncture. You and Hartington were
both
demurring in opposite senses, and I made to each the same
reply. My
aim was for the election only, in giving form to my address. As
to
what lies beyond, I suppose the party will, so far as it has a
choice, set first about the matters on which it is agreed. But
no
one is bound to this proposition.
'“Bright once said, with much force and sense, that the average
opinion of the party ought to be the rule of immediate action.
'“It is likely that there may be a split in the party in the far
or
middle distance, but I shall have nothing to do with it, and
you, I
am sure, do not wish to anticipate it or force it on. What I
have
said may, I hope, mitigate any regret such as you seem to
intimate.
'“I am at present busy on private affairs and papers, to which
for
six years past I have hardly given one continuous hour. Later
on I
should like much to explain to you my personal views and
intentions
in conversation. It would be difficult to do so in writing.
They
turn very much upon Ireland—the one imperial question that
seems at
present possible to be brought into immediate view. But, for
Liberals generally, I should have thought that there was work
enough
for three or four years on which they might all agree. So far
as my
observation and correspondence go, I have not found that
non-Whig
opinion is offended.
'“Sincerely yours,
'“W. E. Gladstone.
'“P.S.—A letter received from Dilke speaks pleasingly about the
address.
'“I may say that I was quite unconscious of interfering with
your
present view, which I understood to be that none of your
advanced
proposals were to be excluded, but all left open for
discussion.—W.
E. G.”
'On the passage with regard to Ireland I noted: “He means that
he
would go on as Prime Minister if he could see his way to carry
the
larger Local Government (Ireland) scheme, and not otherwise.”
But he
meant more.'
Sir Charles also wrote suggesting that Mr. Chamberlain should, in his correspondence with Mr. Gladstone, go into the question of the Whig composition of Liberal Cabinets, and the latter promised 'to say just what you suggest.'
Those who occupied the centre position in the Liberal party were bewildered by divided counsels.
'On September 28th I received from Chamberlain a letter
enclosing
one from Harcourt.... He (Harcourt) dwelt upon the delicacy of
Mr.
Gladstone's position. “He (Mr. Gladstone) says, if he is not
wanted,
he will 'cut out,' and he doubts, I think, if either you or
Hartington want him. But I hope in this he is mistaken; for he
is
wanted, and neither section can do without him.... When I spoke
at
Plymouth I knew nothing of the contents of his address, nor
indeed,
that it was about to appear so soon, though, oddly enough, it
came
out the next day. I therefore spoke like a cat in walnut
shells, and
had, like a man who makes a miss at billiards, to 'play for
safety.'
I am quite with you on the subject of the acquisition of land
by
local authorities, and also on free education, which seem to be
your
two sine qua nons. As to what you say about remaining
outside a
new Liberal Government, forgive me for saying that is all
nonsense.
If a Liberal Government cannot be formed with you and Dilke, it
certainly cannot be formed without you. You have acquired the
right
and the power to make your own conditions, and I am sure they
will
be reasonable ones.”'
Sir William Harcourt omitted to consider the possibility of a Government being formed—as actually happened—while the charges against Sir Charles were still untried. Politically, he made an omission which was less natural; once more there is no reference to the Irish problem and its effect. Yet in Mr. Gladstone's mind it was daily becoming more insistent.
'On September 28th Chamberlain wrote enclosing a letter from Mr.
Gladstone, and his reply:
'“My Dear Chamberlain,
'“I felt well pleased and easy after receiving your note of the
21st, but there is a point I should like to put to you with
reference to your self-denying ordinance making the three
points
conditions of office.
'“Suppose Parnell to come back eighty to ninety strong, to keep
them
together, to bring forward a plan which shall contain in your
opinion adequate securities for the union of the Empire, and to
press this plan, under whatever name, as having claims to
precedence
(claims which could hardly be denied even by opponents), do you
think no Government should be formed to promote such a plan,
unless
the three points were glued on to it at the same time? Do you
not
think you would do well to reserve elbow-room for a case like
this?
I hope you will not think my suggestion—it is not a question—
captious and a man-trap. It is meant in a very different sense.
A
Liberal majority is assumed in it.
'“Yours sincerely,
'“W. E. Gladstone.”'
When that letter reached Highbury, Sir Charles was in France, awaiting Mrs. Pattison's arrival from India. Mr. Chamberlain's reply was written without consultation on September 28th. In it he said that he had assumed that Local Government would be the first work of a Liberal Government, and that Bills for the three countries would be brought in together. Mr. Parnell's change of front would, he thought, have limited the proposals to the establishment of County Councils, with certain powers for the acquisition of land by Local Authorities. He thought it unlikely that Parnell would bring forward a scheme that any Liberal Government could support; but if he did, he would do all he could to assist the Government in dealing with it, whether from inside or outside the Cabinet.
Chamberlain further urged Dilke to lay stress on the determination of his party not to be 'mere lay figures in a Cabinet of Goschens.' He regarded his party as indispensable, and if the Government tried to do without them, they were determined to make trouble. He expressed an earnest wish that Sir Charles Dilke could be working with them; but he did not press this at the moment, if Sir Charles was taking a holiday after his marriage.
Dilke took the briefest of holidays; on October 6th, three days after his wedding, he spoke at Chelsea. After dwelling at length on Chamberlain's proposal to give powers of compulsory land purchase to local authorities, he asked for the widest form of elective self-government for Ireland consistent with the integrity of the Empire, [Footnote: 'In my individual opinion, the natural crowning stone of any large edifice of local government must sooner or later be some such elective Local Government Board for each of the three principal parts of the United Kingdom and for the Principality of Wales, as I have often sketched out to you. As regards Ireland, we all of us here, I think, agree that the widest form of elective self-government should be conferred which is consistent with the integrity of the Empire. No one can justify the existence of the nominated official Boards which at present attempt to govern Ireland. I care not whether the Irish people are or are not at the moment willing to accept the changes we have to propose. If the present system is as indefensible as I think it, we should propose them all the same. If they are not at first accepted, our scheme will at least be seen and weighed, and we shall be freed from the necessity of appearing to defend a system which is obnoxious to every Liberal principle. I would ask you to remember some words in Mr. Ruskin's chapter on “The Future of England,” in his Crown of Wild Olive, which are very applicable to the situation:—“In Ireland, especially, a vicious system has been so long maintained that it has become impossible to give due support to the cause of order without seeming to countenance injury.” The bodies which would deal with education, with private Bills, with provisional order Bills, and with appeals from local authorities in matters too large for county treatment, in Wales and Scotland and England itself, if I had my way, as well as in Ireland, would, I believe, make the future government of the United Kingdom, as a United Kingdom, more easy than it is at present.'] and went on to assume that the first session of the new Parliament would be 'a Local Government session.' In the following week 'I made an important speech at Halifax on Local Government which attracted much attention.' 'Halifax will be all Local Government,' he wrote to Mr. Frank Hill, 'which is necessary, as it is clear that Balfour and Salisbury have cribbed my last year's Bill.'
'I may note here that on October 6th, at my Chelsea meeting,
George
Russell told me that he had on the previous day induced Mr.
Gladstone to send for Chamberlain to Hawarden. On October 7th
Chamberlain wrote:
'“Hawarden Castle.
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“I was sent for here, but up to now I do not know why.... My
present object is to say that you made a capital speech, and
that I
approve every word of it except the part about London
Government.
But as to this I suppose that Londoners must have their way and
their own form of municipal government though I doubt if it
will not
prove a fatal gift. Why will the papers invent differences
between
you and me? I verily believe that if I spoke your speech, and
you
spoke mine, they would still find the distinguishing
characteristics
of each speaker unchanged. I thought your last part admirable
and
just what I should have said. Yet the Standard thinks it
quite a
different note to the South London and Bradford speeches. Mr.
G.
thinks Mr. Parnell's last speech more satisfactory I confess I
had
not perceived the improvement. He (Mr. G.) is still very sweet
on
National Councils.”
'On October 9th Chamberlain wrote:
'“I am not quite certain what was Mr. G.'s object in sending for
me.
I suppose he desired to minimize our conditions as far as
possible.
He was very pleasant and very well, with no apparent trace of
his
hoarseness. He spoke at considerable length on the Irish
Question;
said he was more than ever impressed with the advantages of the
Central Council scheme, and had written strongly to that effect
to
Hartington. But I do not gather that he has any definite plan
under
present circumstances. He thought Parnell's last speech was
more
moderate (I confess I do not agree with him), and I suppose
that if
we get a majority his first effort will be to find a modus
vivendi, and to enter into direct communications with this
object.
'“As regards Radical programme I stuck to the terms of your
speech,
namely, first, compulsory powers for acquiring land to be
inserted
in the Local Government Bill. Second, freedom to speak and vote
as
we liked on questions of free schools. He boggled a good deal
over
this, and said it was very weakening to a Government; but I
told him
we could not honestly do less, and that I expected a large
majority
of Liberals were in favour of the proposal. We did not come to
any
positive conclusion, nor do I think that he has absolutely made
up
his mind, but the tone of the conversation implied that he was
seeking to work with us, and had no idea of doing without us.
At the
close he spoke of his intention to give up the leadership soon
after
the new Parliament met. I protested, and said that if he did
this
our whole attitude would be changed, and we must and should ask
from
Hartington much larger concessions than we were prepared to
accept
from him. I expect the force of circumstances will keep him in
his
place till the end, though I believe he is sincerely anxious to
be
free.”' [Footnote: Mr. Gladstone's account of this interview is
to
be found in Morley's Life of Gladstone, vol. iii., p.
224.]
On October 17th Chamberlain wrote 'on another letter of Mr. Gladstone's, which I do not possess:
'“I do not think it is wise to do anything about Mr G.'s letter
on
Ireland. I agree with your recollection of the matter. But Mr.
G. is
not far wrong, and we have our hands full of other things. The
Irish
business is not the first just now.”
'About this time I was taken as arbitrator in a considerable
number
of disputed candidatures, in most of which I acted by myself,
and in
one, the Walworth case, with Chamberlain and John Morley.'
'I had been to see Manning, at his wish, with my wife, and he
had
spoken kindly about Chamberlain, on which I wrote to
Chamberlain
about him; and Chamberlain replied:
'“Our experience in the Irish Question has not been encouraging.
We
understood the Cardinal cordially to approve of my scheme of
National Councils and to be ready to use his influence in any
way to
promote its acceptance. On our part we were prepared to press
the
question at any sacrifice, and to make the adoption of our
scheme a
condition of our membership of any future Government. And yet,
when
the time came to ask the Cardinal for his help, he refused
categorically so small a matter as an introduction to the Irish
Bishops, and, as I understood, on the ground that the
Conservatives
were in office. Would not the same influence prevail in the
matter
of education? Besides, I do not see what Cardinal Manning has
to
offer. The majority of English Catholics are Conservative, and
no
concession that it is in our power to make would secure their
support for the Liberal party. I am therefore of opinion that
the
differences between us can only be decided by the
constituencies.”
'The Cardinal wrote concerning Chamberlain:
'“Mr. Chamberlain was good enough to send me his scheme for
Local
Government in Ireland, in which in the main I agree, and did
all in
my power to promote its acceptance. The Government went out,
and you
asked of me to promote what I called a 'Midlothian in Ireland,'
under the eyes of the new Lord Lieutenant. (I wrote on this to
Chamberlain: 'I answered this at the time and have done so
again
now.') Did Mr. Chamberlain understand my agreement with his
scheme
as carrying any consequences beyond that scheme or any
solidarity in
such an aggressive action against any party whatsoever in
power?...
In the matter in which he was courteous enough to make known
his
scheme to me, I have promoted it where and in ways he does not
know.”
'In a day or two there came another letter from Manning:
'“It is true you did disclaim a Midlothian; but I told you that
I
know my Irishmen too well, and believe that even Paul and
Barnabas
would have been carried away. Moreover, if you had been silent
as
fishes, the moral effect would have been a counter-move. Your
humility does not admit this. So you must absolve me for my one
word.”'
Mr. Chamberlain commented in strong terms on the diplomatic methods of the great ecclesiastic. The 'countermove' implied that there had been a Tory move in the direction of Home Rule with a view to securing Irish support. Manning believed, as Mr. Gladstone also believed, that the Tories meant business; later it became clear that they had no constructive Irish policy at all. Yet the question grew daily more pressing.
'At the end of October Chamberlain wrote:
'“I had a note from Mr. G. this morning urging unity, and saying
he
had an instinct that Irish questions 'might elbow out all
others.'
This makes me uneasy. I hear from another source that he is
trying
to get Parnell's ideas in detail. It is no use.”'
To Mr. Gladstone, Chamberlain wrote, on October 26th, that he could not see his way at all about Ireland. He emphasized his view that Ireland had better go altogether than the responsibilities of a nominal union be accepted, and that probably the majority of Liberals would not give more than English Local Government; and that, if possible, Irish and English Local Government should be dealt with together. Unless the principle of the acquisition of land by local authorities was accepted, neither he nor Dilke nor Morley, nor probably Lefevre, could join the Government.
The strife between Chamberlain and Hartington was maintained, and Mr. Gladstone interposed by a letter to the Chief Whip, in which he advised the intervention of Lord Granville in view of 'his great tact, prudence, and experience.' On November 5th Mr. Chamberlain wrote to Sir Charles, enclosing Mr. Gladstone's letter, and adding:
'Mr. G.'s is the most definite proof I have had yet that he does
not
mean to quarrel with us. Lord Granville has just been here. He
told
me nothing about Ireland, but I am convinced that Mr.
Gladstone
has been trying to make a treaty all to himself. It must fail.'
No such treaty was made, and on the eve of the General Election of November, 1885, Parnell issued an instruction that the Irish in England should vote Tory.
'On Tuesday, November 24th, our poll took place in Chelsea, and
on
Wednesday, November 25th, the count, which showed that I was
returned, although only by a small majority.... The Irish had
voted
for Whitmore, the Conservative candidate, my opponent, in
consequence of the issue at the last moment of the bill, “Mr.
Parnell's order—Vote for the Conservative, Mr. Whitmore.
Irishmen,
do your duty and obey your leader.”'
'I had been summoned by Chamberlain, who desired a meeting of
our
party within the party, in a letter in which he said:
'“It does not look as if the Tories would have the chance of
doing
much mischief; but I should much like them to be in for a
couple of
years before we try again, and then I should 'go for the
Church.'“'
Dilke notes that Chamberlain was persuaded to drop this line of attack, on which he had already embarked. Disestablishment of the Church of England had proved to be anything but a good election cry; the ransom doctrine had not brought in more votes than it lost; and the 366 certain Liberal seats with twenty-six doubtful ones which Mr. Schnadhorst counted up at the end of October were now an illusion of the past. The election was generally taken as a set-back to the extreme Radicals.
'On Saturday, December 5th, we met at Highbury, and remained in
council until Monday, December 7th. Mr. Gladstone, we were
informed
(that is Morley, Lefevre, and myself), had presented a Home
Rule
scheme to the Queen, who had shown it to Lord Salisbury, and
Randolph Churchill had told Lady Dorothy Nevill, who had told
Chamberlain, but no statement had been made by Mr. Gladstone to
his
former colleagues.'
After the meeting of Radicals, December 5th to 7th, at Highbury, Sir Charles went back to London.
'On Wednesday, December 9th, I spoke at the Central Poor Law
Conference.... I carried the assembly, which was one of Poor
Law
Guardians, and therefore Conservative, along with me in the
opinion
that it was desirable to elect directly the whole of the new
bodies
in local government, instead of having either a special
representation of Magistrates or any system of indirect
election or
choice of Aldermen.'
He argued in the belief that the next session might still see a Tory Government in power. 'If the Conservatives propose a Local Government Bill,' he said at Chelsea, 'it will be our Local Government Bill which they will propose.' He notes: 'They proposed two-thirds of it, and carried one-third, in 1888.'
'At this moment, not knowing how far Mr. Gladstone was willing
to go
in the Home Rule direction, and that there was, therefore, any
chance of his securing the real support of the Irish party, I
was
opposed to the attempt to turn out the Government and form a
Liberal
Administration resting on the support of a minority, and I
spoke in
that sense to my constituents. My view was that it would be
disastrous to advanced Liberalism to form a Government resting
on a
minority, as it would be impossible to carry any legislation
not of
a Conservative type.'
'Chamberlain wrote to me on December 15th, with regard to one of
my
speeches, that I was too polite to the Tories. “This,” he
added, “is
where I never err.”
'On December 18th I received some copies of important letters.
Mr.
Gladstone's scheme had got out on the 16th, [Footnote: Lord
Morley's
Life of Gladstone, vol. iii., pp. 264,265, shows that
the “scheme
got out” owing to Sir Charles Dilke's speech to his
constituents.
Mr. Herbert Gladstone came to town on the 14th partly in
consequence
of a speech “made a few days before by Sir Charles Dilke,” and
the
talk it caused. The speech was “taken to mean” that the two
Radical
leaders preferred keeping the Tories in power “in the
expectation
that some moderate measures of reform might be got from them,
and
that meanwhile they would become committed with the Irishmen.
Tactics of this kind were equivalent to the exclusion of Mr.
Gladstone, for in every letter that he wrote he pronounced the
Irish
Question urgent.” Accordingly, on December 16th there came the
unauthorized version of Mr. Gladstone's scheme, given to the
Press
through his son.] and on the 17th he wrote to Lord Hartington a
letter of which the latter sent me a long extract. [Footnote:
The
letter, which has been printed both by Lord Morley and by Mr.
Bernard Holland, is that in which Mr. Gladstone detailed the
“conditions of an admissible plan” of Home Rule, and expressed
a
determination “on no account to do or say anything which would
enable the Nationalists to establish rival biddings between
us.” It
is so germane to this discussion that part of it is again
printed in
the appendix following this chapter (p. 208).]
'At the same time I received a letter from Chamberlain in which
he
said:
'“Have I turned round? Perhaps I have, but it is unconsciously.
Honestly I thought you went beyond us in your speeches, but I
feel
that your judgment is very likely better and certainly as good
as
mine, and I should have said nothing but for the flood of
letters I
received.
'“The situation changes every minute. The announcement of Mr.
G.'s
plan makes it much more serious; and I altered my speech
somewhat
to-night to meet it, but unless I have failed in my endeavour I
have
not said anything which will embarrass you, and I had you
constantly
in mind throughout. Please read it carefully and let me know
exactly
what you think and how far I have succeeded. I would not put
you in
a hole for a King's ransom if I could avoid it.
'“I agree entirely with you as to dissolution. The Tory game is
to
exaggerate Mr. Gladstone's performance and to go to the country
on
the 'integrity of the Empire.' I have endeavoured to reserve
our
position, and, as to taking office, to make it clear that we
are
opposed to it, unless we can get a big majority, which is
impossible. Unless I am mistaken, the Gladstone business will
exclusively occupy attention the next few days, and my speech
will
pass without much notice. But again I say that I have tried
(and I
hope and believe I have succeeded) to avoid anything which may
appear like contradiction or opposition to your line.
'“Finally, my view is that Mr. G.'s Irish scheme is death and
damnation; that we must try and stop it; that we must not
openly
commit ourselves against it yet; that we must let the situation
shape itself before we finally decide; that the Whigs are our
greatest enemies, and that we must not join them if we can help
it;
that we cannot take office, but must not offer assistance to
the
Tories publicly; that we must say all we can as to their
shameful
bargain and surrender of principle; that even if they bring in
good
measures they will also bring in bad, which we shall be forced
to
oppose; and that the less we speak in public for the present,
the
better.”
'I had told Chamberlain that his speech had given the impression
that he had turned round.'
Sir Charles, in a further speech to his constituents at Chelsea, reaffirmed the principles which he had already publicly laid down.
'In speaking on the night of Friday, December 18th, at Chelsea,
I
declared that we ought not to allow ourselves to be driven
either
forward or backward from the principles that we had put forward
with
regard to Ireland, and that our course should be to continue to
propose the measures which we had previously proposed without
reference to the Parnellite support of Conservative candidates.
The
scheme which I had put forward at the General Election was the
one
to which I adhered. If it had been generally adopted when first
suggested, it would have received very large support in
Ireland.'
He then quotes from the report of his speech this sentence: 'We are told that now it is too late, but for my part I should not be inclined to recede from it because it does not meet with general support.'
On this Chamberlain wrote:
'December 19th, 1885.
'My Dear Dilke,
'The papers this morning seem to show that I have succeeded in
avoiding any kind of conflict with you. Your own speech was
most
judicious. What a mess Mr. G. has made of it! What will be the
end
of it all? Why the d——could he not wait till Parnell had
quarrelled with the Tories? I fancy that a large number,
perhaps the
majority, of Liberals will support any scheme of Mr.
G.'s, but I
doubt if the country will endorse it. The Tories, if they are
wise,
will throw everything else aside and go for the “Empire in
danger,”
dissolving at the earliest possible opportunity. The Liberals
would
be divided and distracted, and I think we shall be beaten into
a
cocked hat. Our game—yours and mine—is to avoid definite
committal
for the moment. Circumstances change every hour. Harcourt is
coming
to me on Saturday and Sunday.'
'On the next day Chamberlain sent me a copy of a letter to him
from
Mr. Gladstone:
'“December 18th, 1885.
'“My Dear Chamberlain,
'“I thank you very much for your references to me in your speech
last night.
'“In this really serious crisis we must all make efforts to work
together; and I gladly recognize your effort.
'“Moreover, reading as well as writing hastily, I think we are
very
much in accord.
'“Both reflection and information lead me to think that time is
very
precious, and that the hour-glass has begun to run for a
definitive
issue.
'“But I am certainly and strongly of opinion that only a
Government
can act, that especially this Government should act, and that
we
should now be helping and encouraging them to act as far as we
legitimately can.
'“In reply to a proposal of the Central News to send me an
interviewer, I have this morning telegraphed to London: 'From
my
public declarations at Edinburgh with respect to the
Government,
you will easily see that I have no communication to make.'
'“Be very incredulous as to any statements about my views
and
opinions. Rest assured that I have done and said nothing
which in
any way points to negotiation or separate action. The time may
come,
but I hope it will not. At present I think most men, but I do
not
include you, are in too great a hurry to make up their minds.
Much
may happen before (say) January 12th. The first thing of all is
to
know what will the Government do? I know they have been
in
communication with Parnellites, and I hope with Parnell.
'“I remain always,
'“Sincerely yours,
'“W. E. Gladstone.”
'I fancy that I was the cause of Chamberlain receiving this
letter,
as I had told Brett (who at once wrote to Hawarden) that
Chamberlain
was angry at not having been consulted.'
'On December 21st we went down to Pyrford, which was now just
finished, to stay there for the first time, and remained until
Christmas Eve. On December 22nd I received a letter from
Chamberlain
from Highbury.'
In this letter Mr. Chamberlain chronicled Sir William Harcourt's visit—who, after 'raving against the old man and the old cause,' had left in better spirits. Mr. Chamberlain was in much doubt whether Mr. Gladstone would go on or would retire after Lord Hartington's letter to the Press, [Footnote: This is a reference to Lord Hartington's letter in the Press of December 21st, 1885, which he alludes to, in writing to Mr. Gladstone, as “published this morning” (Life of Duke of Devonshire, vol. ii., p. 103).] and had written to Mr. Gladstone to say that he did not think the country would stand an independent Parliament. He saw nothing between National Councils and Separation, and wondered whether Mr. Gladstone thought that—in the event of a separate Irish Legislature—Ireland could be governed by a single Chamber, and England and Scotland by two.
'On December 26th Chamberlain wrote:
'“I do not envy you the opportunity of speaking on the 31st. It
is a
dangerous time, and I am inclined myself to 'lie low.' Is it
desirable to say anything? If it is right to speak at all, I
think
something like a full expose of motifs is necessary, and I put
the
following before you as the heads of a discourse.
'“At present there are two different ideas, for settlement of
Ireland, before the public imagination, viz.: (A) National
Councils;
(B) Separation.
'“As to A, the fundamental principles are supremacy of Imperial
Parliament and extension of local liberties on municipal lines.
It
is a feasible, practical plan. But it has the fatal objection
that
the Nationalists will not accept it. It is worse than useless
to
impose on them benefits which they repudiate. As to B, everyone
professes to reject the idea of separation. If it were adopted,
I
have no doubt it would lead to the adoption of the conscription
in
Ireland; then to the conscription in England, and increase of
the
navy; fresh fortifications on the west coast, and finally a war
in
which Ireland would have the support of some other Power,
perhaps
America or France. Between these alternatives there is the hazy
idea
of Home Rule visible in Morley's speech and Gladstone's assumed
intention. It is dangerous and mischievous to use vague
language on
such a subject. Those who speak ought to say exactly what they
mean.
It will be found that Home Rule includes an independent
separate
Irish Parliament, and that all guarantees and securities,
whether
for the protection of minorities or for the security of the
Empire,
are absolutely illusory.
'“At the same time we are to continue to receive Irish
representatives at Westminster in the Imperial Parliament, and
we
shall not even get rid of their obstruction and interference
here by
the concession of their independence in Ireland. To any
arrangement
of this kind, unworkable as I believe it to be, I prefer
separation—to which, indeed, it is only a step.
'“Is there any other possible arrangement which would secure the
real integrity of the Empire for Imperial purposes, while
allowing
Irishmen to play the devil as they like in Ireland?
'“Yes, there is. But it involves the entire recasting of the
British
Constitution and the full and complete adoption of the American
system. According to this view you might have five Parliaments,
for
England, Scotland, Wales, Ulster, [Footnote: This is the first
suggestion of a scheme under which part of Ireland would be
separated from the rest.] and the three other provinces
combined.
Each Parliament to have its own Ministry, responsible to it and
dependent on its vote. In addition an Imperial Parliament or
Reichsrath with another Ministry dealing with foreign and
colonial
affairs, army, navy, post-office, and customs.
'“To carry out this arrangement a Supreme Court or similar
tribunal
must be established, to decide on the respective attributes of
the
several local legislatures and the limits of their authority.
'“The House of Lords must go, or you must establish a separate
Second Chamber for each legislature.
'“It is impossible to suppose that the authority of the Crown
could
survive these changes for long. One or other of the local
legislatures would refuse to pay the expense, and, as it would
have
some kind of local militia at its back, it is not likely that
the
other legislatures would engage in civil war for the sake of
reimposing the nominal authority of the Sovereign.
'“As a Radical all these changes have no terrors for me, but is
it
conceivable that such a clean sweep of existing institutions
could
be made in order to justify the Irish demand for Home Rule? Yet
this
is the only form of federal government which offers any
prospect of
permanence or union for Imperial purposes.
'“If English Liberals once see clearly that indefinite talk
about
Home Rule means either separation or the entire recasting of
the
whole system of English as well as Irish government, they will
then
be in a position to decide their policy. At present they are
being
led by the Daily News and Morley and Co. to commit
themselves in
the dark.”
'Next day, December 27th, Chamberlain wrote:
'“The situation (Irish) is now as follows:
'“(1) The Government have been informed that Mr. Gladstone
thinks
this great question should not be prejudiced by party feeling,
and
that he will support them in any attempt they may make to give
Home
Rule to Ireland.
'“(2) Mr. Gladstone has been informed that the Government will
see
him damned first.
'“(3) The Irishmen have been informed that Mr. Gladstone will
not
move a step till the Government have spoken or until the Irish
have
put them in a minority.
'“(4) In either of these events he will do his best to effect a
thorough settlement. 'He will go forward or fall.'
'“(5) I gather that he will not, as he ought, challenge Parnell
to
say publicly exactly what he wants, but that he will propose
his own
scheme, which is an Irish legislature with a veto reserved to
the
Crown—to be exercised on most questions on the advice of the
Irish
Ministry, but on questions of religion, commerce, and taxation,
on
the advice of the Imperial Ministry.
'“(6) The Irish are suspicious, and have not made up their
minds.
Parnell says nothing, but the rank and file are inclined to
give Mr.
Gladstone his chance and turn him out again if they are not
satisfied with his proposals.
'“The Tories hope to get out Mr. Gladstone's intentions in
debate on
Address, and threaten another immediate dissolution if they are
placed in a minority; I think, however, their true policy is
and
will be to let Mr. Gladstone come in and make his proposals.
This
will divide the Liberal party, and in all probability alarm and
disgust the country.
'“Was there ever such a situation? Test Mr. Gladstone's scheme
in
practice. The Irish Ministry insist on necessity of restoring
Irish
manufactures by protection. The Imperial Parliament veto their
proposals. Thereupon the Irish representatives join the Tories
and
turn out the Government on a foreign and colonial debate, the
same
Government being in a great majority on all English and Scotch
questions. How long can such a state of things last? Mr.
Gladstone
will have the support of a portion of the Liberal
party—Morley, for
instance, Storey, the Crofters' representatives, and probably
some
of the Labour representatives. How many more will he get? Will
he
have the majority of the Radicals? Will he have the majority of
the
Liberals, following the party leader like sheep? It is curious
to
see the Scotsman and the Leeds Mercury leading in
this
direction. What are we to do? Certainly I will not join a
Government
pledged to such a mad and dangerous proposal. But this may mean
isolation for a long time.
'“The prospect is not an inviting one.
'“I have told Harcourt the facts as in the numbered paragraphs.
Do
not say a word to anyone else. Harcourt is perplexed and
hesitating.
I think he is impressed with the danger of Fenian outrages,
dynamite, and assassination.
'“For myself, I would sooner the Tories were in for the next ten
years than agree to what I think the ruin of the country.”
'On New Year's Eve, the 31st, we went to Rugby, where I had to
make
the speech alluded to in Chamberlain's letter. I had received
an
invitation, dated December 29th, to a meeting at Devonshire
House.
Hartington wrote:
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“You know, no doubt, that Harcourt has had a good deal of
communication with Chamberlain lately. I hear that Chamberlain
will
be in town on Friday (New Year's Day), and it is proposed that
he,
Harcourt, you, and I, should meet here on Friday at four to
talk
over matters, especially Irish. I have asked Granville to come
up if
he likes. I do not think there would be any advantage in having
any
others, unless Rosebery?
'“Yours sincerely,
'“Hartington.”
'I sent this letter to Chamberlain with an inquiry as to what he
knew about the meeting, and he replied on New Year's Eve:
'“The meeting to-morrow was arranged by telegraph.... I suspect
Mr.
Gladstone is inclined to hedge. He refuses to satisfy the Irish
by
any definite statements. I hope they may continue suspicious
and
keep the Tories in for some time.”'
'Yet it was Chamberlain who was to turn out the Tories. On New
Year's Eve, at Rugby, referring to the Irish Question, I
praised the
speech made by Trevelyan on the previous night as being “a
declaration in favour of that scheme of National Councils which
he
supports for Ireland at least, and which was recommended in an
able
article in the Fortnightly Review for Scotland, Ireland,
and
Wales.” I said: “I am one of those who have never limited my
views
upon the subject to Ireland. Mr. Trevelyan last night spoke as
though it were only in Ireland that it was necessary to
institute
some local body to deal with purely local questions—with those
questions which now come before nominated boards or branches of
the
Executive Government.” I went on to speak in the sense of Mr.
Gladstone's letter, in favour of the Conservatives being
encouraged
to propose such Irish remedial legislation.
'On New Year's Day, 1886, an important meeting took place at
Devonshire House between Hartington, Harcourt, Chamberlain, and
myself. I did not see my way clearly, and did not say much; the
other three arguing strongly against Mr. Gladstone's conduct in
having sent Herbert Gladstone to a news agency to let out his
views
for the benefit of the provincial Press, in such a way as to
put
pressure on his colleagues. It seemed to me that the pressure,
though no doubt unfair and indefensible, had nevertheless been
pretty successful, as neither Harcourt nor Chamberlain saw
their way
to opposing Mr. Gladstone, although both of them disliked his
scheme. Hartington only said that he “thought he could not join
a
Government to promote any such scheme.” But, then, he would
not, I
pointed out, be asked to do so. He would be asked to join a
Government to consider something. The practical conclusion come
to
was to write to Mr. Gladstone to urge him to come to London to
consult his colleagues. On January 4th I heard from Hartington
that
Mr. Gladstone informed him that he had nothing to add to his
previous letter dated December 17th. Hartington wrote:
'“I have heard from Mr. Gladstone. He declines to hasten his
arrival
in London, but will be available on the 11th after 4 p.m. for
any
who may wish to see him. He will be at my sister-in-law's (Lady
F.
Cavendish), 21, Carlton House Terrace.... He has done nothing
and
will do nothing to convert his opinions into intentions, for he
has
not the material before him. There is besides the question of
Parliamentary procedure (this refers to action on the Address).
For
considering this, he thinks the time available in London will
be
ample.”
'In forwarding the correspondence to Chamberlain with a copy of
the
letter of December 17th, 1885, as I was requested by Hartington
to
do, I added that Mr. Gladstone could hardly be said not to have
done
anything which had enabled the Nationalists to establish rival
biddings between the two sides (to use his phrase), because we
knew
that he had asked Arthur Balfour to go to Lord Salisbury with a
message from him promising his support if the Government would
bring
in a Home Rule scheme. This he had let out to the Irish.
'After this we were in consultation as to whether we ought to
see
Mr. Gladstone separately; and Hartington wrote to me on January
10th, 1886, from Hardwick, that he did not see how we could
decline
to see Mr. Gladstone separately, but that we might be as
reticent as
we pleased, and could all combine in urging further collective
consultations; and it was arranged that Hartington himself
should
see Mr. Gladstone on January 12th—the day of the election of
the
Speaker. Mr. Gladstone then informed us all that he would see
such
of us as chose on the afternoon of January 11th, and
Chamberlain
then wrote:
'“As far as I know, only Harcourt is going on Monday, and I on
Tuesday morning. If for any reason you think it well to
go, there
is really not the least objection.”
'I went on the 11th, but nothing of the least importance passed,
and
the same was the case with Chamberlain's interview on the 12th.
Harcourt was present on the 11th, and evidently in full support
of
Gladstone.
'On the 15th Labouchere gave a dinner to Chamberlain and
Randolph
Churchill, but I do not think that anything very serious was
discussed. There was a sharp breach at this moment between
Chamberlain and Morley, Chamberlain telling Morley that his
speeches
were “foolish and mischievous,” and that he was talking
“literary
nonsense—the worst of all.”
'On January 21st we had a meeting of all the ex-Cabinet at Lord
Granville's. Chamberlain breakfasted with me before the
meeting, and
he drew and I corrected the amendment which was afterwards
accepted
at the meeting as that which should be supported by the party
on the
Queen's Speech, and which was that moved by Jesse Collings by
which
the Government were turned out on the 26th. The adoption of our
amendment was very sudden. The leaders had met apparently
without
any policy, and the moment Chamberlain read our “three acres
and a
cow” amendment, they at once adopted it without discussion as a
way
out of all their difficulties and differences. [Footnote: This
amendment was carried by seventy-nine votes, and the Government
thus
overthrown.] The Government resigned on the 28th, and on the
29th I
had an interview with Chamberlain as to what he should do about
taking office.
'On January 30th Mr. Gladstone offered Chamberlain the
Admiralty,
after Hartington had refused to join the Government.
Chamberlain
came and saw me, and was to go back to Mr. Gladstone at six. He
thought he had no alternative but to accept a place in the
Government, although he did not like the Admiralty. Mr.
Gladstone
showed him a form of words as to Irish Home Rule. It was
equivalent
to a passage in Sexton's [Footnote: Home Rule M.P. for S.
Sligo,
1885-1886; Belfast W., 1886-1892.] speech on the 22nd, at which
Mr.
Gladstone had been seen to nod in a manner which implied that
he had
suggested the words. The proposal was, as we knew it would be,
for
inquiry. Chamberlain did not object to the inquiry, but
objected to
the Home Rule. Chamberlain, before returning to Mr. Gladstone,
wrote
him a very stiff letter against Home Rule, which somewhat
angered
him. On Sunday, January 31st, Chamberlain wrote that for
personal
reasons he had sooner not accept the Admiralty. Mr. Gladstone
saw
Chamberlain again later in the day, on the Sunday, and asked
what it
was then that he wanted; to which Chamberlain replied, “The
Colonies,” and Mr. Gladstone answered, “Oh! A Secretary of
State.”
Chamberlain was naturally angry at this slight, and being
offered by
Mr. Gladstone the Board of Trade, then refused to return to it.
After leaving Mr. Gladstone he went to Harcourt, and told
Harcourt
that he would take the Local Government Board, “but not very
willingly.” On Monday, February 1st, I asked Chamberlain to
reconsider his decision about the Admiralty, and found that he
would
have been willing to have done so, but that it was now too
late. On
the 2nd Mr. Gladstone wrote me a very nice letter quoted above,
[Footnote: Chapter XLII., p.172.] about the circumstances
relating
to the trial then coming on which made it impossible for him to
include me in the Ministry. Morley wrote: “Half my satisfaction
and
confidence are extinguished by your absence. It may and will
make
all the difference.”'
Mr. Morley's apprehension was justified by events.
In 1880 the position of the Radical leaders, while only private members, had been of such strength that Sir Charles had been able to secure, from a reluctant Prime Minister, the terms agreed on between Mr. Chamberlain and himself. He had obtained for both positions in the Government, and procured Cabinet rank for Chamberlain. Now that the power of one of the allies was demolished, and Mr. Chamberlain stood alone, Mr. Gladstone's view of the changed situation was apparent. The 'slight' to Chamberlain was followed by that course of action which resulted in his breach with the Liberal party. Together the two men could, from a far stronger point of vantage than in 1880, have made their terms; with Mr. Chamberlain isolated Mr. Gladstone could impose his own. The alteration in the course of English political history which the next few months were to effect was made finally certain by Sir Charles Dilke's fall.
Lord Rosebery wrote on February 3rd to say that he had been appointed Foreign Secretary, an office which in happier circumstances would, he said to Sir Charles, 'have been yours by universal consent.' The letter went on to state in very sympathetic words how 'constantly present to his mind' was his own inferiority in knowledge and ability to the man who had been set aside.
'I had written to Rosebery at the same moment, and our letters
had
crossed. I replied to his:
'“My Dear Rosebery,
'“Our letters crossed, but mine was a wretched scrawl by the
side of
yours. I do not know how, with those terrible telegrams
beginning to
fly round you, you find time to write such letters. I could
never
have taken the Foreign Office without the heaviest misgiving,
and I
hope that whenever the Liberals are in, up to the close of my
life,
you may hold it. My 'knowledge' of foreign affairs is, I
admit to
you, great, and I can answer questions in the Commons, and I
can
negotiate with foreigners. But these are not the most
important
points. As to the excess of 'ability' with which you kindly and
modestly credit me, I do not admit it for a moment. I should
say
that you are far more competent to advise and carry through a
policy—far more competent to send the right replies to those
telegrams which are the Foreign Office curse. As to questions,
these
are a mere second curse, but form a serious reason why the
Secretary
of State should be in the Lords.
'“I have always said that, if kept for no other reason, the
Lords
should remain as a place for the Secretary of State for the
Foreign
Department, and I think also for the Prime Minister.
Between
ourselves, you will not have quite a fair chance in being
Secretary
of State for the Foreign Department under Mr. Gladstone,
because Mr.
Gladstone will trust to his skill in the House of
Commons, and
will speak and reply when the prudent Under-Secretary
would ask
for long notice or be silent. Lord Granville was always
complaining,
and Mr. Gladstone always promising never to do it again, and
always
doing it every day. [Footnote: See supra, p. 51 and note.] I am
going to put down a notice to-day to strengthen your hands
against
France in re Diego Suarez.”
'From Bryce I heard that he had been appointed Under-Secretary
of
State for the Foreign Department, and asking me whom he should
take
as his private secretary; and I told him Austin Lee, and he
took him
at once.'
'To the Prince of Wales I wrote to say that I should not attend
the
Levee, and had from him a reply marked by that great personal
courtesy which he always shows.'
Thus came into being Mr. Gladstone's third Administration. In 1885 the continuance of Mr. Gladstone's leadership had seemed necessary in order to bridge the gap between Lord Hartington and the Radicals. Now in 1886 Lord Hartington was out, to mark his opposition, not to Chamberlain, but to Gladstone; and Chamberlain was in, though heavily handicapped. Yet none of these contradictions which had defied anticipation was so unforeseen as the exclusion of Sir Charles Dilke.
APPENDIX
See p. 196. Letter of Mr. Gladstone to Lord Hartington, December 17th, 1885:
'The whole stream of public excitement is now turned upon me,
and I
am pestered with incessant telegrams which I have no defence
against
but either suicide or Parnell's method of self-concealment. The
truth is I have more or less of opinions and ideas, but no
intentions or negotiations. In these ideas and opinions there
is, I
think, little that I have not more or less conveyed in public
declarations: in principle, nothing. I will try to lay them
before
you. I consider that Ireland has now spoken, and that an effort
ought to be made by the Government without delay to meet
her
demand for the management, by an Irish legislative body, of
Irish as
distinct from Imperial affairs. Only a Government can do it,
and a
Tory Government can do it more easily and safely than any
other.
'There is first a postulate—that the state of Ireland shall be
such
as to warrant it.
'The conditions of an admissible plan, I think, are—
'(1) Union of the Empire and due supremacy of Parliament.
'(2) Protection for the minority. A difficult matter on which I
have
talked much with Spencer, certain points, however, remaining to
be
considered.
'(3) Fair allocation of Imperial charges.
'(4) A statutory basis seems to me to be better and safer than
the
revival of Grattan's Parliament, but I wish to hear more upon
this,
as the minds of men are still in so crude a state on the whole
subject.
'(5) Neither as opinions nor as intentions have I to anyone
alive
promulgated these ideas as decided on by me.
'(6) As to intentions, I am determined to have none at
present—to
leave space to the Government—I should wish to encourage them
if I
properly could—above all, on no account to say or do anything
which
would enable the Nationalists to establish rival biddings
between
us.
'If this storm of rumours continues to rage, it may be necessary
for
me to write some new letter to my constituents, but I am
desirous to
do nothing, simply leaving the field open for the Government,
until
time makes it necessary to decide. Of our late colleagues, I
have
had most communication with Granville, Spencer, and Rosebery.
Would
you kindly send this on to Granville? I think you will find it
in
conformity with my public declarations, though some blanks are
filled up. I have in truth thought it my duty, without in the
least
committing myself or anyone else, to think through the subject
as
well as I could, being equally convinced of its urgency and its
bigness.'
The remainder of this letter is not quoted in the Memoir.
The acute political crisis now maturing within the Liberal party had a special menace for Sir Charles Dilke. It threatened to affect a personal tie cemented by his friend's stanchness through these months of trouble.
On January 31st, 1886, he wrote:
'My Dear Chamberlain,
'I feel that our friendship is going to be subjected to the
heaviest
strain it has ever borne, and I wish to minimize any risks to
it, in
which, however, I don't believe. I am determined that it shall
not
dwindle into a form or pretence of friendship of which the
substance
has departed. It will be a great change if I do not feel that I
can
go to your house or to your room as freely as ever. At the same
time
confidence from one in the inner circle of the Cabinet to one
wholly
outside the Government is not easy, and reserve makes all
conversation untrue. I think the awkwardness will be less if I
abstain from taking part in home affairs (unless, indeed, in
supporting my Local Government Bill, should that come up). In
Foreign Affairs we shall not be brought into conflict, and to
Foreign and Colonial affairs I propose to return.
'I intend to sit behind (in Forster's seat), not below the
gangway,
as long as you are in the Government.
'There is one great favour which I think you will be able to do
me
without any trouble to yourself, and that is to let my wife
come to
your room to see me between her lunch and the meeting of
the
House. The greatest nuisance about being out is that I shall
have to
go down in the mornings to get my place, and to sit in the
library
all day....
'Yours ever,
'Chs. W. D'
When the first trial of the divorce case was over (almost before Mr. Gladstone's Government had fairly assumed office), in the period during which Sir Charles designedly absented himself from the House of Commons,
'Chamberlain asked me to act on the Committee to revise my Local
Government Bill, and to put it into a form for introduction to
the
House; and I attended at the Local Government Board throughout
the
spring at meetings at which Chamberlain, if present,
presided.... It
is a curious fact that I often presided over this Cabinet
Committee,
though not a member of the Government.'
During the month of February, while the Press campaign against
him
was ripening, Sir Charles had little freedom of mind for
politics.
Yet this was the moment when Mr. Chamberlain's action, decisive
for
the immediate fate of a great question, had to be determined.
Sir
Charles had been a conducting medium between Mr. Gladstone and
Mr.
Chamberlain. He was so no longer. “I wonder,” wrote
Chamberlain,
years after, on reading Dilke's Memoir, “what passed in that
most
intricate and Jesuitical mind in the months between June and
December, 1885.” Perhaps the breach that came was unavoidable.
But
at all events the one man who might have prevented it was at
the
critical moment hopelessly involved in the endeavour to combat
the
scandal that assailed him. [Footnote: There is a letter of this
date
to Mr. John Morley:
'76, Sloane Street, S.W.,
'February 2nd.
'My Dear Morley,
'As I must not yet congratulate you on becoming at a bound Privy
Councillor and member of the Cabinet, let me in the meantime
congratulate you on your election as a V.P. of the Chelsea
Liberal
Association. But seriously, there can be no doubt that you now
have
sealed the great position which you had already won. My one
hope
is that you will work;—my hope, not for your own sake, but for
the
sake of Radical principles—as completely with Chamberlain as I
did.
It is the only way to stand against the overwhelming numbers of
the
Whig peers. I fear Mr. Gladstone will find his new lot of Whig
peers
just as troublesome as the old.
'As long as I am out and my friends are in, I shall sit,
not in my
old place below the gangway, but behind, and do anything and
everything that I can do to help.
'Yours ever,
'Chs. W. D.
'I hope it is true that Stansfeld is back?'
It was not till March 3rd, 1886, that
'I resumed my attendance at the House of Commons, and Joseph
Cowen,
the member for Newcastle, did what he could to make it
pleasant. I
wrote to him, and he replied: “It is a man's duty to stick to
his
friends when they are 'run at' as you have been.”'
'On March 4th a meeting of the Local Government Committee at
Chamberlain's was put off by the absence of Thring, who had
been
sent for by Mr. Gladstone with instructions to draw a Home Rule
Bill. I went to Chamberlain's house, he being too cross to come
to
the House of Commons, and held with him an important
conversation as
to his future. I tried to point out to him that if he went out,
as
he was thinking of doing, he would wreck the party, who would
put up
with the Whigs going out against Mr. Gladstone on Home Rule,
but who
would be rent in twain by a Radical secession. He would do
this, I
told him, without much popular sympathy, and it was a terrible
position to face. He told me that he had said so much in the
autumn
that he felt he must do it. I said, “Certainly. But do
not go out
and fight. Go out and lie low. If honesty forces you out, well
and
good, but it does not force you to fight.” He seemed to agree,
at
all events at the moment.
'On March 13th there was a Cabinet, an account of which I had
from
Chamberlain, who was consulting me daily as to his position.
Mr.
Gladstone expounded his land proposals, which ran to 120
millions of
loan, and on which Chamberlain wrote: “As a result of
yesterday's
Council, I think Trevelyan and I will be out on Tuesday. If you
are
at the House, come to my room after questions.” I went to
Chamberlain's room and met Bright with him. But real
consultation in
presence of Bright was impossible, because Bright was merely
disagreeable. On Monday, the 15th, Chamberlain and Trevelyan
wrote
their letters of resignation, and late at night Chamberlain
showed
me the reply to his. On the same day James told me that the old
and
close friendship between Harcourt and himself was at an end,
they
having taken opposite sides with some warmth. On the 16th
Chamberlain wrote to Mr. Gladstone that he thought he had
better
leave him, as he could only attend his Cabinets in order to
gather
arguments against his schemes; and Mr. Gladstone replied that
he had
better come all the same.
'On the 22nd I had an interesting talk with Sexton about the
events
of the period between April and June, 1885. Sexton said that he
had
agreed to the Chamberlain plan in conversation with Manning,
but it
was as a Local Government plan, not to prevent, so far as he
was
concerned, the subsequent adoption of a Parliament. It was on
this
day that Chamberlain's resignation became final. On March 26th
I,
having to attend a meeting on the Irish question under the
auspices
of the Chelsea Liberal Association, showed Chamberlain a draft
of
the resolution which I proposed for it. I had written: “That
while
this meeting is firmly resolved on the maintenance of the Union
between Great Britain and Ireland, it is of opinion that the
wishes
of the Irish people in favour of self-government, as expressed
at
the last election, should receive satisfaction.” Chamberlain
wrote
back that the two things were inconsistent, and that the Irish
wishes as expressed by Parnell were for separation. But his
only
suggestion was that I should insert “favourable consideration"
in
place of “satisfaction,” which did not seem much change. This,
however, was the form in which the resolution was carried by an
open
Liberal public meeting, and it is an interesting example of the
fluidity of opinion in the Liberal party generally at the
moment. A
rider to the effect that the meeting had complete confidence in
Mr.
Gladstone was moved, but from want of adequate support was not
put
to the meeting. I violently attacked the land purchase scheme
in my
speech, suspended my judgment upon the Home Rule scheme until I
saw
it, but declared that it was “one which, generally speaking, so
far
as I know it, I fancy I should be able to support.” On this
same day
Cyril Flower told me that on the previous day the Irish members
had
informed Mr. Gladstone that it was their wish that he should
entirely abandon that land purchase scheme which he had adopted
for
the sake of conciliating Lord Spencer. On March 27th
Chamberlain
wrote: “My resignation has been accepted by the Queen, and is
now
therefore public property. We have a devil of a time before
us.”
'On April 5th there was a misunderstanding between Hartington
and
Chamberlain which almost shivered to pieces the newborn Liberal
Unionist party. Hartington had taken to having meetings of
James and
some of the other more Whiggish men who were acting with him,
which
meetings Chamberlain would not attend, and at these meetings
resolutions were arrived at to which Chamberlain paid no
attention.
Chamberlain consulted me as to the personal question between
Hartington and himself, and placed in my hands the letters
which
passed.'
Mr. Gladstone was to introduce his Home Rule Bill on April 8th, and on the 5th Lord Hartington wrote to Chamberlain announcing that he had 'very unwillingly' decided to follow Mr. Gladstone immediately, 'not, of course, for the purpose of answering his speech, but to state in general terms why that part of the party which generally approves of my course in declining to join the Government is unable to accept the measure which Mr. Gladstone will describe to us.'
Chamberlain replied on April 6th to Lord Hartington that his letter had surprised him. Having tendered his resignation on March 15th, he had kept silence as to his motives and intentions. He said he thought that it was understood that retiring Ministers were expected to take the first opportunity of explaining their resignations, and Trevelyan and he were alone in a position to say how far Mr. Gladstone might have modified his proposals since their resignations, and thus to initiate the subsequent debate. He objected to what he understood to be Lord Hartington's proposed course—namely, formally to oppose Mr. Gladstone's scheme immediately on its announcement; and this he thought not only a tactical error, but also discourteous to Trevelyan and himself.
'Chamberlain went on, however, virtually to accept Hartington's
suggestion, and the real reason was that he had not received
the
Queen's permission to speak upon the land purchase scheme, and
that
he did not want to make his real statement until he was in a
position to do this. Chamberlain, in sending me this
correspondence,
said that Hartington's proposal was “dictated by Goschen's
uneasy
jealousy.”'
Sir Charles at this moment believed it possible that Mr. Chamberlain might carry his point against Mr. Gladstone as to the continued representation of Ireland at Westminster, and, although he disliked this proposal, desired its success because it would retain Mr. Chamberlain in the party. This is the moment at which Dilke's influence, had he retained his old position, would probably have proved decisive. What Mr. Gladstone would not yield to Chamberlain alone he would probably have yielded to the two Radicals combined; and Mr. Chamberlain, deprived of the argument to which he gave special prominence, could scarcely have resisted his friend's wish that he should support the second reading. Sir Charles wrote, April 7th, 1886:
'I don't like the idea of the Irish throwing all their ferocity
against you, and treating you as they treated Forster. Unless
you
are given a very large share in the direction of the business,
I
think you must let it be known that you are not satisfied with
the
Whig line. I hate the prospect of your being driven into
coercion as
a follower of a Goschen-Hartington-James-Brand-Albert Grey
clique,
and yet treated by the Irish as the Forster of the clique. I
believe
from what I see of my caucus, and from the two large public
meetings we have held for discussion, that the great mass of
the
party will go for Repeal, though fiercely against the land.
Enough
will go the other way to risk all the seats, but the party will
go
for Repeal, and sooner or later now Repeal will come, whether
or not
we have a dreary period of coercion first. I should decidedly
let it
be known that you won't stand airs from Goschen.
'Yours ever,
'Chs. W. D.'
'Another meeting on the Irish Question in Chelsea led to no
clearer
expression of opinion than had the previous one, for it was
concluded by Mr. Westlake, Q.C., M.P., who afterwards voted
against
the Home Rule Bill, moving that the meeting suspend its
judgment,
and Mr. Firth, who was a Gladstonian candidate and afterwards a
Home
Rule member, seconding this resolution, which was carried
unanimously.'
'On April 20th Labouchere wrote to me as to an attempt which he
was
making to heal the breach between Mr. Gladstone and
Chamberlain.
'Chamberlain wrote on April 22nd from Highbury: “I got through
my
meeting last night splendidly. Schnadhorst has been doing
everything
to thwart me, but the whole conspiracy broke down completely in
face
of the meeting, which was most cordially enthusiastic. The
feeling
against the Land Bill was overwhelming. As regards Home Rule,
there
is no love for the Bill, but only a willingness to accept the
principle as a necessity, and to hope for a recasting of the
provisions. There is great sympathy with the old man
personally, and
at the same time a soreness that he did not consult his
colleagues
and party. Hartington's name was hissed. They cannot forgive
him for
going to the Opera House with Salisbury. I continue to receive
many
letters of sympathy from Radicals and Liberals, and invitations
to
address meetings, but I shall lie low now for some time. The
Caucuses in the country are generally with the Government, but
there
will be a great number of abstentions at an election....
Parnell is
apparently telling a good many lies just now. He told W.
Kenrick the
other day, not knowing his relationship at first, that I had
made
overtures to him for Home Rule, which showed my opposition to
Mr. G.
to be purely personal. I have sent him word that he has my
leave to
publish anything ever written or said by me on the Irish
Question,
either to him or to anyone else.... I have a list of 109 men
who at
one time or another have promised to vote against the second
reading, but they are not all stanch, and I do not think any
calculation is to be relied on.”
'On April 24th Labouchere wrote that Chamberlain and Morley
could
not be got together, Chamberlain sticking to his phrases, and
Morley
writing that Chamberlain's speech is an attempt to coerce the
Government, and they won't stand coercion.
'On April 30th Chamberlain wrote to me from Birmingham to get me
to
vote with him against the second reading. “The Bill is doomed.
I
have a list of 111 Liberals pledged against the second reading.
Of
these I know that fifty-nine have publicly announced their
intentions to their constituents. I believe that almost all the
rest
are certain; but making every allowance for desertions, the
Home
Rule Bill cannot pass without the changes I have asked for. If
these
were made, I reckon that at least fifty of the malcontents
would
vote for the second reading. Besides my 111 there are many more
who
intend to vote for amendments in Committee. The Land Bill has
hardly
any friends;” and then he strongly pressed me to go down to
Highbury
upon the subject.'
To this Sir Charles replied:
'Pyrford,
'May Day, 1886.
'My Dear Chamberlain,
'Lots of people have written to me, confident statements having
been
made that I was against the Bills, which I see Heneage repeats
in
the Times to-day. I have replied that I was strongly
against the
Bill for land purchase, but that as regards the chief Bill I
had
said nothing, and was free to vote as I thought right when the
time
came. I have called my caucus for Friday. We don't have
reporters,
but I think I ought to tell them what I mean to do, and why.
'As to our being separated, I am most anxious, as you know, that
you
should not vote against the second reading. I know the Bill is
doomed, but I fancy the Government know that, too, and that
some
change will be made or promised, and it is a question of how
much.
My difficulty in being one to ask for those changes you
want is
that I am against the chief change, as you know. If it is
made—as
seems likely—I shall keep quiet and not say I am against it,
but go
with you and the rest. But—what if it is not made? You see, I
have
said over and over again that, if forced to have a big scheme,
I had
sooner get rid of the Irish members, and that, if forced to
choose
between Repeal and Federation, I prefer Repeal to any scheme of
Federation I have ever heard of. Now, all this I can swallow
quietly—yielding my own judgment—if I go with the party; but
I
can't well fight against the party for a policy which is
opposed to
my view of the national interest. If it is of any use that I
should
remain free up to the last instant, I can manage this. I can
explain
my views in detail to the caucus, and not say which way I
intend to
vote; but I do not well see how, when it comes to the vote, I
can
fail to vote for the second reading.
'The reason, as you know, why I am so anxious for YOU (which
matters
more than I matter at present or shall for a long time) to find
yourself able if possible to take the offers made you, and vote
for
the second reading, is that the dissolution will wreck the
party,
but yet leave a party—democratic, because all the
moderates will
go over to the Tories: poor, because all the subscribers will
go
over to the Tories; more Radical than the party has ever been;
and
yet, as things now stand, with you outside of it.'
Chamberlain wrote on May 3rd from Highbury:
'My Dear Dilke,
'Your letter has greatly troubled me. My pleasure in politics
has
gone, and I hold very loosely to public life just now.
'The friends with whom I have worked so long are many of them
separated from me. The party is going blindly to its ruin, and
everywhere there seems a want of courage and decision and
principle
which almost causes one to despair. I have hesitated to write
to you
again, but perhaps it is better that I should say what is in my
mind. During all our years of intimacy I have never had a
suspicion,
until the last few weeks, that we differed on the Irish
Question.
You voted for Butt, and I assumed that, like myself, you were
in
favour of the principle of federation, although probably, like
myself also, you did not think the time had come to give
practical
effect to it. The retention of the Irish representatives is
clearly
the touchstone. If they go, separation must follow. If they
remain,
federation is possible whenever local assemblies are
established in
England and Scotland. Without the positive and absolute promise
of
the Government that the Irish representation will be
maintained, I
shall vote against the second reading. You must do what your
conscience tells you to be right, and, having decided, I should
declare the situation publicly at once.
'It will do you harm on the whole, but that cannot be helped, if
you
have made up your mind that it is right. But you must be
prepared
for unkind things said by those who know how closely we have
been
united hitherto. The present crisis is, of course, life and
death to
me. I shall win if I can, and if I cannot I will cultivate my
garden. I do not care for the leadership of a party which
should
prove itself so fickle and so careless of national interests as
to
sacrifice the unity of the Empire to the precipitate impatience
of
an old man—careless of the future in which he can have no
part—and
to an uninstructed instinct which will not take the trouble to
exercise judgment and criticism.
'I hope you have got well through your meeting to-night. I send
this
by early post to-morrow before I can see the papers.
'Yours very truly,
'J. Chamberlain.'
'The meeting to which Chamberlain in his letter referred was
that at
Preece's Riding School, in which I announced that I had
succeeded in
inducing the Queen's Proctor to intervene.... The meeting was a
very
fine one, and the next day Chamberlain wrote to congratulate me
on
it and on my speech, and added: “Labouchere writes me that the
Government are at last alive to the fact that they cannot carry
the
second reading without me, and that Mr. G. is going to give
way. I
hope it is true, but I shall not believe it till he has made a
public declaration.”'
Sir Charles replied:
'76, Sloane Street, S.W.,
'Wednesday, May 5th, 1886.
'My Dear Chamberlain,
'... It is a curious fact that we should without a difference
have
gone through the trials of the years in which we were rivals,
and
that the differences and the break should have come now that I
have—at least in my own belief, and that of most
people—ceased for
ever to count at all in politics.... The fall was, as you know,
in
my opinion final and irretrievable on the day on which the
charge
was made in July last—as would be that, in these days, of any
man
against whom such a false charge was made by conspiracy and
careful
preparation. I think, as I have always thought, that the day
will
come when all will know, but it will come too late for
political
life to be resumed with power or real use....
'You say you never had a suspicion that we differed on the Irish
Question. As to land purchase—yes: we used to differ about it;
and
we do not differ about the present Bill. As to the larger
question—
when Morley and I talked it over with you in the autumn, I said
that, if I had to take a large scheme, I inclined rather to
Repeal,
or getting rid of the Irish members, than to Home Rule. I don't
think, however, that I or you had either of us very clear or
definite views, and I am sure that Morley hadn't. You inclined
to
stick to National Councils only, and I never heard you speak of
Federation until just before you spoke on the Bill in
Parliament. I
spoke in public against Federation in the autumn in reply to
Rosebery.
'I do not pretend to have clear and definite views now, any more
than I had then. I am so anxious, for you personally, and for
the
Radical cause, that anything shall be done by the Government
that
will allow you to vote for the second reading, and so succeed
to the
head of the party purged of the Whig element; so anxious, that,
while I don't really see my way about Federation, and on the
whole
am opposed to it, I will pretend to see my way, and try and
find
hope about it; so anxious, that, though I still incline to
think (in
great doubt) that it would be better to get rid of the Irish
members, I said in my last, I think, I would be silent as to
this,
and joyfully see the Government wholly alter their scheme in
your
sense. I still hope for the Government giving the promise that
you
ask. Labouchere has kept me informed of all that has passed,
and I
have strongly urged your view on Henry Fowler, who agrees with
you,
and on the few who have spoken to me. I care (in great doubt as
to
the future of Ireland and as to that of the Empire) more about
the
future of Radicalism, and about your return to the party and
escape
from the Whigs, than about anything else as to which I am clear
and
free from doubt. I don't think that my circumstances make any
declaration or any act of mine necessary, and on Friday at the
private meeting I need not declare myself, and can perhaps best
help
bring about the promise which you want by not doing so. Why
don't
you deal with the Chancellor (Lord Herschell), instead of with
Labouchere, O'Shea, and so forth?
'I care so much (not about what you name, and it is a pity you
should do so, for one word of yourself is worth more with me
than
the opinion of the whole world)—not about what people will
say, but
about what you think, that I am driven distracted by your tone.
I
beg you to think that I do not consider myself in this at all,
except that I should wish to so act as to act rightly. Personal
policy I should not consider for myself. My seat here will go,
either way, for certain, as it is a Tory seat now, and will
become a
more and more Tory seat with each fresh registration. If I
should
make any attempt to remain at all in political life, I do not
think
that my finding another seat would depend on the course I take
in
this present Irish matter. This thing will be forgotten in the
common resistance of the Radicals to Tory coercion. I think,
then,
that by the nature of things I am not influenced by selfish
considerations. As to inclination, I feel as strongly as any
man can
as to the way in which Mr. Gladstone has done this
thing, and all
my inclination is therefore to follow you, where affection also
leads. But if this is to be—what it will be—a fight, not as
to the
way and the man, and the past, but as to the future, the second
reading will be a choice between acceptance of a vast change
which
has in one form or the other become inevitable, and on the
other
side Hartington-Goschen opposition, with coercion behind it. I
am
only a camp follower now, but my place is not in the camp of
the
Goschens, Hartingtons, Brands, Heneages, Greys. I owe
something,
too, to my constituents. There can be no doubt as to the
feeling of
the rank and file, from whom I have received such hearty
support and
following. If I voted against the second reading, unable as I
should
be honestly to defend my vote as you could and would honestly
defend
yours, by saying that all turned on the promise as to the
retention
of the Irish members, I should be voting without a ground or a
defence, except that of personal affection for you, which is
one
which it is wholly impossible to put forward. If I voted
against the
second reading, I should vote like a peer, with total disregard
to
the opinion of those who sent me to Parliament. Their
overwhelming
feeling—and they never cared for Mr. Gladstone, and do not
care for
him—is, hatred of the Land Bill, but determination to have
done
with coercion. They look on the second reading as a declaration
for
or against large change. They believe that the Irish members
will be
kept, though they differ as to whether they want it. Both you
and I
regard large change as inevitable, and it is certain that as to
the
form of it you must win. The exclusion of the Irish has no
powerful
friends, save Morley, and he knows he is beaten and must give
way. I
still in my heart think the case for the exclusion better than
the
case against it, but all the talk is the other way. The Pall
Mall
is helping you very powerfully, for it is a tremendous
power, and
even Mr. G., I fancy, is really with you about it, and not with
Morley. It seems to me that they must accept your own terms.
'The meeting was a most wonderful success.
'Yours ever,
'Chs. W. D.
'Since I nearly finished this, your other has come, and I have
now
read it. I have only to repeat that I should not negotiate
through
Labouchere, but through a member of the Cabinet of high
character
who agrees in your view. L. is very able and very pleasant, but
still a little too fond of fun, which often, in delicate
matters,
means mischief.
'I have kept no copy of this letter. When one has a “difference
with
a friend,” I believe “prudence dictates” that one should keep a
record of what one writes. I have not done so. I can't really
believe that you would, however worried and badgered and
misrepresented, grow hard or unkind under torture, any more
than I
have; but you are stronger than I am, and perhaps my weakness
helps
me in this way. I don't believe in the difference, and I have
merely
scribbled all I think in the old way.'
Chamberlain wrote:
'May 6th, 1886.
'My Dear Dilke,
'The strain of the political situation is very great and the
best
and strongest of us may well find it difficult to keep an even
mind.
'I thank you for writing so fully and freely. It is evident
that,
without meaning it, I must have said more than I supposed, and
perhaps in the worry of my own mind I did not allow enough for
the
tension of yours.
'We never have been rivals. Such an idea has not at any time
entered
my mind, and consequently, whether your position is as
desperate as
you suppose or as completely retrievable as I hope and believe,
it
is not from this point of view that I regard any differences,
but
entirely as questions affecting our long friendship and
absolute
mutual confidence. If we differ now at this supreme moment, it
is
just as painful to me to lose your entire sympathy as if you
could
bring to me an influence as great as Gladstone's himself.
'I feel bitterly the action of some of these men ... who have
left
my side at this time, although many of them owe much to me, and
certainly cannot pretend to have worked out for themselves the
policy which for various reasons they have adopted. On the
whole—and in spite of unfavourable symptoms—I think I shall
win
this fight, and shall have in the long-run an increase of
public
influence; but even if this should be the case I cannot forget
what
has been said and done by those who were among my most intimate
associates, and I shall never work with them again with the
slightest real pleasure or real confidence. With you it is
different. We have been so closely connected that I cannot
contemplate any severance. I hope, as I have said, that this
infernal cloud on your public life will be dispersed; and if it
is
not I feel that half my usefulness and more—much more—than
half my
interest in politics are gone.... As to the course to be taken,
it
is clear. You must do what you believe to be right, even though
it
sends us for once into opposite lobbies.
'I do not really expect the Government to give way, and, indeed,
I
do not wish it. To satisfy others I have talked about
conciliation,
and have consented to make advances, but on the whole I would
rather
vote against the Bill than not, and the retention of the Irish
members is only, with me, the flag that covers other
objections. I
want to see the whole Bill recast and brought back to the
National
Council proposals, with the changes justified by the altered
public
opinion. I have no objection to call them Parliaments and to
give
them some legislative powers, but I have as strong a dislike as
ever
to anything like a really co-ordinate authority in Ireland, and
if
one is ever set up I should not like to take the responsibility
of
governing England.
'I heartily wish I could clear out of the whole businesfor the
next twelve months at least. I feel that there is no longer any
security for anything while Mr. Gladstone remains the foremost
figure in politics. But as between us two let nothing come.
'Yours ever sincerely,
'J. Chamberlain.'
'On May 7th Chamberlain wrote:
'“I hope it will all come right in the end, and though not so
optimist as I was, I do believe that 'le jour se fera.'
'“I got more names yesterday against the Bill. I have
ninety-three
now. Labouchere declares still that Mr. G. means to give way,
and
has now a plan for the retention of Irish members which is to
go to
Cabinet to-day or to-morrow.”
'On May 18th I presided at the special meeting of the London
Liberal
and Radical Council, of which I was President, which discussed
the
Home Rule Bill; but I merely presided without expressing
opinions,
and I discouraged the denunciations of Hartington and
Chamberlain,
which, however, began to be heard, their names being loudly
hissed.
On May 27th we had the meeting of the party on the Bill at the
Foreign Office, which I attended. But there was no expression
of the
views of the minority.'
Mr. Chamberlain wrote to the Press some phrases of biting comment concerning the meeting of the 18th, and Sir Charles made protest in a private letter.
'It is a great pity,' he wrote to Chamberlain, 'that you should
not
have done justice to the efforts and speeches of your friends
at
that meeting. Many were there (and the seven delegates from
almost
every association attended, which made the meeting by far the
most
complete representation of the party ever held) simply for the
purpose of preventing and replying to attacks on you. For every
attack on you there was a reply; the amendments attacking you
were
both defeated, and a colourless resolution carried, and
Claydon,
Osborn, Hardcastle and others, defended you with the utmost
warmth
and vigour.'
'Chamberlain wrote to me (May 20th, 1886) about the attacks
which
were being made on him:
'“I was disgusted at the brutality of some of the attacks. I am
only
human, and I cannot stand the persistent malignity of
interpretation
of all my actions and motives without lashing out occasionally.
You
will see that I met your letter with an apology. I might
complain of
its tone, but I don't. This strain and tension is bad for all
of us.
I do not know where it will ultimately lead us, but I fear that
the
mischief already done is irretrievable.
'“I shall fight this matter out to the bitter end, but I am
getting
more and more doubtful whether, when it is out of the way, I
shall
continue in politics. I am 'wounded in the house of my
friends,' and
I have lost my interest in the business.”
'In another letter (May 21st) Chamberlain said: “Your note makes
everything right between us. Let us agree to consider
everything
which is said and done for the next few weeks as a dream.
'“I suppose the party must go to smash and the Tories come in.
After
a few years those of us who remain will be able to pick up the
pieces. It is a hard saying, but apparently Mr. Gladstone is
bent on
crowning his life by the destruction of the most devoted and
loyal
instrument by which a great Minister was ever served.”
[Footnote: In
a letter of January 2nd, 1886, Lord Hartington, writing to Lord
Granville, said: “Did any leader ever treat a party in such a
way as
he (Mr. Gladstone) has done?” (Life of Granville, vol.
ii., p.
478).]
'On June 2nd Chamberlain wrote: “I suppose we shall have a
dissolution immediately and an awful smash.” On that day I
spoke on
the Irish Registration Bills in the House of Commons—almost
the
only utterance which I made in the course of this short
Parliament.
'On June 4th Sir Robert Sandeman, who had sought an interview
with
me to thank me for what I had done previously about the
assigned
districts on the Quetta frontier, came to see me, to tell me
the
present position and to discuss with me Sir Frederick Roberts's
plans for defence against the eventuality of a Russian
advance.'
The defeat of the Home Rule Bill by a majority of thirty came on June 8th, and the General Election followed. [Footnote: See Morley's Life of Gladstone, vol. iii., p. 337, which gives one o'clock on the morning of the 8th as the time of decision. Sir Charles's Memoir contains among its pages an article from Truth of October 14th, 1908, marked by him. The article, which is called 'The Secret History of the First Home Rule Bill,' states that Mr. Gladstone's language did not make clear that the proposal to exclude Irish representatives from the Imperial Parliament was given up. Mr. Chamberlain, who had made the retention of the Irish members a condition of giving his vote for the second reading, left the House, declaring that his decision to vote against the Bill was final. The Life of Labouchere, by Algar Thorold, chap, xii., p. 272 et seq., gives the long correspondence between Mr. Chamberlain and Mr. Labouchere prior to this event.] Sir Charles voted for the Bill.
'On July 5th I was beaten at Chelsea, and so left Parliament in
which I had sat from November, 1868.
'The turn-over in Chelsea was very small, smaller than anywhere
else
in the neighbourhood, and showed that personal considerations
had
told in my favour, inasmuch as we gained but a small number of
Irish, it not being an Irish district, and had it not been for
personal considerations should have lost more Liberal Unionists
than
we did.
'Some of my warmest private and personal friends were forced to
work
and vote against me (on the Irish Question), as, for example,
John
Westlake, Q.C., and Dr. Robert Cust, the learned Secretary of
the
Royal Asiatic Society, and Sir Henry Gordon—General Charles
Gordon's brother—who soon afterwards died, remaining my strong
friend, as did these others.
'James wrote to Lady Dilke, July 26th:
'“No one but your husband could have polled so many Gladstonian
votes. London is dead against the Prime Minister.”'
Mr. Chamberlain wrote of his deep regret and sympathy that the one Ministerialist seat which he had earnestly hoped would be kept should have gone. He pointed out that the falling off in this case was less than in other London polls; but the reactionary period would continue while Mr. Gladstone was in politics. If he retired, Mr. Chamberlain thought the party would recover in a year or two.
There is a warm letter from Mr. Joseph Cowen of Newcastle, who wrote:
'Chelsea has been going Tory for some time past, and only you
would
have kept it Liberal at the last election.... If you had not
been
one of the bravest men that ever lived, you would have been
driven
away long ago. I admire your courage and sincerely sympathize
with
your misfortunes.... I always believed you would achieve the
highest
position in English statesmanship, and I don't despair of your
doing
so still.'
For a final word in this chapter of discouragement may be given a letter from Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, who wrote from a detached position, having been prevented by illness from standing both in 1885 and 1886:
'What a delightful leader of a party is the G.O.M.! It is an
interesting subject of speculation, though, thank God, it is
one of
speculation only, what might happen to this country if, like
the old
Red Indian in Hawthorne's novel, he lived to be 300 years
old.... My
own opinions about setting up a Parliament in Dublin are quite
unchanged, but I look on the G.O.M. as the great obstacle to
any
satisfactory settlement. I see nothing but pandemonium ahead of
us.'
The question was whether the future Assembly in Dublin was to be called a 'Legislature' or a 'Parliament.'
Sir Charles, as a Gladstonian Liberal politician, was involved in the misfortune of his party. But in the first weeks of July he hoped that justice in the court of law might soon relieve his personal misfortunes. That anticipation was rudely falsified. Within a fortnight after he had lost the seat which had been won and held by him triumphantly in four General Elections, the second trial of his case was over, and had followed the course which has been already described.
Sir Charles Dilke's marriage in 1885 extended rather than modified his sphere of work. Lady Dilke, the Emilia Strong who was studying drawing in 1859 at South Kensington, [Footnote: See Chapter 11. (Vol. 1., p. 17).] had submitted herself in these long intervening years to such scholarly training and discipline as gave her weight and authority on the subjects which she handled.
The brilliant girl's desire to take all knowledge for her kingdom had been intensified by her marriage at twenty-one to the scholar more than twice her age. In the words of Sir Charles's Memoir: 'She widened her conception of art by the teaching of the philosopher and by the study of the literatures to which the schooling of Mark Pattison admitted her. She saw, too, men and things, travelled largely with him, became mistress of many tongues, and gained above all a breadth of desire for human knowledge, destined only to grow with the advance of years.' [Footnote: The Book of the Spiritual Life, by the late Lady Dilke, with a Memoir of the Author by Sir Charles W. Dilke, p. 18.]
At twenty-five years of age she was contributing philosophical articles to the Westminster Review, and for years she wrote the review of foreign politics for the Annual Register. Later she furnished art criticisms to the Portfolio, the Saturday Review, and the Academy, of which last she was art editor. It was as an art critic that she had come to be known, and to this work she brought a remarkable equipment; for to her technical knowledge and artist's training was added a deep study of the tendencies of history and of human thought. Art in the Modern State, in which she wrote of the art of the 'Grand Siecle' in its bearing on modern political and social organizations, has been quoted as the book most characteristic of the philosophical tendency of her writing, but this did not appear till 1888. The Renaissance of Art in France, which had been published in 1879, was illustrated by drawings from her own pencil, and in 1884 had appeared Claude Lorrain, written by herself in the pure and graceful French of which she was mistress.
She had been a pupil of Mulready, whose portrait still decorates the mantelpiece of her Pyrford home, and in the early South Kensington days had come much under the influence of Watts and Ruskin. There were numbered among her friends many who had achieved distinction in the art, literature, or politics of Europe. Her letters on art to Eugene Muentz, preserved in the Manuscript Department of the Bibliotheque Nationale, commemorate the friendship and assistance given to her by the author of the History of the Italian Renaissance, whose admiration for her work made him persuade her to undertake her Claude. It was Taine who bore witness to her 'veritable erudition on the fine arts of the Renaissance,' when in 1871, lecturing in Oxford, he used to visit Mark Pattison and his young wife at Lincoln College, and described the 'toute jeune femme, charmante, gracieuse, a visage frais et presque mutin, dans le plus joli nid de vieille architecture, avec lierre et grands arbres.' [Footnote: 'The Art Work of Lady Dilke,' Quarterly Review, October, 1906.] It was Renan, a friend of later years, whom as yet she did not know, who 'presented' her Renaissance to the Academie des Inscriptions et Belles-Lettres.
But there was another side to her activities, as intense. Public service was to her a duty of citizenship, and her keen sympathy with suffering had inspired her to such study of economic and industrial questions that, in her effort for the development of organization among women workers, she was for years 'the practical director of a considerable social movement.' Her four volumes on Art in France in the Eighteenth Century, which occupied her from this time onwards, were not more absorbing to her than was the growth of the Women's Trade Union League.
She had concentrated her powers on a special period of French art, just as she concentrated them on a certain phase of industrial development; but her reverence for and pursuit of all learning persisted, and, in the words of the Memoir written by Sir Charles, 'she was master enough of human knowledge in its principal branches to know the relation of almost every part of it to every other.' [Footnote: Book of the Spiritual Life, Memoir, p. 70.]
The intense mental training of the years of her first marriage had given her a grasp of essential facts and a breadth of outlook most unusual in women, and rare among men. She always correlated her own special work to that of the larger world. She found in the Women's Protective and Provident Union a little close corporation, full of sex antagonism and opposition to legislative protection, but under her sway these limitations gradually disappeared, and the Women's Trade Union movement became an integral part of industrial progress. It is difficult to realize now the breadth of vision which was then required to see that the industrial interests of the sexes are identical, and that protective legislation does not hamper, but emancipates. It was this attitude which brought to her in this field of work the friendship and support of all that was best in the Labour world of her day henceforth to the end.
'It is delightful to talk to Mrs. Mark Pattison,' said Sir Charles Dilke years before to Sir Henry James. 'She says such wonderful things.' She had the rare power of revealing to others by a few words things in their true values, and those who came within the sphere of her influence try still to recover the attitude of mind which she inspired, to remember how she would have looked at the fresh problems which confront them, and to view them in relation to all work and life.
It was this knowledge and breadth of view which told. A perfect speaker, with tremendous force of personality, charm of manner, beauty of voice, and command of emotional oratory, her power was greatest when she preferred to these methods the force of a reasoned appeal. Conviction waited on these appeals, and in early days, at a public meeting, a group of youthful cynics, 'out' for entertainment, dispersed with the comment: 'That was wonderful—you couldn't heckle a woman like that.'
Her serious work never detracted from her social charm, which was influenced by her love and study of eighteenth century French art. Her wit, gaiety, and the sensitive fancy which manifested itself in her stories, [Footnote: The Shrine of Love, and Other Stories; and The Shrine of Death, and Other Stories.] made up this charm, which was reflected in the distinction and finish of her appearance. Some touches seemed subtly to differentiate her dress from the prevailing fashion, and to make it the expression of a personality which belonged to a century more dignified, more leisured, and less superficial, than our own. [Footnote: Book of the Spiritual Life, p. 120.] Her dress recalled the canvases of Boucher, Van Loo, and Watteau, which she loved.
She played as she worked, with all her heart, delivering herself completely to the enjoyment of the moment. 'Vous devez bien vous amuser, Monsieur, tous les jours chez vous,' said a Frenchwoman to Sir Charles one night at a dinner in Paris. [Footnote: Book of the Spiritual Life, Memoir, p. 96.] In this power of complete relaxation their natures coincided. Her gaiety matched Sir Charles's own. This perhaps was the least of the bonds between them. The same high courage, the same capacity for tireless work, the same sense of public duty, characterized both.
Sir Charles's real home was the home of all his life, of his father and grandfather—No. 76, Sloane Street. Pyrford and Dockett were, like La Sainte Campagne at Toulon, mainly places for rest and play. This home was a house of treasures—of many things precious in themselves, and more that were precious to the owners from memory and association. Through successive generations one member of the family after another had added to the collection. Many had been accumulated by the last owner, who slept always in the room that had been his nursery. He believed he would die, and desired to die, in the house where he was born. The desire was accomplished, for he died there, on January 26th, 1911, a few months before the long lease expired.
Partly from its dull rich colouring of deep blues and reds and greens, its old carpets and tapestries, partly from the pictures that crowded its walls, the interior had the air rather of a family country-house than of a London dwelling in a busy street.
Pictures, lining the walls from top to bottom of the staircase, represented a medley of date and association. Byng's Fleet at Naples on August 1st, 1718, with Sir Thomas Dilkes second in command, hung next to a view of the Chateau de la Garde, near Toulon. This picturesque ruin rose clear in the view from Sir Charles's house at Cap Brun, 'La Sainte Campagne,' and figures as an illustration in one of Lady Dilke's stories; 'Reeds and Umbrella Pines' at Carqueiranne, by Pownoll Williams, kept another memory of Provence. Next to a painting, by Horace Vernet, of a scene on the Mediterranean coast, little Anne Fisher, born 1588, exhibited herself in hooped and embroidered petticoat, quaint cap and costly laces, a person of great dignity at six years old. She was to be Lady Dilke of Maxstoke Castle and a shrewd termagant, mother of two sons who sided, one with the Commonwealth, the other with the King. The Royalist Sir Peter Wentworth was a great friend of Milton, with whom he came in contact on the Committee of State when Milton was Secretary for the Council of Foreign Tongues. But Cromwell turned him off the Council, and he was arrested and brought to London for abetting his Warwickshire tenantry in refusal to pay the Protector's war-taxes. Her Puritan son, Fisher Dilke, followed, with a sour-faced Puritan divine, and then came a group of water-colours by Thomas Hood, the author of 'The Song of the Shirt,' and an intimate friend of the Dilkes.
One of the ancestors, an earlier Peter Wentworth, son of Sir Nicholas Wentworth (who was Chief Porter of Calais, and knighted by Henry VIII. at the siege of Boulogne), bore the distinction of having been three times sent to the Tower. The first was for a memorable speech on behalf of the liberties of the House of Commons, in 1575. Imprisonment does not seem to have taught him caution, for he was last imprisoned in 1593, because he had 'offended Her Majesty,' and a prisoner he remained till his death in 1596, occupying the period by writing a Pithie Exhortation to Her Majesty for Establishing her Successor to the Crowne.
Engravings of Sir Philip Sidney, Sir Francis Walsingham, Sir Harry Vane, Fulk Greville, Lord Burleigh, William Warham (the friend of Erasmus, Archbishop of Canterbury, and Chancellor), Queen Katharine Parr, Robert Devereux (Earl of Essex), who all came into the Dilke pedigree, hung on the walls. But the most interesting portrait might have been that of Sir Charles himself in fancy dress, the Sir Charles of the early eighties before trouble had lined his face or silvered his hair. This was the painting of Sir Thomas, afterwards Lord Wentworth, who died in 1551 and lies in Westminster Abbey. The reversion to type was so striking that guests would often ask to see again 'the best portrait of Sir Charles.' [Footnote: This first Baron Wentworth had been knighted for his bravery in the taking of Braye and Montdidier in the expedition to France of 1523, and in 1529 was summoned to Parliament under the title of Lord Wentworth of Nettlestead. He attended Henry VIII. in his interview with the French King at Calais, and under Edward VI. was Lord Chamberlain of the Household and a member of the Privy Council.]
Among more recent portraits and drawings were a group of trophies, illustrating Sir Charles's experiences in the Franco-German War. Of three passes, the first was carried when he was with the Crown Prince Frederick and the Knights of St. John; the other two showed the change in his sympathies from Germany to France—one from the Commune, the other from the national headquarters at Versailles. Here lay a bullet which struck the wall beside him at Clamart Railway Station, just missing him; pens taken from the table of the Procureur Imperial at Wissembourg when the first French town was entered by the Germans; and a trophy of his birthday in 1871, a bit of the Napoleonic Eagle from the Guard-room at the Tuileries, smashed by the crowd on that day, September 4th, when the Third Republic was proclaimed.
Then followed old photographs of members of Parliament and Cabinet Ministers; pictures of Maxstoke Castle, where the elder branch of the Dilkes had its home; etchings by Rajon; framed numbers of Le Vengeur, printed after the entry of the Versailles army into Paris during the 'semaine sang-lante'; addresses, including some in Greek, presented to Sir Charles on various occasions. In the double dining-room a famous portrait of Gambetta—the only portrait taken from life—hung over one mantelpiece. A favourite citation might have been upon the lips: 'La France etait a genoux. Je lui ai dit, “Leve-toi”.' In 1875 Sir Charles asked Professor Legros to go to Paris and paint Gambetta, who never sat to any other artist. This portrait hangs now in the Luxembourg, and will ultimately be transferred to the Louvre, its destination by Sir Charles's bequest. The only other portrait of Gambetta is that by Bonnat, painted after death. It was the property of Dilke's friend M. Joseph Reinach, and the two had agreed to bequeath these treasured possessions to the Louvre. But the Legros was the more authentic. M. Bonnat said to Sir Charles: 'Mine is black and white; I never saw him. Yours is red as a lobster. Mais il parait qu'il etait rouge comme un homard.' Sir Charles himself wrote: 'It is Gambetta as he lives and moves and has his being. What more can I ask for or expect?' He always predicted that its painter, whose merit had never in his opinion been adequately recognized, would after death come to his due place.
The rooms had been lined with the grandfather's books, but soon after he came into possession Sir Charles disposed of them. He had a strong belief in keeping round him only the necessary tools for his work, and a large library was an encumbrance to him. But sentiment was strong, and for some time they remained, till a comment of George Odger's sealed their fate. Looking round the shelves, he remarked with wonderment on the number of the books and the wisdom of the friend who had read them all. Sir Charles, conscious that he had not done so, and that he never should lead the life of a purely literary man, gave away the more valuable, and sold the rest of the collection. Lord Carlingford profited by the Junius papers; Mr. John Murray by the Pope manuscripts; the British Museum by the Caryll papers; and pictures took the place of shelves. [Footnote: See Chapter XI. (Vol. I., pp. 161, 162).]
A number of fine old prints after Raphael were there, and also a photograph of the head of Fortune in Burne-Jones's 'Wheel.' Sir Charles had commissioned Burne-Jones to paint a head of Fortune, and the correspondence on the subject was sufficiently complete to suggest that the commission had been executed, though as a fact it was never carried out. Sir Charles, who knew something of the difficulty of tracing and attributing pictures, used to declare laughingly that the correspondence might go far to mislead some critic of the future into search after a non-existent original. Anyway, the beautiful head with its closed eyes hung there always, presiding over the varying fortunes of the last tenants of the house.
The far dining-room opened with French windows on a paved terrace, which led by steps to a little garden and to the stables beyond. This terrace was the scene of the morning fencing, when the clashing of foils and Sir Charles's shouts of laughter resounded to the neighbouring gardens. Lord Harcourt recalls the parties in the eighties, as one of the characteristic features of life at 76, Sloane Street. Lord Desborough, then Mr. W. Grenfell, a first-rate fencer, came frequently, and he chronicles the 'deadly riposte' of Sir Julian Pauncefote, a regular attendant when he was in town. Mr. R. C. Lehmann, best known as oarsman and boxer, but a fencer as well, came whenever he could. A great St. Bernard, lying waiting for him in the entrance hall, announced his master's presence.
Baron d'Estournelles de Constant, of the French Embassy, was one of the most regular attendants. When M. d'Estournelles left London it was to go to Tunis; and further reference in one of Sir Charles's letters betrays the pride with which he learnt that this frequenter of his school had done it credit by 'pinking his man' in a duel. M. Joseph Reinach came to fence whenever he was in London; so did Italian masters—for example, the Marchese Fabrizio Panluoci de' Calboli, 'who wants to set up here.'
The maitre d'armes was senior master at the London Fencing Club, and many young fencers joined these parties to gain experience. Sir Charles was one of the first Englishmen to use the epee; he fenced always when in Paris, as in London, and any famous French fencer who visited this country received as a matter of course an invitation to the morning meetings at No. 76. [Footnote: Sir Charles fenced whenever he was abroad, if he could get an opponent. There is a note of 1881: 'August 29th-September 3rd, fenced with de Clairval at La Bourboule.' As late as 1907 he was fencing at Hyeres with a master who came over from Toulon on certain days in the week. Also at the end of 1881 he 'started a local fencing club in my own street, and trained some good fencers there, and used to get away to fence there whenever I could find time in the evening hours.' He took part in a competition at this club, and 'won the prize for rapier fencing, being beaten, of course, for foil fencing.'] Sir Theodore Cook, now editor of the Field, an antagonist of a later date, and captain of the first international fencing team of 1903, speaks of the considerable reputation of Sir Charles as a fencer, 'taking the same place in a quiet way as that Lord Howard de Walden takes towards the public now' (1913).
It was the 'unconventional style and the boyish enjoyment of his pastime'—to use Lord Desborough's words—which were characteristic of Sir Charles. His mischievous attempts to distract his adversary's attention, his sudden drops to the ground and bewildering recoveries, his delight at the success of his feints, and contagious merriment, must have gained the sympathy of even the most formal fencer. Many stories of these bouts are told. One is that, having driven an antagonist from the terrace into the Garden Room, into which he was followed by his favourite cat, Sir Charles caught up and threw the protesting animal at his opponent, and dealt his final blow at a foe embarrassed by the double onslaught. Those, however, who know his respect for the dignity of cats will always regard the story as apocryphal.
He delighted in having near him the pictures of his friends, and there were many on the next landing, in the vestibule and the Blue Room to which it led. Mr. Chamberlain, keen-eyed and alert, looked out from Frank Holl's canvas. Fawcett, [Footnote: Now in the National Portrait Gallery, as also Holl's 'Chamberlain,' by Sir Charles's bequest.] painted by Ford Madox Brown in 1871, recalled an earlier friendship, as did the portrait of John Stuart Mill, who, never having sat to any painter, just before his death allowed Watts to paint this for Sir Charles. The picture came home on the day Mill died, and is the original. It was left by will to the Westminster Town Hall. The picture in the National Portrait Gallery is a replica, painted by Sir Charles's leave. By Watts was also a beautiful portrait of Sir Charles himself, the pendant to another which has gone. He and his first wife were painted for each other, but the portrait of her seemed to him so inadequately to render the 'real charm' of the dead woman that he destroyed it. The illustrations of this book contain some reproductions of pictures mentioned here.
Reminiscent of earlier family friendships were the Keats relics here and in Sir Charles's own study. Many of these had been bought by old Mr. Dilke from Keats's love, Fanny Brawne, to save them from the indignity of an auction.
In the Blue Room also hung some extraordinarily fine pictures by Blake, who was the friend of Sir Charles's grandfather—among them 'The Crucifixion,' 'The Blasphemer,' and 'The Devil,' [Footnote: 'I gave four of my Blakes to the South Kensington Museum in 1884.'] The best loved both by the grandfather and by Sir Charles was the beautiful 'Queen Catherine's Dream.' A precious copy of The Songs of Innocence, hand-painted by Blake and his wife, completed the collection. There were several reliefs by Dalou in the house, the finest let in over the mantelpiece of the Blue Room, a copy of Flaxman's Mercury and Pandora. They were executed for Sir Charles when the sculptor was in London in great distress after the Commune, before the amnesty which retrieved his fortunes.
Here also were reminiscences of Provence. One side of the wall was largely covered by a picture of Frejus by Wislin, painted in the days when St. Raphael and Valescure did not exist, and when the old town rose clear from the low ground as Rome rises from the Campagna, the beautiful Roquebrune, a spur of Sir Charles's beloved Mountains of the Moors, behind it. Sevres china, vases, bronzes, filled the window ledges, presents to the first Baronet from the Emperor of Austria, Napoleon III., the Crown Prince of Prussia (afterwards the Emperor Frederick), and other royal persons and Governments, with whom his Exhibition work brought him into touch.
At the time when Horace Walpole's collection at Strawberry Hill was sold, Sir Charles's grandfather had stayed at Twickenham, and had brought away many purchases, which peopled the Red and Green Drawing-rooms on the next landing. There was a little group of miniatures in which the 'Beautiful Gunnings' and a charming 'Miss Temple' figured; in another group, miniatures of Addison, of Mme. Le Brun, of Moliere, came from Lady Morgan, whose pen of bog-oak and gold, a gift to her from the Irish people, hung in Sir Charles's own study. The best of the miniatures were those by Peter Oliver, and portrayed Frederick of Bohemia, Elector Palatine, and his wife Elizabeth, Princess Royal of England, afterwards married to Lord Craven; while the finest of all was 'a son of Sir Kenelm Digby, 1632.' It was one of 'several others' which Walpole 'purchased at a great price,' a purchase which was thus chronicled 'by Mason (Junius) in a letter to Walpole: 'I congratulate you on the new miniatures, though I know one day they will become Court property and dangle under the crimson-coloured shop-glasses of our gracious Queen Charlotte.' The set were all brought together for the first time since 1842 at the Burlington Fine Arts Club Exhibition.
In these two drawing-rooms, among the medley of enamelled and inlaid tables, royal gifts and collectors' purchases, pictures by Cranach, Mabuse, Van Goyen, Mignard, and many more, some special objects stood out. These were a beautiful Madonna by Memling, on a circular panel, from Lord Northwick's collection; the Strawberry Hill marble version of the famous Bargello relief by Donatello, of the head of the infant St. John the Baptist; and a portrait ascribed to Cornelius Jansen, which, owing to the fleurs-de-lis on the chair, passed by the name of 'the Duchess,' a portly lady of some dignity, with beautiful white hands and tapering fingers. Lady Dilke's researches, however, placed the lady as Anne Dujardin, an innkeeper of Lyons. The painter, young Karl Dujardin, unable to pay his reckoning, had settled it by marrying his hostess and taking her to Amsterdam, and the fleurs-de-lis on the chair explained that the lady was of French extraction. A Flemish head of Margaret of Austria, Regent of the Netherlands, had come from the Gwydyr Collection. She was much exhibited, but her main interest was due to Sir Charles's intense admiration for the governing capacity and the overshadowed life of the woman. He made two pilgrimages to the church at Brou, near Bourg-en-Bresse, where her sculptured face, closely resembling that of the portrait, looks out from tomb and windows, as she lies side by side with Philibert le Beau, the husband of her love and of her youth, in the magnificent shrine she built for him.
Tapestry hangings divided the rooms from each other, and in many cases only heavy curtains divided them from the stairs.
Above these rooms, Sir Charles's little study, occupied all day by his secretary or himself, was lined with books of reference and piles of despatch-boxes, while every spare foot on the wall held relics of the past. There was the Herkomer portrait of his second wife, there also a copy of a favourite picture, Bellini's Doge Leonardo Loredano; the portrait of Keats, the only one Severn did from the life—now on loan at the National Portrait Gallery—old political cartoons of Chelsea days, portraits and prints of John Wilkes, and a head of Mazzini. Felix Moscheles (the nephew of Mendelssohn and baby of the Cradle Song) painted Mazzini. Concerning its subject the Memoir notes: 'In the course of 1872 I lost a good friend in Mazzini, whose enthusiasms, Italian and religious, I at that time scarcely shared, but whose conversation and close friendship I deeply valued.... The modernness of the Universal Cigarette Smoking Craze may be judged by the fact that Mazzini was the first man I ever knew who was constantly smoking cigarettes.'
The rest was a medley impossible to catalogue: portraits of Charles Lamb, who had been the grandfather's friend; a scarce proclamation by the Pretender; medals and other 'Caryll' relics; rapiers, pistols which had travelled with Sir Charles through America; a section of the Trinity Hall boat which was head of the river in 1862 and 1864; seven cups, trophies of rowing, walking, fencing, and shooting matches, with shots dug up on his Toulon estate which were mementoes of the British blockades of the town. Apart from works of reference, a special case was given to autographed books from Hood, Rogers the poet, Gambetta, Laveleye, Louis Blanc, Castelar, Cardinal Manning, Queen Victoria, and many more. In this collection figured all Sir Charles's college prizes, carefully preserved; the family Bible of Lord Leicester, uncle to Sir Philip Sidney, with Dilke family entries; and a little volume in which his second wife had written for him some of the most beautiful passages from 'Queens' Gardens' in Sesame and Lilies; it was bound in white vellum and 'blessed by Ruskin.' Here, too, were many Keats letters and books afterwards left by will to Hampstead.
A hoard of treasures filled a little book-room above—his mother's sketches, drawings of his first wife driving her ponies in Sloane Street, photographs and trinkets of hers, old family caricatures, and also some original sketches by Leech. In the room next to it, occupied by his grandmother till her death in 1882, was a John Collier of the first Lady Dilke.
When the grandmother's sitting-room was used later by Sir Charles's second wife, its main features were a small reference library of French art and a collection of books on Labour. Before the fireplace, on the writing-table as it was in 1885, were bowls of French porcelain filled once a week with fresh flowers from the Toulon garden—paper white narcissus and purple anemones or big violets of Provencal growth.
Sir Charles's bedroom above was the old nursery, connected with his mother's room, in which he was born, and out of which opened a little room where as a child he slept. His memories of that room were the terrors of a nervous boy, lying alone in the dark, creeping downstairs to sit—a tiny white-robed figure—as near as possible to the drawing-room door, to get comfort from the hum of talk or thunder of the four-handed piano pieces of the period.
His own room for many years was full of drawings by his second wife—her studies under Mulready, her drawings for her Renaissance, and other pen-and-ink sketches by her hand, as well as two miniatures of her by Pollet. Some of Frank Dicey's Thames water-colours, one showing Sir Charles's river house at Dockett Eddy, and sketches from his own pen or brush made in his Russian, American, and world-wide wanderings, were here also. In a tiny glazed bookcase by the fire were some 'favourite books,' a volume or two of Kipling, two volumes of Anatole France, next to a cookery book of 1600, Renan's Souvenirs d'Enfance et de Jeunesse, and a volume of Aubanel. The place of honour was given to a deeply scored copy of Jeremy Taylor's Golden Grove.
Beside his great-uncle's Peninsular medal and clasps hung one of Roty's medals, a present from the artist. There were several of Roty's beautiful medallions in the house, the finest one of Sir Charles himself, explained by the legend on the back as 'done for his wife.' She had it made, and it was always with her.
There were a good many of W. E. F. Britten's pictures, painted for Sir Charles; the finest was that of 'St. Francis preaching to the Birds,' a thing of delicate colour and taste, which fitted with his love of the Umbrian Holy Land and went later to the country cottage at Pyrford. There was more force in a large crayon drawing of the Earl of Southampton in the Tower: 'his cat had just arrived down the chimney, probably saving his master's reason by relief of the intolerable tension of lonely confinement.'
The painted cats, or Miss Chaplin's modelled pussies, of which there were many, were seldom without some magnificent living representative at 76, Sloane Street. Zulu, an enormous dark long-haired cat, was very popular; but the last of the 'Head Cats,' Calino, was so engaging that, at his death about 1908, Sir Charles decided that he should never be replaced. The sway of these cats was despotic, but there were occasions on which their own territory was too limited for them, and messages would come from far down the street demanding the removal of the reigning favourite from some article of furniture where it had ensconced itself with such majesty that a show of violence was out of the question. Among his precious books was a cat story—privately printed and bound—which his second wife had gradually evolved among the wonderful essays in story-telling with which, when he was jaded, she diverted him. This held so large a share in his affection that it nearly displaced his little French copy of the Contes de Perrault, containing the adventures of the Marquis of Carabas and Puss in Boots. At the winter cottage at Pyrford, among the pines, was a cattery, where Persian tailless cats, some ginger and some white, were bred. A list of names was kept ready for them, and Babettes, Papillons, Pierrots and Pierrettes, Mistigrises and Beelzebubs, were distributed to friends and acquaintances. Among the treasured pathetic scraps kept in his father's desk, his executors found a pencil drawing by his wife, the closed window of a silent house, into which the perfectly sketched figure of a little kitten was trying to enter.
In the gracious setting of this house the pervading atmosphere was that of work. The three generations of Dilkes whom it had sheltered had each found the sphere for which he was best fitted, and pursued it tirelessly. The grandfather, beloved old scholar and critic; the father, indefatigable organizer of international exhibitions, horticulturist, newspaper proprietor, member of Parliament—both passed on the traditions of strenuous labour to the great Parliamentarian who was now the occupant of the house. He had absorbed those traditions and far outvied his predecessors, working day and night, bringing down from his bedroom almost illegible memoranda to be deciphered by his secretary in the morning.
From 1880 to 1885 his accession to public office had intensified the work. Messengers with official boxes waited in the hall; callers on political or electoral business, to be interviewed by him or his secretaries, filled the Blue and Red Rooms. After the morning's fencing he passed rapidly from letters to interviews till the Office or the House of Commons claimed him, and his faithful coachman, Charles Grant, who when he died in 1901 had served his master for thirty years, waited for him at the door. Yet with all this the house continued, as in his father's day, to be noted for its hospitality, and the lists of guests in the tattered diaries bear witness to the enormous and varied circle of Sir Charles's friends. Here met foreign diplomatists and artists, English statesmen, and men of letters. Even Cardinal Manning broke his rule against dining out, as 'yours is a Cabinet dinner,' to come to 76, Sloane Street; but as he met M. de Franqueville, Baron Ferdinand de Rothschild, and the friend whom the Cardinal designated to be his biographer, the future author of France, J. E. C. Bodley, there must have been talk of other subjects than 'Housing of the Poor.' Indeed, absence of 'shop' seems to have been one of the charms of these dinners, and Mr. G. W. Osborn, the Chairman of the Chelsea Liberal Association, records that, even when the local leaders met there, some outside element was always introduced which made the talk general.
On another occasion Sir Charles notes: 'July 9th, 1884. On this day Cardinal Manning dined with me, and gave me, in return for a Spanish crucifix with which I had presented him, a miniature of “our patron, St. Charles,”' which now, he adds, '(1891 and 1903) hangs in my bedroom. Manning and H. von Bismarck met at my table—I think for the first time.'
His first invitation to Mr. Gladstone, of October 26th, 1882, was to meet the Duc de Broglie: 'the leader of the Conservative party in France is at this moment a sufficiently interesting figure for me to think you may like to come to meet him, if you are not engaged.'
Such social life, like the morning's rapid turn with the foils or the Sunday afternoon on the river, helped to save him from breakdown under a strain of work persistently intense. Another quality which saved him was his power of turning at once and completely from one occupation to another.
A friend thus describes him as he appeared in 1885: 'There was in him a quality of boyishness I have never seen in any other man, coupled with deep gravity and seriousness, and the transition from one mood to the other came with lightning rapidity. Appeal to him on some question of high politics, even at a moment of the most joyous relaxation, and his face gravened, his bearing changed; he pulled himself together with a trick of manner habitual to the end, and the 'boy' became the statesman before it seemed the last echoes of his laughter had died away. We all prophesied for him accession to the highest offices of the State; for though so far the offices which he had held had been of but minor rank, yet he had magnified these offices till they became of the first importance, and his knowledge and authority were as great as were his charm and his power of gathering round him supporters and friends. He spoke with the authority of one who knows his value to the nation which he serves.'
So with Sir Charles's second marriage the house entered on its last phase, and the dark days which followed were lightened for its two occupants by mutual confidence and the support of an abiding love.
After a brief stay at Royat, whither doctor's orders had sent Lady Dilke, Sir Charles returned with her, in September, 1886, to the little riverside cottage at Dockett. Thence, as autumn drew on, they moved to the other cottage that had been built among the pines on the sandy ridge near Woking.
No longer having a seat in the House of Commons, Sir Charles again resumed the pen, by which he had first gained distinction.
In the English home politics of 1887, the Irish Question predominated as it had never done before: Home Rule was being thrashed out on every platform. This was a matter on which Sir Charles, to use his own words, 'never clearly saw his way'; it was one that he naturally avoided, for it had separated him from his most intimate political associate, and he turned to the field of foreign affairs which had continuously occupied him during his tenure of office, and which, save during the episode of the franchise negotiations, had been his central concern.
For a moment he had the notion of entering into the business of newspaper management. His object was not to secure literary reputation, but to direct and influence public opinion. Early in 1887 he wrote to his friend Mr. Thursfield of the Times:
'What I want is work on foreign affairs, or rather external
affairs,
or foreign and colonial. I would prefer not to write, but to
suggest
and supervise foreign news, and to work up the subjects of the
leaders which others would write. If I wrote, I think I should
write
less well than other people, because I always write as I speak,
and
not as people are taught to write.'
Nothing came of this idea; but it was a proposal remarkable in its self-depreciation, because it was made when work from his pen was already having a conspicuous success. Beginning in January, 1887, a series of six articles dealing with the existing position of the six Great Powers appeared in the Fortnightly Review, anonymously, but the author was at once identified. They sent the Review into repeated editions. They appeared translated into French in the Nouvelle Revue, and were discussed all over Europe. Later in the summer they were published in book form, and called in English The Present Position of European Politics and in French L'Europe en 1887.
In the author's own words, the articles dealt with 'facts and tendencies'; and though he would have been the last to hold himself a prophet, saying that in the nature of things 'two years meant for ever in politics,' much that he wrote is still of interest, and the suggestion of Mr. Erskine Childers' hero that we should 'Read Dilke' is not yet out of date. [Footnote: Riddle of the Sands, by Erskine Childers, popular edition, p. 127. First published March, 1903.]
The keynote of the book is contained in the opening words, 'The present position of the European world is one in which sheer force holds a larger place than it has held in modern times since the fall of Napoleon.' This reign of force the author traced back to 1878, the date of the Treaty of Berlin, but it was originally due, as he pointed out, to the annexation of Alsace-Lorraine in 1871, which had left a permanent source of irritation in the European States system. Nevertheless, he recognized that for the time the continuance of Prince Bismarck's policy, based as it was on the maintenance of the Treaty, meant peace, because Prince Bismarck believed peace to be necessary for the maintenance in undiminished strength of the German Empire, wedged in between France and Russia, the former always hostile, the latter an uncertain quantity. An alliance with Austria-Hungary was necessary to this policy: an alliance dictated by the fact that no other was likely to be permanent. Italy, it was true, had recently joined the alliance; but Italy, like Russia, was an uncertain factor, and Sir Charles Dilke believed that, if a critical moment were to come, the desire to get the Trentino would be stronger than the ties of any alliance. The policy of Prince Bismarck was accordingly to prevent a Russo-French alliance, and to help Russia to push into the Far East; to help her also in the Balkans, but not beyond the point at which Austria might remonstrate; and to prevent Austria from seeking anything calculated to precipitate a war between herself and Russia, such as an attempt to add to the position which she had obtained in the Balkan Peninsula under the Treaty of Berlin. This policy also involved keeping Turkey quiet and preventing a league of the Balkan States, lest such a league should irritate Russia and Austria and produce a European conflagration.
General Fadejew, in a celebrated pamphlet [Footnote: General Fadejew, Ueber Russland's Kriegsmacht und Kriegspolitik, Leipzig, 1870, translated from the Russian.] which fluttered all the Chancelleries of Europe in the early seventies, had said that the road from Russia to Constantinople lay through Vienna; and Vienna, Sir Charles agreed with the Russian general, was the centre to be watched, for it was there that the key of European policy was to be found. 'Austria interests me,' he wrote, when preparing his book, to Sir William White, the Ambassador at Constantinople. 'I can't leave London, but I'm thinking of sending a man to Vienna to tell me certain things. If so, to whom should he go?' And he watched the strange development of events in Bulgaria. Early in January he notes an interview with 'Dr. Stoiloff, the ablest man except the brutal Stambuloff, and the leader of the Conservative party' in Bulgaria, where the perpetual intrigues of Russian agents, official and unofficial, had recently culminated, in August, 1886, in the kidnapping of the reigning chief of the State, Prince Alexander of Battenberg, and had thereby created an Austrian party: events which were to have many long-drawn-out consequences, as the following century to its own cost was to find out. Bulgaria from this time began to move in an orbit of her own, distinct from, and often unfriendly to, the other Balkan States.
In 1887 it was still a current belief—especially on the part of many of Sir Charles's own political friends—that Germany was eagerly watching for an opportunity to seize the German provinces of Austria, and that Austria was eagerly watching for an opportunity 'to go to Salonica,' as the current phrase had it. The two propositions were almost mutually destructive, but, without insisting on this rather obvious consideration, Sir Charles was well aware that (even apart from reasons of international policy) Germany could not desire the disruption of Austria, because the German provinces of Upper and Lower Austria and Styria did not lie next to North Germany, but were cut off from it by countries in which the most enterprising of all Slavonic peoples—the Czechs of Bohemia—'hated the Germans with a deadly hatred,' and already, even in 1887, had got the upper hand. Count Bismarck himself had resisted—and successfully—the desire of the military party to annex Bohemia in 1866 after Sadowa. The permanent exclusion of Austria and the House of Hapsburg from Germany was also no sudden or ephemeral policy. In the middle of the seventeenth century, as the author of the Holy Roman Empire had reminded his readers, it had been proposed by the famous publicist Philippe Chemnitz, who wrote under the name of 'Hippolytus a Lapide,' as the surest means of securing a permanent unity of some kind in Germany. [Footnote: See Bryce, Holy Roman Empire, chap. xx., p. 386; Louis Leger, Histoire de l'Autriche-Hongrie, chap. xv., p. 258.] It had been adopted by the leaders in the Frankfurt Parliament of 1848-49, and Count Bismarck was the inheritor of these traditions when he finally expelled the House of Hapsburg in 1866, and thus translated ancient theories into modern facts. It was therefore highly improbable, to say the least, that only a few years after the Treaty of Berlin he should be engaged in an attempt to nullify his own work. [Footnote: On January 14th, 1849, the Frankfurt Parliament voted the exclusion of Austria from Germany.]
Austria, Sir Charles Dilke pointed out, some day by mere competition with Russia, if that Power made further advances, might perhaps be forced forward unwillingly to Salonica; but by thus seizing Macedonia—a far larger proposition than that of the annexation of Bosnia and the Herzegovina, and in many respects a different one—it was clear she would 'increase her military weakness, would deeply offend the Servians, the Greeks, and the Bulgarians, and by increasing the number of her Slavonic subjects would only hasten her own break-up.' Here, in fact, lay the real danger to the 'Eastern Empire.' Prince Bismarck, as a matter of fact, was of all men in Europe the man who most desired to keep Austria alive. 'It is a necessity to him that she should continue to exist. Once destroy Austria, and Germany is left to fight it out with France and Russia without assistance, for in this case Italy would not move,' notwithstanding the recently renewed Triple Alliance. That a military party existed in Austria which might desire to go to Salonica, and would also rejoice in a war with Italy, Sir Charles was well aware; but he saw no reason to believe that it would succeed in forcing these adventures on the Ballplatz, or on the statesmen of Hungary, who above all things dreaded an increase of the Slavonic elements in the Empire. The Austria-Hungary of 1887 was the Austria-Hungary of the long rule of Count Taafe at Vienna, of M. Koloman Tisza at Buda-Pesth, and of Count Kalnoky at the Ballplatz; and it was not unreasonable at that time to consider it possible that, 'after the division of the respective spheres of influence of Bulgaria, Greece, and Serbia, in Macedonia, Austria might gradually increase her influence in the Balkan States; and if she would take the bold step of making up an arrangement for evacuating part of Bosnia and the Herzegovina, so as to show she had no intention of going southwards to Salonica, she might bring together in a general understanding with herself the small States and the Turks.' This, however, Sir Charles admitted, was probably impracticable, 'as Austro- Hungarian pride would effectually prevent the abandonment of any portion of Bosnia.' But so late as 1909 Dilke told Lord Fitzmaurice, when, at the time of her final annexation of Bosnia and the Herzegovina, Austria-Hungary had retired from the Sandjak of Novi Bazar, that he thought the British Foreign Office 'had made too great a fuss' over the annexation, which had been certain to come, sooner or later. [Footnote: Lord Fitzmaurice was then Chancellor of the Duchy of Lancaster, and represented the Foreign Office in the House of Lords. See further as to Sir Charles Dilke's' views on the events of 1908, Chapter LVIII.]
Mr. Robert Lowe is credited with having said that a metaphysician resembled a blind man groping in a dark room for a black hat that was not there. The comparison might almost have been applied to the Foreign Minister of the Dual Empire, vainly seeking for a coherent policy among the mists and cross-currents of rival nationalities. The charge to be made against the foreign policy of Austria-Hungary was, in fact, not that she had got a policy—good or bad, ambitious or the reverse—but that it was almost impossible as a rule to ascertain whether she had any policy at all: the explanation being that her internal problems paralyzed her action abroad. 'It was difficult to be a patriot in Austria, for nobody exactly knew to the representatives of what race, tongue, or language, his allegiance was due.' 'Austria was indeed of all countries in the world by far the most difficult to govern, and as a necessity of her condition she must before all things long for peace.... Under her many difficulties caused by racial divisions she had become constitutionally timid and naturally slow to move, and the outlook was far from promising ... nor had Prince Bismarck'—notwithstanding the terms of the Triple Alliance—'bound Germany to espouse all the quarrels of Austria, no matter where and with whom.' It had been said, and by Prince Bismarck himself, that the bones of not a single Pomeranian grenadier should be allowed to whiten in a Balkan quarrel. [Footnote: Speech in the Reichstag, December 16th, 1876.] 'The only real question worth asking was: Will Austria resist Russian pretensions, and will she, if in danger of conquest, be supported by allies, or will she yield and take her share of the spoils?' [Footnote: The Present Position of European Politics, pp. 185, 193, 194, 205, 206, 219, 221-224.]
The long-standing jealousies, also, of Austria-Hungary, Italy, and Greece, in regard to the future of the Adriatic coast, Sir Charles Dilke felt were not sufficiently appreciated in England, where public opinion was too much inclined to see the Turk and the Slav only in every question concerned with the Balkan Peninsula. When Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs in 1880-81, he had given a strong support to the proposals in regard to Albania of Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, which had the approval of Mr. Goschen, then Special Ambassador to the Porte—proposals which were framed with a view to the ultimate autonomy of the country, and were not accepted by the European Commission of Reforms, mainly owing to the opposition of Austria-Hungary. [Footnote: See Life of Lord Goschen, vol. i, p. 215. These proposals were revived in 1912, and, which is remarkable, by Count Berchtold, the Foreign Minister of Austria-Hungary, in a despatch in favour of 'progressive decentralization.' See an article in the Edinburgh Review, April, 1913: 'Austria and Italy have been rivals for influence in Albania, as Austria and Russia were rivals in Macedonia. It was because of this rivalry that the Treaty of Berlin, so far as it applied to the European provinces of Turkey, was never properly carried into effect. For the same reason the Fitzmaurice proposal of 1880 was defeated by the opposition of Vienna. The suggestion was that a greater Albania should be created, which would have been autonomous under a European guarantee. It is among the ironies of history that this scheme, rejected by Austria when it came from a friendly and neutral source, should have been put forward by the Austrian Foreign Office itself thirty-two years later. Count Berchtold's Circular Note of August 14th, 1912, revived the Fitzmaurice programme. The proposition came too late.'] But in The Present Position of European Politics it is seen how the author's increasing confidence in the future of Greece led to a change of opinion on this, the most intricate, perhaps, of all diplomatic questions connected with the Near East. He now advocated as large an extension as possible of the existing northern boundary of Greece, and held that the rest of Albania should be joined to Greece by some form of personal union, which ultimately might grow into a closer tie, bearing in mind the friendly cooperation of Greeks and Albanians in the War of Independence against Turkey, and the fact that a strong Albanian element already existed in the Greek kingdom. [Footnote: The Present Position of European Politics, pp. 146, 148, 193, 206, 214-217, 232, 237, 238.] A European Congress seemed to him the only method to avoid the ultimate arbitrament of war in this mass of tangled questions, but experience had shown that a Congress was useless unless the Great Powers had settled the main questions beforehand in agreement among themselves. Experience had unfortunately also shown the extreme difficulty of obtaining any such agreement.
'Austria ought to have been the heir of Turkey; the protector of a Greece extended to include Albania, Macedonia, the Islands, and the coast to Constantinople and down to Asia Minor; the friend of Servia and Roumania, and what not.' But these things remained in the class of visions, even if occasionally some Austrian or Hungarian statesman, like Herr von Kallay, seemed disposed to grasp them, and to renew the tradition of the forward policy attributed to Prince Eugene of Savoy and the Archduke Charles. Hungary also had made Roumania her antagonist by her illiberal policy in regard to the navigation of the Danube. Any permanent confederation of the Balkan States as distinct from a temporary alliance for some special and defined object, such as a possible attack on Turkey, seemed therefore no longer possible, especially after the recent events in Bulgaria. Meanwhile there was to be peace, because Prince Bismarck so willed it. [Footnote: See Der Krimkrieg und die Oesterreichische Politik, von Heinrich Friedjung, chap, ii., p. 16 (Stuttgart und Berlin, 1907); Louis Leger, Etudes Slaves: L'Autriche-Hongrie et la Question d'Orient, p. 395.]
The overmastering sense of the importance of whatever happened at Vienna and Constantinople—of which every page of The Present Position of European Politics is the evidence—will largely explain Sir Charles Dilke's views on another question. It has been seen that he was amongst the strongest advocates of an active policy in Egypt in 1882, agreeing in this with Mr. Chamberlain and Lord Hartington. But at an early period after the Battle of Tel-el-Kebir he pronounced himself, when the question arose, in favour of the earliest possible evacuation of the country, and contemplated it as a possibility of the immediate future. [Footnote: Sir Charles wrote in the Speaker of January 23rd, 1892, in reply to Admiral Maxse: 'Admiral Maxse appears to think that my views in favour of evacuation have been recently formed....' 'There was a time, before the intervention of the condominium with France by Lord Derby, when I held a different view; but it was not only formed under circumstances very different from those which have now existed for fourteen years, but also at a time when I had not given special consideration to our probable naval and military position in the event of war.'] Egypt to him, considered from the point of view of British interests, was subsidiary to Constantinople. All that really signified was the right of passage through the Suez Canal, which could, he believed, be secured by international arrangement and the neutralization of the country, a plan for which, as already seen, was being actually discussed by Mr. Gladstone's Government when it fell. Egypt, in fact, he regarded as part of Asia rather than of Africa, and he believed that time would make this more clear than ever, in proportion as railways were developed in Syria, Arabia, and Asia Minor. In this connection Constantinople, not Alexandria or Cairo, seemed to him the decisive factor: an opinion which brought him into opposition with those who held the view that since the occupation of Egypt by British troops events at Constantinople had become comparatively unimportant to this country. He also feared that if some great European crisis were to arise, in which Great Britain was involved, the occupation of Egypt might be a hindrance rather than a source of strength, and might hamper our exertions in other lands.
He had, however, no fear of allowing the Bosporus and the Dardanelles to be opened under suitable conditions to the passage of Russian ships of war, but only on the condition laid down by Sir William White, that the right accorded to Russia must be accorded to the ships of war of other nations; and this partly out of regard to the dignity of the British flag, and partly because any exclusive right accorded to Russia would be resisted by the States bordering on the Black Sea and by those interested in the trade and navigation of the Danube. But the opening of the Straits was one thing, the possession of Constantinople by Russia was another, and in his opinion would cause a European convulsion; for he saw in Constantinople what has since been termed 'the great strategic centre of the world': [Footnote: The expression was used by Mr. Winston Churchill in a speech on November 15th, 1915, in the House of Commons.] the meeting-place and clearing-house of the trade and politics of three continents.
'Russia at Constantinople,' he wrote, 'would mean the destruction of Austria and the Russification of a large portion of her Slavs. When Austria had disappeared or had been transformed out of all knowledge, Germany, placed between France and Russia, would be still weaker in her military position than she is at present. It is no doubt impossible that Germany can really contemplate that contingency with complete satisfaction. And if she cannot get other people to help Austria to keep Russia away from Constantinople, it is probable that she would be forced to interfere to help to do so, however stoutly her rulers may make the opposite declaration. One of my most valued correspondents, whose criticisms have been of the highest use to me, admits that to place Turkey at the head of a Balkan Confederation would be “adding a badger to your three unfriendly cats and altogether hostile dog”; but, nevertheless, he thinks that such a combination would be possible on account of the overwhelming dread of the danger of absorption by Russia; and I think it right to state his view, although I am unable to modify that which I have said as to the difficulties which the dispute for Macedonia causes.' [Footnote: The Present Position of European Politics, pp. 372, 373.]
In the autumn of 1891 this note occurs in the Memoir: 'John Morley having made a speech in favour of the cessation of the Egyptian occupation, I wrote to tell him how pleased I was, and in his reply he asked why we should go on mechanically applauding Lord Salisbury's foreign policy, which left this danger standing.'
Mr. Morley's satisfaction was, however, not shared by Mr. Chamberlain, who wrote in January, 1892, 'to implore me to have regard to the opinion of society about Egypt.'
'I do not mean fashionable society,' he added, 'but political society, and the great majority of cultivated politicians. I think you do go out of your way to offend them when you advocate evacuation of Egypt, and I ask you to consider if it is worth your while. It is not necessary for your constituents, and with regard to the others, there is no need to add to their causes of anger against you. My advice is, “Be as Radical as you like, be Home Ruler if you must, but be a little Jingo if you can.”'
The correspondence had begun in the autumn of 1891, when Sir Charles wrote the following letter:
'Pyrford by Maybury,
'Near Woking,
'October 19th, 1891.
'My Dear Chamberlain,
'I have never said that there are not conceivable circumstances
in
which it would be better for us to be in Egypt. I'm going to
try and
discuss them in the book I am at work on. Re command of
the sea
against France. We have not quite a sufficient force to
blockade
Brest and Toulon. Lefevre and most of our sailors contemplate
only
“masking” Toulon by a fleet at Gibraltar, and using the Cape
route.
In this case we could not reinforce Egypt except from India,
and
not, of course, from India if we were at war with Russia too.
'I am in favour of a stronger navy, and attempting blockade,
though
it is not certain that it can be made for certain
successful.
Still Colomb is a better authority than Beresford, etc. I mean
“Admiral Colomb,” not Sir John. The difficulty, even if
blockades
are possible, is that France keeps building after us so as
always to
be without the limits which would make it possible. Lefevre
will
support Mr. G. in cutting down the navy on this ground—i.e.,
will
prove by figures that every time we lay down nine ships the
French
lay down six or seven.
'I think that in the long-run France will beat Germany. She will
fight her some day single-handed on a point in which Austria
and
Italy will not move, nor Russia either. Then, if Germany gets
the
best of it, the others will “mediate.”
'Yours ever,
'Chs. W. D.'
'November, 1891, we spent in France.... While I was away I had a
correspondence with Chamberlain about his speech on Egypt' (in
reply
to Morley), 'and pointed out to him,' says the Memoir,' that he
had
changed his mind so completely about evacuation that it was
hardly
prudent in him not frankly to admit the change of mind, as he
had
done in at least one speech previously.' He replied:
'“I have looked the matter up, and I think it is quite true that
in
1884 we were all for evacuation as early as possible. But I did
not
then estimate properly the magnitude of the task we had
undertaken,
nor did I know how splendidly it would be performed by Baring
and
his colleagues. Baring himself began as a strong advocate for
evacuation.”
'In my answer, I said that Baring had only changed his mind in
the
way in which all people are apt to change their minds when they
are
employed as the agents of a policy, and I combated
Chamberlain's
military views, which were, in fact, for defending Egypt by the
fleet—that fleet which is expected to do everything!'
Sir Charles set out in an article in the Speaker all the pledges to evacuate which had been given by the Liberal Government and repeated by Lord Salisbury. Thereupon Mr. Morley, whose general views on foreign policy were not as a rule at all the same as those of Sir Charles, wrote from Biarritz, where he was in Mr. Gladstone's company, that he had read the Speaker with enormous satisfaction. It would have a stimulating effect in quarters where a little stimulus was much needed, and had given much satisfaction to other people in Biarritz besides himself.
'“Quarters” of course meant Rosebery,' is Sir Charles's comment, and he adds:
'In order to meet the Rosebery objection to evacuation, I wrote
an
article for the January Fortnightly, of which the editor
changed
nothing but the title. I had called it “Lords Salisbury and
Rosebery,” and he changed it to “Conservative Foreign Policy.”'
At a later date, in a letter [Footnote: This letter was apparently written on April 14th, 1893:
'Those of us who bitterly dislike the occupation of Egypt by a
British force have been both to add to your work before and
during a
session in which, not to speak of the ordinary demand on the
time of
a Prime Minister, your unprecedented relation to the chief
measure
makes it the duty of your supporters to confine themselves to
helping clear the road. Naught else could have excused us from
having hitherto refrained from pressing the state of Egypt on
the
consideration of yourself, or of the House of Commons. It is
only
because since the publication of a recent despatch we feel that
the
time has nearly come for making up one's mind to be for ever
silent
upon the question, and because I cannot do so, given the strong
feeling that I have with regard to it, without one last attempt
to
cause some change in a “temporary” situation now crystallizing
into
permanency, that I venture to address you. I ask for no reply.
I
shall have to bring the question before the House of Commons. I
have
no illusions as to what is likely to be the result of so doing.
Sir
E. Grey will tell us that the occupation is still “temporary,”
but
must last, “for the sake of Egypt,” till we can “with safety"
leave:
and so it will continue, with all its dangers to ourselves,
till the
next great war. Whoever else may again raise the Egyptian
question
in the future, I shall not. Vote I must, whenever it comes
before
the House, but I need not do more.
'Not one word of blame of anyone will fall from me when I raise
the
question on first going into Committee on Civil Estimates. It
seems
to me, I confess—but I shall try to keep the opinion to
myself—
that it would have been, on the whole, the safest course to
have
done in 1892 that which Lord Granville, under your guidance,
did in
1880, and to have ourselves proposed, on the very day of the
accession to office of the new Government, the policy which we
thought best in the interest of the country and had supported
in
Opposition. Lord Granville congratulated himself, and with
justice,
on the promptitude with which, before the Russians could say a
word
to him as to the complete fulfilment of the Treaty of Berlin,
he had
told the Ambassador, in the first minute of their first
interview,
that the Government would insist on that fulfilment. Had the
present
Secretary of State, at his first interview with the French
Ambassador, made a similar communication with regard to Egypt
(at
least so far as to propose to resume the negotiations of 1887),
we
should, perhaps, have avoided many evils. I share to the full
the
belief, which you expressed in such admirable terms a couple of
years ago, that the long-lasting occupation of Egypt by our
forces
is the cause of all the difficulties by which our foreign
policy,
and even our position in Europe, are oppressed. Our hands are
not
free, and never will be free, so long as the occupation
continues.
But ills more direct are likely to fall upon us; and no one can
look
forward without the gravest dread to the prospect of our being
drawn, step by step, into a situation in which we shall be
driven to
arrest the persons of the young Khedive and those of his
advisers
who possess the confidence of all that is intelligent among the
Egyptian people; or (as seems hinted in Lord Bosebery's
despatch) to
insist upon a deposition.
'In the discussions as to the occupation of Egypt which occurred
in
the Cabinet, before I was a member of it, in 1882, even before
the
expedition (for the occupation was foreseen), I took a share,
as
Lord Granville was good enough to consult me on the papers
circulated by his colleagues. As far as I am concerned, I have
never
budged from the principles of a memorandum which I wrote on
July
4th, 1882; but those principles were far more excellently
stated by
you in a memorandum of the beginning of September, 1882—before
Tel-el-Kebir—a memorandum which was approved by men now so
hostile
to your views as Sir Auckland Colvin and Sir Edward Malet. Sir
E.
Baring, now, as Lord Cromer, so bitterly opposed to us, in a
paper
of September or October, 1882, and Chamberlain in his paper of
about
October 21st, 1882, both pointed out how essential it was that
our
occupation should be really temporary, and that our
condition—that
we should leave behind us a “stable” state of things—depended
on
and meant what Chamberlain called “the extension of Egyptian
liberties”: the convoking, if not of a truly representative
Assembly, at least of the Notables. Lord Dufferin, in December
1882,
wrote to me that he would sooner run any risk than abandon the
representative institutions proposed for Egypt in his famous
scheme.
Yet now the French are bidding the Khedive call together,
against
Lord Dufferin's virtual successor, this very Assembly of
Notables,
which Lord Cromer, such is his present policy, dare not call.
The
conception of this Assembly was the act of yourself, supported
by
Lord Granville and Sir William Harcourt and supported on paper
by
Lord Dufferin and Sir E. Baring, and opposed by Lord
Hartington, by
the then Chancellor, and by Lord Northbrook. This “extension of
Egyptian liberties,” which was our pride, which was our excuse
for
that “short prolongation” of the occupation, to which I was
myself
opposed—an extension of liberties which has not been carried
into
practical effect by us—is certain to result in a declaration
by the
Notables, when they meet, as within this year, through the
French
Agent's influence, they will, that they are rootedly opposed to
our
presence in their land.
'It may be said that neither the Turks nor the French have
pressed
us, directly, to come out. The Turks will never really press
us. The
Sultan is forced by Moslem public opinion to ask us to leave
Egypt,
but he is in fact personally anxious that we should stay there
to
keep Mahdism in the desert and representative institutions in
the
shade. The French have also their inner policy—their
Rothschilds to
keep in good humour—and two currents, one political and one
financial, with which to deal. M. Waddington expressed to you
at
Hawarden a mere desire for exchange of views between the
Cabinets.
He was naturally anxious not to be refused in any direct
request.
But French public opinion is exasperated against us; only one
man in
France believes a word we say, and our diplomatists and
admirals
behave as though they represented German instead of neutral
interests. We are responsible for tempting Italy to stay in the
alliance of the Central Powers, to her own hurt.
'None of these things shall I be able to say when I bring the
question before the House of Commons. To do so would involve
statements based on private letters and statements as to
Cabinet
differences of 1882, which I cannot make. We shall be compelled
to
rely chiefly upon the declarations of Lord Salisbury, which
were
summed up in his words of May, 1887, to the effect that the
occupation entails on us “heavy sacrifices, without adequate
return
either in peace or in war.”
'Having given attention for some years past to our general
position
as a nation, feeling as I do, with you, how adversely it is
affected
by the prolongation of the “temporary” occupation, which, as
matters
stand, seems likely to endure till the next war, even should it
be
postponed till half a century hence, I cannot but feel
miserable at
the situation of this affair, and I once more ask your pardon
for in
this way liberating my mind, or, I fear, rather discharging
upon
you, regardless of your prodigious avocations, this last
expression
of a regret deeper than that which I have previously
entertained on
any public question.
'Through the mischiefs of the occupation there now seems to come
no
single ray of light. The present year will not pass over
without a
change in the local situation at Cairo, from which a conference
is
likely to result. A passage near the end of Lord Rosebery's
despatch
shows that he is prepared to have a conference forced upon him.
Had
we invited it, such a conference would be to us the blessing
that it
will be to others. Would it not at least be best that we should
call
that conference on the first opportunity rather than have it
thrust
down our throats?
'This letter has not been shown to anyone, and needs, as I said,
no
reply, but I should be glad if it were not handed to anyone
outside
of your own circle. It has not been mentioned to anyone except
Mr.
Herbert Gladstone.']
to Mr. Gladstone during his last Premiership, Dilke summed up his views when a debate was about to take place in the House of Commons, and four days later he notes: 'On April 18th I had a long interview with Mr. Gladstone, who sent for me, on my letter. The only thing he said worth remembering was, “Jingoism is stronger than ever. It is no longer war fever, but earth hunger.”'
In 1887 the possibility of a German attempt to violate the neutrality of Belgian territory, notwithstanding the treaty of guarantee of 1839, which Prussia herself had signed, was again attracting attention owing to a sudden renewal of warlike apprehensions on the Continent. The position of Luxemburg was a kindred question, though the international guarantee was of a far more uncertain character than in the case of Belgium. Sir Charles, as already related, had returned from his work in France during the war of 1870 with a profound conviction that a spirit of reckless violence was abroad in Germany, which would stop at nothing if favourable circumstances offered a temptation to action; and in his opinion the absence of any fortifications at Liege and Namur afforded such a temptation. The point had been till then little discussed in England, though General Brialmont had written in the Revue de Belgique on the subject. Sir Charles's view having been questioned, that the danger to Belgium's neutrality for military and other reasons was from Germany alone, he drew attention to the enormous accumulation of supplies of every kind in the entrenched camp of Cologne as of itself sufficient in military eyes to prove the truth of what he said. He considered also that the reduction of our horse artillery greatly impaired the possibility of Great Britain affording really effectual military assistance to Belgium, and that the recent utterances of the principal organ of the Conservative party, the Standard, and of the writers in the National Review, that intervention in support of Belgium 'would be not only insane but impossible,' showed that the public opinion of Great Britain was no longer unanimous as it had been in 1870-71. [Footnote: The questions connected with the Belgian and Luxemburg guarantees are very fully discussed in a recent work, England's Guarantee to Belgium and Luxemburg, by C. P. Sanger and H. T. J. Norton. See also chapter i. of War: Its Conduct and Legal Results, by Dr. Baty and Prof. J. H. Morgan; The Present Position of European Politics, pp. 42-48, 73, 321-323.] This dispassionate consideration of the chances of England's intervening single-handed and without allies, in the case of a European war, to protect the neutrality of an unfortified Belgium, led to statements that he was opposed to such a step, and he had to point out in reply that for years he had consistently expressed the contrary view, but that he was now dealing with facts and tendencies, not with his own wishes. [Footnote: British Army, chap. ii., p. 55.] Shortly after the appearance of this article, discussion in Belgium led to the introduction of a Government Bill for the fortification of the towns upon the Meuse, and it was afterwards decided to fortify Namur and Liege.
Estimating the probabilities of a Continental war, he thought that Russia came next to England in staying power, because her enormous army formed a smaller proportion of her working class than in the case of any other great Continental Power. Notwithstanding his suspicions of her policy, he spoke of Russia with a deep and discriminating interest born of numerous visits to all parts of her dominions, and deprecated the attitude of those Englishmen whose dislike of Russia had done harm to the cause of sense and truth by exaggeration, and had led them to ignore 'her power and the marvellous patriotism of her people.' 'In the union of patriotism with religion I know no nation which can approach them.' There could be no doubt in any reasonable mind of her real and lasting strength. But her unlimited power of self-deception; the necessary instability of a policy resting upon the will of a single man; her misgovernment of Poland and her alienation of Bulgaria, constituted dangers which it was idle to ignore. He, however, set against these weaknesses her popularity with all the Slav nations; her influence in the Baltic provinces of Germany, and even with the Poles, 'who, like everyone else of Slavonic race, seem born with a hatred of the Teutons.'
'The only foreigner who is known to the Russian peasantry is the
German, and the name for German and for foreigner with the
peasantry
is the same, and the hatred of the “dumb men,” as they call
their
German neighbours, is intense. The peasantry know little of the
English, and if you listen to their sentiments you discover
that it
is their belief that one day there will be between them
and
Germany a war compared with which, their soldiers say, that of
1870
will be child's play, and that if Germany wins this will not be
the
end, but that war after war will follow until Germany is
destroyed.'
'Because Russia is very violent in her language and her acts, we
often fail to see how a peasantry, which an aristocratic
government
or a government of political economists could never win, is won
over
by her to her rule. The Moscow men failed in Bulgaria, but in
Poland
they succeeded, and in the Baltic provinces, too, their methods
and
their policy have not been wanting, and the problems that have
so
long perplexed this country in her relations with Ireland would
have
been solved in a week by Samarin, or Miliutin, or Prince
Teherkasky.' [Footnote: Present Position of European
Politics, pp.
125, 134.]
The popular phrases which dubbed Sir Charles Dilke as 'anti-German' or 'anti-Russian' were never more curiously misapplied. The flaw to be found even in the mental constitution of Gambetta's great personality, as shown by his antagonism to Russia, had no part in his friend's outlook; nor did Sir Charles's friendship for all things French make him an enemy to Germany, though the possibility of conjuring 'the German peril' was ever in his mind. But he doubted the wisdom of the wavering counsels which began with 'lying down to Germany,' and were to be marked by the cession of Heligoland. Strong men and strong Governments recognize and respect one another; and in dealing with Germany he believed that it was necessary never to forget this trite yet valuable warning.
If personal friendships and political sympathy made Sir Charles, as the previous chapters have shown, look constantly to France as the natural ally of Great Britain, and also her most desirable ally, neither friendships nor sympathies could blind him to the constant danger arising from the instability of French Administrations, and the consequent difficulty of relying on any certainty in arrangements projected for joint action. Of this the events connected with Egypt had been a most conspicuous illustration. Nor were these the only dangers: for the best friends of France were painfully aware of the immense influence exercised by powerful financial interests both in her domestic and in her foreign affairs, and by the growth of fierce antagonisms on home questions which seemed to tear the country asunder and paralyze her position abroad. Numerous questions, not only in Egypt, but elsewhere in Africa; the old quarrels about the Newfoundland fisheries, on which Sir Charles was constantly putting his finger as a possible cause of a serious quarrel; and increasing jealousies in the Pacific, contributed to produce a condition of permanent tension for many years in the relations of the two countries, until the Fashoda incident in 1898 brought a crisis which cleared the air. Two of the ablest men in France, M. Jules Ferry and M. Hanotaux, were, to say the least, not friendly to Great Britain, and a plan which Sir Julian Pauncefote [Footnote: Then Permanent Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs, and afterwards Lord Pauncefote and Ambassador at Washington.] had suggested in 1884, of attempting to bring all outstanding questions with France into one great settlement, fell still-born, to be vivified, but twenty years later, by Lord Lansdowne in more favourable circumstances.
In all possible complications Sir Charles relied much on Italy's close friendship for England—notwithstanding her entry into the Triple Alliance—a friendship due to permanent gratitude for the support which she had received from Lord Russell, Mr. Gladstone, and Lord Palmerston, at the crisis of her fate in 1859; and also to the offer to her of a joint occupation of Egypt in 1882—an offer rejected indeed, but fruitful of good feeling.
But more important even than any question of alliances was, he insisted, the necessity that Great Britain should know her own mind, and have a definite policy in regard to the future of Constantinople and of Egypt, and in regard to the Belgian guarantee. Army organization itself obviously depended on policy, and in this connection there was a danger at home greater, perhaps, than any originating abroad.
'It is too much the case with us in England,' he wrote, 'that
when
we are occupied with the consideration of the Irish problem, or
dealing with the circumstances which most often lead to the
rise and
fall of Ministries, we allow the foreign affairs of the country
to
be transacted in the dark: with an absence of control which,
owing
to the efficiency of our Foreign Office, may produce no ill,
but
also with an absence of knowledge which cannot be advantageous.
On
the other hand, when some awkward circumstance arises, a
disproportionate weight is attached to it by those who have
wilfully
remained in ignorance of the true position, and the diplomacy
of the
country is suddenly unduly hampered by criticism which rests on
no
foundation of fact.'
Speaking from experience, he uttered a warning as to the danger of uninstructed debates and foolish questions—then so frequent—on foreign affairs in the House of Commons, and the harm done by them abroad. He spoke of the tendency to take advantage of some rebuff in foreign affairs for party motives, and urged that, as secrecy was not to be hoped for, members should at least try to inform themselves and the electorate, and avoid 'periods of ignorant calm' or 'equally ignorant panic.' In this connection he never ceased to insist on the weakness of our position abroad, owing to the deficient strength and want of organization of our army; the small results shown for the immense amount spent; the insufficient stock of arms and ammunition, and the poor reserves of rifles; and he urged that, whatever our economies, none should fall upon equipment or reserves of material. Such economies he stigmatized as a 'horrible treachery to the interests of the country.' [Footnote: The military situation as a whole is discussed in chapter vi. of The Present Position of European Politics, 'The United Kingdom.']
Pathways of return to political life soon began to open to Sir Charles Dilke. In November, 1886, Mr. Labouchere wrote:
'It looks as though Chamberlain will be the scapegoat. At
present
his going over bag and baggage to the Whigs has utterly
disgusted
the Radicals. As long as Gladstone lives things will go on
fairly
with us, but after—the deluge. The Radical M.P.'s are
regretting
your not being in, as they would have accepted you as the
leader.'
In the autumn of 1886 the Council of the Chelsea Liberal Association unanimously asked him to be their candidate (for Parliament), but he replied that he could not serve the borough to his own satisfaction while so large a section of the public still attached weight to the 'gross calumnies' with which he had been assailed. He was, however, from the autumn of 1887, increasingly active in local affairs, both on the Vestry and the Board of Guardians, [Footnote: In the winter of 1888, Sir Charles was unanimously elected Chairman of the Board of Guardians, as also of the Vestry ('as was the case in subsequent years'). He wrote to Mr. Chamberlain: 'I've taken the chairmanship of the Chelsea Board of Guardians, so am keeping my hand in on the prevention of obstruction. I am forced to begin gradually with them, and have only as yet ruled that I cannot let two speak at once.'] and also on the newly formed Library Committee, on which he served for three years, till both the local libraries were established and opened.
To M. Joseph Reinach he wrote in April, 1887: 'I have a splendid position as a writer, and writing projects which will occupy me for three years at least; and if any great calamity should occur which would force me back into public life—such as war with Russia, for example—I do not know that I should like the change.' Nor was the political scene attractive at this moment. His friends were tearing each other asunder; and not only his political friends—both parties were rent with faction.
'On October 1st, 1886, Chamberlain called and gave me an
interesting
picture of the political state. He seemed to think that he
could
keep Mr. Gladstone out for life, and was persuaded that
Randolph
would give him all he wanted and leave Hartington and Salisbury
in
the lurch. Randolph had promised him to have an anti-Jingo
foreign
policy, leaving Turkey to her fate, and to pacify Ireland with
the
National Councils scheme, modified into two Councils, or into
Provincial Councils, to suit Ulster; and Churchill had also
promised
him procedure reform—that is, a sharper closure—and a
three-acres-
and-a-cow policy for England.
'There was an article in the Morning Post, October 2nd,
representing Churchill's democratic views, but in the later
autumn
(while Chamberlain was away abroad) Churchill was beaten in the
Cabinet both on his Irish scheme and also on the amendments
which he
proposed to make in the Local Government (England) Bill in the
three-acres-and-a-cow direction. On December 17th Chamberlain,
who
had returned from abroad, came to lunch with me, furious at the
defeat of Randolph Churchill. He found no fault with the Irish
policy' (which was strongly coercionist), 'or with the foreign
policy of the Cabinet; but he was anxious to defeat them on
their
Local Government (England) Bill, if it was not altered back
again to
suit his policy. Ultimately a compromise on this matter was
arranged.'
For a moment it seemed as if Chamberlain's anger with the Tory party was going to drive him back into his old associations. On December 31st,
'Chamberlain and John Morley came in together to lunch,
Chamberlain
having been asked and Morley not, and it was somewhat
startling.
“Chamberlain thinks that he can get Mr. Gladstone by the bait
of
'Four times Prime Minister' to accept his terms. On the other
hand,
Mr. Gladstone thinks that he can detach Chamberlain from
Hartington.
Conferences are sitting: Harcourt, Herschell, and Morley,
meeting
Chamberlain and Trevelyan. Hartington is crusty at this.
Chamberlain
has threatened Hartington with the consequences if he, as he
wants
to, supports a reactionary Local Government Bill of
Salisbury's.
Chamberlain has written to Salisbury as to this Local
Government
Bill, and received a dilatory reply.” He told me the whole long
history of Randolph's troubles with the Cabinet which preceded
his
resignation; first on procedure, as to which he finally
obtained his
own way, secondly as to foreign affairs, thirdly as to
allotments,
fourthly as to Local Government, and fifthly as to finance.
Churchill always stood absolutely alone, and, being in a
minority of
one, could only get his way at all by continually tendering his
resignation. At last he resigned once too often, as it was of
course
on the wrong subject; Salisbury jumped at it, and accepted it
in a
cool letter when Churchill did not mean it in the least. It was
only
the classical annual resignation of a Chancellor of the
Exchequer
against his colleagues of the army and navy. The Budget always
involves the resignation either of the Secretary of State for
War
and First Lord of the Admiralty, or else of the Chancellor of
the
Exchequer, but hitherto they have always managed to make it
up.'
Within a fortnight Sir Charles 'was hearing from all sides about the Round Table Conferences which were intended to reunite the Liberal party.... From Chamberlain I heard that his view was to bring about a modus vivendi only, under which the Conservative Government was to be turned out on some side-issue. Mr. Gladstone would become Prime Minister for the fourth time, if the Irish would consent to take Local Government and a Land Bill first, and to leave Home Rule over. He thought that Mr. Gladstone was not unwilling, but that there would be difficulty in getting the Irish to consent. Morley and Harcourt were, according to Chamberlain, friendly to his suggestions, and Hartington hostile, not trusting Mr. Gladstone.'
On January 15th, 1887, Sir Charles wrote to Mr. Chesson [Footnote: See note, p. 273.] that
'Chamberlain and Morley were both going to make conciliatory
speeches, but that nothing had really been done at Harcourt's
house,
every difficulty having been “reserved.” There could be no
doubt
that several of the five who were there meeting were anxious to
keep
things open, on the chance of Mr. Gladstone not remaining in
sufficiently good health to continue to lead the party. The
independent Liberals were vexed at the Conferences. Willy
Bright
called on me, and said that obviously the great difficulty of
the
moment was “to keep Mr. Gladstone in the Gladstonian party.”
Morley,
who also called on me, casually observed, “Harcourt was never a
Home
Ruler. The only Home Rulers in the last Cabinet were Lord
Granville
and Spencer, in addition to myself and Mr. Gladstone.” When we
remember the views of Spencer in May, 1885, his violent Home
Rule,
which dates from July, 1885, is laughable.'
'On the 15th I had a long and curious conversation with
Chamberlain
about the matter. He said that the articles which had been
appearing
in the Birmingham Post about his own position were
inspired by
him—that he and the other members of the Conference were
telling
the newspapers that everything was going on swimmingly, but
that the
whole thing was in reality a sham on both sides. Parnell was
frightened at Mr. Gladstone's declining health, and Mr.
Gladstone
did not wish to end his life by having smashed his party, so
that
the Conference was willingly continued, although it was doing
nothing. It was the wish of all concerned in it to be at the
point
of an apparent reconciliation whenever Mr. Gladstone might
become
incapacitated, but he, Chamberlain, was firmly decided not to
take
office under Mr. Gladstone.
'Chamberlain said that Randolph Churchill on the previous night
had
asked him, “Shall I come over?” but that he, Chamberlain, had
replied that he advised him not to, being afraid that Randolph
would
play for the lead of the party, and not liking the notion of
having
him for leader. He had advised Randolph to simulate moderation
towards Lord Salisbury, in spite of his anger at the Duke of
Norfolk
and the members of the Conservative party who, since his
quarrel
with the Government, had been “attacking his private
character.”'
'On February 4th, 1887, Chamberlain again came to see me, and I
noted in my diary that he was “very sore against Labouchere and
others.”
'On February 13th, Morley called and said that the Round Table
Conference was hopeless, although they were to meet at dinner
on the
14th, and once again after that. He said, “Both sides are very
cross, and each side asks, 'What is to become of the other?'“
'On the same day Chance, M.P., told me, he being the attorney of
the
Nationalist party, that O'Shea was going forward with his
divorce
case against Parnell, and that Parnell had no defence possible.
I
have never known what was the reason of the immense delays
which
afterwards occurred.'
Parties now began to settle into their new groupings.
'On March 2nd, 1887, Chamberlain came to lunch, and told me a
good
deal about the failure of the Round Table Conference, but it
was not
till April 3rd that he told me the whole story. On this latter
day
Deakin, the Chief Secretary of Victoria, and most interesting
of
Colonists, was with me; and Chamberlain came in before Deakin
had
gone, and, talking with his customary frankness, discussed the
whole
matter before the astonished Victorian. There had been a sad
split
caused by a letter which he had written, and which he admitted
was
an indiscreet one, to the Baptist, as to Welsh
Disestablishment. A
hint was then let fall that the Gladstonians were going to
negotiate
with Hartington direct. On this Chamberlain went off to
Hartington
and got from him a letter to say that Hartington would not
negotiate
himself, but that Chamberlain was in possession of his views.
Efforts were then made to get Chamberlain to meet Mr.
Gladstone.
Chamberlain agreed to do so, but not to ask for the meeting. At
length a meeting was fixed at Mr. Gladstone's request for the
morrow, Monday, April 4th. It was settled that at this Mr.
Gladstone
would ask what Chamberlain had to propose. Chamberlain was
going to
reply that Mr. Gladstone knew his views, and to then ask
whether
they were accepted, and he knew perfectly that nothing would
come of
it. He had on the same day, April 3rd, met Randolph at Mrs.
Jeune's
at lunch. They had walked away together, when Randolph had
proposed
a Chamberlain-Hartington-Randolph league against both parties.
This
had tempted Chamberlain, but was an idle suggestion, as
Hartington
and Randolph could never work together.'
In the autumn of 1887 Sir Charles and Lady Dilke went to Constantinople, and he writes:
'I had received at this time a letter from James, in which he
said
that Mr. Gladstone had sent for him to talk to him about me in
the
friendliest way, and, Mr. Gladstone having called, I wrote to
him,
and transmitted some messages from the Sultan, in the following
letter:
“Athens,
“October 14th.
'“I have never thanked you except verbally through James for a
kind
and pleasant message which I had from you by James and
Chamberlain
last session.
'“At Constantinople last Friday, and again to Lady Dilke last
Monday, the Sultan said that he wished complimentary messages
conveyed to you. The Greek Patriarch said the same thing to us
on
Tuesday and Wednesday. My wife told both that she hardly knew
you,
and I replied that I was unlikely to see you for some time, but
would see that the messages reached you.
'“The Greeks on the one hand, and the Bulgarians on the other,
are
now very friendly with the Sultan, but I regret to find that
the
dislike between the Greeks and the Bulgarians is as strong as
ever.
The common preference of both for the Sultan over Russia has
not
sufficed to draw them together. The split between the Bulgarian
Government and the Exarch of Bulgaria will, however, probably
draw
Bulgaria closer to the Phanar.”'
Mr. Gladstone replied, on October 24th, that his message to Sir Charles expressed his real feeling, which he should have been glad to find other modes of expressing. He added that if the Sultan spoke sincerely in the message which Sir Charles transmitted,
'he must be acting as a good Christian: for Hobart Pasha when
here,
as a spy on Fehmi, told me the Sultan believed I was his
greatest
enemy. I have never been so great an enemy to him as he to
himself.
I have never had extreme views about Turkey. Had I the settling
of
the affair, I should be disposed to keep the Turks in
Constantinople, and not to let Home Rule when freely and
honestly
given mean total severance. But the materials of convulsion
are, I
fear, slowly gathering in that quarter, and Russia, shut out
from
her just claim to the passage of the Straits, means to have the
mastery of them. I always grieve over the feud of Hellene and
Slav,
out of which much mischief may come. The situation here is
favourable to those who view the Irish Question as you do. The
relations with Chamberlain have been rather painful. I think he
has
developed since the schism of March, 1886, even greater
speaking and
debating talents than he had shown before. I think also that
the
organization of dissentient Liberalism, in which he has borne
so
large a part, has been enormously favourable to his general
creed as
an advanced Radical, whereas Hartington with his weak-kneed men
has
been utterly hoodwinked, and hoodwinked by himself. On the
other
hand, I own myself amazed at Chamberlain's proceedings during
the
last month. Everyone took a favourable view of his accepting
the
American mission; [Footnote: Mr. Chamberlain was corresponding
with
Sir Charles in regard to his mission, for which he started on
October 29th, 1887. It had for its object the negotiation of a
treaty with America on several outstanding questions.] but a
man of
one-tenth of his talent ought to have seen the folly of
widening
breaches and exasperating all passions as a preliminary to
charging
himself with a business that eminently requires a serene
atmosphere.
'We witnessed at Nottingham an enthusiasm literally the greatest
I
have ever seen.'
'On my return to England before the middle of November, 1887, I
received a letter from the Cinderford Liberal Association, in
the
Forest of Dean, in which they referred to an attempt which had
been
made to induce me to stand for the Forest of Dean when Blake
retired
in July, 1887, and went on to press me to go there to speak....
After the completion of the army articles and of the book, I
intended to set to work on a new version of my Greater
Britain.
This afterwards became the book published under the title of
Problems of Greater Britain.'
On October 28th, 1887, 'Chamberlain wrote ... “Mr. Gladstone's last speech shows distinct signs of old age. I think matters cannot long remain in their present state, and the whole policy of England—both foreign and domestic—may be greatly altered.”'
On reaching Washington, Chamberlain wrote: 'I do not find the “civilized world” so much pro-Irish as Mr. Gladstone would have us believe. On the contrary, I have as yet only met two Americans who have expressed themselves favourable to Mr. Gladstone's policy. They are, generally speaking, inclined to some concession in the direction of State rights, but they are entirely opposed to anything in the nature of a self- governing colony, and they have no personal liking for the Irish. Above all, they are horrified at Mr. Gladstone's recent utterances about law and order, and say openly that he must have lost his head.'
'On January 4th, 1888, I made a speech in which I laid down my
position as regarded Parliamentary candidature. It was made in
presiding at the first dinner of the Hammersmith Central
Liberal
Club. About the same time I received requests to stand as
candidate
for Merthyr and for the northern division of the borough of
West
Ham, which I declined, pointing to my Hammersmith speech
without
giving further reasons.'
'About this time, my son being now at Rugby, we went down to see
him
and lunched with the Percivals.'
In the new session of 1888 Mr. Ritchie introduced his Local Government Bill, which (as Sir Charles had predicted to the Chelsea electors in 1885) was much influenced by the Liberal scheme that lay accessible in an official pigeonhole. The outline given by the new President of the Local Government Board in introducing the measure showed, however, that it fell short of expectation, and Sir Charles immediately criticized the project in an evening paper without waiting for publication of the text. When the Bill was published, he issued notes upon it, in concert with Mr. Cobb, M.P. for the Rugby Division, condemning the absence of any attempt to 'reform and revivify the parish.'
'My main objection to Mr. Ritchie's scheme was that, whereas in
my
scheme the District Councils had been more highly organized
than the
County Councils, in his scheme the reverse was the case.
[Footnote:
The allusion is here, apparently, to the Bill which Mr.
Chamberlain
prepared in 1886, but with considerable help from Sir Charles.]
There was no building up out of the smaller districts, giving
the
work as far as possible to the smallest, where the people were
at
their homes; but Mr. Ritchie's unit was the county, and the
smaller
bodies were neglected.
'The Liberal leaders took a short-sighted course in recommending
their friends to allow the Bill to pass almost without
discussion.'
[Footnote: In 1892 he again notes his intervention on this
question.
'On November 9th, 1892, I had a long interview at the Local
Government Board with Henry Fowler, the President, at his
request,
before I went down to the Chelsea Board of Guardians for the
last
time. He consulted me as to all his Bills, especially as to
that on
Local Government.']
There were, however, friends who considered that the new institutions established by Mr. Ritchie's Act opened a way back into public life for Sir Charles. Among these was Mr. Chamberlain. He was, as usual, corresponding with Sir Charles, during his absence abroad, on all matters, and an interesting letter is noted here.
'In, I think, May, 1888, while we were at Royal, I received a
letter
from Chamberlain in which he indicated a change in his views
upon
the South Africa question. Ultimately he completely turned
round
from his old position, which was violently anti-Dutch, and,
like
everyone else, fell into line upon the principle of the fusion
of
race interests in South Africa.'
'On our return Chamberlain came down to Dockett and spent the
afternoon, bringing Austen with him, and very strongly urged
that
the time had now come when I should stand for Parliament. I
said
that I thought that the time would come, but that, after India,
I
had Problems of Greater Britain to write before I
thought about
it. He then urged that I should stand for the County Council in
my
absence in India, and as to this point a great difference of
opinion
arose, I being inclined to accept his advice, which was also
very
strongly pressed upon me by my former colleague Firth; my wife
and
G. W. Osborn strongly took the opposite view, to which I
yielded. I
afterwards came to think it had been the right view.
Chamberlain
pressed his opinion very hotly to the last. I received a
deputation
from Fulham which represented the entire Liberal and a portion
of
the Conservative party, and the seat would certainly have been
won;
but I declined, and Chamberlain then wrote: “You must be the
judge,
and are probably the best one. But I yield reluctantly.”'
This decision was made public in answer to the Fulham deputation just before Sir Charles started on a journey to India.
In February, 1889, after his return to England, he was confronted with a new proposal. The Progressive party now in power on the London County Council desired to put him forward as one of the first Aldermen. Sir Charles refused; but a preliminary circular in reference to his candidature had been issued, and a protest was immediately organized by the section which desired his permanent ostracism. This opposition was then formidable in its proportions, and it never wholly disappeared. It was, however, increasingly clear that a much stronger body of public opinion desired his return to public and Parliamentary life.
In March, 1889, he was elected Honorary President of the Liberal Four Hundred in the Forest of Dean. The election did not pass without challenge, and one of the objectors was the Rector of Newent (Canon Wood). Sir Charles sent this clergyman the papers in the divorce case, which had been collected by Mr. Chesson [Footnote: Mr. Chesson had died earlier in this year; and the token of Sir Charles Dilke's gratitude to this defender of unpopular causes is commemorated in the High-Altar of Holy Trinity Church, Upper Chelsea, which he presented in memory of his friend. Sir Charles wrote: 'He had been for many years a useful man in politics, and he was to me at this period a very precious friend; one of the best and truest men I ever knew; he had been the most helpful man in England to the anti-slavery cause of the Northern Abolitionists, the working man of the Jamaica Committee, and, many years afterwards, of the Eastern Question Association, and of the Greek Committee; and since his death no one has taken his place.'] and his associates, and a study of them turned the Rector of Newent into a strong supporter of the man whom he had at first denounced.
Dilke's first visit to the Forest of Dean took place in May, 1889. By this time it was clear that his absence from Parliament could be terminated at his own pleasure. Mr. Gladstone had intervened almost officially in the matter. In June, 1889, he again sent for Sir Henry James, who transmitted the purport of his talk: which was that, while Mr. Gladstone was most anxious to see Sir Charles back, his opinion was that steps should not be too quickly taken. Sir Henry thought that Mr. Gladstone would willingly give his opinion and advice if Sir Charles thought that would be of any value to him. A few weeks later Mr. Gladstone called at 76, Sloane Street, but missed Sir Charles.
'In August he wrote to me in regard to his correspondence with
James. The most important passage in the letter was:
'“I deeply feel the loss we sustain in your absence from public
life, after you had given such varied and conclusive proof of
high
capacity to serve your country; and I have almost taken it for
granted that with the end of this Parliament, after anything
approaching the usual full term, the ostracism could die a kind
of
natural death. And I heartily wish and hope that you may have
lying
before you a happy period of public usefulness.”'
Sir Charles was in no hurry. Another invitation had reached him, from Dundee, and 'on November 4th a unanimous request to contest the borough of Fulham.'
But his determination was to let nothing interrupt the work on his book; after that, various promises both of writing and speaking had to be redeemed.
Meanwhile he remained in touch with the political world. 'I carried on a controversy with Labouchere about his views in favour of reforming the House of Lords, to which I was bitterly opposed, preferring, if we could not get rid of it, to go on as we are.' All Labouchere's letters were full of references to the position of Chamberlain, and Chamberlain himself came from time to time to discuss that point.
'On December 2nd, 1889, I saw Chamberlain. On October 10th he
had
told me that he was clear that ultimately he should join the
Conservatives, unless Mr. Gladstone were soon to go and a
Rosebery-Harcourt combination would come to terms with him
about
Ulster. On December 2nd I found a little change back from his
general attitude, and in face of the probable break-up of the
Parnellite party over the O'Shea case, which was beginning to
be
talked of in detail, Chamberlain was undecided, he said, and no
doubt thought, between the two parties. But I noted in my
diary:
“Labouchere sets him against the Liberals, and Balfour attracts
him
to the Tories.” It was clear that I thought that the change was
but
a temporary one, and that he was certain to return to his
attitude
of October, as in fact he did.'
Problems of Greater Britain appeared at the end of January, 1890, and within a month the edition was exhausted. In America, Sir Charles, expecting censure, had arranged to reply in the North American Review to his censors; but there was so little adverse comment that he chose another subject.
Discussion of military problems abounded in the book, but the 'Problems' treated were by no means only those which concerned military experts. Mr. Deakin wrote:
'It will not merely be the one book treating authoritatively of
the
Empire, and the one book making it known to Britons in Europe,
but
it will also be the first book enabling the various groups of
colonies to understand each other, and their individual
relation to
the whole of which they form a part.... Knowing some of the
difficulties you encountered ... I have been completely amazed
at
the skill or the intuition with which you have caught the right
tone
of local colours and the true tendency of our political and
social
life.'
'On July 23rd, 1890, I lunched with McArthur [Footnote: Mr. W.
A.
McArthur, Liberal Whip and member of Parliament, who had made
Sir
Charles's acquaintance in 1886, and become a warm personal
friend.]
to meet Schnadhorst, who had returned from South Africa, and
who
warmly pressed my standing at the General Election, and I
allowed
myself to be persuaded so far as to promise that I would
consider
the matter in connection with the offer of any first-rate
seat.'
Different constituencies were mentioned; but in the following October, when it became known that the then member for the Forest of Dean would not stand again, Mr. Schnadhorst wrote at once to Sir Charles urging him to let his name be put forward. He added, as an indication of the general feeling, that the adjacent constituency of South Monmouthshire had also sent in a request for Sir Charles's services—'which should assure you that popular support will overwhelm any other influence.' Accordingly, at the end of this year Sir Charles saw a deputation of leading men from the Forest, and fixed a date on which he would give a reply to a formal invitation. Having spent Christmas in his house at Toulon, he returned thence in February, 1891, met a further deputation, and agreed to give his public reply in the Forest in March.
In December, 1890, Chamberlain had concurred in the decision that, before Dilke accepted any candidature, there should be published a digest of the case with annotation and with the new evidence, 'which had grown up out of Chesson's notes, and which was largely the work of Howel Thomas, Clarence Smith, Steavenson, and McArthur. This was published in February, 1891, on my return.' [Footnote: In 1886 he had written: 'In the course of this winter a committee of friends of mine, got together by Chesson, and containing Steavenson (afterwards Judge Steavenson), and Howel Thomas of the Local Government Board, but also containing W. A. McArthur, M.P., Clarence Smith, ex-Sheriff of London and Middlesex, afterwards M.P., and Canon MacColl, who were mere acquaintances, or less, had begun to investigate my case with a view of getting further evidence.']
'The Cinderford meeting (the central town of the Forest) on
March
9th, 1891, was unanimous, and after it we remained chiefly in
the
Forest of Dean for a long time. I had promised to give my final
reply in June. At the meeting of March I had only stated that
if,
after all the attacks which might be made upon me, they should
remain in the same mind, I would accept.'
Sir Charles was fortunate in his new constituency. Throughout England there was no other so suited to him; he desired contact with large bodies of labouring men, and the Forest made him a representative of that great and typical British Labour group, the miners. He loved 'each simple joy the country yields,' and, whereas almost everywhere else a mining district is scarred, defaced, and blackened, here pit-shafts were sunk into glades as beautiful as any park could show, forest stretches of oak and beech enveloped that ugliness in green and gold, and from many a rising ground you might look over the broad vale where the wide Severn sweeps round a horseshoe curve and the little, unspoilt town of Newnham stands set in beauty, winter or summer.
Newnham was dear to Sir Charles, and there he stayed for visits in winter. But the place of his most frequent and prolonged abode in his constituency was the Speech House, built in the very heart of the woodland, remote from any town, yet at a centre of the communal life; for outside it, on a wide space of sward, the Forest miners held their yearly meeting, their 'speech-day.' The miners' interest, which he represented, was not of recent growth, nor arising out of some great enterprise of capital; it linked itself with those rights of commonage of which he had always been a chief champion, and appealed not only to the radical but to the antiquarian in him. The 'free miners' privileges marked only one of many ancient customs in that Crown domain which he studied and guarded.
As in 1867 and 1868 he had made it his business to be sure that the electors whose votes he sought should know his opinions, so far as possible, not on one subject, but on all, so now in 1891, at his meetings throughout the constituency, he unfolded the whole of his political faith.
He developed in speech after speech the views which he had put forward in A Radical Programme, published in 1890, and in a great speech at Glasgow on March 11th of that year. His views on Housing, as given in his Glasgow speech and afterwards dealt with in his Forest campaign, show how far he was in advance of the recommendations made in the Report of the Royal Commission on Housing of the Poor.
'As chairman of that Commission, I had to instruct the secretary
working with myself to draw such a report as would at least
obtain a
majority upon the Commission, and we succeeded in drawing a
report
that obtained a unanimity of votes; but, of course, to do so we
had
to put forward the points in which we felt that many would
concur,
and to keep out our most extreme suggestions. I personally
would go
much farther, and would allow towns to build or hire or buy,
and
would encourage them to solve the problem for themselves, and
not
ask the State to help them, except by setting free their hands
and
allowing them to obtain land cheaply and to tax themselves
freely
for the purpose.... Gladly would I see towns armed with the
powers
to destroy, without compensation, in extreme cases, filthy
dwellings, where it is proved to the satisfaction of the
magistrates
that the owners are in fault, and the sites of such dwellings
might
be obtained by a cheap process. In all cases we ought to give
powers
to public bodies to take land for public purposes at a fair
price
... and by the adoption of the principle of betterment ...
owners
would be called upon to make special contribution towards
schemes
which would improve their property at large.'
He dwelt on the sufferings of the working classes owing to improvements which ejected them from their dwellings, and urged that the Local Authority should in all cases come to terms as to rehousing before granting any facilities for improvements.
For land he advocated taxation of unearned increment and fixity of tenure under fair rents fixed by judicial courts, with power to the community to buy up land at its real price.
He also advocated, not only the limitation of hours of work, a principle to which he had been converted by the Industrial Remuneration Conference of 1885, but that the workers should be qualified for the enjoyment of their leisure by educational opportunities. He urged the example of Switzerland in making education compulsory up to sixteen years of age, and that of Ontario in granting free education up to the age of twenty-one.
He advocated municipal Socialism, by giving to municipalities the widest possible power to deal with local needs, and, passing from local expenditure to that of the State, he dealt with the need for graduation of Imperial taxation, and urged the equalization of the death duties (as between real and personal estate) and making these duties progressive. He would raise them gradually to 25 per cent. By such means we should attain the double purpose of raising money and discouraging the possession of large estates, which are the cause of the existence of a too numerous idle class.
Adult suffrage and one man or woman, one vote, was always a part of his programme.
In his utterances the change from individualism to collectivism is marked. 'We were all Tory anarchists once,' he used to say in reviewing economic theories of the sixties, and the change which had come over the attitude of economists to social questions. His own conversion was so thorough that in industrial questions he acted often as a pioneer, and his constituency adopted his views on the limitation of hours by legislation as in the demand for a legal eight-hour day. [Footnote: Speeches in Forest of Dean and elsewhere (1890-1891). Radical Programme, 1890.]
He had laid it down as a condition of acceptance of the candidature for the Forest that there must be 'full and absolute belief' in him and in his word. Time was given for the personal attack to develop, and it was made by pamphlet propaganda with unsparing virulence, but entirely without result. Not a dozen Liberals in the division declared themselves affected by it; and 'on June 11th, 1891, I gave my consent to stand for Parliament at a meeting held at Lydney, which was extraordinarily successful and unanimous.'
The chair was taken by Mr. Thomas Blake, who had been member for the division, and who in the darkest hour of Sir Charles's political life had come forward with a proposal to resign and make way for him. He was there now to say that, if Sir Charles would stand, he himself would act as unpaid election agent. On the platform were all the leading Liberals of the Forest, among them Canon Wood of Newent, whose opposition had been turned into strenuous advocacy. There also was 'Mabon' to speak for himself and the Welsh miners, and from the outside world Mr. Reginald McKenna, an inseparable friend. Sir Charles's speech, which he counted to have been the best of his life, dealt briefly with the leading political topics of the day—Home Rule and the Radical programme—but soon passed to the personal issue. He recalled the change from the murky dreariness of March to the height of summer loveliness which reigned about them, and the change no less great in the moral atmosphere. He reviewed the history of the attacks that had been made, the avowed determination to prevent his being their member; and at the close he declared himself satisfied that their trust was fully his. 'My conditions have been fulfilled. I accept the confidence you have reposed in me. I trust that strength may be given to me to justify that confidence, and I reply—not for a day, nor for a year, but from this day forward, for better for worse; and thereto I plight my troth. To-morrow we go forth from among you and commit our honour to your charge.'
He was justified in the confidence which he reposed in them. One attempt was made to raise the personal issue against him; and its result showed that any man would be imprudent who sought to oppose Sir Charles Dilke in the Forest of Dean except on strictly political grounds. First and last no member of Parliament ever got more loyal support; but no man ever trusted less to personal popularity. He carefully developed the whole electoral machinery. The month which he spent every autumn in the Forest was very largely a month of work on the detail of registration, and the register as he caused it to be kept might be put forward as an example of perfection unapproached elsewhere in Great Britain.
'A day or two afterwards I received at a public meeting at
Chelsea
Town Hall an address signed by 11,000 inhabitants of Chelsea,
congratulating me on my return to public life. It was signed by
persons on both sides of politics. In reply, I made another
good
speech; but it was a great occasion.'
Among the letters which reached him from all quarters was one from Sir Henry Parkes, who wrote:
'Chief Secretary, New South Wales,
'Sydney, March 9th, 1891.
'I still hold the belief that few men have before them a broader
path of honourable usefulness than you. May you succeed in
nobly
serving the dear old country!'
He received now and henceforward many invitations to address labouring men, especially from the miners of Great Britain.
At Cannock Chase, in August, 1890, he attended his first miners' meeting. How rapidly the list increased may be judged by the fact that, speaking in July, 1891, at Ilkeston, he alluded to his conferences with miners of Yorkshire, of Lancashire, of Cheshire, Somerset, Gloucestershire, Monmouthshire, Staffordshire, and the Swansea and Neath districts in England and Wales, and of Fife and Ayrshire in Scotland. Attempts had not been wanting to stimulate against him the strong puritanism of these people, especially in South Wales; the answer had come from men like Tom Ellis, [Footnote: Mr. Thomas E. Ellis was a Liberal Whip at this time.] who brought him to address the quarrymen of Blaenau Festiniog, or like Mabon—William Abraham—miner, bard, and orator, who organized a gigantic torchlight procession of his own constituents in the Rhondda Valley to welcome Sir Charles and Lady Dilke, and who, at Lydney, when Sir Charles finally accepted their invitation, congratulated the Forest of Dean on having secured the services of 'one who was not only a political leader, but a real Labour leader.'
Parliamentary action in favour of an Eight Hours Bill formed the burden of Sir Charles's discourse at all these meetings. Accepting a special invitation to the annual conference of miners in the beginning of 1892, he dealt with the proposal, then strongly advocated, of a general international strike, pointing out that this measure 'should not be even talked about until they had seen the exhaustion of all other means of obtaining what they wanted.' It meant civil war; would 'disorganize the whole economic condition of the country and the trade of the Empire, and produce also a great feeling of exasperation between classes.' He pressed them to consider whether, in the event of such an international conflict, the whole brunt would not fall on Great Britain. In Belgium and in France there was no such strength of organization as among them; and a general strike succeeding in Great Britain, but failing on the Continent, would be a national danger. He proposed, as an alternative, co-operation with the British representatives of other trades, for whom also Parliamentary interference was demanded. In the discussion which followed, the weight of his argument was fully recognized, and a resolution favouring the international strike was amended into one calling for Parliamentary action.
In the following June Sir Charles Dilke attended the Miners' International Congress, and spoke at the banquet given to foreign delegates. A month later, when the General Election came on, 'thousands of handbills and posters,' says Mr. Thomas Ashton, 'were sent to the Forest of Dean by our federation recommending the workers to vote for the working man's candidate.'
Nor were his public utterances on Labour questions limited to Great Britain; request came from a society of the Belgian economists for a lecture on some subject connected with Greater Britain, and he chose the Australian strike and the position of Labour in the Colonies. This discourse was delivered by Sir Charles in Brussels on his way back from France at the beginning of 1891, and he then, he says, 'made the acquaintance of all the leading people on both sides in that city.'
As early as May, 1891, Dilke had made up his mind (and stated it in a letter to Count Herbert Bismarck) that the Liberal party would win the next election. The question of the Leadership was raised at the end of the session in a letter from Chamberlain:
'I am told that Mr. Gladstone is much shaken by his late
illness,
and I cannot see how he can ever lead the House again, though
his
name will always be a tower of strength in the constituencies.'
But in December Mr. Chamberlain said that he did not think the prospects of a General Election were so good for Mr. Gladstone as they had been six months ago.
'James, dining at my house, had said a long time before this
that
the prospects of the Liberals might look rosy, but that they
had not
realized the extent to which the Liberal Unionists intended to
spend
their money upon Labour candidates;' and this danger 'began to
show
itself more clearly about this time.' On December 28th 'I had
an
amusing letter from Cyril Flower:
'“Surely for a real good muddle in political affairs, Welsh,
Irish,
Scotch, and English, there has never been a bigger, and what
with
Pamellites and anti-Parnellites (Christian and anti-Christian)
Whigs, Labour candidates, Radicals, Tories, Jacobites, and
Liberal
Unionists, the next House will be as rum a kettle of fish as
ever
stewed since George III. The worst of it is, as the House gets
more
and more divided (like the French Chambers) into sets, it also
becomes more and more incapable of getting through its
business, and
the littleness of the individual members becomes daily more
apparent.”'
The real difficulty for the Liberals was, however, the question of leadership; and Sir Charles wrote an article in the Speaker [Footnote: September 5th, 1891.] in support of one of his few paradoxes—that Great Britain would be better off without a Second Chamber, but that, given a House of Lords, the Prime Minister should be a member of it. For this reason he urged that though, 'when the moment has come for Mr. Gladstone to think that he has earned a change into the position of adviser from that of military chief, Sir William Harcourt will occupy the place he pleases to assume—he will be able to make himself Prime Minister if he chooses'—yet 'the party would be strongest with Mr. Gladstone for adviser, Sir William Harcourt, as fighting chief, sharing the responsibility with the leader in the Lords more fully than he would if he were Prime Minister in the Lower House'; and he named Lord Spencer as possible Prime Minister, since Lord Rosebery should be Foreign Secretary, and the Foreign Secretary and Prime Minister should not be the same man, 'so heavy is the work of each of these two offices.'
With the opening of 1892 Parliament entered on its sixth, and last, session, and 'on April 1st I received a letter from Chamberlain, in which he said:
'“My own firm conviction is that parties will be nearly divided,
and
if Mr. G. has a majority nothing will be done either in regard
to
Ireland or to social questions in Great Britain.
'“I do not expect the election till late in the autumn,
and,
judging from appearances, the Opposition are much divided and
rather
depressed in spirit. My prediction is that, unless the
Gladstonians
give up the idea of a separate Parliament (I do not say
extended
local government), they will not obtain power—though they may
obtain office—for this generation.
'“This is a bold prophecy for you, but it is my sincere opinion.”'
Right essentially—for there was a very small Liberal majority—Mr. Chamberlain was wrong on the point of date: the election came in July, 1892.
In the Forest proper, the local war-chant, 'Yaller for iver, an' Blue in the river!' was shouted everywhere. But the constituency, 'a microcosm of England, industrial and agricultural,' as Sir Charles had called it, had districts where support of the 'working man's candidate' could only be whispered; where closed hands were furtively opened to show a marigold clasped in them; where perhaps, as a farmer's trap drove by carrying voters to the poll, the voters, outwardly blue-ribboned, would open their coats a little and show where the yellow was pinned. Lady Dilke on polling-day took charge of these districts. Yellow flowers from every garden were heaped into her carriage as she passed; and when votes came to be counted, more than one had been spoilt by too enthusiastic votaries who wrote across their paper, 'For Lady Dilke.' Her courage and devotion had touched the loyalty of the Forest people, and she received from them a tribute of genuine love. One who accompanied her tells of a later day when, after a terrible mine accident, Lady Dilke came down to visit the homes on which that blow had fallen. In one a young widow sat staring dry-eyed at the fire or turning tearless looks on the child that played near her. But when Lady Dilke entered, the woman rose from her chair, and, running to her visitor, put her arms about her neck, and as the two held each other, tears came at last.
Sir Charles Dilke was returned by a majority of two to one, and, he writes laconically, 'in August was well received in the House of Commons.'
In 1891 Sir Charles had expressed some surprise at hostile comment in the Times and other important organs on his selection as candidate for the Forest of Dean, and Mr. Chamberlain told him candidly that opinion in society and in the House itself was hostile to his candidature, and that he must look forward to a 'mauvais quart d'heure.' But it was otherwise. After his election there appears to have been a general expectation that he would be silent, and keep out of the range of hostile criticism. As a fact, he fell directly into his old habit of raising every subject which interested him. Parliament met again on January 31st, 1893, and as soon as notice of questions could be given, Sir Charles was reviving interest in a subject familiar to him of old, by asking the new Liberal Government to issue papers which had been omitted from the official publications of France and Great Britain, but had been published in the Madagascar Red Book.
Amongst congratulations on his election came one from the Prime Minister at Antananarivo, rejoicing that the threatened freedom of Madagascar would again have his support, and transmitting the Red Book just named. Within the first week of the session Sir Charles had questioned Government about the arbitration as to the Newfoundland fisheries; and concerning a vacancy in the Bombay command, with inquiry as to whether amalgamation of the Indian armies would be considered [Footnote: The amalgamation of the Indian armies was achieved by abolition, in 1894, of the separate military commands of the Presidencies.]—a change which he had long advocated. He also reappeared in a different field, but one familiar to him, by introducing a Bill to amend the system of voting in local elections. Then, on February 11th, while the Address to the Crown was still under discussion, he took part in a full-dress debate.
Mr. James Lowther, the leading Protectionist of days when Protection was not a fashionable creed, proposed an amendment seeking to restrict the immigration of destitute aliens; and he found a seconder in a trade- unionist, Mr. Havelock Wilson, who spoke for the seamen. After Mr. Gladstone had argued strongly against the proposal, but had shown his perception of the widespread support which it received by expressing willingness to appoint a committee of inquiry, Sir Charles Dilke rose, and, claiming to speak for a small minority, opposed legislation and committee alike.
The force of his appeal to the House lay in the description which he gave of persecution directed against the Jews in Russia, coupled with citation of many previous instances in which England had afforded asylum, and had gained both advantage and respect by so doing. First-hand knowledge of Russian conditions and detailed mastery of the historical case were combined in what one of the more important speakers for the motion (Sir William Marriott) called a 'magnificent speech'; and Sir Charles himself observes that it turned many votes. Mr. Mundella wrote to him after the debate: 'I think it was the best I ever heard from you, and, moreover, was courageous and just.'
Mr. Mundella was no doubt struck by the fact that a man coming in, as Sir Charles did, specially dependent on the support of organized Labour, had in his first speech combated the view of Labour interests which was put forward by trade-unionists. Sir Charles's reply to the trade- unionists ran thus: If these aliens come to England, they very often join trade-unions, and so accept the higher standard; if they do not, the products of their work come in and compete even more disastrously. From this there lay an argument against Free Trade, and this he characteristically admitted. Free Trade was only a balance of advantages, and Labour politicians, he pointed out, considered that the arguments against it were outweighed by countervailing considerations. To exclude the immigrants and not to exclude the products of their labour would be inconsistent, and also it would lower the nation's standard of humanity.
Early in the session he spoke again on the qualifications for membership of local elective bodies, and incidentally condemned the proposed Ministry of Labour as 'a sham remedy.' [Footnote: See “Labour,” Chapter LII., pp. 347, 348.] Not to create new Ministries, but to reorganize and redistribute their work, was his policy, advocated repeatedly both in the House of Commons and from the chair of the Statistical Society. He spoke also on redistribution in this session, and these speeches were 'successful in their business way. Thus I regained influence of a quiet sort.'
'For the first time' (1893) 'I dined at the Speaker's third
dinner,
or “dinner of the discontented.” The first dinner each year is
to
the Government, the second to the late Government, and the
third to
the Privy Councillors who were not of either of the others, and
to a
few other leading members. Little Northcote was on the
Speaker's
left, parted only by the Speaker from Randolph. I was opposite,
reflecting, whenever Jim Lowther would leave off slapping me on
the
back.'
On January 29th, 1893, Sir Charles noted in his diary:
'There is a league between Harcourt and Labouchere against the
Rosebery-Asquith combination. Labouchere showed me a letter
from
Harcourt: “Hell would be pleasant compared to the present
situation.”'
'On my return to the House of Commons,' notes Sir Charles, 'I
found
Chamberlain's debating power marvellous, but, while his method
has
improved, it ... no longer carries the conviction of conviction
with
it, which, to me, is everything.
'Asquith is the only new man who is “any good”—a bold, strong
man,
of great intellectual power. Sir E. Grey is able, but terribly
Whiggish. Hanbury has improved, and so has Harcourt. The others
are
where they were.'
Mr. Asquith he had met for the first time in 1891, at Mr. Chamberlain's house, and found him 'much more intelligent than the ordinary run of politicians.'
Dilke and Chamberlain, once closely united through a long period of public life, had now been working apart for more than seven years. Strong minds, that in the collaboration of their earlier policy mutually influenced each other, had by a turn of personal fortune combining with a great political change followed divided destinies; and their evolution carried them far apart. They had met in private, had maintained the personal bond, [Footnote: 'At this time I was searching for a secretary, and Chamberlain found me Hudson, who, as he said, “fulfils all your requirements.”' The connection between the secretary and his chief ended only with Sir Charles's death.] and in so meeting must inevitably have been prompted by a desire to minimize differences. But now they stood both again in the public arena—the one returning after the lapse of years, the other sustained by an unbroken continuance of Parliamentary activity—and the situation became difficult.
There were not many men who could work with Mr. Chamberlain in equal alliance. For that a man was needed, confident enough in his own weight not to fear being overbalanced in the combination; great enough in nature to be devoid of jealousy; and wise enough to understand that restless activity was the law of his ally's being. Upon those conditions only was it possible for a cooler, more temperate, and, on some subjects, better instructed politician to steer the tremendous motive power which Mr. Chamberlain's personal force afforded. What was lost to the world when the crippling of Sir Charles disjointed that alliance can never be reckoned. Not only the alliance, but the personal intimacy, was broken when their political ways sundered on the Home Rule division. Friendship remained; but it was not possible that men of that mark, who had met incessantly in the closest confederacy, could meet easily when the very groundwork of their intimacy was gone.
Sir Charles worked hard for a Bill specially interesting now to his constituents.
On April 18th, 1893, 'I wrote to Chamberlain and to Randolph Churchill as to the Miners Bill, as its authors had asked me to lay plans for the debate. From both I had replies favourable to local option, and on my writing again to Chamberlain he answered: “The sentence about the Labour leaders escaped me because I am, I confess, impatient of their extremely unpractical policy, and also because I believe their real influence is immensely exaggerated. A political leader having genuine sympathy with the working classes and a practical programme could, in my opinion, afford to set them aside. Mr. Gladstone has no real sympathy with the working classes, and a perfect hatred for all forms of Socialism. His concessions are extorted from him, and are the price paid for votes, and therefore I do not wonder at the pressure put upon him.”'
In the first week in May, 1893, 'I brought forward my Egypt motion, spoke for the Miners Bill, and carried a resolution, drawn for us by the Lord Chancellor himself, as to the appointment of the magistrates for counties. From this time forward I shall not name my speeches and ordinary action in the House, as I had now regained the position which I had held in it up to 1878, though not my position of 1878-1880, nor that of 1884-85.'
No Parliament is exactly like its predecessor, and changed conditions had also changed the character of Sir Charles Dilke's Parliamentary personal surroundings; but they were drawn now, as of old, from neither party exclusively. The group comprised several young supporters of the Government, like Mr. McKenna, who, having failed in Clapham, wrote to Sir Charles on July 7th, 1892, of his regret at not being near him in the House of Commons 'to go on learning from you—I don't mean information, but patience and judgment and steadfastness.' Mr. McKenna had now been returned for South Monmouthshire, one of the constituencies which had been anxious to secure Sir Charles himself. Here Sir Charles had many devoted friends, who gave introductions to Mr. McKenna, which led to his adoption as candidate, and he wrote again to Sir Charles on his election: 'I am glad to owe it to you.' Old friends—as, for example, Mr. Morley—remained, and from the ranks of the Opposition at least one rarely interesting figure stands out, that of H. O. Arnold-Forster, who with Mrs. Arnold-Forster came to rank among the nearest friends of Sir Charles and Lady Dilke. The political tie was here due to common advocacy of army reform, and it took shape in a kind of formal alliance.
'In November, 1893, in the debates on the Local Government Bill,
I
carried a good deal of weight, and was able greatly to improve
the
measure. I also in December made a speech in a naval debate
which
was as successful as my Zulu speech—with as little reason,
except
its opportuneness.'
In the Home Rule portion of the session of 1893, Sir Charles was mostly silent, being, in his own words, inclined to 'keep still' on the main issue. His only contributions to the long debates were made during the Committee stage, and concerned the electoral arrangements—a matter upon which Mr. Gladstone was quick to acknowledge his high competence. When at last, in 1894, the Bill reached the Lords, it was rejected; and then the foreseen change of leadership came to pass, and Lord Rosebery was 'popped into Mr. Gladstone's place by an intrigue.' Sir Charles discussed in the North American Review the result, which his Memoir describes thus. Admitting that the choice, which 'came as a surprise to the Liberal party in the country,' would strengthen the Government in Scotland and in London by Lord Rosebery's personal prestige, he none the less foresaw that the new leader would come into conflict 'with all that is active in the Liberal party,' unless he could renounce 'his personal wishes in favour of a reformed but a strong and indeed strengthened Second Chamber.' His chance of success lay in putting himself as a peer at the head of a movement against the veto of the House of Lords. 'The chance is before him, but he is a cautious Scotchman who seldom makes up his mind too soon, and who may possibly make it up too late.'
Meanwhile 'I was pressed to join Labouchere and Storey in opposing him, which I declined to do, on the ground that I was concerned with the measures proposed, but not with the men.'
Speaking in the Potteries on November 22nd, 'to a big audience which took it well,' he 'attacked Rosebery about the Lords.'
'He would like to see Lord Rosebery in the popular House in
which he
had never sat, and he would like to see Lord Salisbury back
again.
Their ideas would undergo a change. The reform of the Upper
House
was now not a Liberal but a Conservative nostrum.... It would
be
necessary for the Radicals to fight even against their Liberal
leaders to prevent lengthening the life of the Parliamentary
sick
man.... The Liberal party was still hampered by men who wanted
peerages for themselves and their sons, and he should not
believe
that the leaders were in earnest until the Liberal party gave
over
making peers. Moderate men must be warned by the example of
what had
recently happened in Belgium, where the moderate Liberals had
been
promptly suffocated between the two opposing forces of Toryism
and
Socialism, as they were too pretentious to submit to Tory
discipline
and too slavish to become frankly democratic.'
I.
In the period covered by the earlier portion of the previous chapter, Sir Charles Dilke had used his freedom as an opportunity for travel.
'During a visit to Paris, in the winter of 1886, paid in order
to
discuss the question of the work which ultimately appeared in
France
as L'Europe en 1887, I saw a good deal of Castelar, who
was
visiting Paris at the same time; and it was to us that he made
a
speech, which has become famous, about Boulanger, who was
beginning
to attract great notice, declaring in French, “I know that
General
Boulanger—he is a Spanish General;” meaning that the Spanish
habit
of the military insurrection under the leadership of a showy
General
was extending to France. [Footnote: In 1889 Sir Charles notes:
'My
wife and I were asked to dinner to meet General Boulanger; and
I
decided that I would not go, neither did she.']
'Chamberlain, during his journey abroad, had seen a good deal of
Sir
William White, the Ambassador at Constantinople, who wrote to
me
about him: “We became friends, and spoke naturally of you, our
mutual friend. I could not help seeing Chamberlain's immense
quickness of observation and talents. In foreign politics he
appeared to me to be beginning his ABC, but disposed to
learn....”
The Ambassador went on to say that the intimacy between France
and
Russia was coming to the front at Constantinople, and that
Bismarck's Ambassador did not seem to take umbrage at it.
'In September, 1887, we went to France, where our journey had
nothing of great interest, except a visit to Vaux-le-Vicomte,
Fouquet's house, [Footnote: Near Melun, in the Seine-et-Marne,
where
Fouquet gave the celebrated fete referred to. See Memoires
de
Fouquet, by A. Cheruel, vol. ii., chap. xxxv.] which
remains very
much as Fouquet left it, although the gardens in which he
received
Louis XIV. in the great fete recounted by Dumas have been
completed
by their present proprietor, with whom we stayed. We afterwards
visited Constantinople, and stayed for ten days at Therapia,
and
then at Athens, where I had a great reception, as indeed
throughout
Greece, on account of my previous services to the Greek cause;
in
some cases payment was refused on this ground. [Footnote: A
letter
from Lady Dilke of October 29th, 1887, written to Cardinal
Manning,
a constant correspondent, deals with one of these episodes:
“We were received at the Piraeus by an order not to open our
boxes,
an ignorant underling being severely rebuked, and bid to 'look
at
the name on the boxes. Would you ask money from one who has
done so
much for Greece?' In short, we had a royal reception. The Prime
Minister, the Metropolitan, and the other Ministers and their
families, and all dignitaries, ecclesiastical, academical,
political, military, all vied in showing Charles honour. The
crowd
watched outside for a glimpse of him, and M. Ralli, when I said
how
touched he was at their faithful gratitude, said: 'It is not
only
our gratitude we wish to show him. You have no idea of the
intense
sympathy felt for him in Athens.' We had but three days to
give, and
so missed the great public banquet and the torchlight
procession
which the students wished to organize. At Corinth the King and
Queen
were equally kind.”]
'Our journey to Turkey and Greece was full of interest. The
Sultan
showed us immense courtesy. Greece after twenty-five years
seemed to
me as lovely as ever. The Eastern Church were very civil to us,
and
the reception at the Phanar at Constantinople by the
Oecumenical
Patriarch, the Archbishop of Constantinople, Dionysius V., in
Synod
was striking. I wrote from Constantinople to Chesson: “The
Bulgarians and the Greeks are both now on excellent terms with
the
Turks, although, unfortunately, they still detest one another.
The
Sultan does not care two straws about Bulgaria now, and will do
nothing in the matter except mark time. The Greek Patriarch
gave us
an official reception, with some Archbishops present, who
represented the Churches of Asia and of the Islands, and showed
us
their splendid Byzantine treasures. It is extraordinarily
interesting to see all the effects of St. Chrysostom; but I
cannot
help feeling that the Church sold the Empire to the Turks, and
would
have been more estimable had it lost its jewels. The
last
Constantine tried to reunite the Eastern and Western Churches,
and
the poor man was denounced as a heretic, and surrounded only by
Latins when he was killed on the breach. The Church, however,
went
through a small martyrdom later on, and was glorified by
suffering
at the beginning of the Greek War of Independence, when the
then
Patriarch was hanged by the Turks and dragged about for three
days
by the Jews. They all seem on very good terms now, and the
Patriarch
sang the praises of the present Sultan loudly. The Sultan has
been
very civil. I did not want to see him, which doubtless made him
the
more anxious to see me. He sent for me twice, and, besides the
audience at the Selamlik, had us to a state dinner given in our
honour at the Haremlik. I refused the Grand Cordon of the
Medjidieh,
but Emilia accepted the Grand Cordon of the Chefkat for
herself. He
is very anxious to make a good impression, and is having the
Shrine
of Death done into Turk!”
'I received a letter of thanks from the Secretary of the
Trustees of
the National Portrait Gallery for having obtained for them from
the
Sultan a copy of the portrait of Nelson which is in the
Treasury at
Constantinople; but what I really tried to obtain was the
original,
inasmuch as no one ever sees it where it is.'
Sir Charles Dilke, writing to Mr. Chamberlain an amused account of the Sultan's advances, says: 'Lady White told Emilia that she heard I was to be Grand Vizier.'
'My riding tour along the Baluch and Afghan frontiers was,' Sir
Charles notes, 'one of the pleasantest and most interesting
experiences of my life.' [Footnote: He adds, 'I described so
fully
in the Fortnightly Review, in two articles of March 1st
and April
1st, 1889, my riding tour ... that I shall say no more about
it.'
This account of the journey is summarized from those articles,
the
criticism on military questions being dealt with by Mr. Spenser
Wilkinson in the chapter on Defence (LV.).] Leaving England in
October, 1888, he landed with Lady Dilke at Karachi in
November.
They were met by the Commander-in-Chief, Sir Frederick Roberts,
and
went on over the broad-gauge line, then not officially open,
through
the Bolan Pass to Quetta. 'When we reached the picturesque
portion
of the pass, we left our carriages for an open truck placed at
the
head of the train, in front of two engines, and there we sat
with
the fore part of the truck occupied by the paws and head of His
Excellency's dog; next came the one lady of the party and Sir
Frederick Roberts, and then myself and all the staff. The long-
haired warriors and tribesmen, who occupied every point of
vantage
on the crags, doubtless thought, and have since told their
tribesmen
on their return, that the whole scene was devised to do honour
to a
dog.'
They were travelling over part of 'the great strategic railroad constructed after the Penjdeh incident, on orders given by the Government of which I was a member.'
At Quetta he was among the guests of Sir Robert Sandeman, Agent for British Baluchistan, ruler in all but name of those nominally independent frontier principalities and clans. 'Quetta conversations soon brought back reminiscences of far-off days. When I had last seen Sir Robert Sandeman it had been in London, during the discussion of the occupation of the Khojak position, in which I sided with him.... We brought with us or found gathered here all the men who best understood the problem of frontier defence—a very grave problem, too.'
The party assembled under the roof of the Residency included the Commander-in-Chief, of whom Sir Charles says: 'Sir Frederick Roberts knows India as no one else knows it, and knows the Indian Army as no one else has ever known it'; the Adjutant-General; the Quartermaster-General, who was Director of Military Intelligence; the Military Member of Council, General Chesney; and Sir Charles Elliott, the Member of Council for Public Works, who had charge of the strategic railways. With them were the Inspectors-General of Artillery and of Military Works, the Secretary of the Defence Commission, and the General in Command at Quetta, as well as his predecessor, who had not yet vacated the post.
He saw manoeuvres outside Quetta in the valleys that lead from the Afghan side, and he had the experience of riding up and down those stony hill slopes beside the Commander-in-Chief. He explored the Khojak tunnel, then under process of construction, running through 'a wall-like range which reminds one of the solitude of Sainte-Baume in Provence,' surveyed all the defences of Quetta, and then, while Lady Dilke went on by rail to Simla, he set out to ride, in company with Sir Frederick Roberts and Sir Robert Sandeman, from Harnai, through the Bori and Zhob Valleys, towards the Gomul Pass. On that journey he saw great gatherings of chiefs and tribesmen come in to meet and salute the representatives of British rule. He watched Sir Robert Sandeman parleying with the borderers, and was introduced to them as the statesman who had sanctioned the new road. These were regions beyond the reach of telegraph, where outposts maintained communications by a pigeon post, of which the mountain hawk took heavy toll; and each day's journey was a hard and heavy ride.
The ride continued for twelve days, through scorching sun by day and bitter cold at night; and every march brought its full portion of strange and beautiful sights. All the romance of border rule, outposts among robber tribes, order maintained through the agency of subsidized chiefs, were disclosed; and even when the conditions of travel changed, when a train took them from the Upper Indus to Nowshera and Peshawur, it brought to Sir Charles the opportunity of seeing what interested him no less than the wild tribal levies—namely, the pick of British regulars in India, both native and European.
The splendour and beauty of the pageant pleased the eye, and there was not lacking a dramatic interest. He had seen by Sir Frederick Roberts's side the mountain battle-ground where the day of Maiwand was avenged and British prestige restored; now he was present when Ayub Khan, the victor of Maiwand, voluntarily came forward to hold speech for the first time with the conqueror who so swiftly blotted out the Afghan's victory.
'On our way back (from India) we stayed at Cairo, and saw much
of
Sir Evelyn Baring, Riaz, Mustapha Fehmy, the Khedive, Tigrane,
Yakoub Artin, and the other leading men. At Rome, as we passed
through Italy, I made the acquaintance of many of my wife's
friends,
the most interesting of whom was, perhaps, Madame Minghetti,
known
to her friends as Donna Laura, and previously Princess
Camporeale;
and I obtained through Bonghi, whom we saw both at Naples and
at
Rome, an order to see Spezia—an order which was refused by the
War
Office, and granted by the Admiralty. The Admiral commanding
the
Fleet and the Prefet Maritime were both very kind, and I
thoroughly
saw the arsenal, fleet, and forts, with the two Admirals.'
In 1905 Sir Charles writes:
'On September 7th in the year 1891 I started for the French
manoeuvres, to which I had been invited by Galliffet. By
sending
over my horses I was able to see the manoeuvres extremely
well....
'The Marquis de Galliffet was an interesting figure, a soldier
of
the time of Louis XV., who, however, had thoroughly learned his
modern work. There were 125,000 men in the field, but, looking
back
to my adventures, I am now more struck by the strange future of
the
friends I made than by the interest, great as it was, of the
tactics. We had on the staff almost all those who afterwards
became
leading men in the Dreyfus case, on both sides of that affair.
Saussier, the Generalissimo, had with him, to look after the
foreign
officers, Colonel (afterwards Sir) Reginald Talbot, Huehne'
(German
Military Attache), 'and others—Maurice Weil (the Jew friend of
Esterhazy), who was in the Rennes trial named by the defence as
the
real spy, though, I am convinced, innocent. We now know, of
course,
that Esterhazy should have been the villain of the play....
General
Billot, afterwards Minister of War, was present, living with
Saussier, as a spectator. Galliffet had under him nearly
120,000
men, but the skeleton enemy was commanded by General
Boisdeffre,
afterwards Chief of the Staff, and the leader of the clerical
party
in the Ministry of War, and friend, throughout the “affair,” of
Billot. General Brault, also afterwards Chief of the Staff, was
in
the manoeuvres Chief of the Staff to Galliffet. He, it will be
remembered, also played his part in the “affair,” as did
Huehne,
named above. On Galliffet's staff, besides General Brault, were
Colonel Bailloud, also concerned in the Dreyfus case; Captain
Picquart, afterwards the youngest Lieutenant-Colonel in the
French
army, a brilliant and most thoughtful military scholar, the
hero of
the Dreyfus case in its later aspects; the Comte d'Alsace,
afterwards a deputy, and, although a clerical Conservative, a
witness for Dreyfus; and Joseph Reinach, the real author of the
virtual rehabilitation of Dreyfus. It was a singularly
brilliant
staff. Bailloud, it may be remembered, afterwards became
Commander-in-Chief of the China Expedition.
'Of those who have not been named, in addition to the remarkable
men
who figured in the Dreyfus case, and among the few on this
staff who
were not concerned in it, were other interesting persons: the
Prince
d'Henin, M. de la Guiche, and a man who was interesting, and
figures
largely in memoirs, Galliffet's bosom friend, the Marquis du
Lau
d'Allemans. “Old Du Lau,” as he is generally called, was a rich
bon
vivant, with a big house in Paris, who throughout life has
been a
sort of perpetual “providence” to Galliffet, going with him
everywhere, even to the Courts where Galliffet was a favourite
guest. Reinach and Du Lau were not soldiers in the strict sense
of
the term, although members of Galliffet's staff. Maurice Weil,
though a great military writer, was himself not a soldier,
although
on Saussier's headquarters staff in Paris and in the field.
Weil and
Reinach were both officers of the territorial army: Weil a
Colonel
of artillery, Reinach a Lieutenant of Chasseurs a Cheval. Du
Lau was
a dragoon Lieutenant of stupendous age—possibly an
ex-Lieutenant,
with the right to wear his uniform when out as a volunteer on
service. I was walking with him one day in a village, when a
small
boy passing said to a companion “What a jolly old chap for a
Lieutenant!” And it was strange indeed to see the long white
hair of
the old Marquis streaming from beneath his helmet. He was
older, I
think, than Galliffet, who was retiring, and who received
during
these manoeuvres the plain military medal, which is the joy of
French hall-porters, but the highest distinction which can be
conferred by the Republic on a General who is a member of the
Supreme Council of War and at the top of the tree in the Legion
of
Honour. Joseph Reinach was, of course, young enough to be the
son of
old Du Lau, but since leaving the regular regiment of
Chasseurs—in
which he had done his service at Nancy, while Gyp (his future
enemy
and that of his race) was the reigning Nancy beauty—he had
expanded
in figure so that his sky-blue-and-silver and fine horse did
not
save him from comments by the children who had noted Du Lau's
age.
The Duc d'Aumale was also present on horseback as a spectator,
but
his official friends, and their friends, were forced to ignore
him,
as he had not yet made his peace with the Republic.
'As soon as I had joined Galliffet, I wrote to my wife: “Conduct
of
troops most orderly. It is now, of course, here, as it was
already
in 1870 with the Germans, that, the soldier being Guy Boys
[Footnote: Guy Boys was Lady Dilke's nephew; Jim Haslett the
ferryman at Dockett. Sir Charles was illustrating the fact that
all
classes serve together both in the ranks and as officers.] and
Jim
Haslett and all of us, and not a class apart, there is no
'military
tone.' Discipline, nevertheless, seems perfect, but are the
officers
as good as the non-commissioned officers and the men? I doubt.
Promotion from the ranks combined with special promotion to the
highest ranks for birth of all nobles who have any brains at
all is
a combination which gives results inferior to either the Swiss
democratic plan or the Prussian aristocratic. Perhaps a fifth
of the
officers are noble, but more than half the powerful officers
are
noble; and here we are with the sides commanded by the Prince
d'Eckmuehl and the Prince de Sartigues.” (During the first days
of
the manoeuvres the four army corps and the two cavalry
divisions
were combined under Galliffet; half the army was commanded by
General Davoust, who, of course, is the first of these two
Princes;
and Galliffet had for “second title” the name of his Provencal
principality near Marseilles.) “You may say, 'The
Generalissimo,
sausage-maker, restores the balance.' But the real
Generalissimo is
Miribel, Aristo of the Aristos—for he is a poor noble of the
South.
Another of the army corps is commanded by a Breton, Kerhuel,
and the
other by a man of army descent for ever and ever, Negrier, son
and
nephew of Napoleonic Generals.”'
'An amusing billet adventure was named in another letter to my wife:
'“I am in a Legitimist chateau: one side of the room, Callots;
the
other, Comte de Chambord. Over the bed a large crucifix. The
room
belongs to 'Mathilde.' But as I live with the staff I do not
see the
family. The butler is charming, and the fat coachman turned out
two
of his horses to make room for 'Madame' and 'W'f'd'r.' I
had to
write a letter to a French newspaper, which had charged me with
turning my back on the standard of a regiment instead of bowing
to
it, and dated from this place: 'Chateau de Boussencourt.'“'
His observations were summed up in an article for the Fortnightly, which was later translated into French by an officer on the staff of the Commander-in-Chief, and, after appearing in a review, was published separately by the military library. His strictures on the handling of the cavalry led to a controversy in France into which he was obliged later to enter.
'As I passed through Paris on my return, Galliffet wrote: “You
are
as a writer full of kindness, but very dangerous as an
observer, and
next time I shall certainly put you on the treatment of the
military
attaches—plenty of dinners, plenty of close carriages, plenty
of
gendarmes, no information, and a total privation of
field-glasses.
This will be a change for you, especially in the matter of
dinners.
Lady Dilke cannot have forgiven me for sending you back in such
wretched condition.”'
M. Joseph Beinach wrote in 1911:
'Nous recommandions tous deux le rajeunissement des cadres. II
s'est
trouve enfin un ministre de la guerre, M. le general Brun, pour
aborder resolument le probleme. Comme nos souvenirs revenaient
frequemment aux belles journees de ces manoeuvres de l'Est! Je
revois encore Dilke chevauchant avec nous dans l'etat-major de
Gallififet. II y avait la le general Brault, le general Darras,
le
general Zurlinden, le “commandant” Picquart, Thierry d'Alsace,
le
marquis Du Lau.... Ah! la “bataille” de Margerie-Haucourt, sous
le
grand soleil qui, dissipant les nuages de la matinee, fit
scintiller
tout a coup comme une moisson d'acier les milliers de fusils
des
armees reunies! Comme c'est loin! Que de tombeaux!... Mais nous
sommes bien encore quelques-uns a avoir garde intactes nos ames
d'alors!' [Footnote: An article in the Figaro written
after Sir
Charles Dilke's death.]
II.
It was in 1889 that Sir Charles Dilke came into touch with Cecil Rhodes during a visit paid by the latter to England.
'In July, 1889, I saw a good deal of Cecil Rhodes, who was
brought
to my house by Sir Charles Mills, [Footnote: Then Agent-General
for
the Cape and a great personal friend.] and afterwards came back
several times. He was at this moment interesting, full of life
and
vigour, but when he returned to England after the British South
Africa Company had been started he seemed to have become half
torpid
and at the same time dogmatic. The simplicity which had
distinguished him up to the end of his visit of 1889 seemed to
have
disappeared when he came back in 1891; and his avowed intention
of
ultimately coming to England to take part in English politics
seemed
also a strange mistake, as he was essentially a man fitted for
colonial life, and had none of the knowledge, or the mode of
concealing want of knowledge, one or other of which is required
for
English public work.'
'In August, 1889, I received a note from Rhodes from Lisbon
which
constitutes, I believe, a valuable autograph, for his friends
all
say he “never writes.” I had asked him to clear up an
extraordinary
passage in one of Kruger's speeches (on which I afterwards
commented
in Problems of Greater Britain), and Rhodes wrote:
'“The fates were unpropitious to my day on the river, as matters
required me in South Africa, from which place I propose to send
you
the famous speech you want. I quite see the importance, if
true, of
his utterance, but I can hardly think Kruger would have said
it. I
hope you will still hold to your intention of visiting the
Cape, and
I can only say I will do all I can to assist you in seeing
those
parts with which I am connected. I am afraid Matabeleland will
be in
too chaotic a state to share in your visit, but between the
diamonds
and the gold there is a good extent to travel over. I am
doubtful
about your getting Kruger's speech before you publish, but it
will
be the first thing I will attend to on my arrival at the Cape.
Kindly remember me to Lady Dilke.
'“Yours truly,
'“C. J. Rhodes.”
'At the beginning of November, 1889, I heard again from Rhodes,
who
wrote from Kimberley:
'“Dear Sir Charles Dilke,
'“I have come to the conclusion that Kruger never made use of
the
expression attributed to him, as I can find no trace of it in
the
reports of his speech on the Second Chamber. I send you a copy
of
the draft law....
'“Thanks for your news of Bismarck's map. Their true boundary is
the
20th degree of longitude, and it will take them all their time
to
retain even that, as the Damaras are entirely opposed to them,
and
the German company which nominally holds that territory will
soon
have to liquidate for lack of funds. It is one thing to paint a
map,
and it is quite another to really occupy and govern a new
territory.
I am still waiting for the news of the signature of the
charter,
which I hope will not be much longer delayed. I think Kruger
will
find his hands quite full enough without interfering with me.
He is
still trying to get them to give him Swaziland in return for
non-interference in Matabeleland. The Matabele King (Lobengula)
still continues to slaughter his subjects, and makes the minds
of
our representatives at times very uncomfortable. It is
undoubtedly a
difficult problem to solve; but the plain fact remains that a
savage
chief with about 8,000 warriors is not going to keep out the
huge
wave of white men now moving north, and so I feel it will come
all
right.
'“Yours,
'“C. J. Rhodes.”
'In March, 1890, I received a letter from Rhodes from the
Kimberley
Club, in which, after giving some facts with regard to the
state of
South Africa, he went on: “I see that Home Rule is gaining
ground.
[Footnote: Rhodes had given Mr. Parnell a subscription of
L10,000.]
It really means the American Constitution. It is rather a big
change, and the doubt is whether the conservative nature of the
English people will face it when they understand what Home Rule
means. Schnadhorst is here, but is still suffering very acutely
from
rheumatism.”'
The reference to 'Bismarck's map' in the second of these communications shows that Sir Charles had reported to Rhodes some of the observations made by the Chancellor in the course of the visit of which an account here follows.
'In September, 1889, having settled to take my son to Germany to
a
gymnasium, and having told Herbert Bismarck my intention when
he was
in London, I was asked by him in his father's name to stay at
Friedrichsruh with the Prince. I started for Germany with my
son at
the same moment at which my wife started for the Trades
Congress at
Dundee.'
He wrote to M. Joseph Reinach in August, 1889: 'I'm going to Friedrichsruh the week after next to stay with Prince Bismarck, who seems very anxious to see me—about colonial matters, I think. I will tell you what he says, for your private information, if he talks of anything else, which is not, however, likely, as he knows my views about that Alsace question which lies at the root of all others. But I had sooner my going there was not mentioned in advance, and I shall not be there until September 7th-9th.'
'Herbert Bismarck wrote: “I hope you will accept my father's
invitation, because he is anxious to make your personal
acquaintance. I am greatly disappointed that I shall be
deprived of
the pleasure of introducing you myself to my father, owing to
my
absence, but, then, I am sure that you will find yourself at
your
ease in Friedrichsruh, whether I am there or not. Hoping to see
you
before long in England, believe me,
'“Very truly yours,
'“H. Bismarck.”
'The son was still called Count von Bismarck by himself, and
popularly Herbert Bismarck, but shortly afterwards his father
gave
him the family castle of Schoenhausen, and from that time
forward he
used on his cards the name of Graf Bismarck-Schoenhausen. When
I got
to Ratzeburg, where I left my son, I found a telegram from
Friedrichsruh: “Prince Bismarck looks forward to your visit
to-morrow with great pleasure”; and then it went on to tell me
about
trains.
'I was met at the station by Prince Bismarck's official
secretary—Rottenburg of the Foreign Office—with an open
carriage,
although the house was formerly the railway hotel (Frascati)
and
adjoins the station. I wrote to my wife on Saturday, September
7th:
“The great man has been very sweet to me, though he is in pain
from
his sinews. We had an hour's walk before lunch together. Then
Hatzfeldt, the Ambassador in London, came, and all the
afternoon we
have been driving, and went to the harvest-home, where the
Bismarck
grandchildren danced with the peasants on the grass. The
daughter,
and mother of these children, does the honours, and is the only
lady; and at dinner we shall be the Prince, Hatzfeldt, self,
Countess von Rantzau, Count von Rantzau, Rottenburg the
secretary, a
tutor and another secretary, the two last 'dumb persons.' The
forest
is a Pyrford of 25,000 acres, but the house is in the situation
of a
Dockett, and must be damp in winter till the great January
frost
sets in, when the Baltic is hard frozen.”'
Sir Charles notes upon this: 'Hatzfeldt was the Chancellor's right-hand man—of action. But Bismarck did not consult him: he said, “Do,” and Hatzfeldt did.'
The letter continues:
'“When Bismarck's Reichshund died, a successor was appointed,
but
the Emperor, who had heard of the death and not of the
appointment
to fill the vacancy, gave another, and the Prince says:
'Courtier as
I am, I sent away my dog to my head-forester's and kept the
gift
one, but as I do not like him I leave him at Berlin.' Here the
favourite reigns, and her name is Rebekkah, and she answers
very
prettily to the name of Bex. The old gentleman is dear in his
polite
ways.... The daughter is equally pleasant, and the son-in-law
as
well. We were loudly cheered at the harvest festival, of
course....
You can write to our friend J. R. [Reinach] of the R.F. [
Republique
Francaise] that I found the Chancellor very determined on
peace as
long as he lives, which he fears will not be long, and afraid
of
Prussian action after his death.”
'In another letter the next day, Sunday, September 8th 1889, I
wrote: “I expected the extreme simplicity of life. The coachman
alone wears livery, and that only a plain blue with ordinary
black
trousers and ordinary black hat—no cockades and no stripes.
There
are only two indoor men-servants: a groom of the chambers, and
one
other not in livery—the one shown in the photograph of
Bismarck
receiving the Emperor, but there, for this occasion only,
dressed in
a state livery. [Footnote: Photographs which Bismarck gave Sir
Charles, showing the Chancellor with his hound receiving the
young
Kaiser, and Bismarck alone with his dog, always hung on the
wall at
Dockett.] The family all drink beer at lunch, and offer the
thinnest
of thin Mosel. Bismarck has never put on a swallow-tail coat
but
once, which he says was in 1835, and which is of peculiar
shape. A
tall hat he does not possess, and he proscribes tall hats and
evening dress among his guests. His view is that a Court and an
army
should be in uniform, but that when people are not on duty at
Court
or in war, or preparation for war, they should wear a
comfortable
dress, and each man that form of dress that he finds most
agreeable
to himself, provided that it be not that which he calls evening
dress and tall hats—a sort of 'sham uniform.' Countess von
Rantzau,
however, dresses in a high, short evening gown like other
people.
The Prince eats nothing at all except young partridges and
salt-herring, and the result is that the cookery is feeble,
though
for game-eaters there is no hardship. The table groans with
red-deer
venison, ham, grouse, woodcock, and the inevitable partridges—
roast, boiled, with white sauce, cold, pickled in vinegar. A
French
cook would hang himself. There is no sweet at dinner except
fruit,
stewed German fashion with the game. Trout, which the family
themselves replace by raw salt-herring, and game, form the
whole
dinner. Of wines and beer they drink at dinner a most
extraordinary
mixture, but as the wine is all the gift of Emperors and
merchant
princes it is good. The cellar card was handed to the Prince
with
the fish, and, after consultation with me, and with Hatzfeldt,
we
started on sweet champagne, not suggested by me, followed by
Bordeaux, followed by still Mosel, followed by Johannesberg
(which I
did suggest), followed by black beer, followed by corn brandy.
When
I reached the Johannesberg I stopped, and went on with that
only, so
that I got a second bottle drawn for dessert. When the
Chancellor
got to his row of great pipes, standing against the wall ready
stuffed for him, we went back to black beer. The
railway-station is
in the garden, and the expresses shake the house.”
'Other points which struck me in the manners and customs of
Friedrichsruh were that the Chancellor invariably took a barrel
of
beer out driving, and stopped halfway in the afternoon and
insisted
on his guests consuming it out of a two-handled mug which
appeared
from under the coachman's seat. I had some talk with him about
the
wisdom of his going unprotected for great distances through the
woods, and he answered, “But I am not unprotected,” and showed
me a
pistol which he carried, but, of course, a man with a
blunderbuss
behind a tree might easily have killed him. He never takes a
servant
on the box by the side of the coachman, and generally drives
entirely alone. He rides alone without a groom, and walks alone
with
only his dog, or rather the forester's dog, the daughter of the
Reichshund, who walks six or seven miles every morning to go
out
with him, and six or seven miles every night to come to dinner.
'The Prince was evidently discontented with the Emperor, but
wholly
unable to believe that he himself could be done without. He
told me
that he must work each day and could never take a holiday, but
that
even a few minutes' work was sufficient, as all that was
necessary
was that he should keep an eye on what was going on. All was
now so
well arranged that the only thing which gave him trouble was
the
internal condition of Alsace, which as a Reichsland had him
alone as
a Minister. In the evening he chatted much about the past; told
me
of his visit to London in 1842, of how a cabman tried to cheat
him,
and how at last he held out all his money in his hand and said
to
the man, “Pay yourself”; how then the man took less than that
which
he had refused, his right fare, and then with every sign of
scorn
ejaculated, “What I say is, God damn all Frenchmen!” Bismarck
speaks
admirable English, with hardly any trace of accent, but spoken
very
slowly. French he speaks more rapidly but less well; and of
Russian
he has a fair knowledge. He told me how (also in 1842) he had
visited Barclay and Perkins's, and had been offered an enormous
tankard of their strongest ale. “Thinking of my country, I
drank it
slowly to the last drop, and then left them, courteously I
hope; I
got as far as London Bridge, and there I sat down in a recess,
and
for hours the bridge went round.” He told me how he had striven
to
keep the peace through the time of Napoleon III., but finding
it
useless had prepared for war; and he made no secret of the fact
that
he had brought the war about. He told me himself, in so many
words,
that at the last moment he had made war by cutting down a
telegram
from the King of Prussia, as I have said above; [Footnote: See
Chapter XL (Vol. I., p. 157).] “the alteration of the telegram
from
one of two hundred words to one of twenty words” had “made it
into a
trumpet blast”—as Moltke and Von Roon, who were with him at
dinner
when it came, had said—“a trumpet blast which” had “roused all
Germany.” As he mellowed with his pipes he told me that, though
he
was a high Tory, he had come to see the ills of absolutism,
which,
to work, required the King to be an angel. “Now,” he said,
“Kings,
even when good, have women round them, who, even if Queens,
govern
them to their personal ends.” It was very plain that he was on
bad
terms with the Emperor, and equally clear that he did not
believe
that the Emperor would dare dismiss him.'
A commentary on the last sentence follows at no long interval,
when
Problems of Greater Britain appeared and 'Herbert
Bismarck, in
thanking me for a copy of my book, said: “My father ... sends
you
his kindest regards. He is just going to disentangle himself
from
the Prussian administration altogether, and will resign the
post as
Prime Minister, so that he will only remain Chancellor of the
Empire.” This was on February 10th, 1890, and before long
Bismarck
had been still further “disentangled,” not by his own act,' but
by a
blow almost as sudden and dramatic as that which, in 1661, had
struck down the owner of Vaux. [Footnote: See the Memoires
de
Fouquet, by A. Cheruel, vol.ii., chap, xxxviii.]
'In a second letter that young Bismarck wrote, he thanked me for
sending him the famous sketch from Punch (Tenniel's
cartoon) of
the captain of the ship sending away the pilot. He wrote:
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“I thank you very much for your kind note, which warmed my
heart,
and for the sketch you have cut out of Punch. It is
indeed a fine
one, and my father, to whom I showed it yesterday when your
letter
reached me, was pleased with its acuteness, as well as with the
kind
messages you sent him and which he requites. He has left last
night
for good, and I follow to-night to Friedrichsruh. It was a
rather
melancholy historical event, when my father stepped out of the
house
in which he has lived for the benefit of my country for nearly
twenty-eight years. When I wrote you last, my father thought
only of
leaving the offices he held in Prussia, but things went on so
rapidly that he did not see his way to remain as Chancellor in
Berlin after the Emperor had let him know that His Majesty
wished
him to resign. I had no choice what course to take after he had
been
dismissed. My health is so much shaken that I am not able to
take
upon my shoulders alone the tremendous amount of responsibility
for
the foreign affairs of Germany which hitherto fell upon my
father.
When we drove to the station yesterday, our carriage was almost
upset by the enthusiastic crowd of many thousand people who
thronged
the streets and cheered him on his passage in a deafening way;
but
it was satisfactory for my father to see that there are people
left
who regret his departure. I shall come back to Berlin after
April
1st to clear my house and to pack my things, and then I shall
stay
with my father till the end of April. In May I hope to come to
England, and I look forward to the pleasure of seeing you then.
'“Believe me,
'“Ever yours sincerely,
'“H. Bismarck.”
'He dined with me on May 15th, 1890, when Arnold Morley,
Borthwick,
Jeune, Fitzmaurice, Harry Lawson, and others, came to meet him;
and
from this time forward he came frequently to England.'
Sir Charles, while meeting the younger man thus often, never again had sight or speech of the old Chancellor. 'In Christmas week [1892] I had a general invitation from Prince Bismarck to stay with him again at Friedrichsruh. But the chance never came.' Immediately on his return from Germany Sir Charles wrote to his friend Reinach:
'Pyrford by Maybury,
'Near Woking,
'September l3th, 1889.
'My Dear Reinach,
'Bismarck c'est la paix. As long as he lives, which he thinks
will
not be long, he expects no movement. He agrees with me that the
first movement will come from Russia. He expects the Republic
to
last in France. Bleichroeder tells him that Ferry is the one
man of
energy and power.
'Yours,
'Chs. W. D.'
Three weeks later, in answer to a question by M. Reinach, this is added:
'Health as good as he says. But he does not say that. He
says he
suffers very much. The fact is that he looks very much older
than he
is, and his hands look like ninety instead of seventy-four.'
What Bismarck thought of his guest may be gathered from a saying quoted in public by Dr. Stephen Bauer. Baron Rottenburg, Bismarck's first secretary, had told him that, after Sir Charles's visit to Friedrichsruh, the Chancellor spoke of him as 'the most interesting of living English statesmen.' [Footnote: At the banquet given to Sir Charles Dilke in April, 1910.]
In spite of Bismarck's efforts to bring about another meeting, this visit was the only occasion on which the two men met. It was at a time when the great maker of United Germany was nearing his fall. He was becoming the bitter adversary of the Kaiser and of his policy, a policy which he foresaw might imperil 'the strength and glory of the German Empire.' In the often-quoted words of his instructions to diplomatic representatives abroad—'Do all in your power to keep up good relationship with the English. You need not even use a secret cipher in cabling. We have nothing to conceal from the English, for it would be the greatest possible folly to antagonize England'—is to be found one main point of Bismarck's diplomacy; and feeling thus, he welcomed a conference with the English statesman of that generation whom he had looked upon as certain to be a force in the approaching years. When at last the meeting took place, Dilke had been overtaken by circumstances which altered his political position in England. But neither Bismarck nor any other statesman on the Continent anticipated that they could possibly have the result of excluding permanently from office one of the very few English statesmen whose names carried weight with foreign Powers on military and international politics.
Few members of the House of Commons can have been sorry to see the last of the Parliament which ended in June, 1895; and Sir Charles had nothing to regret in its disappearance. In respect of foreign affairs, he saw little to choose between the Liberal and Tory Ministers except that, of the two, Lord Salisbury was 'the less wildly Jingo.' On questions of Imperial Defence many of his old friends in the Liberal Government were arrayed against him; and with matters standing as they stood between the two Houses, there was no hope of any important Labour legislation. Lord Salisbury had again become Prime Minister, and under the new Conservative Administration everything went more easily. Sir Charles testified in one of his speeches that Mr. Balfour's leadership, 'by his unfailing courtesy to all members, made the House of Commons a pleasant place'; and Mr. Balfour's leadership was well assured of several years' continuance.
A great Parliamentarian, Sir Charles nevertheless held no brief for Parliament. As a practical statesman, he realized the advantages in a strong hand of such a machine as Bismarck controlled; while his democratic instincts made him favour the Swiss methods, with direct intervention of the people through the Referendum.
'I trained a whole generation of professional politicians to respect the House of Commons,' he said, 'but I was never favourable to the Parliamentary, and I was even hostile to the Party, system.'
Nevertheless, since England was wedded to its traditional system, to work this efficiently was the first duty of an English politician. A note from Sir Reginald Palgrave in 1893 acknowledges gratefully some criticisms of the tenth edition of the classical work which deals with this subject. No one was ever better qualified than Sir Charles to say what could or could not be done by the rules of order, and he would certainly have inculcated upon every politician the necessity of this knowledge as a practical equipment.
'What Dilke did,' writes Mr. McKenna, 'was to impress upon me the importance of a thorough understanding of the procedure and business of the House of Commons, a branch of knowledge in which he was an accomplished master.'
Sir Charles's whole scheme of existence was arranged with reference to the work of Parliament. Of it he wrote on December 15th, 1905, in reply to Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, who had dwelt on the interest of county government:
'The development of character in politics and the human side of
the
House of Commons have an extraordinary dramatic interest for
me, and
an attraction so strong that Harcourt told me that, knowing it,
he
did not see how I could live out of the House of Commons. I
managed
to do so, but only by shutting it for a time absolutely out of
my
mind, as though it did not exist. Having the happiness of being
able
to interest myself in everything, I suppose I am born to be
generally happy. You have known me so long and so closely that
few
men are more aware of the kind of suffering I have gone
through, but
the happiness of interest in life has rarely been wanting for
long
in me, and if it were, I should go out—not of Parliament—but
of
life.' [Footnote: Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice was Chairman of the
Wiltshire County Council. He had re-entered Parliament as M.P.
for
North Wilts in 1898.]
Sir Charles never left London while the House was sitting, except for the annual gathering of the Forest miners at the Speech House. On all other working days of the session he was to be found in the House of Commons. He held that the House offered the extremest form of interest or of boredom, according as a man did or did not follow closely all that was going on. For this reason, the smoking-room, where most Parliamentary idling is transacted, saw little of him; cigars, of which he was a great consumer, were for periods of leisure, and he was at the House for business. He might be seen in the passages, going by with coat-tails streaming behind him, most often in the members' lobby on his way to the first corridor, where was his locker—marvellously stuffed with papers, yet kept in a methodical order that made it a general centre of reference for himself and his colleagues, who consulted him on all subjects; or sometimes in the library, with multifarious correspondence and documents outspread, snipping away with a pair of scissors, after his habit, all in them that was not vitally important. [Footnote: Mr. Hudson tells how in February, 1911, after Sir Charles's death, he went down to clear his locker in the House of Commons, and found it empty. Mr. Hudson surmised that, foreseeing his need for it was over, Sir Charles had himself prepared it for his successor in its use.] Again, since one form of relaxation which he permitted himself was his afternoon cup—or cups, for they were many—of tea, the tea-room also offered a chance to those who sought him. But whoever wanted Sir Charles went first into the Chamber itself, and in five cases out of six would find him there alert in his corner seat below the gangway, primed and armed with documented information, and ready at any minute to interpose. Every day he went through the whole bewildering mass of papers from which members are presumed to instruct themselves concerning the business of the sittings and to keep a check upon the general proceedings of Government. In his case the presumption was realized. Probably no private member ever equalled him in demands for 'papers to be laid,' and certainly none was ever better able to justify his requests for additional information. If these requests were refused, it was never because he wanted what was superfluous, but that which, in his hands, might become inconveniently serviceable.
One habit of his may be traced to his hatred of wasting time. The instant a division was announced he was on his feet, hurrying so as to avoid long minutes of waiting in a crush; and it came to be regarded as part of the natural order that Sir Charles should be first through the lobby.
With all this industry, the record of divisions so carefully chronicled by the hard-working M.P. was not of moment to him. If the business did not seem to him important, he had no objection to absent himself and dine at home. He was weatherwise in the assembly, and knew the conditions which might lead to unforeseen disturbance.
In questions raised by alteration of rules or standing orders, he was never averse from innovation, and even generally an advocate of change. But while the rules were there he insisted rigorously on their observance, in so far as they affected the larger interests of division or debate. Also he fulfilled punctiliously the prescribed courtesies, making it a usage to be down early and to secure his place, although no one ever thought of appropriating it. He rigidly observed the rule, transgressed by others, which prescribes the wearing of a tall hat by members in the House. The hat which was thus endeared to him by traditional usage is therefore inseparable from Parliamentary memory of him. He was generally to be seen handling a sheaf of papers more than Ministerial in dimensions; and he made his hat the receptacle for them; often it would be crammed to bursting before the speech had concluded. Yet there remained with him always the trace of his younger days of grave dandyism; he never abandoned the Parliamentary frock-coat, and sketches of him in the illustrated papers convey the austere correctness of its folds; and the hat from which so much service was exacted appeared each day unsurpassable in gloss.
The intricate mass of historical associations delighted his imagination at Westminster. He took pleasure in all the quaint survivals, from the long-transmitted ceremonial of the Speaker's entrance, the formal knockings of Black Rod, the cry of 'Who goes home?' down to the still continued search before each session for some possible Guy Fawkes. Keenly alive to the past and to the present, he saw with special pleasure any happy grafting of a new usage on to that old stock of memories. Speaking in his constituency after the lying in state of King Edward, which he had attended (standing next to the Prime Minister as the senior Privy Councillor present), he welcomed the precedent which gave a new association to Westminster Hall—that 'epitome of English history.' He recalled to his hearers the outstanding incidents and persons whose record had then come into his mind. His habit of tracing out links with the past made him at Westminster the best and most animated of guides.
So it was in Provence, in the Forest of Dean, on the road down from London to Surrey; so it was always in the neighbourhood of his Chelsea home.
There could be no such companion for a ramble through its streets. His memory, astounding in its recollections of his own time, held stories of older records; in his eager, vivid talk the past lived again. As we passed along Cheyne Walk, George Eliot held court in her house once more, while a few doors off Rossetti's servant pushed aside the little grating to inspect his visitors before admission. Carlyle dwelt again in the house in Cheyne Row, with Whistler for his neighbour. Sir Charles would tell how earlier the Kingsley brothers lived with their father in the old rectory, and one at least of their novels was founded afterwards on the traditions of the place. Then, as layer after layer of history was lifted, Smollett wrote his novels or walked the Chelsea streets with John Wilkes; Sir Richard Steele and 'his dear Prue' reinhabited their house, and Dr. Johnson worked at the furnaces in the cellars where Chelsea china was made. [Footnote: 'Sir Charles Dilke, in hunting about for materials for his lecture on “Old Chelsea” to-morrow, has made some very interesting discoveries. He has found that part of the building once occupied by the famous Chelsea china works, which was thought to have gone for ever, exists as part of a public-house with a modern frontage looking out on the Embankment. The cellars are in an admirable state of preservation. Another interesting point has been the exploration of the old Moravian cemetery, which is now completely enclosed by houses, the ironwork of the gate worn, and, as it were, eaten out by age. Here lie the bones of Count von Zinzendorf, one of the founders of the Moravian sect, and many other famous folk. This, again, has led to some interesting discoveries about Sir Thomas More, all of which will find a place in Wednesday's lecture' (Extract from Leicester Daily Post, January 11th, 1888, on lecture to be delivered in Town Hall, Chelsea).]
He would give, as a curious illustration of the way in which many years may be covered by a few generations, the fact that he himself had known intimately the daughter of Woodfall, printer of the Letters of Junius; while Woodfall's acquaintance included Smollett as a resident, and Pope as a visitor to Chelsea. He would talk long of Sir Thomas More, [Footnote: He writes: 'On December 18th, 1886, Cardinal Manning wrote to me: “On Saturday last Sir Thomas More was declared both martyr and saint, to my great joy. We have bought a house and garden, 28, Beaufort Street, which is said to be a piece of Sir Thomas More's garden. The tradition seems probable. If you can give me any light about it, I shall be very thankful.”' Later (January, 1888) Sir Charles writes: 'In the course of this same month I lectured on Old Chelsea, and made a considerable attempt to clear up some points in the life of Sir Thomas More, for whom I have a great admiration. The result was that Cardinal Manning asked me to visit Father Vaughan at the house which stands on the site of Old Beaufort House, which the Roman Catholics have purchased as a house of expiation for the martyrdom of Sir Thomas More.'] 'the first of Chelsea worthies,' whose memory is loved and commemorated by every true inhabitant, and to whose voluntary poorhouse for the parish he pointed, as the direct progenitor of the Chelsea Benevolent Society and the Board of Guardians. But one episode in More's career specially fascinated him: it was when two great lives touched, and More, journeying to Calais, met that famous lady, Margaret of Austria, the first Governess of the Netherlands, and negotiated the treaty between the Emperor, England, and France, 1527. Great as was his respect for Sir Hans Sloane, after whom the street in which he lived was named, and who gave to Chelsea its beautiful Physic Garden, he never forgave him the destruction of More's house or the removal of its water gateway.
He would describe the tidal shore, as it lies in the picture which he bequeathed to the Chelsea Free Library, and which hangs on its staircase, when below the old church the bank sloped to the water's edge; or he would pass back to the earlier time when the boats of the nobles lay there in such numbers that Charles II. described the river as 'Hyde Park upon the Thames.' Once more Bess of Hardwick lived at Shrewsbury House, Princess Elizabeth sheltered under the Queen's Elm; at the old Swan in Swan Walk, Doggett founded the coat and badge to be rowed for by the watermen's apprentices 'when the tide shall be full.' These things may be found in many a guide-book and in the lectures which he delivered more than once in Chelsea, but told as he told them they will never be told again.
This habit of associating the prosaic business of his daily work in Parliament with picturesque traditions, and of peopling the dingy streets of London with great figures of the past, gave colour and character to his town life. He entertained still—at 76, Sloane Street, or at the House of Commons.
For exercise he relied on fencing, rowing, and his morning ride. Busy men, he held, needed what 'good exercise as contrasted with mere chamber gymnastics' could give them: 'a second life, a life in another world— one which takes them entirely out of themselves, and causes them to cease to trouble others or to be troubled by the vexations of working life.' [Footnote: Athletics for Politicians, reprinted from North American Review.]
He was nowhere more characteristically English than through his faith in this regimen, and in the pages of the North American Review he addressed to American public men in 1900 an advocacy of 'Athletics for Politicians.' This exists as a pamphlet, and some of the friends who received it were surprised to find themselves cited in confirmation of the theory that nearly all English politicians, 'having been athletes as boys, have found it wise as well as pleasant to keep to some sport in later life.' But Mr. Chamberlain, 'the most distinguished debater in the Government of the United Kingdom, who has an excellent seat on a horse, but is never now seen on one, and who is no mean hand at lawn tennis, which he scarcely ever plays,' had to be cited as a heretic who thought himself 'better without such gymnastics.'
Sculling on sliding-seats [Footnote: In 1873 'sliding-seats' had just taken the place of fixed ones, and Sir Charles, having gone as usual to see the Boat Race, criticized the crews, in a notice which he wrote, as not having yet learnt to make the best possible use of the slide.] and rapier fencing were the exercises which Sir Charles recommended to men no longer young. He continued his fencing in London and Paris. In Paris he frequented chiefly the school of Leconte in the Rue Saint Lazare, and always kept an outfit there. Teachers of this school remember with wonder Sir Charles's habit of announcing, at the termination of each stay in Paris, the precise day and hour, perhaps many months ahead, at which he would appear—and at which, like Monte Cristo, he never failed to be exactly punctual—to the joy and amusement of the expectant school.
It was at his riverside home that he found the exercise which beyond all others pleased him best.
'1890 I took a good deal of holiday in the summer and early
autumn,
doing much rowing with McKenna and others in a racing pair; we
challenged any pair of our united ages.'
'On my fifty-third birthday,' he notes, 'I began to learn sculling. My rowing, to judge by the “clock,” still improves. Fencing, stationary or declining.'
He timed himself regularly in his daily burst up and down the reach with some first-rate oarsman, very often 'Bill' East, now the King's Waterman, whose photograph stood with one or two others on the mantelpiece of his study in Sloane Street. In the same way he kept a daily record of his weight, which up to 1904 ranged between fourteen stone and thirteen.
Dockett was essentially a boating-place, a place for sun and air, where life was lived in the open or in the wide verandah hailed by Cecil Rhodes and others as the only 'stoep' in England. His son, who was travelling abroad much at this time, shared Sir Charles Dilke's love for Dockett, and was frequently there in the intervals of his journeyings. Other than boating friends came to lunch or to dine and sleep, for the mere pleasure of talk. Such were the Arnold-Forsters, the H. J. Tennants, Lady Abinger (the daughter of his old friend Sir William White) and her husband: and there came also members of Parliament—Mr. Lloyd George, or in a later day Mr. Masterman; and the knights errant of politics, Mr. Cunninghame Graham and Mr. Schreiner. Many nationalities were represented—often, indeed, through official personages such as M. Cambon, the French Ambassador, or some member of the French Embassy. Baron Hayashi and his wife came with many other Japanese friends, and the various representatives of the Balkan States met in pleasant converse. It was one of these who afterwards wrote: 'I never pass the house in Sloane Street without raising my hat to the memory of its former inmates.' That close friend M. Gennadius came also, and his predecessors in the Greek Legation, M. Metaxas, M. Athos Romanes, and half a score of other diplomatists, including Tigrane Pasha, and even Ras Makonnen, who was brought to Dockett by the British representative in Abyssinia, Sir John Harrington, a friend and correspondent of Dilke. Thither also for leisure, not for athletics, came Cecil Rhodes, described in Problems of Greater Britain as a 'modest, strong man'; there came Prince Roland Bonaparte, Coquelin, and Jules Claretie, with a host of others, politicians, wits, and artists, English and foreign. M. Claretie thus, after Sir Charles's death, chronicled one visit:
'Nous avons canote, mon fils et moi, sur la Tamise avec Sir
Charles,
un de ces “Sundays” de liberte. Quand il avait bien rame, il
rentrait au logis, et s'etendant en un petit kiosque au seuil
duquel
il placait des sandales, l'homme d'etat, ami du sport,
accrochait a
la porte un ecriteau ou se lisait ces mots: “Priere de faire
silence. Je dors.” Helas! Il dort a tout jamais maintenant le
cher
Sir Charles. Ce fut une energie, un cerveau, un coeur, une
force.'
[Footnote: Le Temps, February, 1911.]
Then there were men illustrious in another sphere, the famous oars of their generation. Mr. S. D. Muttlebury, most illustrious of them all, has compiled a list of Cambridge 'blues,' young and old, who rowed with Sir Charles at his riverside home. These were—
School College Bell, A. S. .. ..
Eton .. .. Trinity Hall. Bristowe, C. J. .. Repton .. .. “ Escombe, F.
J. .. Clifton .. .. “ Fernie, W. J. .. Malvern .. .. “ Howell, B. H. ..
— ” McKenna, R. .. King's College “
London Maugham, F. H. .. Dover College .. “
Muttlebury, S. D. .. Eton .. .. Trinity College. Rowlatt, J. F. ..
Fettes .. .. Trinity Hall. Steavenson, D. F. .. — ” Wauchope, D. A. ..
Repton .. .. “ Wood, W. W. .. Eton .. .. University
College, Oxford.
In the list here given, Judge Steavenson was Sir Charles's contemporary. Judge Wood, [Footnote: He was the son of Dilke's friend and constituent, the Rector of Newent.] his neighbour at Chertsey, known among Etonians as 'Sheep' Wood, was a University oar of the sixties, and rowed for Eton at Henley against the Trinity Hall crew which included Steavenson and Dilke. But most of the others were young. Mr. Charles Boyd [Footnote: Mr. Charles Boyd, C.M.G., sometime political secretary to Cecil Rhodes.] sketched the life in an article written just after Sir Charles's death:
'To know Dilke as he was you had to be with him at Dockett Eddy,
on
the river. Dilke's ability is praised everywhere, but almost,
one
thinks, his manly, ungushing kindness exceeded it. He could
never do
enough for people, or too stealthily, as it were. He had a
special
kindness for young men, for Trinity Hall men perhaps by
preference;
the black and white blazer of his old college carried a certain
prescriptive right to share in every belonging of the most
famous of
old Hall men. But many, oars or others, at different times in
the
past fifteen to twenty years, as sons of the house, spent
between
Shepperton and Chertsey Locks, or on the tennis lawns among Sir
Charles's famous willows, or lying on deck-chairs on the long,
deep
verandah, the happiest and healthiest of week-ends or more
extended
summer holidays. There are few pleasanter reaches of our river,
and
none quieter, than this, for the rush and the intolerable
crowds are
above stream or below stream, but not here. And there is no
such
holiday house for young men as Dockett, hidden in its willow
walks
and islanded by the Thames in front and by the expanse of
Chertsey
Mead behind.
'Less a country-house, indeed, than a camp of exercise. You did
as
you pleased, but under Sir Charles's guidance you were pleased
to be
strenuous. He called everybody to bathe at 7 a.m., and where
was
ever better fresh-water bathing-place than the floating raft
below
the boat-house at Dockett? Etiquette required you to dive in
and go
straight across to the other bank, touch, and return; when,
like as
not, Sir Charles, in shorts and sweater, might be seen very
precisely preparing tea on the landing-stage for the deserving
valiant. His little kindnesses had an added and affecting
quality
from his reserve and sternness. A rare figure of an athlete he
was,
and a rare athlete's day his was in that retreat. For hours
before
he called and turned out the morning guard he had been up busy
gardening, or reading, or writing. At a quarter to nine he
breakfasted. Very shortly after breakfast an ex-champion
sculler the
admirable Bill East, would arrive from Richmond, and he and Sir
Charles would row in a racing skiff a measured mile or more of
the
river. One summer at least he changed from rowing kit to boots
and
breeches after his rowing, and rode till luncheon. At four
o'clock
there would be a second bout with East, and thereafter, having
changed from his rowing kit into flannels and his Hall cap, he
would
take Lady Dilke in her dinghy, which nobody else has ever used
or
will use.
'After these exercises came dinner, and after dinner talk; and
what
talk! How his intellectual weight and equipment affected those
who
were much with him as young men, and who had a chance to revise
their impressions after years of close observation of the world
and
its big men, a scrap of dialogue may illustrate. One who in his
“twenties” was much at Sloane Street and Dockett, and who
passed
later into close working relations with several at least of the
most
conspicuous, so to say, of Front Bench men in the Empire, after
an
interval of thirteen years sat once more for a whole long
evening
with three others at the feet of Gamaliel. A well-known scholar
and
historian put questions which drew Sir Charles out; and all
were
amazed and delighted by the result. After Sir Charles had gone,
one
of the others, a distinguished editor, said to the wanderer:
“Come,
you have known the Mandarins as well as anybody. Where do you
put
Dilke with them?” “Well, I rule Lord Milner out,” said ——:
“but
all the others, compared to Sir Charles, strike me in point of
knowledge, if you must know, as insufficiently informed school-
boys.” That is how his brain struck this contemporary. As for
the
moral qualities observed, you get to know a man well when you
see
him constantly and over years at play. And what intimate's
affection
and respect for Sir Charles, and confidence in him, did not
grow
greater with every year? It seems admitted that he was a great
man.
Well, if there is anything in the intimate, not undiscerning
impression of nearly eighteen years, he was a good man, or
goodness
is an empty name.'
Another account of his talk and ways comes from Mr. Spenser Wilkinson:
'I moved to London in 1892, and from that time on found the
intimacy
with Dilke one of the delights of life. We used always to meet,
either for breakfast or lunch, at Dilke's house in Sloane
Street, or
for lunch at the Prince's Restaurant in Piccadilly, or at 2.30
in
the lobby of the House of Commons. I was also frequently a
guest at
the dinner-parties either at Sloane Street on Wednesdays, when
Lady
Dilke was alive, or at the House of Commons. Then there were
small
house-parties on Saturday and Sunday at Dockett Eddy, near
Shepperton on the Thames, where Sir Charles had built two
cottages,
and where a guest was expected to do exactly what he pleased
from
the time when he was punted across the river on arrival until
he
left the punt on departing. In winter I used to bicycle over to
the
cottage at Pyrford, where Dilke and his wife were always to be
found
alone and where I spent many a charming afternoon.
'Every man takes a certain tinge from the medium in which he is,
and
is therefore different in different company and different
surroundings. I knew three Dilkes. First there was the
statesman,
the man of infinite information which he was ever working to
increase. When you went to see him it was on some particular
subject; he wanted precise information, and knew exactly what
he
wanted. With him my business was always finished in five
minutes,
after which I used to feel that I should be wasting his time if
I
stayed. This Dilke, in this particular form of intercourse, was
by
far the ablest man I ever met.
'Then came Dilke the host, the Dilke of general conversation.
Here
again he towered above his fellows. The man who had been
everywhere
and knew everybody—for there seemed to be no public man of
great
importance in any country with whom Dilke was not acquainted
and
with whom he had not corresponded—a man who was almost always
in
high spirits and full of fun, had an inexhaustible fund of
delightful conversation, about which the only drawback was
that, in
order to appreciate it, you had to be uncommonly well informed
yourself.
'But the Dilke I liked best was the one I used to have to myself
when I spent a day with him either in the country or on the
river,
when neither of us had anything to do, when there was no
business in
hand, and when we either talked or were silent according to the
mood. In these circumstances Dilke was as natural and simple as
a
civilized man can be. If one started an uncongenial subject, he
would say. “It does not interest me,” but the moment one
approached
any of the matters he cared for he mobilized all his resources
and
gave himself with as little reserve as possible.
'Dilke was a past-master in the art of ordering his time, and
this
was the secret of the vast quantity of work which he was able
to do.
He was a voracious and quick reader, as is proved by the number
of
books which he used to review for the Athenaeum, of
which he was
proprietor. Yet he was an early riser and went to bed early,
and a
part of his day was given to exercise.
'A great deal of time was consumed in interviews with all sorts
and
conditions of men, and his attendance at the House of Commons,
constant and assiduous, accounted for a large part of half the
days
in the year. But everything was mapped out in advance; he would
make
appointments weeks, or even months, in advance, and keep them
to the
minute. His self-control was complete, his courtesy constant
and
unvarying; he was entirely free from sentimentality and the
least
demonstrative of mankind, yet he was capable of delicate and
tender
feelings, not always detected by those towards whom they were
directed. He was simple, straightforward, frank, and generous.
It
was delightful to do business with him, for he never hesitated
nor
went back upon himself. Modest and free from
self-consciousness, he
was aware both of his powers and of their limitations. I once
tried
to persuade him to change the manner of his Parliamentary
speeches,
to stop his minute expositions of facts and to make some appeal
to
the emotions of his hearers—at any rate in cases where he had
strong feelings of his own. He made one experiment in accord
with
this suggestion, and told me that it had been most successful;
but
he said that he would not try it again, because it was not in
accord
with his natural bent, and he was unwilling to be anything but
himself.'
Dockett was the home of the Birds. Sir Charles's evidence before the Select Committee on the Thames as to the destruction of kingfishers led to a prohibition of all shooting on the river, and to an increase of these lovely birds. In 1897 he had two of their nests at Dockett Eddy. His acres of willow-grown all-but-island were made a sanctuary for birds, and therefore from Dockett only, of all his homes, cats were kept away. Nests were counted and cherished; it was a great year when a cuckoo's egg was discovered among the linnet's clutch, and its development was watched in breathless interest. Owls were welcome visitors; and the swans had no better nesting-place on the Thames than the lower end of Dockett. They and their annual progeny of cygnets were the appointed charge of Jim Haslett, Dilke's ferryman and friend. Pensioners upon the house, they used to appear in stately progress before the landing raft—the mother perhaps with several little ones swarming on her back or nestling in her wings, and from time to time splashing off into the water. Always at their appearance, in answer to Sir Charles's special call, a cry of 'Swan's bread' would be raised, and loaf after loaf would disappear down their capacious throats. A place with such privileges was not likely to be undisputed, and many times there were battles royal against 'invaders from the north,' as Sir Charles called the Chertsey swans who came to possess themselves of the Dockett reach and its amenities. Swan charged swan, with plumage bristling and wings dilated, but not alone they fought; Jim Haslett and his employer took part against the invaders, beating them off with sticks; and even in the night, when sound of that warfare rose, the master of Dockett was known to scull out in a dinghy, in his night gear, carrying a bedroom candlestick to guide his blows in the fray.
Evening and morning he would steal along the bank in his dinghy, counting and observing the water-voles, which he was accustomed to feed with stewed prunes and other dishes, while they sat nibbling, squirrel-like, with the dainty clasped in their hands.
A few gay beds of annuals by the house, a purple clematis on the verandah, and a mass of syringa at the landing-stage, were all the garden permitted; roughly mown grass paths here and there led through the wild growth of nature, where the willows met overhead.
Such was his summer home, described in the lines of Tibullus which were carved on the doorway of the larger house:
'Jam modo iners possim epntentus vivere parvo
Nec semper longae deditus esse viae,
Sed canis aestivos ortus vitare sub umbra
Arboris, ad rivos praetereuntis aquae.'
[Footnote: Thus translated by the Rev. W. Tuckwell:
'Here, fancy-free, and scorning needless show,
Let me from Life's dull round awhile retreat,
Lulled by the full-charged stream's unceasing flow,
Screened by tall willows from the dog-star's heat.']
He guarded its quiet, and, champion as he had always been of the public right of common on land and on the river, he was resentful when its privilege was carelessly abused. He rebuked those who broke the rules of the river in his marches—above all, such as disturbed swans or pulled water-lilies. After every Bank Holiday he would spend a laborious day gathering up the ugly leavings.
Many associations endeared to him what he thus defended. When he was out in the skiff, darting here and there, Lady Dilke, in the little dinghy which he had caused to be built for her—called from its pleasant round lines the Bumble Bee—would paddle about the reach. After her death he would paddle out in the dinghy which no one else might take out, and lie for hours watching the light change on that familiar and tranquil beauty of green mead and shining water, of high-waving poplar and willow, with drooping boughs awash. When he also was gone, the little boat was not suffered to pass into the use of strangers, but burnt there on the bank.
In his other home at Pyrford, all the day's relaxations were of this intimate kind. [Footnote: Here, too, work was disturbed by his natural history researches. He writes apologetically to Mr. Hudson as to some mistake in a letter: 'I can plead as a disturbing cause three young brown owls, quite tame; one barks, and two whistle, squeak—between a railway guard and a door-hinge. The barker lets me get within four or five feet before he leaves off yapping. He worries the cuckoo into shouting very late. I leave the owls unwillingly, late—one night 1 a.m. They are still going strong.'] Here also was no formal garden; Nature had her way, but under superintendence of a student of forestry. Sir Charles was a planter of pines; great notebooks carefully filled tell how he studied, before the planting, the history of each species, how he watched over the experiments and extended them. [Footnote: Here is a detail entered concerning Lawson's cypress—Erecta vividis: 'I remember Andrew Murray, of the Royal Horticultural, first describing Lawson's cypress, introduced by his brother in 1862, when my father was chairman of the society of which Murray was secretary. Our two are gardener's varieties, one greener and the other bluer than the true Lawson. The American name is Port Orford cedar. It will not do very well on our bad soil, but I've given it a pretty good place. It is said that Murray first sent it to Lawson of Edinburgh in 1854. This variety was made by A. Waterer in 1870.']
In summer, on the dry heathy commons of Surrey, there is always danger of a chance fire spreading, and it was part of his care to maintain a cleared belt for fending off this danger. Much of his day went in gathering debris and undergrowth, so as to keep clear ground about the trees, and then the heaped-up gatherings rewarded him with a bonfire in which he had a child's pleasure, mingled with an artist's appreciation of the shapes and colours of flame. It was for praise of this beauty that he specially loved Anatole France's Rotisserie de la Reine Pedauque, with its celebrations of the salamanders and their vivid element.
The heath blossom in all its kinds was cultivated, and it was his invariable custom to come up on a Monday from Pyrford with a spray of his favourite white heather in his buttonhole.
Here, too, were associations, interesting if not exactly historic. The Battle of Dorking was fought close by, and in this neighbourhood the Martians descended.
Chief of Pyrford's distinctions was the discovery on Sir Charles's own land, by Mr. Horace Donisthorpe, of a beetle (Lomechusa) which in Queen Anne's day Sir Hans Sloane had first identified in Hampstead, parasitic in a nest of red ants. A second specimen was found in 1710 in the mail- coach between Gloucester and Cheltenham; but from Queen Anne's day till 1906 it was regarded as extinct, until once more it was discovered, and discovered in its true place among the ants, on whose gestures and behaviour towards it, whether as indicating worship or serfdom, Sir Charles dilated with such rhetoric of description that the beetle assumed dimensions in the mind disappointing when it was viewed in reality.
Another rarity of insect life at Pyrford was a spider whose appearances have been oftenest noted at Hampton Court. These creatures, large, black, and horrific, were accordingly known as 'Hampton Courters,' but received no welcome, being slain on sight, their slayer quoting a characteristic saying which he had heard from Anatole France:
'We all know of dangers which seem more terrible than they are.
The
spider alone suffers death for his carelessness as to this
habit of
exaggeration. Many an uncle spider walks about by candlelight,
and
is slain by us on account of his monstrous shadow, whereas his
body,
being but small, would have escaped our rage.'
It was here that much of his Memoir was dictated, based on an enormous mass of letters, papers, and private diaries, kept throughout his Government career. After 1891 there is only a scattered series of entries, increasingly sparse as time went on. Mr. Hudson recalls their walks from the station at Woking to Pyrford across the then open common, the lunch of eggs and milk, and the hours of work, during the period between the publication of Problems of Greater Britain and Sir Charles's return to Parliament for the Forest of Dean.
These two country homes, Pyrford and Dockett, held Sir Charles so fast with their simple pleasures that the once insatiable traveller ceased to roam. At the close of 1892, after his return to Parliament, he sold his house and garden at Toulon. Pyrford to a great extent had come to take its place. But to the end of his days he was a constant visitor to that Provencal country which he loved. Apart from them there was another place where, though he neither owned nor rented house or land, he was no less at home than among his willows or his pines. No resident in the Forest of Dean was better known in it than its member, and nowhere had Sir Charles more real friends. For many years he spent three periods among them: his Whitsun holiday, which was very much a visit of pleasure; a visit in autumn, when he attended all meetings of the Revision Courts; and finally a month in the dead of winter, when he went round to meetings in each polling district, at night educating his electors in the political questions of the time, and in the day working with his local friends at the register till it became the most accurate record of its kind in all Great Britain—so perfect, indeed, that he was at last able to discontinue his attendance at the Revision Courts, though never relaxing his keen personal interest in every change.
His friendships in the Forest were not bounded by class or party. He had the support, not merely of the Liberal and Labour groups, but of many strong Conservatives, here as before at Chelsea. Mention has been made of Mr. Blake, and another friend was Mr. John Probyn, who had stood as a Liberal candidate for Devizes as far back as 1868, and had not changed his views. Of his many faithful friends and supporters, one, the honorary secretary of the Liberal Association for all Sir Charles's years of membership, had as far back as 1886 proclaimed his faith in him. [Footnote: Mr. John Cooksey, formerly proprietor of the Dean Forest Mercury.] Another equally active in conveying the original invitation to Sir Charles was the agent of the Forest miners, a Labour leader of the wisest type, [Footnote: Mr. G. H. Rowlinson.] who writes:
'He did not live for himself; it was always others first. I
never
made an appeal to him for any case of need in vain. With regard
to
local matters, he seemed at the beck and call of nearly
everyone.
Nothing was too small or too large for him to undertake to
assist
any constituent, and oftentimes an avowed and lifelong
political
opponent. In a multitude of ways he did us service with his
knowledge of affairs, his influence, his experience, his
ability and
work.
'In the matters of commoners' right, the right of “turnout” on
the
Forest, free miners' rights, questions of colliery owners,
matters
relating to the Crown, the development of the lower coal
seams—in
all these (and many of them are local intricate historical
questions
involving a mass of detail) he rendered valuable service.
'In his electoral battles he was always a keen fighter and a
courteous opponent. In every campaign he seemed more anxious to
beat
his opponent by sheer weight of reason and argument, and
intellect
and knowledge, than by any appeal to party passion or feeling.
'I have been at a great many of his meetings, and never saw him
shirk a question, nor saw one put to him that he did not, nine
times
out of ten, know more about than the questioner, however local
the
point might be.
'As an example, he was holding a meeting at Newnham. Questions
were
invited; none asked. Sir Charles looked disappointed; so Mr.
King,
of the “Victoria,” in a friendly way, thought he would put him
a
poser, and asked his opinion about Sir Cuthbert Quilter's Pure
Beer
Bill.
'For about twenty minutes Sir Charles talked beer—the origin,
ingredients, what it should be, what it often is and what it is
not,
what it is in other countries. As Mr. King remarked afterwards,
he
told him more about beer than he ever knew before, though he
had
been in the trade all his life.'
Probably none was more rejoiced at the unexpected display than the genial Tory host of the Victoria, who lived to deplore his friend and to quote especially one of his observations: 'If you see a man put on “side,” Sir Charles once said to me, you may be sure he feels the need of it.' [Footnote: Among those who worked with him and for him best and longest should be named at least Mr. Charles Ridler and Mr. T. A. H. Smith of Lydney, Mr. Henry Davis of Newent, Mr. B. H. Taylor, and Mr. S. J. Elsom.]
Part of the service which he rendered to the constituency was by means of the honorary presidency of the Liberal Four Hundred, first created, to be held by himself, in 1889. Under this title the foremost spokesmen of Liberalism were in successive years brought into the Forest; [Footnote: The list included Mr. Asquith, Lord Morley, Mr. McKenna, Mr. Lloyd George, and Lord Loreburn.] and thus member and constituents worked together alike in political and in personal friendship. He hailed the little clump of trees on the conical top of Mayhill, the first landmark which indicated the Forest, almost as if it stood above his home. All was homelike to him as he drove from the pastoral country by the Severn, with its apple and pear orchards, to the typical mining town of Cinderford, and on to the great expanse of Forest in whose midmost glade was the Speech House Hotel, more ancient than the hollies about it, which had been planted to mark Charles II.'s Restoration. The Panelled Room, always reserved for his use during his stay there, had been for many generations the place in which the free miners met to hold their courts; it had been built for the purpose, as the gallery for speakers showed.
He loved the Forest—not only the distant spots of interest, but every tree, delighting to act as guide to all its pleasant places. So each new guest was taken to see High Beeches and the great wind-swept row of Scots firs by Clearwell Court. The aged oak-tree, which at a distance resembled a barn—for nothing was left but its great trunk above the roots—was another point of pilgrimage; so were the dwarf thorns on Wigpool Common, which reminded him of the tiny Japanese trees centuries old, as, indeed, probably were these.
Then there were the expeditions to the rocking stone called the Buckstone, a relic of the Druids; to the Scowles, the wonderful Roman iron workings like the Syracusan quarries; to Symons Yat, where the old military earthworks ended in a triple dyke, with the Severn and the Wye on either side; to Newland Church, in which a fifteenth-century brass shows the free miner of those days equipped for work; or to the lovely valley by Flaxley Abbey, once in the precincts of the Forest, where the monks had their fish-ponds, and where on the side of the hills their old ironworks may still be seen.
He and Lady Dilke rode early in their stay to all these outlying places, with Miss Monck as their constant companion. She was President of the Women's Liberal Association, stayed with them during their long visits to the Forest, and was with him for the election at the end. [Footnote: Miss Emilia Monck, sister of Mr. Berkeley Monck, of Coley Park, Heading, of which he was several times Mayor, and which he contested as a Liberal in 1886.]
These were far rides, but close about the Speech House the place teems with interest. In the last years he would walk every evening to look at the great stag-headed ruins of the oaks, which thrust their gnarled and crooked limbs fantastically into the closing night, or stand watching the shadows fall on the spruce rides which stretch out near the old inn, till, in the fading light, it seemed as though figures were moving in and out on the greensward of the great vistas. In the bright sunshine, imposing silence on himself and his companions, he would watch for long together the life in one of the forest glades, the moving creatures in the grass, the tits playing on the branches of a silver birch silhouetted against the sky, the little blue butterflies chasing each other over the pink crab-apple bloom. He would follow the tapping of a woodpecker, and wait in the evening for the owl's cry to begin; and here, as elsewhere, to be with him was to see in everything unsuspected things.
In the winter, Speech House was at first Sir Charles's headquarters for part of January, but there, 500 feet above the sea, the roads were sometimes impassable from snow. At last Lady Dilke became too delicate to face the mid-winter visit, and, except for elections, Whitsuntide and the autumn were the two occasions for their stay. He went also each year to the miners' demonstration—in 1908 so ill that it seemed impossible that even his power of endurance could enable him to bear the strain, and in 1910 again because he said he 'would not fail Rowlinson and the miners,' though he fainted after the meeting there.
One of their early headquarters in the Forest was Lindors, the home of two among their first and warmest friends—Mr. Frederick Martin and his wife. It is in a lovely little valley with sheltered lawns, the rush of the water sounding always behind the house, above which the old castle of St. Briavels stands. The ancient prison is still there, and the castle dates back to the thirteenth century, and claims an almost unbroken succession of Constables of the Castle and Wardens of the Forest of Dean, beginning with John de Monmouth.
After Speech House the Victoria at Newnham saw them oftenest. Its interior is fascinating, with a low hall and fine old oak stairway, broad and shallow; a bit of quaint French glass let into the staircase window bears an illustrated version of La Fourmi et la Cigale. Lady Dilke found there a remnant of fine tapestry—a battle scene with a bold picture of horses and their riders. She traced and located this as belonging to a great panel which is in the Palace at Madrid. At each election, after the declaration of the poll, Sir Charles made from a balcony of the Victoria or from a motor-car his speech to the cheering constituents, who had followed him from the town-hall, first under happiest circumstance, with his wife waiting for him in the porch, later alone, till the last occasion, in December, 1910, when he fought and won the election, dying, but with dogged courage; and as he spoke of the long term of Liberal government which would ensue before a new electoral struggle, friends standing near caught the words, 'When I shall not be here.'
* * * * *
Sir Charles had given up the habit of travel except for some special purpose, as when in 1897 he journeyed with Lady Dilke to see the Nattiers at Stockholm, or in another year to Bordeaux for her work on French Art in the Eighteenth Century. But every Christmas they went for a month to Paris. It was the great holiday of their year, and all the engagements were made far ahead. There was interest in their Parisian associations, for their differing attainments made them part of various separate coteries not familiarly accessible to English people.
Their friends were of all worlds, political, literary, artistic, and social; and since Sir Charles's intimacy with France dated back to boyhood, and Lady Dilke's to the days of her first close study of French art, which, beginning in the sixties with the French Renaissance, terminated in her big work on French Art in the Eighteenth Century, their friendships extended over a long period of years, though each fresh visit enlarged their circle of friends and acquaintances.
In the memoir prefixed to her Book of the Spiritual Life Sir Charles says of his wife:
'Those who are familiar with several languages learn instinctively to take the natural manners of the people who are for the moment their companions. So it was with Lady Dilke.... In Paris she was French with sufficient difference to give distinction.' As to himself, his great friend M. Joseph Reinach wrote, 'Dilke connaissait la France mieux que beaucoup d'entre nous.' But while his command of the French language and his knowledge of many sides of French life quickened his genial intercourse with the French, he never failed to impress them as an English statesman. He paid his French friends the compliment of adopting many little mannerisms; and however pure the French he spoke, he always entertained himself by keeping up to date his acquaintance with French slang, so that the latest developments of fashionable Paris jargon were familiar to him. Yet that never could be said of him which he himself noted of his friend M. Richard Waddington, brother to William Waddington, for many years Ambassador in London, and, in Sir Charles's opinion, a man of even higher ability than the Ambassador. Of this friend, half French, half English, he said that he had two mentalities, and that among Englishmen he was English, among Frenchmen French. Sir Charles's talk with Frenchmen was unrestrained; as Bismarck felt of England, so he of France: 'We have nothing to conceal from the French; they are our natural allies.' But it was always the Englishman who spoke; no slight veneer of manner in his social intercourse could conceal that.
There are many scattered entries in his Diary which show how great a relaxation the Paris holiday yielded.
'At Christmas at Paris we were always gay, though often among
the
aged. The gayest dinner I remember was at Henri Germain's with
Gerome, Gaston Boissier, Laboulaye, and others, all about
eighty, I
being the chicken of the party.'
Gerome, the painter, is often mentioned. Laboulaye must have been Paul Laboulaye, born 1833, the diplomatist who had been Ambassador to St. Petersburg in 1886. It was during his embassy that the rapprochement took place between France and Russia which was announced to Europe by the welcome of the French fleet to Cronstadt.
Gaston Boissier, Perpetual Secretary of the French Academy, and a great classical scholar, figures again with another friend, M. Bonnat, in Sir Charles's memoir of his wife; for he notes that during their last Christmas in Paris, in 1903, 'the gaiety of their meetings' with these two friends and others 'had been as unrestrained as ever.' Earlier memories recall the sculptors Christophe and Gustave Moreau. Christophe's beautiful 'Mask,' of which Lady Dilke had written, stands in the Tuileries Garden, and was some time ago horribly disfigured by inkstain. One of Sir Charles's late letters was written to M. Joseph Reinach, to ask whether anything had yet been done to cleanse this work of the sculptor she venerated. Only two small casts were made by Christophe from the statue, and one of these, given to her by him, decorated the Pyrford home. So did a picture by Francois Louis Francais, another artist friend, chief in his day of the water-colour school, a picture which had inspired one of her stories, and gave the motto, 'Dites-moi un Pater,' to her Shrine of Death. In all the later and in some of the earlier friendships Sir Charles shared, as he did in those of the great custodians of art treasures. M. de Nolhac, the poet and the Curator of Versailles, was prominent among them, and Eugene Muentz, head of the Ecole des Beaux Arts. Lady Dilke's correspondence with the latter, extending over a period of twenty-three years, is preserved at the Bibliotheque Nationale.
One great friend among collectors was M. Gustave Dreyfus, a high authority on Donatello and on the medallists of the Italian Renaissance. At his house there was another attraction in the shape of the concierge's cat, on whom Sir Charles would call before paying his respects upstairs. At another house a cat named Pouf was held in great honour by him, and his feelings were deeply wounded when, with feline capriciousness, it turned, on Paul Hervieu's entrance, to bestow all its blandishments on the writer. His love of cats was as well known to his French as to his English friends, Emile Ollivier writes in 1891 from La Moutte: 'Campion lui-meme cherche d'un regard afflige son protecteur disparu'; and M. Andre Chevrillon, being 'touche par la facon dont je vous ai entendu parler de ce divin animal,' sent him Taine's sonnets 'A trois chats, Puss, Ebene, et Mitonne, dedies par leur ami, maitre, et serviteur.'
Memorials of dinners with the well-known collector Camille Groult were preserved in the shape of some sketches, one of a cavalier in peruke and cravat, another an excellent crayon head of the host, by Domingo, the Spanish artist, drawn on the back of a torn menu and given by him to Lady Dilke.
The Groults' admiration of the beauty of Dockett Eddy was testified in the gift of a little reflecting mirror, a 'camera obscura,' which, held to the light, made exquisite vignettes of river, clematis, and syringa; and a dinner at 76, Sloane Street was marked by the gift of little copies of M. Groult's famous lately acquired Fragonard, in which Cupid levels his arrows at the dainty feet of a well-known dancer of the time.
The sculptor Rodin was an acquaintance of late years, and a Christmas card sent to 76, Sloane Street, in the form of a framed and signed pencil sketch of a female head, was that master's tribute to Sir Charles's heresy that Rodin drew much better than he sculptured.
'For old Francais,' says Sir Charles, 'Lady Dilke had the veneration she felt for Christophe among sculptors,' and for a few women, such as Mme. Renan. To both the Renans they were bound by ties of familiar friendship, and some of their pleasantest hours were spent at the College de France. On November 11th, 1880, there is a note of Sir Charles's of a talk with Gambetta: 'They discussed Renan's “Souvenirs,” which were appearing in the Revue for November, wonderfully entertaining, and perfectly beautiful in style.' It was Renan who had presented Lady Dilke's two volumes on the French Renaissance, in 1880, to the Academie des Inscriptions et Belles Lettres, with an admiring report, and Sir Charles's admiration for Renan's writing was great. Of Mme. Renan he says: 'This homely-looking old dame was not only a good wife, but a woman of the soundest sense and the most upright judgment.'
The same feeling of attachment and respect bound them to Mme. de Franqueville, [Footnote: Mlle. Erard.] the first wife of Sir Charles's old friend M. de Franqueville, whom he saw often both in Paris and London. They visited them at La Muette, famous for its memories of Marie Antoinette, where in the early years of her prosperity she would take her companions to play at dairying with dainty emblazoned milkpails.
One whose friendship dated far back was Emile Ollivier, and with him Sir Charles often discussed, both in Paris and at St. Tropez, a vanished era in France's history, that of the 'Liberal Empire.' To these talks the Prime Minister of Napoleon III. would bring such wealth of oratory and such fertility of gesticulation that his hearers felt themselves transported to a crowded chamber, of which he occupied the rostrum, and woke with bewilderment to find themselves in the tranquil calm of his sun-flooded Southern home. There were those who said that the point of view urged with such conviction varied, and Sir Charles retains a mot of M. Jusserand: 'Emile Ollivier change souvent d'idee fixe.' Mme. Emile Ollivier, his devoted second wife and helper, was also a great friend, and her photograph was one of those which Lady Dilke kept near her.
'Relations of the pleasantest kind,' says Sir Charles, were formed with the Due d'Aumale, in Mr. Bodley's phrase 'last of the grands seigneurs of France.' On September 25th, 1895, the Duke wrote asking them 'to spend a whole day going through the books at Chantilly.' 'The charm of these books, however, and of these repeated visits of 1895 and 1896, lay in the fact that books and drawings alike excited historic memory.'
'In October, 1895, we were in Paris, and took Went [Footnote:
Sir
Charles Dilke's son, the present Sir C. Wentworth Dilke.] to
stay at
Vaux, that he might see the finest of the chateaux, and also
the
room where, according to Dumas, Aramis and Porthos carried off
Louis
XIV., though d'Artagnan saved him again. We also went ourselves
to
lunch at Chantilly with the Due d'Aumale, who told us how Mme.
Adelaide, his aunt, used to slap his brother, the Prince de
Joinville, already a distinguished naval officer, and stop his
talking politics with, “Tais-toi, mechant morveux, qui oses
critiquer la politique de ton pere.” Comtesse Berthe de
Clinchamp
has looked after the house since the days of the Duchesse
d'Aumale,
though she lives in another house. This distinguished old dame
was
also there. A daughter of the Due de Chartres was once slapped
by
her aunt, the Comtesse de Paris, in public, for asking to be
taken
to stay at Chantilly with “tante de Clinchamp.” In 1896 to 1897
we
were a great deal at Chantilly, finding the Duke interesting
with
his reminiscences of his father's account of the Court of Louis
XVI.
With the ex-King of Westphalia, and Bismarck, the Duc d'Aumale
was
in old age the most interesting companion that I have known. It
was
the projecting of his stories into a newer generation that made
them
good. Sir S. Smith (“Long Acre") was a bore at the Congress of
Vienna, but would have been delightful to us could we have
known
him.' [Footnote: Sir Sidney Smith must have been prolix over
his
achievements at the siege of Acre and elsewhere. It is certain
that
a reputation for bombast injured his career and caused his
remarkable achievements to be underrated.]
When in May, 1897, the Duke suddenly died, Lady Dilke wrote a little article which, in spite of the sadness of the circumstances of his death and the consequent deep note of pathos, in certain parts of the obituary recalled very happily the brightness of their talks. Letters of the time speak of the losses which the Dilkes and their friends had sustained by the fire at the charity bazaar which had indirectly caused the Duke's death, through that of the Duchesse d'Alencon, his favourite niece. One of Lady Dilke's dearest friends in France, the Marquise de Sassenaye, had escaped, but several of her relations who were with her had died a dreadful death. The tie with these friends was very close, and the daughter of the Marquise de Sassenaye, the Baronne de Laumont, and her granddaughter, the Comtesse Marquiset, were among Sir Charles's last guests at the House of Commons. But he did not live to know that his friend the Baron de Laumont and his only son laid down their lives for France in 1915.
Colonel Picquart Sir Charles had met in 1891 during the 'belles journees de ces manoeuvres de l'Est,' chronicled by M. Joseph Reinach. He deeply admired the character of this noble and chivalrous gentleman, who, convinced that wrong had been done to an innocent man, sacrificed his fine career to save him, and suffered for his Dreyfusism by imprisonment and military degradation. Sir Charles met Picquart often at the table of M. Labori and elsewhere, and at one dinner when Emile Zola was present in 1899 there were also two English friends, the genial Sir Campbell Clarke, Paris correspondent of the Daily Telegraph, and his kind wife, at whose house in Paris the Dilkes dined almost every Christmas Day. He touched in this way the struggle over the Dreyfus affair, and his attitude is summed up in a letter conveying through M. Reinach to Colonel Picquart 'that intense sympathy which I do not express publicly only because all we English say does more harm than good.' [Footnote: 'At Christmas, 1900, in Paris we met Labori and Colonel Picquart two nights running, and heard fully the reasons of their quarrel with the Dreyfus family, which will probably all come out. Labori with great eloquence, and Picquart quietly, developed the view that Dreyfus, by virtually accepting the amnesty along with his own freedom, has taken up the position of a guilty man and sacrificed all those who have sacrificed everything for him. When, during the season of 1901, Labori came to London, and we saw much of him, he had toned down this view, or did not think it wise to express it. But it came out in November, 1901.']
His friendship with M. Joseph Reinach, so often mentioned, dates back to the days when the latter was Gambetta's secretary. 'C'est par Gambetta que j'ai connu Dilke,' says M. Reinach. 'Gambetta avait pour lui une vive affection.' In London and in Paris they met and talked and fenced, and kept in touch by close political correspondence. 'Dilke was a great friend of mine, and I thought him a true and intrepid patriot and citizen,' said M. Reinach; and perhaps of all M. Reinach's great qualities it was his courage which most provoked the admiration of Sir Charles and of his wife. They knew all the three brothers, and M. Salomon Reinach, asking Sir Charles to come and discuss manuscripts, signs himself 'in admiration of your enormous knowledge'—a happy tribute from one of whom it was said 'il sait tout.' 'Salomon Reinach, the outgoing President of the Academie des Inscriptions et Belles Lettres,' writes Sir Charles in 1908 to Lord Fitzmaurice, 'is what Arthur Strong (Librarian of House of Lords) was, and Acton tried to be, “universal.” He asked me to listen to him for two whole evenings, till we became a nuisance to our hosts—on the way in which, despite our Historical Manuscripts Commission, we still lock up papers. His strongest examples were Horace Mann's letters to Horace Walpole, and the letters received by the Duke of Wellington (the loss of nearly all the letters written by J. S. Mill moves me more).'
M. Pallain, Regent of the Bank of France, was another friend whose acquaintance with Sir Charles dated back to the days when he was Gambetta's secretary. His book on Talleyrand, the 'fameux livre de Pallain,' as Sir Charles calls it in a letter to M. Jusserand, was hardly less interesting to him than his mastership of French finance.
The Siegfrieds, representatives of the wealthy and serious Protestant world, were friends who shared Sir Charles' interest in questions of social reform, as was that wisest of permanent officials, M. Fontaine, head of the French Labour Department; and he discussed these matters also with the great representative of Roman Catholic Socialism, Count Albert de Mun. The list of his Diary engagements, ranging over a long period of time, is filled with the names of French writers, from Ludovic Halevy, the novelist and dramatist (passages from whose Belle Helene he would recite and whistle), to Anatole France; and of politicians of every school of thought, from Leon Say, 'a statesman of rare competence,' to M. Delcasse, whom he saw often, Deschanel, Leon Bourgeois, Millerand, Viviani, and that great friend of Greece—M. Denys Cochin; Calmette, the editor of the Figaro, assassinated by Mme. Caillaux; and Lepine, the Prefect of Police; while Jaures was a London as well as a Paris guest.
The excellence of much French acting attracted Sir Charles and his wife to the theatre in Paris, though in London their visits to a play were rare. M. Jules Claretie, the Academician, and for nearly thirty years, till his death in 1913, the distinguished Director of the Theatre Francais, constantly put his box at their disposal, and rarely failed to join them for a talk between the acts.
There is a reply from General de Galliffet, the 'beau sabreur'—that brilliant soldier whom Sir Charles had followed through the French manoeuvres accepting a theatre invitation in 1892: 'J'ai, en principe, l'horreur du theatre; j'en benis le ciel puisque je pourrai ainsi mieux jouir de votre societe et de celle de Lady Dilke.'
In these visits to Paris they went always to the Hotel St. James, in the Rue St. Honore, attracted by the beauty and interest of their rooms there. It is the old Hotel de Noailles, and the staircase and landing, and several of the rooms, are still as they were when three members of the family—grandmother, mother, and daughter—were guillotined at the time of the French Revolution. The guardroom at the head of the stairs, with its great folding doors, and the paved landing with its old dalles, are intact, as are some of the state-rooms. Their sitting-room and the great bedroom opening from it looked out on to the courtyard, where in old days, before it became a courtyard and when the garden stretched away to the Seine, Marie Antoinette walked and talked, the story goes, with La Fayette, with whom her friend Mme. de Noailles had arranged an interview. The windows and balconies here, and part of the garden front, resemble exactly their representations in pictures of the period.
They saw many of their friends during the year both at the House of Commons and at Dockett. Describing them in London, dining in the room decorated by Gambetta's portrait, M. Jules Claretie writes: 'La premiere fois que j'eus l'honneur d'etre l'hote de Sir Charles la charmante Lady Dilke me dit, souriante, “Ici vous etes en France. Savez-vous qui est notre cuisinier? L'ancien brosseur de General Chanzy.”' And among Sir Charles's collection of Dockett photographs was one in which the chef, accompanied by the greater artist, the elder Coquelin, was fishing from a punt on the Thames.
'Je me rappelle avec tristesse,' says the same friend in February, 1911, 'les beaux soirs ou, sur la terrasse du Parlement, en regardant, de l'autre cote de la Tamise, les silhouettes des hauts monuments, la-bas, sous les etoiles, dans la nuit, nous causions avec Sir Charles de cet Athenaeum, la revue hebdomadaire ou il accumulait tant de science, et dont j'avais ete un moment, apres Philarete Chasles et Edmond About, le correspondant Parisien; puis de Paris, de la France de Pavenir-du passe aussi.'
When M. Jules Claretie came to London to deliver a lecture in 1899 on the French and English theatre, Sir Charles was asked to preside, and also to assist in welcoming him at the Ambassador's table. The charming and unfailing friendship of that Ambassador, M. Paul Cambon, is worthy of record, and Sir Charles's admiration for him was very marked. He used to say that so long as a great Ambassador, either French or English, represented his nation in Paris or London, the other representative might be a cipher, and M. Cambon's embassy in London sufficed for both countries. 'He is a man,' he wrote to Mr. Morley in 1892, 'who (with his brother Jules) will survive Ribot, and even Freycinet.'
Another close friend was M. Jusserand, whose graceful studies of English literary history adorned the Pyrford bookshelves. While he was counsellor to the Embassy in London he was a frequent guest at 76, Sloane Street, and when he became Ambassador at Washington he still kept in constant touch with Sir Charles.
'Des qu'on nous parle d'un homme d'etat etranger, ministre ou diplomate,' says M. Joseph Reinach, writing of Sir Charles, 'c'est notre premiere question: Aime-t-il la France? C'est une sottise. Un Italien n'aime que l'Italie, un Russe n'aime que la Russie, un Anglais n'aime que l'Angleterre.' It may be so. In 1887 Sir Charles wrote to M. Reinach concerning the possibility that Bismarck would attack France, which, he added, 'everybody thinks likely except your humble servant, Lord Lyons, and Sir E. Malet, our new man at Berlin.' If it did happen, said he, 'whatever use I can be I shall be, either if I can best serve France by writing here, or by coming to be a private of volunteers and by giving all I can to the French ambulances.' Some there are who can recall Sir Charles's face as he turned over the pages of M. Boutet de Monvel's Jeanne d'Arc, and dwelt on that first picture in which the little 'piou-pious' of the modern army advance, under the flag on which are inscribed the battles of the past; while the Old Guard rises from the earth to reinforce their ranks, and the ghostly figure of Jeanne d'Arc, symbolizing the spirit of France, leads on to victory. Listening as he talked, his hearers became infected with Sir Charles's spirit, and thinking of the past, looking to the future, he so kindled them that when he closed the book they all were 'lovers of France.'
I.
'From 1870 to this date one man has stood for all the great causes of industrial progress, whether for the agricultural labourers, or in the textile trades, or in the mining industries, or with the shop assistants. That man is Sir Charles Dilke.' So, in 1910, spoke Dr. Gore, the present Bishop of Oxford, at that time Bishop of Birmingham.
In Sir Charles's early days, economists were still governed by individualist doctrines. The school of laissez faire was the prevailing school of thought, and in its teaching he was trained. “We were all Tory anarchists once,” was his own summary of the views which characterized that economic theory. But to “let alone” industrial misery early became for Sir Charles a counsel of despair. Greater Britain, published in 1868, when he was twenty-five, gave indications of a change of view, and his close friendship with John Stuart Mill directly furthered this development. Mill's lapses into heresy from the orthodox economics of the day were notable, and Sir Charles was wont to point to a passage written by Mill in the forties showing that sweated wages depressed all wages, and to claim him as the pioneer of the minimum wage.
It was left for Mill's disciple to become one of the foremost champions of the legislation which now protects the industrial conditions of the worker, and also the guardian of its effective administration.
His policy was distinguished by his determination to act with those for whom the legislation was created, and to induce them to inspire and to demand measures for their own protection. The education of the industrial class, the object of “helping the workers to help themselves,” was never absent from his mind. This view went farther than the interest of a class: he held the stability of the State itself to be menaced by the existence of an unorganized and depressed body of workers. An organized and intelligent corporate demand put forward by trained leaders chosen from the workers' own ranks was essential to the development and stability of industrial conditions and to appropriate legislation. Sir Charles was therefore the unwavering advocate of trade-unionism. It is worth while to emphasize his attitude, since views now generally accepted were not popular in the sixties. His first speech to his Chelsea electors in 1867 dealt with his trade-union position, as it did with the need for strengthening the Factory Acts.
Violent utterances on the part of certain sections of Labour did not affect his advocacy of its claims, for he would have endorsed the words of Cardinal Manning written to him on September 13th, 1884: “It is the cause of the people mismanaged by imprudent and rough words and deeds; but a people suffering long and stung by want of sympathy cannot speak like county magistrates.” During the later period of his life he tried, at innumerable meetings all over Great Britain, to help trade-unionists to make their claims understood. So he came to fill “a unique position as counsellor, friend, and adviser to the Labour cause.” [Footnote: Letter from the Rt. Hon. George Barnes, Labour M.P. for the Blackfriars division of Glasgow, and Minister for Pensions in Mr. Lloyd George's Government of 1916, once general secretary of the Amalgamated Society of Engineers.]
His belief in trade-unionism was never shaken; for though he did not pretend that in the distant future trade-unionism would be sufficient to redress all social ills, holding it, as Lady Dilke did, to be, not “the gospel of the future, but salvation for the present,” he believed that during his lifetime it was far from having perfected its work. He was a strong municipal Socialist, but with regard to State Socialism he would never bind himself to any general theory; he was in favour of large experiments and of noting those made elsewhere; beyond this he “did not see his way.”
His faith in the maintenance of all safeguards for trade-unions was well demonstrated by his action on the occasion of the Taff Vale judgment and its sequel. [Footnote: Taff Vale Judgment.—As trade-unions were not incorporated, it was generally assumed that they could not be sued, but in 1900 Mr. Justice Farwell decided that a trade-union registered under the Trade-Union Acts, 1871 and 1876, might be sued in its registered name; and this decision, after being reversed in the Court of Appeal, was restored by the House of Lords in 1901. The result of this case (the Taff Vale Railway Company v. the Amalgamated Society of Railway Servants) was that damages could be obtained against a trade-union for the acts of their officials in “picketing” during a strike; and by making the trustees in whom the funds were vested defendants, an order could be obtained for the payment of damages and costs out of the accumulated funds of the trade-union.] He wished to keep for them the inviolability of corporate funds which formed their strength and staying power. While he admitted that theoretically a good case could be made out against such inviolability, he was clear that in practice it was essential to the continued existence of Labour as an organized force, capable of self-defensive action. The conference on the effect of the Taff Vale decision held in October, 1901, was arranged by him after consultation with Mr. Asquith, who suggested Sir Robert Reid and Mr. Haldane as legal assessors. How grave was the position which the judgment had created may be gathered from the declaration of Mr. Asquith in a letter to Sir Charles written on December 5th, 1901: “How to conduct a strike legally now, I do not know.” He advised the introduction of two Bills, one to deal with the question of trade-union funds, the other with picketing, etc. In April, 1902, Sir Charles Dilke introduced the deputation, organized to ask for special facilities for discussion, to Lord James of Hereford, who received it on behalf of the Cabinet, and to Sir Henry Campbell-Bannerman as Leader of the Opposition.
In an article contributed by him to the Independent Review of June, 1904, he notes a private offer of the Government for dealing with the matter by a small Royal Commission of experts, whose recommendations should be immediately followed by legislation. This was refused by the Labour leaders, and he thought it a lost opportunity for what might have been a favourable settlement. [Footnote: Mr. D. J. Shackleton, an Insurance Commissioner, and appointed Permanent Under-Secretary of the Ministry of Labour in December, 1916, was in 1906 M.P. for Clitheroe, and a prominent member of the Labour party. He writes of the passing of the Trade Disputes Act, which reversed the Taff Vale judgment: “It was my privilege to be the spokesman for the Labour party and Joint Board on the Trade Disputes Bill in the House of Commons. On the evening when the Bill was read a third time in the House of Lords, the three National Committees gave me a complimentary dinner at the House of Commons. In the course of my speech in reply to the toast, I expressed, on behalf of the Labour movement and myself, our sincere and grateful thanks to Sir Charles for the very valuable help he had given us through all our Parliamentary fights. My consultations with him whilst the Bill was before the House were almost daily. On many occasions he crossed the floor to give me points in answer to speeches that were made in opposition to the Labour position.”] But at the same time 'the Taff Vale judgment virtually brought the separate Labour party into existence, and the difficulty of upsetting the judgment and of amending the law of conspiracy will,' he said, 'nurture, develop, and fortify it in the future.' To him this was matter for satisfaction. [Footnote: A full account of the action taken by Sir Charles on the Taff Vale judgment and the Trade Disputes Act which reversed its decision will be found in Appendix II. to this chapter, furnished by Miss Mary Macarthur (now Mrs. W. C. Anderson). Miss Macarthur, secretary of the Women's Trade-Union League from 1903, worked with Sir Charles on many questions.]
His absence from the House of Commons from 1886 to 1892 gave him leisure for deep study of industrial questions, and he drew much of illustration and advice from his knowledge of colonial enterprise in social reform. Thus, in his advocacy of a general eight-hour day, observation of colonial politics largely guided his suggestions. In his first speech in the Forest of Dean in 1889, he said: “Australia has tried experiments for us, and we have the advantage of being able to note their success or failure before we imitate or vary them at home.” The experiments in regard to regulation of hours and wages which colonial analogy justified should, he urged, be carried out by Government and by the municipalities as employers and in their contracts. His visits to our Colonies were followed by constant correspondence with Colonial statesmen, especially with Mr. Deakin, and the introduction here of minimum-wage legislation may be traced to Sir Charles's close study of Colonial experiment.
But he never narrowed his policy to developments which would confine the leaders of Labour to the management of the internal affairs of their trade-unions; he early urged the representation of Labour by Labour in Parliament, where its influence on legislation affecting its interests would be direct, and there is a note in his Diary in 1906, when the “Labour party” in Parliament came into existence, chronicling the “triumph of the principles” to which during his life that part of his activities devoted to Labour had been given.
In 1894, when the Independent Labour party was emerging into light, he had advocated in talks with Labour friends its development into the Labour party of later days. But he noted the limits which bounded his own co-operation except as an adviser: “My willingness to sink home questions and join the Tories in the event of a war, and my wish to increase the white army in India and the fleet—even as matters stand—are a bar.”
There were those who prophesied that the Labour party's appearance had no permanent interest; that it owed its existence to political crises, and would soon fade out of the life of Parliament. Sir Charles, on the contrary, was clear that it constituted a definite and permanent feature in Parliamentary life. It might vary in number and in efficiency; it might, like other parties, have periods of depression; but it was henceforth a factor to be reckoned with in politics. Its power, however, must largely depend upon its independence. The point to which an independent party can carry its support of the Government in power must not be overstepped, and when, as in 1910, in the case of the “Osborne judgment” [Footnote: Mr. Osborne was a member of the Amalgamated Society of Railway Servants. He brought an action against them for a declaration that the rule providing contribution for Parliamentary representation is invalid, and for an injunction to restrain the funds being used in this way. He was successful in the Court of Appeal and in the House of Lords (A.S. of R.S. v. Osborne, 1910, A.C., 87). This practically made it impossible for trade-unions to support the Labour party.] or the Unemployed Bill, he thought that he detected weakening in the ranks of the Labour party in their fight for these Bills, he noted it gravely.
His view that Labour should find its leaders in its own ranks was not shared by Chamberlain and others who initiated Labour legislation; [Footnote: April, 1893, letter to Dilke from Chamberlain: “A political leader having genuine sympathy with the working classes and a political programme could, in my opinion, afford to set them [Labour leaders] aside.” Reference to this letter has been made also in Chapter XLIX., p. 288.] but Dilke's principle was to act as spokesman for Labour only so long as it stood in need of an interpreter; when the movement had attained stability and become articulate, his work as the advocate who had expressed its aspirations and compelled public attention for them was done.
His policy did not involve his silence on points in which he differed from the Labour party. In his first speech in the House of Commons in 1893, on the question of the destitute alien, he did not agree with some trade representatives, who would in those days have excluded aliens, in fear of their competition. His dissection of the figures on which the plea of exclusion was based showed that they were misleading, since emigration and immigration were not accurately compared. He maintained that protective legislation with regard to conditions and wages would deal with the danger from competition which the trades feared, and he pointed out that anti-alien legislation must strike at the root of that right of asylum which had always been a distinguishing feature of British policy.
He met the contention of those who wished for a Labour Ministry by pointing out that co-ordination and readjustment, not addition to the number of Ministers, was needed. The size of our Cabinets was responsible for many governmental weaknesses in a country where Ministers were already far more numerous than was the case in other great European countries; too numerous to be accommodated on the Treasury Bench, and with salaries which would almost have met the cost of payment of members.
From Labour developments everything was to be hoped, and nothing to be feared, in the interests of the State or community. The only danger which menaced the gradual and wise evolution of Labour was “an unsuccessful war.” The danger to peaceful evolution from such a war would be great indeed. He warned those who advocated the settlement of international difficulties by arbitration, that this result could only be obtained when the workers of the different countries were in a position to arrive at settlement by this means. Till then we could not neglect any precaution for Imperial Defence.
Complete data are needed to carry out efficient work, and to Sir Charles's orderly mind the confusion of our Labour and other statistics, and the absence of correlation arising from their production by different departments, were a source of constant irritation. Both by question and speech in the House of Commons and as President of the Statistical Society he laboured to obtain inquiry into “this overlapping, to obtain co-ordination of statistics and the possibility of combining enforcement with economy under one department,” instead of under three or four. [Footnote: Sir Bernard Mallet, Registrar-General, gives an account of Sir Charles's work in this direction. See Appendix I. to this chapter.]
Trade-unionism had by no means achieved “its perfected work,” and outside the highly organized trades there was a vast unorganized mass of labour, largely that of women. The existence of such a body of workers undermined the Labour position, and of all Sir Charles's efforts to improve industrial conditions none is more noteworthy than that which was done by himself and Lady Dilke for women and children. His wife's work for the Women's Trade-Union League, to which are affiliated women's trade-unions (the League increased its membership from ten to seventy thousand during her lifetime), brought him increasingly in touch with women's work; and, from his return to Parliament in 1892 to the end, scarcely a month in any Session passed without many questions being put by him in the House of Commons on points dealing with their needs. These questions tell in themselves a history of a long campaign; sometimes dealing with isolated cases of suffering, such as accident or death from ill-guarded machinery, or a miscarriage of justice through the hide- bound conservatism of some country bench; sometimes forming part of a long series of interrogatories, representing persistent pressure extending over many years, directed to increased inspection, to the enforcement of already existing legislation, or to the promotion of new. The results were shown not only by redress of individual hardships and by the general strengthening of administration, but by the higher standard reached in the various measures of protective legislation which were passed during his lifetime. Nearly every Bill for improving Labour conditions, for dealing with fines and deductions, for procuring compensation for accident, bore the stamp of his work. [Footnote: As Minister he helped in measures far outside his department. Mr. W. J. Davis, father of the Parliamentary Committee of the Trade-Union Congress, tells how once, at Dilke's own suggestion, he and Mr. Broadhurst came to see Sir Charles, then Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs, about the Employers' Liability Bill and the Contracting-out Clause. “We spent an hour with him in the smoking-room,” says Mr. Davis, “and left, Sir Charles having agreed to see the full Committee at 9.30 next morning. The House did not rise until 3 a.m., but Sir Charles was at our offices in Buckingham Street prompt to time. In the afternoon he met a few of us again, to consider an amendment for extending the time for the commencement of an action to six months instead of six weeks. This desirable alteration he succeeded in obtaining. When the Bill was passed—which, with all its faults, restored the workers' rights to compensation for life and limb—there was no member of the Government, even including the Home Secretary (Sir William Harcourt), from whom the Parliamentary Committee had received such valuable help as from the Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs.”]
Characteristically he mustered for use every scrap of information available on a subject. Thus, he detected in the Employment of Children Act (1903) powers which neither the framers nor the promoters of the Act had foreseen, and, by speech and question, pressed their use till these previously unknown powers of protection for children were exercised by the officials to the full. Equally characteristic was his fashion of utilizing his specialized knowledge of regulations in one department in order to drive home his point in another. Thus, having cited the case of a stunted child told off to carry loads amounting to 107 pounds, he was able to add the information that, “in regulating the weight to be lifted by blue-jackets in working quick-firing guns, the limit was put at 100 pounds.”
His care for women workers was not confined to public advocacy; it showed itself in unostentatious and unremitting help to those who worked with him or came to him for advice. Such advice was not confined to large questions of policy: he spent himself as faithfully on the smallest points of detail which made for the efficiency of the work. His knowledge furnished “briefs” for that group of workers which his wife's care for the Women's Trade-Union League drew round them both, and it guided and inspired their campaign. He watched every publication of the League. However busy, he would find time to correct the proofs of articles brought to him, to dissect Blue-books and suggest new points; each quarter he read the review which was issued of the League's work.
The man who knows, and is ready to help, is early surrounded by clients. Tributes from the organizers and leaders of the great trades are as frequent as the testimony to his help which came from workers in unorganized and sweated trades. The representative of a mining constituency in later years, his work for the miners was great, and repaid by their trust and support. [Footnote: “During the whole of his Parliamentary life he was always ready and willing to help the miners, assist in preparing and drafting Mines Bills, regulations for increased safety in mines, and the eight hours. He was in charge of the Mines Regulation Amendment Bill, bringing it before the House every Session until the Government appointed a Royal Commission, and ultimately brought in a Bill which became an Act of Parliament. By his tact and influence he managed some years ago to get a short Bill passed raising the working age underground from twelve to thirteen,” writes Mr. T. Ashton, secretary of the Miners' Federation.] From a standpoint which gives an estimate of all his Labour work come these words from Mr. Sidney Webb:
“He was an unfailing resource in every emergency. No one will
ever
know how much the Progressive Movement, in all its
manifestations,
owed to his counsel, his great knowledge, and his unsparing
helpfulness. Trade-unionism among women as well as men; the
movement
for amending and extending factory legislation; the
organization of
the Labour forces in the House of Commons, are only some of the
causes in which I have myself witnessed the extraordinary
effectiveness which his participation added. There has probably
been
no other instance in which the workmen alike in the
difficulties of
trade-union organization and amid the complications of
Parliamentary
tactics have had constantly at their service the services of a
man
of so much knowledge and such extensive experience of men and
affairs. But the quality that more than any other impressed me
in
Sir Charles Dilke as I knew him was his self-effacement. He
seemed
to have freed himself, not only from personal ambitions, but
also
from personal resentments and personal vanity. What was
remarkable
was that this 'selflessness' had in it no element of
'quietism.' He
retained all the keenness of desire for reform, all the zest of
intellectual striving, and all the optimism, of the
enthusiast.”
II.
That “true Imperialism” which Sir Charles advocated was never more clearly shown than in matters of Social Reform. His demand that we should learn from the example of our Colonies was dictated by his desire to promote the homogeneity of the Empire. He believed in developing our institutions according to the national genius, and he viewed, for example, with distrust the tendency to import into this country such schemes as that of contributory National Sickness Insurance on a German pattern. His attitude during the early debates on Old-Age Pensions helped to secure a non-contributory scheme. He laid, then as always, special stress on the position of those workers who never receive a living wage and already suffer from heavy indirect taxation, holding that to take from such as these is to reduce still further their vitality and efficiency. During the debates on the Workmen's Compensation Act he urged the extension of the principle to out-workers and to all trades. The protection should be universal and compulsory.
In a speech of April 27th, 1907, he promised to “fight to the death any scheme of Old-Age Pensions based on thrift or on the workers' contributions.” Later, when the proposals as to workmen's insurance were nebulous, but nevertheless pointed to a contributory scheme, he, criticizing some words of Mr. Haldane's, spoke his anxiety lest “to have a system for all labour, including the underpaid labour of unskilled women, based on contributions by the individual, might involve the difficulty expressly avoided by the Government in the case of pensions— namely, the use of public money to benefit the better-paid class of labour, inapplicable to the worst-paid class, but largely based on taxation which the latter paid.” One of his last pencillings on the margin of an article reviewing the Government's forecast of the scheme for sickness insurance includes a note of regret and indignation at the apparent omission to make any special provision for the lowest-paid classes of workers.
One neglected class of Labour whose grievances he sought to remedy by a measure which has not yet reached fulfilment was that of the shop assistants. Year after year, from 1896, he spoke at their meetings, introduced their Bill in the House of Commons, urged its points, inspired its introduction in the Lords, till at last the Liberal Government, in 1909, introduced proposals embodying its main features. The question of the representation of the shop assistants on the Grand Committee when the Bill should reach that stage was discussed by him just five days before his death, and many attributed very largely to his absence the fact that the Government were obliged to permit mutilation of their proposals before they became law in 1911. The National Union of Shop Assistants have commemorated his work for them by giving his name to their new headquarter offices in London.
An amusing tribute to his legislative activities and the effect they produced on reactionaries is to be found in a speech by that famous “die-hard” of the individualist school, the late Lord Wemyss, who warned the House of Lords that their lordships should always scrutinize the measures that came from “another place,” and “beware of Bills which bear on their backs the name of that great municipal Socialist, Sir Charles Dilke.”
A minor but important characteristic of Sir Charles's views as an administrator was his conviction that wherever the interests of women and children are concerned the inspectorate should include an effective women's staff. The appointment of women inspectors for the Local Government Board made by him in 1883 was a pioneer experiment, which he vainly urged Sir William Harcourt to follow in the Home Department—a reform delayed till twelve years later, when Mr. Asquith as Home Secretary carried it out.
But his most important service to Labour in the direction of administration is connected with the Home Office Vote. Though Bills were closely followed by him in Committee, he refused to take part in any obstruction upon them, holding that “all obstruction is opposed to the interests of Radicalism, in the long-run.” Acting on this view, he with others helped the Government to get votes in Supply. The true policy was, in his view, to obtain “ample opportunity for the discussion of important votes at those times of the Session when we desire to discuss them.” So he dealt with Home Office administration on its industrial side. Some more marked and centralized criticism of the workings of this great department was necessary than that supplied by questions in Parliament, correspondence, and private interviews. The administration of the War Office, the conduct of Foreign Affairs, or of the Admiralty, claimed the attention of the House of Commons as the annual vote on the Estimates came round. It was not so with the “Ministry of the Interior,” and it was practically left to Sir Charles to create that annual debate on the Home Office Vote, which dealt with the industrial side of that department's administration. Year after year he reviewed its work, forcing into prominence the Chief Inspector's Report on Factories and Workshops; examining the orders, exemptions, exceptions, and regulations, by which the Home Office legislates under the head of administration, always with a view to the levelling up of industrial conditions and the promotion of a universal incidence of protection for the workers. “We can trust no one but Sir Charles Dilke in Parliament to understand the principles of factory legislation,” wrote Mr. Sidney Webb in comment on some destructive Government proposals as to industrial law. This appreciation of the fundamental ideal underlying our legislative patchwork of eccentricities went hand in hand with a half- humorous and half-lenient understanding of his countrymen's attitude to such questions. “We passed Acts in advance of other nations,” he said, “before we began to look for the doctrines that underlay our action, and long before we possessed the knowledge on which it was said to have been based.” But for one afternoon in the year the attention of the House of Commons was intelligently focussed on the details of the suffering of those, the weakest workers of all, on whose shoulders the fabric of our industrial system rests. Matters left previously to the agitation of some voluntary society or to the pages of the “novel with a purpose” were marshalled according to their bearing on different administrative points, and discussed in orderly detail. The overwork of women and girls in factory or workshop; the injury to health and the risks that spring from employment in dangerous trades; poor wages further reduced by fines and deductions; the employment of children often sent to work at too early an age, to stagger under loads too heavy for them to bear; the liability to accident consequent on long hours of labour—these were the themes brought forward on the Home Office Vote, not for rhetorical display, but as arguments tending to a practical conclusion, such as the inadequacy of inspection or the insufficient numbers of the available staff.
In the atmosphere thus created much progress was possible. Take, for example, one dangerous trade, that of the manufacture of china and earthenware, in which during the early nineties suffering which caused paralysis, blindness, and death, was frequent and acute. Speaking as late as 1898 on the Home Office Vote, and quoting from the official reports, Sir Charles showed that the cases for the whole country amounted to between four and five hundred out of the five to six thousand persons exposed to danger. Under his persistent pressure Committee after Committee inquired into this question and promulgated special rules; attention was focussed on the suffering, and this evil, though still unfortunately existing, abated both in numbers and acuteness, till at his death the cases had fallen to about a fifth of those notified in 1898.
His standpoint was one which raised industrial matters out of the arena of party fight, and on both sides of the House he found willing co-operators.
Help came not from the House of Commons alone. Lord James of Hereford, Lord Beauchamp, Lord Milner, lent their aid on different occasions, and Lord Lytton paid generous tribute to one “who was always ready to place his vast knowledge and experience, his energy and industry, at the service of any cause which has for its object the social well-being of the people of this country.”
In Sir Charles's crowded day, the early luncheon at half-past twelve which allowed time for talk before the House met was often set aside for interviews. During the meal itself conversation for the greater part ranged wide, but towards the end he would turn to his guest with a demand for information on the point at issue, or, if his advice were needed, with an appeal for questions. The mass of information which he elicited was due to the simplicity of his talk with all who came to him. “He asked me my views as if I were of his own standing,” said the young secretary of the Anti-Sweating League after his first interview.
[Footnote: Apart from these scattered conversations, Sir Charles met the united representatives of trade-unionism once a year at the opening of Parliament, for then the Trade-Union Congress Parliamentary Committee lunched with him and talked over Labour questions at the House of Commons. This custom, which began in 1880 and lasted through Mr. Broadhurst's secretaryship, was resumed in 1898, and was continued to the end, and the meeting was fruitful of results. “These annual conversations,” says Mr. Davis, “had much more to do with the policy of the legislative Labour party than could be understood by the party as a whole, but always the object was to aid the main aspirations of the Trade-Union Congress; indeed, from 1901 to 1906 the luncheons were followed by a conference of Labour and Radical members in one of the conference-rooms, where arrangements were made to support Labour Bills or to oppose reactionary proposals made by a reactionary Government. This would have continued, but in 1906 the larger Labour party returned to Parliament made it unnecessary.”
The advent of the “larger Labour party,” though it affected the conferences, did not affect the social meetings, which ceased only with Sir Charles Dilke's death. The last of these dinners was one at which the Parliamentary Committee in their turn entertained him, paying warm tribute to the years of help he had given to the trade-union movement. It was in the vacation, but there was a full attendance, all the provincial members of the Parliamentary Committee without exception coming up or staying in London for the dinner. One of his prized possessions in the after-months was the gold matchbox they gave him, inscribed with the badge of the Trade-Union Congress and the word “Labour.” Round it were engraved his name and the date of the Parliamentary Committee's presentation.]
The reformer does not generally count on the aid of representatives of the great Government departments, yet the independent and non-party attitude of Sir Charles and the friends who worked with him for Social Reform secured not only the attention of successive Ministers, but also the help of those permanent officials who finally came to do him honour at the dinner which commemorated the passing of the Trade Boards Act in 1910.
Conspicuous among the friends who worked with him in the House of Commons for the promotion of Social Reform in different directions were Mr. H. J. Tennant (afterwards Secretary for Scotland in Mr. Asquith's Coalition Government), Captain Norton (now Lord Rathcreedan), Mr. Masterman, and Mr. J. W. Hills, member for Durham, a leader of the Social Reform group among the Conservatives. Mr. Hills's estimate of this side of Sir Charles's Parliamentary achievements may fitly be given here:
“Dilke's interest in Labour questions sprang not only from his
sense
of justice and sympathy with the unfortunate, but also from his
clear and logical mind, which recognized that starvation,
underpayment, and servile conditions are the negation of that
democracy in which he believed for the United Kingdom and the
Empire. For this reason he was the admitted champion of the
coloured
races; and he was the originator of a growing school of
reformers of
all countries, who realize that the nations of the world must
advance together, for if one lags behind all suffer. He
therefore
took a most active interest in the International Association
for
Labour Legislation; he was the mainstay of the English branch,
and
he kept closely in touch with men like Dr. Bauer of
Switzerland, M.
Fontaine of France, and M. Vandervelde of Brussels, who were
working
on the same lines in other countries. Of the earlier and more
difficult part of the work I saw nothing, for when I joined the
association it had an assured position, and had behind it two
great
outstanding successes—the abolition of white phosphorus in the
making of matches, and the regulation of nightwork for women.
His
knowledge of foreign countries, his familiarity with their
industrial questions and modes of thought, and his facility in
their
languages, gave him, by common consent, a position such as no
one
holds now. The work has been little recognized in England; our
Government, unlike foreign Governments, was slow to give help
to the
association, and it was only Dilke's unbounded energy that
compelled
them to support this important and hopeful movement.
“What struck me about his position in domestic Labour questions
was
that his support or opposition was always the dominating fact
of the
situation. What his relations were with Labour I do not
know—he
never talked about it; but I have no doubt that he was their
counsellor and adviser throughout their history.
“Dilke had a deeper hold on Labour than his knowledge and
ability
alone would have given him. He held their hearts and affection
as
well. They looked upon him as the one man who had always stood
up
for the workers, through bad and good report, whether they had
votes
or had not. He had championed their cause when they were
voiceless,
when it had little support in Parliament and gave little
advantage
at elections. Nowadays such championship is both easy and
profitable, but that was by no means the case in the sixties
and
seventies. It was exceedingly unpopular, and out of touch with
the
political philosophy of all except a few. I was greatly struck
with
this at the dinner given to Dilke in 1910 to celebrate the
passing
of the Trade Boards Act. I realized that many had come there to
do
honour to the one man who had always fought for them. They knew
that
so long as he was alive there was someone who would support
them,
regardless of consequences.
* * * * *
“Of his activities in Parliament, I remember most vividly those
in
which I was personally concerned. In two such cases I was on
the
opposite side; in two I worked with him. The Trade Disputes Act
of
1906 was in reality carried by Dilke and Shackleton, for the
Government were hopelessly compromised by the two voices with
which
nearly all their leaders had spoken. Again in 1907, when I was
trying to plead for Preferential Trade, he marshalled against
it all
the force of his wide knowledge and ripe experience.
“On the other hand, in 1909 the luck of the ballot enabled me to
bring in a private member's Bill, and I introduced Dilke's
Sweated
Industries Bill. Dilke was to second it. When the Bill came on
I was
laid up with influenza, but I was determined to go to the
House, and
got out of bed to do so, though when I got there I was only
capable
of a few sentences and had to return to bed. But the effect of
the
introduction of Dilke's Bill was to stir up the Government, so
much
so that a few days later Winston Churchill introduced his Bill,
which, being a Government Bill, took precedence of ours and
became
law as the Trade Boards Act. In 1910 again, on the Home Office
Vote,
an occasion on which Dilke always made a masterly review of the
industrial history of the year, he asked me to second him, and
to
deal particularly with lead-poisoning in the Potteries. He
always
tried to detach Labour questions from party. It was entirely
owing
to him that I took an interest in the subject.
“I never actually worked with him, but I should imagine that he
worked at a pace that few could follow. He was wonderful at
mastering facts, and he had the instinct of knowing what facts
were
important. His method must have been somewhat unconventional,
for
not only did he tear the heart out of a book, but he frequently
tore
pages out as well. He had got what he wanted, and the rest was
waste
paper.”
III.
The testimony of Mr. Hills has touched on several objects for which Sir Charles worked till his death, but of these one upon which he struggled to establish an international understanding—that of the minimum wage— claims a fuller consideration. The interdependence of Labour was always apparent to him, and under the sympathy for suffering which inspired his action on such questions as the native races or the treatment of the alien Jew, there lay the sense that the degradation of any class of labour in one country affected its status in all, and that to be insular on industrial questions was to undermine everything that the pioneers of English Labour had fought for and achieved.
The wages of many workers were left untouched by the imperfect development of trade-unionism. Sweating was the result. To check this evil, machinery must be created by legislation to deal with low wages, while international understanding was essential here, as in other questions of Social Reform, to enable the democracies of the various countries to keep abreast.
The question of the minimum wage had occupied Sir Charles Dilke's attention from the days of his discipleship to John Stuart Mill. He had been much impressed by the debates which took place during his presidency in 1885 at the Conference on Industrial Remuneration. A few years later he had been present at a meeting convened by the Women's Trade-Union League during the Trade-Union Congress at Glasgow, and the impression made on him by that meeting he thus described:
“I had long been used to Labour meetings, but was then brought
face
to face with hopeless difficulties, heartbreaking to the
organizer,
because of a rooted disbelief among the workers in the
possibility
of improvement. There is a stage in which there is hope—hope
for
the improvement of wages and of conditions, possibly to be won
by
combined effort. There is a stage, familiar in the East End of
London, when there is no hope for anything, except, perhaps, a
hired
feather and the off-chance of an outing. Yet even the roughest
trades employing women and children in factories or large
workshops,
to be found in the East End or in the outskirts of Glasgow,
have in
them the remote possibility of organization. Home industries in
many
cases have not even that bare chance. There is in them a misery
which depresses both the workers and those who would help them.
The
home life of the poorest class of factory workers is not much,
but
it means, nevertheless, a great deal to them. The home life of
the
home worker is often nothing. The home becomes the grinding
shop.
Factory slavery finds a refuge even in a hard home. 'Home'
slavery
has none.... It is in this class, utterly incapable of fixing a
minimum wage for itself, that the evil of its absence stands
revealed in its worst form.”
Turning, as was his custom, to our colonies for successful experiment and example, he discussed with Mr. Deakin (the Victorian Minister of whom he prophesied in 1887 that he would be the First Prime Minister of that federated Australia which was then called “Deakin's Dream") the example of a Wages Board which was being introduced in Victoria. An Anti-Sweating League had been formed in 1893 in Victoria, and had adopted this scheme, carrying it into law in 1895. The vital part of the scheme was the creation of Conciliation Boards on which representatives of employers and employed were represented—Boards which should discuss wages and fix a minimum rate in the trade concerned.
As opposed to any larger scheme of conciliation for all trades, this plan had to Sir Charles's mind certain marked advantages: it would not interfere with the activities of the great trade-unions which already stood possessed of similar voluntary machinery, while its application only to those whose depressed and miserable condition invoked public sympathy would create an atmosphere likely to induce successful and harmonious development.
In 1898 he introduced his Wages Boards Bill, from that time annually laid before Parliament; but it made no progress, and there were moments when even his optimism almost failed. It was not till 1906, when a Sweated Industries Exhibition was organized by the Daily News, that a step forward was made. The sight of the workers, engaged in their ill-remunerated toil, brought home to the public an evil till then too little realized. The movement was international. A similar exhibition in Berlin had already been held, and others now followed in America, in Continental countries, in Scotland, and in various parts of England. In this country a National Anti-Sweating League came into existence. A great meeting of trade-unionists and Labour representatives was held at the Guildhall, Sir Charles Dilke presiding on the first day, and the question of the minimum wage was debated by Labour; Sir George Askwith, Mr. Sidney Webb, and Mr. W. P. Reeves, with other Colonial representatives, speaking from the platform. Many conferences followed, and M. Vandervelde came from Belgium, M. Arthur Fontaine from France, to combat insular and Tariff Reform arguments, and to point out that the movement was not confined to our own shores. A great deputation representative of every shade of political opinion, introduced by Sir Charles Dilke and the Archbishop of Canterbury, waited on the Prime Minister on December 4th, 1908, and laid their views before him. Sir Charles put the Bill into the hands of the Labour party in Parliament. A Committee of the House was appointed to consider the question of home work and the proposed measure, and, after the stages which Mr. Hills has described, it became law as the Trade Boards Act in 1909. The Act at first applied to only four trades, but there have been several additions. Of the first extension made after Sir Charles's death, and of the probability of the adoption of the scheme by other countries, Sir George Askwith wrote: “It will be the first stone on Sir Charles's cairn. I can see them all coming up the hill, nation by nation.”
[Footnote: France, the first nation to reach the hill-top, passed her Minimum Wage Act for home workers in 1915.
Minimum rates of wages under the Trade Boards Act were in operation in Great Britain (February, 1915) as follows:
Female Persons over 18
per Week of 52 Hours.
Per Hour. Per Week.
Ready-made and wholesale bespoke tailoring,
and shirt-making 3-1/2d. 15s. 2d.
Chain-making 2-3/4d. 11s. 11d.
Paper-box-making 3-1/4d. 14s. 1d.
Lace-finishing 2-3/4d. 11s. 11d.
Sugar confectionery and food-preserving 3d. 13s. 0d.
Tin-box-making 3-1/4d. 14s. 1d.
Metal hollow-ware 3d. 13s. 0d.
It is to be noted that these rates of wages, which are in every case much higher than those they supplanted, were fixed before or in the early part of the War, and owe nothing to the general inflation of earnings which took place at a later stage. From the figures of the Board of Trade Enquiry into Earnings and Hours of Labour, published in 1909, it appears that about one-third of the women employed in factories and workshops were at the time of the Enquiry in receipt of wages of less than 10s. per week, and the minimum rates above mentioned must be considered in relation to these, and not to later figures.
In the various trades, shirt-making and lace-finishing excepted, minimum rates of wages have also been fixed for adult male persons. These rates before the War were, save in one case, 6d. per hour or upwards, and probably one-quarter of the adult male workers in the trades benefited by them.
The relief given by the Boards to groups of particularly ill-paid women, such as the chain-makers, the matchbox-makers in East London, and the lace-finishers, has been the subject of many articles in the Press.
In the chain-making trade, where the Board affected both wives and husbands, the family income increased, in many cases, by 15s. and upwards per week. The bearing of these higher rates of wages on the food and clothing of those who received them, the physical condition of the school-children, and personal and social habits, forms part of the story which Mr. R. H. Tawney tells in Minimum Rates in the Chain-making Trade.]
On April 14th, 1910, there followed the dinner to celebrate the passing into law of his favourite project, and at that dinner, under the presidency of Dr. Gore, then Bishop of Birmingham, representatives of Liberalism, Labour, and Conservatism met to do Sir Charles honour. There were many tributes paid to one whom Mr. Will Crooks dubbed “the greatest of anti-sweaters,” and of them the happiest was, probably, that of Dr. Gore:
“Sir Charles has played a great part publicly. In finding out,
however, what has been going on behind the scenes, I am led to
know
that, great as has been the public part, there is a greater
part Sir
Charles has played in that region which the newspapers do not
penetrate—the region where important decisions are hatched and
matured, and differences made up, before appearances are made
in
public. His zeal has been unquenchable and consistent.”
After Sir Charles's death, the same friend described his knowledge as “supreme and incomparable in all matters relating to industries and industrial law, transcending that of any of his contemporaries.”
Sir Charles Dilke's nature led him to discount personal tributes, and his verdict on the triumph of the minimum-wage principle is best summed up in the words of Renan which he sent to one who worked with him: “C'est ainsi qu'il se fait que le vrai, quoique n'etant compris que d'un tres petit nombre, surnage toujours, et finit par l'emporter.”
There is no part of his work which brings out more the quality of “self-effacement” to which Mr. Sidney Webb alludes. The cause of Labour is not even yet a popular one, and there are many who held and hold that his interest in it was not calculated to strengthen the political position of one to whom men looked as a military expert, or an authority on foreign affairs. But to him a grasp of social questions and a full recognition of the place which Labour should hold in the modern State were essential parts of a statesman's equipment, and appeals on the ground of a weakening of his position by his unremitting care for Labour interests could not have a feather's weight in the balance for one in whom the chord of self had long since been struck and passed in music out of sight.
APPENDIX I
Statistics by Sir Bernard Mallet, Registrar-General
In 1907 Sir Charles Dilke, who had been a member of the Royal Statistical Society since 1866, accepted an invitation to become its President, in which capacity he served for two years, with notable advantage to the society. As the writer of the notice which appeared in the journal on the occasion of his death observed:
“While Sir Charles Dilke would have declined the title of
statistician, and, indeed, frequently referred to himself as a
'mere
user' of statistics, he possessed in a high degree what may be
termed the statistical instinct. His genius for marshalling
facts in
orderly sequence, his passion for precision of statement even
in
minute detail, his accurate recollection of figures, as,
indeed, of
everything which he stored in the chamber of his encyclopaedic
memory, are all primary attributes of the ideal statistician,
though
in his case the wide range and magnitude of the subjects in
which he
was interested led far beyond the field of statistical
investigation.” [Footnote: Journal of the Royal Statistical
Society, February, 1911 p. 320]
His assumption of this office was thus specially appropriate on general grounds; but it was connected in his mind, as he more than once explained, with certain definite and practical objects. He had been impressed, during his chairmanship of the Income Tax Committee, with the inadequacy of the published statistics on finance, and he hoped to signalize his period of office by the promotion of the better organization of Government statistics. He chose this subject, accordingly, for the presidential address which he delivered before the society in December, 1907, [Footnote: Ibid., December, 1907, pp. 553-582.] and which Mr. Arthur Bowley, in his address to the society in furtherance of the same crusade a few months later, described as a “terrible indictment” of the existing system, or want of system. To a large extent this address consisted of illustrations of the lack of co-ordination in the collection and issue of these statistics, and the difficulties which confronted the student who desired to make use of them. But he did not confine himself to criticism. Although no definite scheme for dealing with this large and difficult matter could be usefully put forward without a searching official inquiry, Sir Charles was willing to support any proposal which would assist the object in view, from the institution of an advisory or consultative committee of expert statisticians, to that of a central statistical bureau on the Continental model. He induced the council to enlarge the scope of the society's Census Committee, then sitting to advise on measures to improve the census to be taken in 1911, so as to include official statistics generally; and he persuaded the Select Committee of the House of Commons on Publications to hear evidence on the subject. [Footnote: Journal of the Royal Statistical Society, September, 1908, p. 459] He secured the consideration of his suggestions in several official quarters, and his criticisms undoubtedly led to some improvements in detail. It would have been a miracle if Sir Charles Dilke's vigorous campaign had attained a more obvious measure of success, and he himself was well aware of the extreme difficulty of securing attention in this country to a mere question of administrative reform as distinguished from one of political or party interest—a question, moreover, which aroused many departmental susceptibilities. But it would be a mistake to ignore the utility of such efforts as his in stimulating interest in the subject and assisting those whose labours have resulted in material improvements in recent years.
Never had the society enjoyed the advantage of a President who took so much interest in its proceedings. He regularly attended the meetings of the committees. He was almost invariably in the chair at the society's meetings, and rarely failed to add to the interest of the discussion by some illuminating comment, and he was the life and soul of the dinners of the Statistical Club which followed the meetings.
It is difficult to exaggerate the encouragement which a President of Sir Charles Dilke's distinction can give in these various ways to workers in the unpopular and unattractive paths of statistical science.
* * * * *
APPENDIX II
By Miss Mary Macarthur
The Taff Vale decision struck a vital blow at trade-union organization, and while the case was still finally undecided the leaders of the Amalgamated Society of Railway Servants called on Sir Charles for advice. Afterwards, when the judgment was upheld, his services were unreservedly at the command of the Parliamentary Committee of the Trade-Union Congress.
He assisted the committee in 1901 at a conference in which Mr. Asquith, Sir Robert Reid, and Mr. Haldane, committed the Liberal party to the initiation of legislation to reverse the Taff Vale decision, and shortly afterwards played a similar part in an interview with Lord James of Hereford and the late Lord Ritchie, who spoke as representing the then Government. The second conference was also satisfactory, since it drew from Lord James the emphatic opinion that workmen on strike were entitled in their own interest to use moral suasion to prevent their places being taken by others.
The Tory party did not, however, take Lord James's view, and a resolution proposing the restoration of the status quo before the Taff Vale judgment was defeated in the House of Commons by a majority of 29. In May, 1903, a Bill introduced by Mr. D. J. Shackleton to legalize picketing shared the same fate; while an even more ominous event was the appointment by the Government of a Royal Commission on which Labour was unrepresented, and before which the leaders of the trade-union movement refused to appear.
Arguments in favour of compromise were put forward at the Trade-Union Congress of 1903, which followed closely on the rejection of Mr. Shackleton's Bill, and during the next three years the position of the unions became continuously more precarious. It looked as though trade- unions were beginning, in the phrase of Mr. Bell, to “exist very much on sufferance.”
In this crisis Sir Charles was an inexhaustible source of strength. On everyone he could reach and influence he pressed the policy of standing firm, and the continuing reverses of the Tory party at by-elections played into his hands.
The Tories accepted the decision of their constituents to the extent that Mr. Shackleton's Bill, rejected in 1903, obtained second reading by 39 votes in 1904, and by 122 in 1905. But dislike of the measure had not abated; so many vexatious amendments were embodied in the Bill in Committee as to render it worse than useless; and at last all but the Tory members retired from the Grand Committee in disgust, and the Bill was discharged from the House. But in 1906 came the General Election, by which the Labour party found itself abruptly in the enjoyment of prominence and power.
Faced with responsibility for legislation, the Liberal Government abated something of their pre-election zeal, and introduced a measure which would have given only conditional immunity to the trade-unions; but an indignant Labour party, having secured a majority of 300 for a thoroughgoing measure of their own, were prepared to oppose the Bill of the Government, and this Bill was remodelled on Labour party lines.
The result was seen by everyone, but very few people understood how at every stage the member for the Forest of Dean had intervened, using to the utmost his powerful influence in the one camp to fix the trade-unionists in their demand for complete reversal of the Taff Vale judgment and the prevention of its recurrence, and in the other to bring about an unequivocal acceptance of the demand.
[Footnote: The Trade Disputes Act, 1906, got rid of the Taff Vale decision by Section 4. It also legalized peaceful picketing (Section 2), and made certain acts done in furtherance of a trade dispute not actionable on the ground merely that they interfered with business (Section 4). Its sections dealt with the following subjects:
Section 1 amended the law of conspiracy.
Section 2 made peaceful picketing legal.
Section 3: “An act done by a person in contemplation or furtherance of a trade dispute shall not be actionable on the ground only that it is an interference with the trade, business, or employment, of some other person, or with the right of some other person to dispose of his capital or his labour as he wills.”
Section 4: “An action against a trade-union, whether of workmen or masters, or against any members or officials thereof, on behalf of themselves and all other members of the trade-union, in respect of any tortious act alleged to have been committed by or on behalf of the trade-union, shall not be entertained by any court.”]
Nor after this major issue was settled triumphantly did his anxiety and watchfulness abate. He scrutinized the provisions of the Bill with jealous care. He desired to exclude every ambiguous word. “Too easily satisfied,” he scribbled to me after Labour members had neglected to press an amendment he considered of importance, and as the Bill slowly moved forward several such criticisms came into my hands.
His own work in Committee on the Bill is indicated by his summary of the risks confronting those who took part in trade disputes:
1. The liability to be hit in respect of molestation.
2. Under the word “reasonable.”
3. Under the Law of Nuisance.
The first danger he diminished in an amendment accepted by the Government. The second he tried to lessen by moving the omission of the words “peaceably and in a reasonable manner.” Unsuccessfully, for his Labour colleagues inclined to think him extreme, and intimated their consent to retain “peaceably.”
On the third question he was supported by almost half the Committee, and only failed to carry his amendment against the Government through a dictum of the then Attorney-General, that the Law of Nuisance could not be invoked to stop picketing. This law has, however, since been invoked against the pickets of the Hotel, Club, and Restaurant Workers' Union, and under it several members of the union have been fined, and one or two committed to gaol. The instance is a final proof, if one were needed, of Sir Charles's prescience. The fame of Sir Charles Dilke in the realm of industrial legislation will mount high, but to trade-unionists nothing will endear his memory more than the knowledge that, if and in so far as they have now a charter invulnerable alike to the prejudice and the caprice of those who administer the law, it is largely due to the clear vision of Sir Charles Dilke, and to the skill and invincible courage with which he followed his aims.
I.
Perhaps no one of Sir Charles Dilke's eager activities won for him more public and private affection and regard than the part which he took both in and out of Parliament as a defender of the weaker races against European oppression.
At the very outset of his career, John Stuart Mill's admiring sympathy for the youthful author of Greater Britain was specially called forth by chapters which made a natural appeal to the son of the historian of British India. More than twenty years later, Sir Charles, revising his work in the full maturity of his power and knowledge, emphasized again the first precept of his policy, which enjoined not only justice, but courtesy:
“Above all it is essential to the continuation of our rule under
the
changed conditions that the individual Englishman in India
should
behave towards the people as the best behave at present.”
Into the question whether India would be better or worse off under some other system he never entered; British control was accepted by him as a fact; but, so accepting it, he insisted that justice should be done to the Crown's Asiatic subjects.
“Men who speak better English than most Englishmen; who conduct
able
newspapers in our tongue; who form the majority on town
councils
which admirably supervise the affairs of great cities; who, as
Native Judges, have reached the highest judicial posts; who
occupy
seats in the Provincial, the Presidency, and the Viceregal
Councils,
or as powerful Ministers excellently rule vast Native States,
can no
longer be treated as hopelessly inferior to ourselves in
governmental power. These men look upon the Queen's
proclamations as
their charters, and point out that, while there is no legal
reason
against their filling some proportion, at all events, of the
highest
executive posts, there are as a fact virtually no natives high
up in
the covenanted Civil Service.”
Control of the military power, control of the Budget, must remain with the governing race. But “provided war and finance are in those single hands, autocratic or despotic if you will, which must exist for India as a whole, in the absence of any other authority, the less we interfere in the details of administration, to my mind, the better both for India and for ourselves.” [Footnote: East and West, November, 1901.]
Local self-government would give to the leading natives more opportunity for a career, and to the governed a rule more closely in touch with their sympathies and traditions. But there could be no general formula. “Roughly speaking,” he said, “my views are hostile to the treating of India as a single State, and favourable to a legislative recognition of the diversity of conditions which undoubtedly exist in India.” He contemplated administration in some parts of India by hereditary chiefs and princes, in some cities by elective representatives of the municipalities, in other portions of the country by a mixed system. But, by whatever method, he was for recognizing the fact that in India we were at many points controlling a developed though a different civilization; that trained men were to be had in numbers; and that the educated natives' claim for an increased and increasing part in the task of government must be recognized.
There is a letter from him to Mr. Morley in 1897, when he thought that freedom for the Indian Press was threatened by “blind reaction" after the Poona murder: “The state of things in Poona has grown out of the Committee, under the man who was stabbed but is not dead, employing British privates (instead of employing native troops, as did General Gatacre at Bombay) to search the houses for plague patients.” The whole position appeared to him “more dangerous than it has been at any time since the recall of Lytton in 1880.”
A policy of repression would set back the progress of liberalizing Indian government. No one insisted more strongly on the maintenance of sufficient force to defend the Indian Empire; but he believed that there was a second “greatest duty” in learning “how to live with the development of that new India which we ourselves have created.”
Speaking on July 13th, 1909, when the murder of Mr. A. M. T. Jackson at Nasik was fresh in all minds, he urged continued “measures of amnesty and appeasement,” and deprecated the policy of deporting leading members of the National Congress. “If reform was dangerous,” he said, “it was less dangerous than leaving things alone.” Describing Lord Ripon, whose death had only just taken place, as “the Viceroy who more than any other had touched the imagination of the people of India,” he added: “If our rule, excellent in intention, but rather wooden, is to be made acceptable, imagination must play its part.”
This lifelong advocacy of generous principles was not unrecognized. In the last autumn of his life he was pressed in flattering terms to attend the twenty-fifth National Congress; and for some time he entertained the idea, which was specially urged on him by his friend and honorary agent for the Forest of Dean, Sir William Wedderburn, who was presiding over the Congress that year.
The project was finally set aside in view of the momentous autumn session of 1910; but he did not feel equal to the journey. When the end came, India mourned for him.
* * * * *
II.
Sir Charles Dilke's concern with the vast network of problems arising throughout Africa and the Pacific Islands from the contact of white men with natives was infinitely detailed; yet more and more it tended to reduce itself to one broad issue. In this relation the coloured man is everywhere the white man's labourer; Dilke's object was to insure that he should not be his slave. Against actual slavery he was always a crusader, and for long years he contended against the recognition of it implied by the practice of restoring runaway slaves in Zanzibar. Under a Liberal Government, he carried his point at last. A letter written on August 17th, 1907, fitly sums up this matter:
“Dear Sir Charles Dilke,
“I have just heard, on arriving here, that the announcement has
been
made in the House of Commons of the intention of the Government
to
abolish the legal status of slavery in Mombasa and the Coast
District on October 1st. I can hardly say how much pleasure
this has
given me, nor can I refrain from writing to say how much we out
here
are indebted to you for the part you have taken in bringing the
Government to this decision. I feel that without your
assistance the
affair would have dragged on, possibly, for years. With many
and
grateful thanks,
“Believe me, yours very sincerely,
“Alfred R. Tucker,
“Bishop of Uganda“
To Sir Charles men turned if protest had to be made against the illegal flogging of natives, or against those punitive expeditions which under a Liberal Government were often called military patrols.
As early as 1870 he had become a correspondent of the Aborigines' Protection Society; in 1871 he supported their action in defence of the Demerara negroes; and to the end of his life he was in constant communication with their leading men.
His brief tenure of office gave him power to put in force principles for which he had contended as a private member. In 1877 he wrote to Mr. Chesson that since 1868 he had been interested to secure fair treatment for China, [Footnote: In 1869 Sir Charles wrote letters to the Times on Chinese affairs, which, says the Memoir, 'possess a certain interest as showing that I held the same views as to China which I have always continued to have at heart,' and which may be sufficiently illustrated by quotation of a single phrase. He condemned “the old, bad, world-wide party ... which never admits that weak races have rights as against the strong.”] but China's friends must bring pressure to bear to limit the use of torture. In 1880, having become Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs, he was able to inform the same correspondent that he had “succeeded in making it certain that a strong direction would be made on the subject of Chinese torture.”
Cases of gross barbarity, cases of actual slave trading, always found him ready to act, but his great object was to check the growth of all systems and institutions which made for industrial servitude—to his mind a graver peril than direct slavery. Thus, in 1878 he was in correspondence with the Aborigines' Protection Society concerning the proposed establishment of a Chartered Company in Borneo, and observed that such arrangements could not be justified by proving the existence of bad government in independent Native States. “The worse the government of these States, the greater the difficulties which crop up when we intermeddle.” In 1881 as a Minister he resisted the grant of that charter. All these surrenders of territory and jurisdiction to commercial associations filled him with suspicion. He knew that expedients lay ready to the white man's hand by which the native population could easily be enslaved; and to these even the best representatives of direct colonial government under the Crown were prone to resort. In 1878 he had written anxiously to Mr. Chesson concerning the labour tax in Fiji, which, although instituted by a Governor in whom the society had special trust, seemed “opposed to all the principles for which you have hitherto contended.” Nearly twenty years later he was maintaining this vigilance. “I am always uneasy about Fiji,” he wrote to Mr. Fox Bourne in August, 1896. “I attacked the labour system when it was instituted, and continue to hold the strongest opinion against it.” But by that time the new developments which he had resisted in the seventies had spread fast and far.
“The fashion of the day,” he wrote in September, 1895, “sets so strongly towards veiled slavery that there is nothing now to be done by deputation to Ministers. We ought to appeal to the conscience of the electorate, and I am willing greatly to increase my little gifts to your society if that is done.”
Part of his concern was engendered by the revelation, then recent, that the Chartered Niger Company imposed by contract a fine of L1,000 on any agent or ex-agent of theirs who should publish any statement respecting the company's methods, even after his employment was ended. “I am convinced,” Sir Charles wrote, “that the secrecy which it has been attempted to maintain puts them wholly in the wrong, even if they are angels;” and upon this ground he kept up a steady campaign against the Niger Company by question and debate in Parliament until Government bought the company out and assumed direct responsibility for the country.
South Africa was a graver centre of disquietude, for there commercial enterprise was on a greater scale. He wrote in December, 1900, after Great Britain had occupied the Transvaal: “My point is that the Rand Jews have already got slavery, and our Government must repeal the laws they have. Reading together the Pass Law and the coloured labour clause, which you will find was the end of the latest Gold Law, we have slavery by law.”
The remedy lay, for him, in the guarantee of citizenship, at least in some degree, to this class of labour; and with that object he put himself at the centre of a concerted movement as soon as opportunity offered. When, after the Boer War, the mine owners returned to the Rand, and, pleading shortage of Kaffir labour, demanded the introduction of indentured Chinese coolies, Sir Charles vigorously protested. The question played a considerable part in the elections which returned the Liberals to power with an enormous majority. It was not, however, as the party man that Sir Charles made his protest, but as the upholder of human rights. He feared lest “South Africa is to become the home of a great proletariat, forbidden by law to rise above the present situation.”
When the Union of South Africa was proposed, it became manifest that division existed as to the status of non-European citizens. In 1906, when the Liberals came into power, immediate action was taken by a small group of members, who addressed a letter to the Prime Minister begging that, in view of the contemplated federation, steps should be taken to safeguard such political rights as natives actually enjoyed in the various colonies, and also the tribal institutions of separate native communities. The letter advocated also an extension of Native Reserves, and it was promptly followed (on February 28th) by a motion, brought forward by Mr. Byles, which declared that “in any settlement of South African affairs this House desires a recognition of Imperial responsibility for the protection of all races excluded from equal political rights, the safeguarding of all immigrants against servile conditions of labour, and the guarantee to the native populations of at least their existing status, with the unbroken possession of their liberties in Basutoland, Bechuanaland, and other tribal countries and reservations.”
Sir Charles himself took no part in the debate; but he notes: 'I am proud to have planned this letter and drawn the motion for Byles so that it was carried unanimously by the House.' A resolution much stronger in terms could easily have been carried in that Parliament; but it would not have been unanimous, and it could hardly have been enforced later on. Here a principle was so firmly laid down that the House could not recede from it; and the importance of the step soon became apparent. When the Bill for the South African Union came before Parliament in 1909, Colonel Seely, who had been one of the signatories to the letter of 1906, represented the Colonial Office in the Commons; and Sir Charles, warned by friends of the natives in South Africa, questioned him as to whether the Bill as drafted empowered the self-governing colonies to alter the existing boundaries of the Protectorates. He received a private promise that the matter should be put beyond doubt; and this was done in the Committee stage by a solemn declaration that the Imperial Government absolutely reserved its right of veto upon the alienation of native lands. As soon as the text of the proposed Constitution became known, he raised his protest against what he considered a permanent disfranchisement of labour; for labour in South Africa, he held, must for all time be coloured labour. Six weeks later, when the Bill was brought to Westminster, Mr. W. P. Schreiner, who came specially to plead the rights of the civilized men of colour, was in constant intercourse with Sir Charles, and scores of letters on detailed proposals for amendment attest the thoroughness of that co-operation. Dilke, with the support of some Labour men and Radicals, fought strenuously against the clauses which recognized a colour-bar, and in the opinion of some at least in South Africa, the essence of the position was secured.
[Footnote: Mr. Drew, editor of the Transvaal Leader, wrote:
“I am truly glad that (if my view of the somewhat vague
cablegram is
correct) you have alienation of native lands reserved
everywhere in
South Africa. This provision, together with the entrenchment of
the
Cape Franchise, will form a solution of the question not
unfavourable to the natives. It gives the natives and their
friends
something to bargain with. If the Cape Franchise should ever
go, its
place will be taken by something which will benefit all the
natives
and be acceptable to all.”
From a different quarter came even stronger expression of gratitude. M. Jacottet, of the Swiss Mission, wrote:
“I beg on behalf of all my fellow-missionaries in Basutoland, as
well as of all the friends of justice and liberty in this
territory,
to thank you most sincerely for your courageous and strong
advocacy
of the rights and interests of Basutoland and the other
territories.
All thoughtful and civilized Basutos know how much they are
indebted
to you, and your name is held in reverence by them.”]
Sir Charles, always a strong advocate of colonial autonomy, nevertheless did not go to extreme lengths in this doctrine. An Imperialist first, he was fully prepared to say to the colonies, So long as you claim Imperial protection, you must recognize the full rights of citizenship within the Empire. He feared gravely the tendencies which might develop under the British flag, if uncontrolled liberty of action were given to the Colonial Parliaments in dealing with such questions as forced labour. “The Australian rule in New Guinea is going to be terrible,” is a stray note on one of his communications with the Aborigines' Protection Society.
This labour question was to him essentially the problem of the future, and he watched its developments with ceaseless anxiety. At the annual meeting of the society in April, 1910, he spoke of the energy which the Colonial Office displayed in promoting the growing of cotton as laudable but dangerous. “The chiefs had sometimes exercised compulsion to make their tribes cultivate the unfamiliar product.” More generally he felt that wherever the white man introduced taxation there would be a tendency to requisition labour, and that all such projects would inevitably generate an interested commercial support. The Portuguese system of recruiting for the cocoa plantations might be barbarous; but if it were pleaded in defence that without it the supply of cocoa must fail, Sir Charles foresaw the gravest difficulties with the House of Commons. “How are we to make that 'would-be' practical Assembly tell the Government to induce Portugal to put an end to so enormous a cultivation?” The only method of avoiding these evils was to prevent their growth; and the soundest plan was to insure that the natives retained their own familiar means of livelihood, and so could not be brought down to the choice between starvation and selling their labour in a restricted market. For that reason he fiercely opposed the whole policy of concessions, and by public and private representations he pressed the Colonial Office to reject every such alienation of native rights in the land.
He had promised to read a paper on Indentured and Forced Labour at the Native Races Conference held in July, 1911. It reviewed all the facts of the situation as they existed—the growing demand for indentured service, the respective record of the European Powers, and the varying results produced by varying methods which the same Power has adopted in different regions. It was, he thought, not easy to decide whether the anti-slavery cause had lost or gained ground in his lifetime; new insidious and widespread forms of the evil had taken a hold. Great Britain's escutcheon was marred by the inclusion of a colour-bar in the most recent Constitution of her oversea dominions; and the Government of India had recently failed to obtain from some British States that measure of rights for emigrating British Indian subjects which it had formerly been able to secure. Forced labour was being employed under British auspices in Egypt; while the French, who had “more nearly than any other nation” done away with this evil in colonies, were open to grave reproach in the matter of concessions—especially in that region where French administration was affected by the neighbouring example of the Congo Free State. The danger both of forced labour and of concessions was that they alike tended to destroy native law and tribal custom, and so to create 'one universal black proletariat'—a vast reservoir of cheap defenceless labour.
What he wrote was duly read at the Conference, and is included in the volume of their proceedings called Inter-Racial Problems. But before the Conference took place, silence had been imposed for ever on this advocate of equal justice. Among his papers is the manuscript of this composition corrected for the press by him within a week of his death— work done against the entreaty of those who cared for him, but work that he would not leave undone.
In defending the interest of the native races, Dilke always felt himself to be defending the dignity and the safety of labour at home—even though the representatives of European labour did not recognize the common concern. He was defending labour where it was weakest; and it is in his championship of the weak that one of the younger men who worked with him and learnt from him sees the characteristic note of his life. General Seely writes:
“To many of the younger men who found themselves in the
Parliament
of 1900 Dilke was an enigma. We could all appreciate his
immense
store of knowledge, his untiring industry, his courtesy to
younger
men, and his striking personality. But what the real purpose
was to
which he was devoting these talents, what was the end in
view—put
shortly, 'what he was at'—was to us a puzzle.
“Clearly, it was no bitter hostility either to a Government with
which as a Radical he profoundly disagreed, or to an Opposition
amongst whom he sat, but whose chiefs had not restored him to
their
inner councils. Not the former, for in matters of foreign
policy and
in Imperial Defence, where his unrivalled knowledge gave him
powerful weapons of attack, he never pursued an advantage he
had
gained beyond very moderate limits. Not the second, for no man
was
more steadfast in his attendance and in his support, given by
speech
and in the lobby, to those of his own political faith.
“Still less was it personal ambition or self-seeking; for if he
spoke often, it was only to put forward some definite point of
view,
and not for the purpose of taking part in a debate just because
the
House was crowded and the occasion important.
“Least of all was his constant attendance in the House of
Commons
the refuge of a man with no other object in life, for no man
was
more many-sided or had so many and such varied interests.
“His Parliamentary action was often baffling to the observer,
especially in its restraint. It was only after many years that
the
present writer found the master-key to Dilke's actions, and it
was
revealed in a flash at the time of the passing of the South
Africa
Union Act. The question was the representation of the native
population in the Union, and the cognate questions of their
treatment and status. Dilke came to see me. He pleaded the
native
cause with earnestness, with eloquence, with passion. The man
was
transfigured as the emotions of pity and love of justice swept
over
him. No record could be kept of what he said; there could have
been
no thought of using his eloquence to enlist popular support or
improve a Parliamentary position, for we were alone. And so I
came
to see that the mainspring of all his actions was the intense
desire
to help those who could not help themselves—to defend the
under-dog.
“Looking through the long list of the speeches he made, and of
the
questions he asked, from the beginning of the Parliament of
1900
until the time of his death, one sees plainly that this was his
guiding motive. No detail was so small as to escape his
attention if
the people he was endeavouring to protect were poor and
helpless.
“On the wider questions of the general treatment of natives he
displayed the same meticulous care in finding out the true
facts of
the case. In the controversy that raged round the
administration of
the Congo, he would not move until he had ascertained the
facts, not
only from official documents, but from inquiries he himself had
set
on foot. Indians, Africans, Chinese, as well as his own
countrymen
and countrywomen, all would find in him a champion and
defender,
provided only that they were poor, unrepresented, or
oppressed.”
III.
In some cases the defence of the “under-dog” was a duty imposed by our acknowledged sovereignty or by international obligations.
What might follow from the growing rush for tropical products, capital pursuing large returns “into every jungle in the world,” was shown to Europe, in the last months of Sir Charles's life, by the revelations from the Amazon Valley, a scandal to which he was among the first to call attention. This was a region where Great Britain had no special duty. But a series of facts not less horrible, on a scale infinitely vaster, and affecting a population which, originally, could not have numbered less than thirty millions, had, long before the Putumayo revelations, been proved to exist throughout the basin of a great African river. No labour of Sir Charles's later years was more continuous and persistent than his effort to fix on the Imperial Parliament the responsibility for what was done in the Congo Free State, and the duty of putting an end to it.
“He perceived with increasing clearness of vision, as the years
went
on,” says Mr. Morel, “that the future relationship between the
white
and coloured races in the tropical regions of the globe was
bound up
with the problem of the Congo, and that the effects of the
success
or the failure of the movement for Congo reform would govern in
great measure the attitude of Europe towards these questions
for
very many years.”
A State that had been brought into being by England's express sanction, for solemnly defined purposes of civilization in Africa, was proved by its own agent to be employing cannibal troops. That was the circumstance which most impressed a startled House of Commons when, on April 2nd, 1897, Sir Charles raised the first of many discussions upon the question of the Congo.
In 1896 a violent action had brought home to England what had been the fulfilment of the promised free trade for all nations, and of King Leopold's protestations in 1884. Mr. Stokes, a British trader, was arrested and shot by the order of a Belgian officer, Major Lothaire. His offence was trading in ivory. Sir Charles, when he raised the debate in April, 1897, combined then as always the diplomatic with the humanitarian aspect of the case; and brought before the House the existence of the secret decree of September, 1891, declaring a State monopoly of all rubber and ivory, for violation of which Mr. Stokes had been executed. [Footnote: Stokes was also accused of bartering guns to the Arabs for that ivory. This, true or not, does not affect the initial outrage, that, though he was entitled to a proper trial, he was trapped and summarily executed without trial of any kind.] But it was the publication of Captain Hinde's book, [Footnote: The Fall of the Congo Arabs.] with its revelation of the fact that European officers had commanded an army fed for long periods by organized cannibalism, which gave authority to Sir Charles's demand for a new conference of the Powers. “We should take action,” he said, “to remove from ourselves the disgrace which had fallen upon our declarations.”
Mr. Curzon, who as Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs then spoke for Lord Salisbury's Government, treated the matter coolly enough, though admitting that the agents of the Congo State had sometimes adopted methods repugnant to Christian feeling; and so for the moment the controversy ended, but Sir Charles with persistent application returned to the question again and again, although his efforts were hampered by lack of information. So well was the secret of those dark places kept that even he, with his widespread net of acquaintance in many capitals, found facts hard to gather; and he was naturally attracted by the appearance in 1900 of a series of anonymous articles in the Speaker, which dealt with the system set up in the Congo, and its inevitable results. These articles displayed an unusual knowledge of the whole complicated subject, and revealed aspects of it which had previously baffled inquiry. The writer proved to be Mr. E. D. Morel. So began a co-operation whose influence upon the administration of African races was destined to be far-reaching.
The campaign was steadily pressed. Within the House of Commons, Sir Charles spoke session after session, using language of a vehemence that startled in one so moderate. He organized representations to the Senate and Chamber in Belgium, summarizing what was being done in the Congo and urging Belgium's moral responsibility. Out of doors, the Press campaign was vigorous—so vigorous that no Government could disregard it; and at the beginning of 1903, in reply to a question from Sir Charles, Mr. Balfour promised a formal debate “on the position of the signatories to the Berlin General Act of 1885, in regard to the abuses which had grown up under the Congo Free State's rule in violation of that Act.” The debate, on May 20th, 1903, was opened by Mr. Herbert Samuel. Sir Charles, following him, was in turn supported by Sir John Gorst, an old ally in such causes. Mr. Balfour, in face of a unanimous House, accepted, not without reluctance, the motion which asked him to consult the co-signatories of the Berlin Act, and thus committed Great Britain to a diplomatic re-opening of the case. Inquiry necessarily followed, and with the publication of our Consul's report in December, 1903, the affair reached a new phase.
When the Foreign Office vote came to be discussed in the Session of 1904, Sir Charles, basing himself on that report, delivered what Sir John Gorst called a “terrible speech.” Replying for the Government, Lord Percy used these words: “There never has been a policy of which it might be said as truly as of this one that it was the policy not so much of His Majesty's Government as of the House of Commons.” Not less is it true that Sir Charles had guided the House to the adoption of that policy.
By this time the cause commanded popular interest. The questioning of Ministers was frequent, and it was done by men from all camps. Sir Charles could afford henceforward to select his portion of the work. He limited himself as far as possible to the diplomatic aspect of the case, more technical and less popular in its appeal, but giving the surest right of intervention.
The Foreign Office does not naturally look with favour upon policies forced upon it by the House of Commons, and perhaps for this reason the permanent officials proved opponents very difficult for the House of Commons to control. But Sir Charles's knowledge gave him the necessary advantage. For instance, on November 22nd, 1906, he asked if the United States had not expressed a desire to co-operate with Great Britain in this matter. An official denial was given. On December 16th the question was put again, and the admission made that “the United States have recently expressed” such a desire.
After various obscure negotiations on the part of King Leopold to secure German support for his personal rule, there came at length with the beginning of 1907 the announcement that Belgium would annex the Free State.
[Footnote: The delay which took place in the transference of the Congo Free State from the personal rule of King Leopold to the rule of the Belgian Government is dealt with in the following letter from Lord Fitzmaurice from the Foreign Office to Sir Charles:
“February 16th, 1906.—The King of the Belgians puts about these stories for the same sort of reason which made the German Emperor put about the story that there was a change of policy in regard to France. At the same time there must be a little 'law' given to the King while his second Commission is reporting on the methods of carrying out the reforms indicated in the first Commission's report. As you know, I am not a believer in the King 'at all, at all,' but one has to observe the forms of diplomacy. It is, perhaps, not unfortunate that this pause coincides with a moment when it is not our interest to be having a row with Belgium also, if perchance we were having a row with Germany.” This letter was written while the Algeciras Conference was sitting.]
Yet the matter was not allowed to sleep in either House of Parliament; it was raised by Sir Charles on the Whitsuntide adjournment, and again in August. In 1908 the subject was mentioned in the King's Speech. But by this time a “Colonial Law” had been proposed in Belgium, which went far to re-establish King Leopold's power under the new system and created new difficulties. Sir Charles's allies now were not in England only. He had made friends with M. Vandervelde, leader of the Socialist party in Belgium, and the one Socialist who had ventured to vote for annexation. They met during Sir Charles's Christmas stay in Paris in 1907, and had “two days' thorough discussion of Congo.” The result was written to Lord Fitzmaurice (then Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs) on January 6th, 1908: “I tell you confidentially that, after seeing Vandervelde, I cease to advise moderation, and shall say so to the private Congo Reform meeting called for the 21st.” This tone made itself felt in the debate on the Address, and in two subsequent discussions. The points pressed for were, first, that Belgium in taking over the Congo should take over fully and honor the Free State's treaty obligations, and, secondly, that full guarantees should be given for native rights. [Footnote: On Sir Charles Dilke's action in regard to the Congo, see also Red Rubber (T. Fisher Unwin), pp. 4, 11, 177, 195; and Great Britain and the Congo (Smith, Elder and Co.), pp. 122, 124, 138, 142, 193, by Mr. E. D. Morel. The official organs of the Congo Reform Association from 1904 until Sir Charles's death contain a complete record of his speeches, both in the House and outside, during this period.]
But discussion in the Belgian Parliament showed reluctance to accept this view, and on November 4th, 1908, a strong memorandum was despatched by Great Britain. When Parliament reassembled in 1909, a question put by Sir Charles elicited the fact that no answer had been returned to this despatch, and an amendment to the Address was put down by a Unionist, Sir Gilbert Parker. Sir Charles, in supporting it, laid special stress on backing from America, being well aware that relations were strained in Europe.
His speech indicated some fear that the question might be submitted to the Hague Conference.
“That,” he said, “is not our intention. That is not what Parliament meant. That is not the policy which successive Governments have given their adhesion to. In a state of Europe far more disturbed, even Lord Castlereagh several times took in similar matters far stronger action than is now necessary.”
But the Parliament elected in 1906 did not see the end of this affair; and when they next met in February, 1910, King Leopold had died, and there was a new King of the Belgians. On March 10th, Sir George White moved upon the matter, pointing out that there was no improvement in the treatment of the natives and no extension of freedom for trade; and the Foreign Secretary replied in a somewhat ambiguous speech. Annexation, he said, had not yet received the sanction of Great Britain, and could not until improvement in the administration had taken place. But beyond this negative attitude of disapproval, Sir Edward Grey seemed to think that Great Britain could not wisely act alone, and that under the Berlin Act isolated action was in some measure barred. This, in the temper of the moment, was construed as a hint that insistence on reform might drive Belgium into the arms of Germany. Sir Charles said in this debate:
“There is one case, and one only, where I think we see very
distinct
signs of weakening in our policy, a weakening caused by terror,
and
undue terror, of the risks which may follow. The papers issued
by
the Belgian Government with regard to the Congo show a distinct
weakening of attitude on our part.... In the Belgian despatch
they
treat us with contempt, with a sort of lofty scorn which is
almost
inconceivable. I have never known such a thing before; it is an
entirely new departure.
“I believe the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs has been
here
to-day, knowing that many members in all quarters of the House
have
incurred a certain disappointment, which is reflected in the
letter
in to-day's papers from the Archbishop of Canterbury, with
regard to
the speech with which he wound up the other night the short
debate
upon the Congo question.... He says that we have not weakened
our
position, that we have given nothing away, that we have not
'recognized.' But it is not a mere paper recognition or a paper
non-recognition to which we attach high importance and which we
formerly thought we understood from his speeches.... We have
before
us a Bill for the largest naval expenditure that our country
has
ever incurred in time of peace. We add for the first time to
that
expenditure colonial expenditure which swells out beyond that
of our
own Estimates. The House has supported those Estimates, and the
Empire is spending on land forces even a larger amount than it
is
spending on the fleet. None of us believe that war is probable,
but
we do think, and many of us in this House believe, that the
armaments of this country, if they are to have weight in time
of
peace, ought to have weight behind our diplomacy; and if they
are to
be justified by many of the arguments put before this House,
there
is no reason why at this moment we should be afraid of our own
shadow. We have been afraid of our own shadow on the Congo
question.
I think there can be no doubt that we have received from M.
Renkin,
the Colonial Minister, such treatment as we have never had to
put up
with from any Power, at all events in recent years.” Dilke
warned
members not to be silenced by unnecessary fears on these
matters.
“Not even a single question was asked in the far more dangerous
case
of the ultimatum which we now know was sent to the Turkish
Government when they came into office in the beginning of 1906,
in
regard to the occupation of the village of Tabah. That
ultimatum
might have raised serious questions in that part of Europe. I
think
a little more courage would be desirable in a case like that of
the
Congo. It is not a question of ten pounds or one hundred pounds
of
somebody's property. We are shocked in the case of the Congo
because
that which would never happen is put as a conceivable danger at
the
end of a long train of hypothetical events. It is said that
there
might be an act of violence.... There would not be an act of
violence, and I beg the House not to be led away by the fear of
trifling complications following upon our insisting, not upon
anything new, but upon that which we have been insisting upon
for
years past in a matter in which our moral obligation is very
weighty.”
Yet it was not Sir Charles's fortune to see the fulfilment of the long labour in which he had played so great a part. Not till three years later—in June, 19l3—did the Congo Reform Association feel that its work was completed, and that it could disband its forces.
Sir Charles's part had been to apply in Parliament the force that was generated outside. From a private position to have guided without seeming to dictate; to have inspired common action among colleagues holding all shades of political thought; to have avoided miscarriage by infinite tact and patience; to have possessed so wide a knowledge of all the complicated issues involved that official reluctance could never avoid action by mysterious pretexts; to have been always so moderate in expression that strong condemnation from him, when it came, was indeed weighty; to have watched time and opportunity, the dispositions of men, the temper of the assembly—all this was necessary to carry through such a Parliamentary task without the power of office, and all this Sir Charles performed. No finer example has been given of what in the Imperial Parliament a member of Parliament can do; and Sir Charles Dilke could well afford to be judged by it, and it alone, as typical of his life-work.
[Footnote: This and the two following chapters are by Mr. Spenser Wilkinson.]
In October, 1885, in the course of a speech delivered to his constituents, Dilke expressed his opinion on the subject of the reform of the army, then generally regarded as desirable, but also as so extremely difficult that the old Parliamentary hands shrank from grappling with it. “Everybody was agreed,” he said, “upon this point, that we ought to have a strong navy, but there was more difference of opinion as to the army.” Speaking personally, and without any authority from others, he felt desirous of throwing out a suggestion whether it would not be possible to have a separate army for India and the colonies, the army being treated as any other trade, and the men being permitted to withdraw when they pleased, with safeguards against the country being involved in loss when men came home prematurely. It would be necessary, of course, to have special training for cavalry, engineers, and artillery, as well as officers and non-commissioned officers; but he believed that for the great mass of the infantry, apart from the Indian and colonial army, we might safely rely upon the volunteers, and encourage volunteering by special advantages.
The suggestion thus modestly thrown out in 1885 proved to be the prelude of the effort of Dilke's later life—to prepare the country and the Empire for the times of storm and stress that were to come. His travels as a young man had given him an unrivalled acquaintance with the chief countries of the world, and especially with those which constitute the British Empire. In the spring of 1887, in his articles on “The Present Position of European Politics,” as already seen, he passed in review the aims of the several Powers of Europe, and the military means which were available for their furtherance. His conclusion, expressed in the first sentence of the first article, was that “the present position of the European world is one in which sheer force holds a larger place than it has held in modern times since the fall of Napoleon.” In this condition of Europe, the phenomenon that most impressed him was that “England is of all Powers the most unprepared for war.” That being the case, it seemed to him to be the first duty of a British Government to set in order the nation's defences. The next five years he devoted chiefly to an effort to master the subject, to which he gave the name of Imperial Defence.
The spirit and method of Dilke's work on the subject of preparation for war mark him off from all his Parliamentary contemporaries into a class by himself. He took the subject of war seriously. He would not speak of it without knowledge, and, as he had not had the professional education of a naval or military officer, he associated himself as closely as possible in this part of his work with those who appeared to him the most completely to command the subject. His own words were: “Writing on the British Army as a civilian, I am only accepting an invitation which soldiers have often given to their fellow-countrymen. At the same time I have not the presumption to write without military help.” [Footnote: The British Army, p. 1.]
He diligently studied the military literature of the day, English and foreign, treating of the questions he was considering, and collected a great number of official reports and other documents which he digested. At the same time he entered into correspondence with the best soldiers, in order to learn and appreciate their views. Prominent among these was Sir Frederick Roberts, then Commander-in-Chief in India, with whom during the whole period he was in constant communication. He also sought the collaboration of some congenial student of the problems of war, organization, and national defence, in order to insure the thorough discussion of all points, and to guard himself against the temptation to attach too much importance to his own impressions. He wished to acquaint himself with, and to reproduce in his writings, the best that was known and thought in the military world. In 1887, while writing his articles on European Politics, he frequently consulted in this way Colonel Charles Brackenbury, R.A., one of the most accomplished officers of the progressive school, a master of his profession and a clear exponent of its principles.
In this spirit and in these conditions was written the sixth article of the series on European Politics, published in June, 1887, and entitled “The United Kingdom.” It was an account of the country's military weakness and a plea for a much-needed improvement of the army. “We spend more upon war services than does any other empire in the world.... It is believed abroad, and I fear with reason, that even within the last two years our stock of rifles was so small that there were only enough guns in store to arm the first-class army reserve, so that, in fact, there was from the military point of view no reserve of rifles, and that our ammunition stood at about a similar point of exhaustion.... The most capable men of the army tell us very frankly that they are almost in despair at its condition.”
Assuming for the moment that all idea were given up of fulfilling the nation's treaty obligations for the defence of Turkey and of Belgium, and that no more were aimed at than the defence of India, of England, and of the colonies, “even upon this reduced estimate of our responsibilities, in the opinion of all competent men, we fall short of power to accomplish our task.” In view of this state of things Dilke suggested methods of increasing the strength of the nation, and of obtaining value for the money spent. In the first place, “it is necessary for the statesmen, or if the statesmen will not, then for the public, to lay down for the soldiers a basis of military policy.”
“It certainly seems clear, even to those who are not great
scientific soldiers, that there is sufficient risk of invasion
to
make it essential to our position that we should have plenty of
cavalry and artillery, plenty of officers, plenty of guns,
ammunition, and other stores, always in readiness to supplement
the
large force of infantry which is provided for us by the militia
and
volunteers.... The things we need to keep in hand are the
things
which cannot be suddenly improvised—cavalry, artillery,
transport,
officers, and stores. We can, whatever some soldiers may say,
make
effective infantry of our volunteers in a short space of time.”
“What we have to look to are, mainly, the defence of India, the
defence of England, and the supply of a possible expeditionary
force. For the defence of India we need, according to an
opinion
which I expressed at the date of the first introduction of
short
service, a long-service army.” Dilke quoted Major Buxton's
words:
“For home service and European warfare we need a reserve, and
therefore a short-service army. What difficulties do not hamper
us
in striving to reconcile short service with foreign service!
Divide
the two services and all becomes simple. The foreign service
army
... requires yearly fewer recruits, becomes acclimatized, and
has
fewer green young men in its ranks; it is never relieved home,
though it moves about abroad. The question of home and foreign
reliefs is closed for ever. Recruits go out, and time-expired
men
come home; that is all.” “On the other hand, for the home
army,”
Dilke wrote, “I would rely very largely upon the militia or
volunteers, and for the infantry privates of the expeditionary
army,
upon special volunteers from the militia or volunteers.... I am
convinced that the time required, provided that your officers
and
non-commissioned officers are well trained, to make an infantry
private is not very great.”
“Instead of trying to imitate at one time the Prussians, and at
another the French, we ought, in my belief, to strike out a
thoroughly national system for ourselves”—the direction to be
taken
being that of “giving high efficiency to the elements which
cannot
be rapidly created in the home army, and the loyal adoption for
the
infantry of the principle of localization and of union with the
militia and volunteers.”
In the autumn and winter, with Brackenbury's collaboration, which was not disclosed, as Brackenbury was an officer on the active list, Dilke wrote for the Fortnightly Review a second series of articles, entitled, like the volume in which they were afterwards collected, The British Army. The first article appeared in November. After its publication, Lord Wolseley wrote: “I have at this moment finished what I may be allowed to call your very interesting military article in the Fortnightly Review. I trust it may be read by every voter, and may turn public opinion to the shortcomings of our army and of our military establishments.” Dilke thereupon wrote to ask Wolseley for some account, of which public use might be made, of his views upon the condition of the army and of the necessary reforms. Wolseley replied at some length, and said: “I should not like any quotation made from this very hurriedly written letter, but if you care to do so you may say in any of your articles that I entertain these views and opinions.” Wolseley's views were given, accordingly, in the third article, in a paraphrase of his letter.
A more complete exposition of England's unreadiness for war has never been written than was contained in The British Army. It revealed the neglect of successive Governments to ascertain and determine the purposes for which in war the army would be employed, and the standards, quantitative and qualitative, of the military forces which ought to be kept ready. It showed the evils of excessive centralization. For an expenditure as great as that of a Continental military Power the War Office maintained a regular army, as to which it was doubtful whether it could mobilize, in a condition to take the field, a single army corps. The militia was imperfectly officered. The volunteer force was of unequal quality, and the mass of its officers inadequately trained for war. It was without field artillery, and the guns with which in case of war it ought to be accompanied did not exist. The regular army at home was sacrificed to the necessity of furnishing reliefs to the army in India, which, however, was not in a condition to defend that country against serious attack.
The system on which Continental armies were raised, organized, and trained, was explained, and proposals were made for reform of the British system. The suggestion was repeated that the British army in India should be rendered independent of the military administration at home, and the home army be relieved of the burden of supplying reliefs to India. This would render possible the introduction of true short service at home, and the enlistment for the Indian army of men willing to serve for comparatively long periods as professional soldiers. It was maintained that for national defence it would be found necessary to rely mainly upon the volunteers, and that therefore they should be given a place in the system corresponding to the call which would have to be made upon them in case of war. In the regular army those elements should be specially maintained which least admit of rapid training—cavalry, field and horse artillery—and a General Staff of an English type ought to be developed.
The cogency of Sir Charles Dilke's appeal to his countrymen to attend to the subject of defence, the weight of authority behind his exposition of the failure of the military administration, and the appropriateness of the reforms which he suggested, will be better conveyed by the quotation of a few passages than by a summary:
“The reign of force of which I have often spoken is so marked at present that no Power can consider itself safe unless it is ready at any time to defend its interests.” “Humanly speaking, we can trust for our protection in the last resort only to our strong right arm.” “Time is slipping by, and the unreadiness of England is a danger to the peace of the world.” “It is time that party politics should be put aside on questions relating to the national defence.” He pointed out how dangerous was the influence of those “who may almost be said to oppose all military expenditure, and yet whose ability and honesty gave them a deserved influence with the electors.” “It was impossible to adopt a policy of disarmament without grave danger for the future;” but if it was to be prevented, “the people have to be shown that large expenditure, not only upon naval but also upon military purposes, is a necessity of the time.” He deprecated “the unwisdom of those who, thinking our present position unsatisfactory, and more or less agreeing about the main lines of the remedies to be applied, fight among themselves.... The points which have a real importance are not those on which we differ, but those upon which we are agreed.”
The first question that he wished to have cleared up was what the country would fight for. He pointed out that England was bound by treaty to support the defence of Turkey against Russia, though he doubted whether English opinion would support that policy, and to defend the neutrality of Belgium, as to which he thought the attitude of Governments had been ambiguous. He would himself approve of fulfilling our treaty obligations as regards that country, but he said: “If indeed we are to defend the neutrality of Belgium, we may at any time find ourselves involved in a Continental war against Germany, with France and Belgium for our Allies.” He was prepared to accept as a minimum basis for preparation the assumption “that we ought to defend the coaling-stations, to be in a position to defend ourselves in India and at home, and to send, if need were, two army corps abroad as an expeditionary force.”
One great difficulty of proving a case against the sufficiency and efficiency of the army lay in the fact “that, while soldiers are very willing to communicate information in their possession as to our present weakness, to those who, they think may help in any degree to set things straight, they not unnaturally shrink from the publication of their names.” Yet Dilke was able to express the views of Sir Frederick Roberts, communicated to him very fully, and more briefly those of Lord Wolseley. He was also able to quote Wolseley's statement to a Royal Commission, that “if a hostile force of, say, 100,000 men were to land upon our shores, there is no reason whatever, if that 100,000 were properly led, why they should not take possession of London.... We are not in the position we ought to be in, nor do I believe we are in the position we should be in if the English people were told the whole truth.”
“The inefficiency of our present organization, and its
wastefulness,
are admitted by persons who differ as greatly the one from the
other
as, on the one hand, the chief of the 'Economists,' Lord
Randolph
Churchill, and, on the other, the soldiers who are the object
of his
scorn—Lord Wolseley, Sir Frederick Roberts, and General
Brackenbury. [Footnote: General Sir Henry Brackenbury, brother
of
Colonel Charles Brackenbury.] Our present position is,
therefore,
condemned all round, and the day has come when it behoves every
Englishman to have an opinion as to the direction in which the
remedy is to be sought.”
“To form armies which will be of any value against the power of
'armed nations,' it is necessary to provide modern weapons, and
here
again we are weak just where we should be strong.... It is one
of
the most astonishing features of our 'system' that, with all
our
enormous expenditure, we manage to drop behind other nations
both in
the quality of our weapons and the proportional number of them
to
the hands that would have to use them. The reason probably is
that
the country has gradually arrived at the absurd belief that
Great
Britain alone of all nations in the world can by prudence
escape the
common lot, and never have war again except with savages. From
this
unfounded and unwise opinion springs grave carelessness as to
the
condition of the military forces, and Governments desirous of
presenting a comparatively small Budget fail to keep up the
necessary quantity of arms and stores, because deficiency in
these
is a weakness easy to conceal.... Thus we, who should always be
in a
state of readiness to supply arms to improvised forces, and to
colonial levies, have never enough for the purposes of the home
army. We are always compromising between the popularity of a
Government and the safety of the Empire.”
It will be shown later on how Dilke, when the time came, upheld this opinion by his vote in Parliament, even against his own party and to the sacrifice of his own political interests.
“For an expenditure of nineteen millions the Germans can put
into
the field nineteen army corps of 37,000 men each, besides an
enormous force of garrison troops and a territorial army, of
which
they could rapidly make a field army of thirty-five army corps
in
all. For an expenditure of twice nineteen millions we can put
into
the field in India two army corps, of which one is composed of
native troops, but in the United Kingdom, in General
Brackenbury's
words, owing to our defective organization, we should scarcely
be
able to put one; but if the army were properly organized we
should
be able to put two into the field.”
Yet it could not be said that the British army fell short in numbers:
“The army proper, the militia, the army reserve and militia
reserve,
the volunteers, the native troops in India, the 36,000 Canadian
militia of the first line, about 16,000 men in Australia and
New
Zealand, the South African local forces of between six and
seven
thousand well-trained men, the Irish constabulary, the armed
and
drilled portion of the Indian constabulary, the Hyderabad
contingent, and the marines, easily make up a total of a
million of
men fit for some kind of land service, of whom very nearly the
whole
are supposed to serve even in time of peace.”
“We are more saving of peace taxes than of war debt.... If the
arrangement for strict saving in time of peace and for wild
waste in
time of war was ever a wise one, which in my opinion it was
not,
even in the days of old-fashioned armies, it is certainly
foolish in
these times of rapid mobilization.... We are in these times
exposed
to war at a day's notice, and to invasion at very short notice,
if
our fleet can be divided or drawn away and beaten in detail.”
“We are not without men who could reduce our non-system to
system.
Sir F. Roberts, who has partly done this in India so far as the
white army goes, and has attempted, in spite of resistance at
home,
to reform the native force—Sir F. Roberts could do it. Lord
Wolseley, whose organization of each of his expeditions has
been
careful, energetic, and in every way remarkable, and who in his
Soldier's Pocket-Book has produced the best of all
handbooks to
the elements of the art of war—Lord Wolseley could do it. But
the
existing system does not do it.”
In examining the Continental system, Dilke enumerated what he thought the principal points. They were, first of all, personal service by all men, which produced an enormous trained reserve; then complete localization both of troops and stores; fully worked out plans of mobilization and arrangements for obtaining horses instantly on the outbreak of war; and last, but not least, “the organization of a General Staff which shall act as the brain and nervous system of the army, and shall draw to it and pass through its training as large a number of officers as possible, so that experienced staff officers shall be numerous in the event of war.”
In spite of his appreciation of the Continental system, Dilke did not advocate universal compulsory service:
“Many of my correspondents cannot understand why I do not
advocate
for the British army that same general service which now
prevails
almost universally on the Continent, and brings with it so many
good
fruits both for the nation and the army. I have, as I have
shown, no
personal objection to it, but I have pointed out the existence
of a
fatal obstacle in certain forms of English and Scotch religious
and
certain forms of English commercial thought. It would be
unpractical
to consider at length a measure which stands no present chance
of
adoption. The time may come when we shall be drawn into a
struggle
for life or death, and it seems to me that it will very
probably
come within the next ten years, and maybe bring with it the
necessity for that general service which would now be
impossible of
attainment. For our present ideas of the imperial position
general
service is not necessary, and, moreover, until some capacity is
shown for organizing the troops which we already possess, I do
not
see the slightest use in obtaining a large number of fresh men.
But,
in view of the reign of force which now exists in Europe, and
of
slowly but surely advancing danger in the East, it is
impossible to
contemplate an ideal defence of the Empire without supposing
that
the inhabitants of Great Britain and all her colonies may
arrive at
a condition in which every strong man shall recognize that he
owes
to the State some kind of defensive military service. I have
tried
to make it plain that such service need not be in the regular
army;
still less need any man with us be taken against his will to
fight
outside the limits of his own country. But there can be no
ideal
defence in which the bulk of the population is not trained,
however
slightly, in the handling of military weapons, and the
individual
man trained in spirit to believe that the hearths and homes
where
his sisters or his wife live free from danger owe their
immunity
from attack, not merely to a half-despised 'mercenary army,'
but to
the strength and the skill of his own right arm.”
“My first condition for an ideal British organization would be
freedom of the fleet from the calls of local defence. The
maritime
fortresses and coaling-stations should all be capable of
defending
themselves.” This meant, of course, guns and garrisons. “My
second
ideal principle would be to look to local help for all
garrisons
where that system is possible, we retaining always a large
staff of
specially well-trained officers for the purpose of organizing
and
commanding local levies in war.”
Dilke thought it needful for England to train as many officers as possible, especially as she had an ample supply of men capable, if trained, of being good officers.
“Is it possible to conceive a more absurd situation than that of
the
wealthiest country in the world, with a vast reserve of
high-blooded
youth lying idle, and enormous masses of warlike people, Sikhs,
Goorkhas, Mahrattas, Zulus, Arabs, Malays, and what not, under
our
hands 'spoiling for a fight,' while this nation is unprepared
to
defend its own possessions and its very existence in
circumstances
which all know to be more than likely to occur? This nation,
our
nation, might absolutely keep the peace of the world, yet
shivers at
every breeze of Continental politics.”
Dilke's scheme was for a professional army for India and for a citizen army at home, in which the bulk of the infantry would be volunteers, while the special arms and the infantry of two army corps, destined to be an expeditionary force, would be short-service soldiers. It was in its broad outlines a forecast of the actual development that has taken place. In particular he proposed, what was carried out by Lord Haldane's Act, that “the militia should become liable to general service in war, and should be organized and equipped accordingly. The volunteers should be liable to be called out for home defence whenever the two army corps were sent out of the kingdom.”
“My first object,” he said in conclusion, “has been to point out
how
seriously our national military strength falls behind our
requirements, and how unready we always are, in spite of our
huge
expenditure. My second object was to show that what we want
most is,
not a great and expensive increase of the regular army, but an
endeavour to make the best possible use of what we have
already, by
proper organization and by utilizing to the utmost the
voluntary
principle, which best suits our national temper and that of the
colonies.... We stand in presence of new forces the power of
which
is almost incalculable, and, while I admit that there are in
the
army a great number of able men, perhaps more than there ever
were,
capable both of creating new systems and of leading us to
victory, I
am inclined to think that their characters have been formed in
spite
of an obsolete and decaying system, and that they are
restrained by
the incapacity of others and the carelessness of the country
from
exercising the influence which their talents and energy ought
to
command. If the question were one of commerce, liberty, or
progress
in civil affairs, the nation would be interested, and would
bring
the resources of its accumulated knowledge to bear on the
subject.
But being, as it is, a question without the right settlement of
which neither commerce nor liberty is safe, the public is so
little
in earnest about it that politicians are allowed to play with
it,
and the serious needs of self-defence are sacrificed to the
poor aim
of keeping constituencies in good-humour. Nothing can or will
be
done by Governments of any party till the nation can be roused
to
some expression of public opinion; and that opinion has to be
formed
before it can be expressed. In the reign of force which now
prevails
throughout Europe, carelessness as to our power of defence is
culpable beyond possibility of exaggeration, for we may have to
defend not only our individual interests as a nation, but all
that
enormous influence for the good of mankind which is at present
exercised in the remotest parts of the earth by an enormous
Empire
bent on preventing war and on spreading the blessings of
peace.”
Coming when it did, The British Army made an impression on the educated public. It followed soon after the report of Sir James Stephen's Commission, which had exposed the chaotic condition of the administration of the army. Dilke revealed a grasp of every branch of the subject. His criticisms reflected the judgment of officers familiar with the branch of service discussed. His proposals were modest and intelligible, and in every case represented some body of competent military opinion. He told the public much that none of his readers fully appreciated at the time. The German army had been largely increased in the spring of 1887, and in the beginning of 1888 a Bill passed the Reichstag which increased by a further 700,000 men the numbers available in case of war. Dilke explained in one of his chapters that, “according to the calculations of the French Staff, the total number of armed men upon which Germany would be able to draw for all purposes would exceed 7,000,000.” [Footnote: The British Army, p. 161.] This and other forecasts may startle those readers whose curiosity tempts them to read the volume again in 1917. But the work produced no practical result except to put Dilke into the front rank of army reformers. The Government took no action to remedy the military weakness which everyone recognized. The report of the Stephen Commission remained a dead letter. In June, 1888, a new Royal Commission was issued, in which the Marquis of Hartington, associated with a number of colleagues of Cabinet rank and with a General and an Admiral, was instructed to inquire into the administration of the naval and military departments. The attempt at reform was postponed until these Commissioners should have made their report.
I.
Sir Charles Dilke's visit to India in 1888-1889 convinced him that he had been right in believing the Indian army to be better prepared for war than the portion of the army which was kept at home. A great difficulty he now saw was that there were two rival plans of campaign, the one cherished in India, the other by officers at home. “The greater number of Indian officers expect to march with a large force into Afghanistan to meet the Russians, and believe that reinforcements will be sent from England to swell their armies and to make up for losses in the field. On the other hand, the dominant school in England expect to send an expedition from England, in combination with Turkey or some other allied Power, to attack Russia in other quarters.” Dilke was led accordingly to the general conclusion that the one thing needful was “that we should try to remove the consideration of these subjects from the home or the Indian or the Canadian point of view, and should take a general view of the possibilities of Imperial defence.”
The attempt to take this imperial view was made in Problems of Greater Britain, which Dilke wrote during the remainder of the year 1889. In this work he discussed the defence of the North-West Frontier of India as a prelude to the examination of the defence of the British Empire. His reason for this separate treatment was that “only on this one of all the frontiers of the Empire the British dominion is virtually conterminous with the continental possessions of a great military Power.” He showed that the serious import of this condition was understood by all who knew India well and by both the political parties in England. He dissented from the view that security could be obtained by an agreement with Russia, because it was not easy to see “how Russia could put it out of her own power at any moment to threaten us on the North-West Frontier.” The suggestion that Russia should be allowed to occupy the northern portion of Afghanistan he rejected, first because it would have been a flagrant breach of faith with the Amir, and secondly because it would give to Russia territory which she could quickly transform into a base of operations against India.
He thought that Russia could not invade India with a good chance of success if she started from her present frontier, but that if she were allowed to occupy the northern portion of Afghanistan the Indian Government would be put to ruinous expense for the defensive preparations which would then be required. [Footnote: 'Lord Dufferin wrote to me from the Embassy at Rome to express his satisfaction with the Indian portion of my book, and especially those passages in which I demonstrated the exceeding folly of which we should be guilty if ever we consented to a partition of Afghanistan with Russia.'] He noted that the policy of advance upon our left, which he had recommended in 1868, had been adopted with success, chiefly by the efficacy of the Sandeman system of recognizing and supporting the tribal chiefs and requiring them to maintain order, and also by the occupation and fortification of the position of Quetta and by the opening of roads from Quetta through the Gomul and other passes to the Indus at Dera Ismail Khan and Dera Ghazi Khan. This would enable an Indian army to attack the right flank of any Russian force attempting to advance along the Khyber line, which would be resisted in the Khyber hills and at Attock, and be stopped at the fortress of Rawal Pindi. Generally speaking, he held that Indian “defence must be by the offensive with the field army, and the less we have to do with fortifications, the better.” He urged the extension northwards of the Sandeman system to all the independent tribes between the Indian and the Afghan borders. If the separate armies for the Presidencies were to be united under a single Commander-in-Chief, as the Indian Government had long desired, and if the principle of enlisting in the native army only men of fighting races were fully adopted, and the native Princes induced to place effective contingents at the disposal of the Government, he thought that India with reinforcements from home would be well able to resist a Russian attack starting from the frontier that Russia then possessed.
But if Russia should once be established at Herat, with railway communications to that point, there would be hardly any limit to the force with which it would become necessary to resist her. He therefore urged that the Russian Government should be given to understand that any advance of her forces into Afghanistan would be regarded by England as a hostile act. At the same time he admitted that it was difficult to see how Russia was in that event to be fought. He still thought that she would be vulnerable at Vladivostock—at any rate until her railway to the Pacific should be completed [Footnote: He considered that, with a view to any future struggle with Russia, the abandonment of Port Hamilton in 1886 by Lord Salisbury had been unfortunate. See, as to Port Hamilton, Life of Granville, ii. 440; Europe and the Far East, by Sir Robert Douglas, pp. 190, 248]—but he was aware that this view was shared neither by the Indian nor the British officers likely to be heard.
In his chapter on Indian Defence Dilke had exhausted the subject from the Indian point of view. He was fully acquainted with the ideas of all those who had been seriously concerned with the problem, of which he had discussed every aspect with them, and his exposition was complete. When in his last chapter he came to “examine the conditions of the defence of the Empire as a whole, and to try to find some general principle for our guidance,” he was to a great extent breaking new ground. The subject had been treated in 1888 by Colonel Maurice, afterwards General Sir Frederick Maurice, in his essay on the Balance of Military Power in Europe, but Maurice based his scheme on the assumption of a Continental alliance which Dilke thought impracticable. It had also been treated with great insight as early as 1880 by Sir John Colomb in his Defence of Great and Greater Britain. His brother Admiral Philip Colomb had more recently expounded the view that the right plan was to make the enemy's coasts our frontier, and to blockade the whole of his ports, so that it would be impossible for his fleets to issue forth. This seemed to Dilke to imply a superiority of naval force which England did not possess, and was not then intending to create. But Sir John Colomb in 1880 had admitted the absolute necessity of being prepared to render invasion impossible by purely military forces. “It was necessary,” he had said, “that invasion be efficiently guarded against, so that, should our home fleet be temporarily disabled, we may, under cover of our army, prepare and strengthen it to regain lost ground and renew the struggle for that which is essential to our life as a nation and our existence as an Empire.”
Sir Charles Dilke thought this sound sense, and that it was rash, in view of the inadequate strength of the actual navy and of the uncertainty as to the effect of new inventions on naval warfare, to count upon beginning a future war with a repetition of Trafalgar. He admitted that the navy, if concentrated in home waters, would be fully able to defend the United Kingdom, but that the fleets if so concentrated must abandon the remainder of the Empire, and that this would involve the destruction of our commerce and would be as severe a blow to the Empire as the invasion of England. He inferred that the navy must be the chief agent in defence, but backed by fortification and by land forces. There ought to be squadrons in distant seas strong enough to hold their own, without reinforcements, against probable enemies on the same stations. The coaling ports must be suitably fortified and have all the troops necessary for their garrisons on the spot in time of peace. [Footnote: Autumn of 1889: 'Among those with whom I corresponded about my book was Lord Charles Beresford, who gave me a great deal of information about coaling-stations for my chapter on Imperial Defence, in which I also had Charles Brackenbury's help to a considerable extent.'] He carefully considered the question of food-supply at home and the possibility of a commercial blockade of the United Kingdom. He did not think that such a blockade could be established or maintained. “Our manufactures would be seriously assailed, our food-supply would become precarious, but we should not be brought to the point of surrender by absolute starvation, and the possibility of invasion is not excluded, as some of the naval school pretend, by the fact that it would be unnecessary.”
“On the other hand, a defeat or a temporary absence of the fleet
might lead to bombardments, attacks upon arsenals, and even to
invasion, if our mobile land forces, our fortifications and
their
garrisons, were not such as to render attacks of any kind too
dangerous to be worth attempting. In the absence of the fleet a
landing could not be prevented. But the troops landed ought to
be
attacked. For this purpose we do not need an immense number of
ill-trained, badly-equipped, and unorganized troops, but an
army
completely ready to take the field and fight in the open,
supplied
with a well-trained field artillery.”
But the mere protection of Great and Greater Britain was not enough. “It is idle to suppose that war could be brought to a termination unless we are prepared in some way to obtain advantages over the enemy such as to cause him to weary of the struggle. The riposte is as necessary in warfare as in fencing, and defence must include the possibility of counter-attack.” “In view of almost any conceivable hostilities, we ought to be prepared to supply arms and officers to native levies which would support our Empire in various portions of the globe.” But we had too few officers for our own troops at home, in India, and in the auxiliary forces. The stocks of arms ought to be larger than they were, and there ought to be centres of production for them in various parts of the Empire. “The moneys that the British Empire spends upon defence are immensely great, and what is wanted is that those moneys should be spent as is decided by the best advisers who can be obtained.” “The main thing needed for a joint organization of the whole of the defensive forces of the Empire is the creation of a body of men whose duty it would be to consider the questions raised, and to work out the answers.” For this purpose he thought the one thing needful was a General Staff, an institution of which he gave a brief account, based on Mr. Spenser Wilkinson's essay The Brain of an Army, of which the author had sent him the proofs. “A General Staff,” Dilke wrote, “would neither inspect troops nor regulate the promotion of the army, but it would decide the principles which would arrange the distribution of the Imperial forces.... The very existence of a General Staff would constitute a form of Imperial military federation.”
II.
In December, 1890, Dilke read before the Statistical Society a paper on the Defence Expenditure of the Chief Military and Naval Powers. He had taken great pains to ascertain what each Power spent on its army and navy, and what return it obtained for its money. The net result was that, while France and Germany for an expenditure of about 28 millions sterling could each of them put into the field a mobile force of two million men, the British Empire, at a cost of 35-1/2 millions, had “a nominal force of 850,000 of various degrees of training wholly unorganized, and supplied only with the professional artillery needed for a force of about 150,000 men.” The British navy was more formidable than the French, and “the German navy does not as yet exist. I say 'as yet,' for the Germans mean business with their navy, and have begun, in a businesslike manner, at the top, putting at the head of it their best administrators.” The French were spending altogether on defence a total of 36 to 36-1/2 millions, the Germans 38, and the British Empire 57 millions. The moral was that, “whatever the peace expenditure, war cannot be commenced with a fair chance of winning by a nation which waits until war to make her organization perfect. Germany before 1870 prepared in time of peace her corps, her armies, and provided them all with officers for the various commands, who knew what their duties would be in war. All countries spending much on their armies now do the same, except the United Kingdom, which stands alone in having still practically little but a regimental system in existence. But although we are old-fashioned, to the point of being utterly unprepared (except in India) for the stress of war, we nevertheless spend sums so vast as to stagger and amaze even the French and German critics, who ought to be pretty well used, one would think, to large sums for military expenditure.” [Footnote: Sir Charles notes in 1893: 'Sir William Harcourt on the British Army: “One knows a man who has ten thousand a year, sixteen horses, and ten carriages, and yet if one guest comes he has difficulty to find a dogcart to meet him, and if two come a fly has to be hired. The British nation also spends its money freely, and has equal difficulty in meeting the slightest emergency.”']
Early in 1891 Dilke proposed to Spenser Wilkinson that they should join in writing a new popular book on Imperial Defence. During that year the two men kept up a constant correspondence, and Wilkinson was frequently Dilke's guest in London, at Dockett and Pyrford, and in the Forest of Dean. At Whitsuntide Dilke stayed at Aldershot (where Wilkinson was in camp with his old volunteer battalion, the 2nd Manchester), and went every day to see the regiment at work.
In September, on the eve of Dilke's starting for the French manoeuvres, Wilkinson sent him the draft of an introduction to the proposed book. It challenged the widely-held opinion that war is wicked in itself, and might by political arrangement be rendered unnecessary, and deprecated the abstention from inquiry into its methods which this opinion encouraged. It challenged the maxim 'No foreign policy,' which meant either having no relations with other countries, or, having such relations, conducting them without system. War should be conceived of as imposed upon States by an irreconcilable opposition of purposes, and was always a means to an end. Peace could not be secured by a policy which adopts it as a supreme end. The confusion between defence as a political attitude and defence as an operation of war had led to the neglect, by English public opinion, of all naval and military preparations that might be available for attack. But the essential elements of defensive strength, fleets and armies, were mobile and equally available for offensive operations, and no efficient preparation for defence was possible that would not also serve for attack. Without a clear and true conception of the character of war as a conflict of national purposes, proper conduct of military operations and of defensive preparations was impossible, and to its absence was due the unorganized condition of the defence of the Empire. Dilke, in acknowledging the manuscript, wrote: “I've read it all and like it, but shall shorten it a little,” and in returning the manuscript, with his modifications, wrote: “The introduction is most excellent—stately and interesting: I can say this, as it is almost all yours.” Wilkinson then sent a chapter entitled “The Primacy of the Navy.”
“An attack on land conducted across the sea is a most hazardous
speculation so long as there exists anywhere a hostile fleet
that is
able to fight. In order to make such an attack safe, it is
indispensable that the attacker should secure himself from all
interruption by destroying or driving from the sea any hostile
fleet. The Power which should succeed in doing this would have
'the
command of the sea' as against its particular enemy.... The
territories of the Power having command of the sea are
virtually
safe against attack by sea.... The British navy, then, so long
as it
maintains the superiority at sea is a sufficient protection
against
invasion for every part of the Empire except India and Canada.
If,
however, the navy were to suffer decisive defeat, if it were
driven
to seek the shelter of its fortified harbours and kept there,
or if
it were destroyed—then, not only would every part of the
Empire be
open to invasion, but the communication between the several
parts
would be cut, and no mutual succour would be possible.
“The defeat of the British fleet or fleets would, of course, be
effected by purely naval operations; but the acquiescence in
its
destruction could, perhaps, only be secured by a blow affecting
the
British power at its source, and therefore the establishment by
an
enemy of his naval superiority would almost certainly be
followed by
an invasion of Great Britain. So long, then, as the British
navy can
be maintained invincible, the Empire could be adequately
defended
against attack of any European Power other than Russia, and for
such
a defence, therefore, no more is needed than complete naval
preparation, and such military preparation as is required for
the
full efficiency of the navy. Any additional military
preparation is,
as against attack of this nature, merely an insurance to cover
the
possibility of the failure of the navy. After such failure, it
might
save the British Islands, but it could not save the Empire.”
Dilke wrote that this doctrine was the opposite of what he had previously held and preached, and expressed a doubt whether, that being the case, the book could go on as a joint work. Wilkinson replied that the first question was whether the doctrine of the chapter was sound, and that the question of the names on the title-page could wait till the work was done.
In Problems of Greater Britain Dilke had discussed the view of Sir John Colomb and of his brother, Admiral Colomb. The Admiral appeared to rely upon “blockade,” which required a navy much stronger than Great Britain possessed, and might, with modern weapons and the torpedo, be impracticable of execution, while Sir John Colomb appeared to admit the necessity of purely military forces to prevent invasion. Dilke, looking at the extent of the Empire to be defended, had thought that the concentration of the navy in home waters must involve the abandonment of the rest of the Empire. This is the view usually held by those who are thinking of what they have to protect. Wilkinson thought first of the enemy's forces and how to destroy them. If they can be destroyed, the enemy is helpless and the territories of the victor are safe, because the enemy has no force with which to molest them. On the appearance of Problems, Dilke, as the extracts from his Diary at that time show, had begun to doubt whether this view was not the right one; Wilkinson's exposition and the discussion which accompanied it completed his conversion. This was the turning-point of his studies of Imperial Defence.
The next chapter was headed “The Command of the Sea.” Here the debated doctrine was applied.
“The purpose of Great Britain to render her territories secure
would
be perfectly accomplished by the destruction of the enemy's
navy, as
this would render any attempt at the transport of troops
impracticable. The destruction of the enemy's navy would, of
course,
also be the best possible protection for England's sea-borne
trade
(though, no doubt, for this purpose additional measures would
be
required), and for her communications with every part of her
Empire.
Thus, in every possible war in which Great Britain could
engage, the
prime function of the British navy is to attack, and if
possible to
destroy, the organized naval forces of the enemy.”
Suppose the enemy sought battle, the question would soon be decided, but if he wished to avoid it the difficulty would be to find him and to compel him to accept it. For this purpose the best plan was that adopted in 1803 by Lord St. Vincent, which consisted in placing at the outset, in front of every one of the enemy's military ports, a British squadron superior to that which the enemy had within it. This was incorrectly termed “blockade,” as the object was not to prevent the issue of the French fleets from their ports, but to prevent their exit unwatched and to fight them when they should come out. This plan must be supplemented by a reserve fleet, and by numerous cruisers to hunt such of the enemy's cruisers as might be at large. The alternative plan of Lord Howe, of concentrating the fleet at one of the home ports, was also discussed, but considered less advantageous, as it left the enemy's fleet free to proceed to sea. But it was shown that the navy of 1891 was twenty battleships short of the number believed by naval officers to be required for the successful adoption of St. Vincent's plan against the French navy alone.
The defence of India was treated in two chapters entitled “The Peace of India” and “The North-West Frontier,” which were in substance a restatement of the view expressed in Problems of Greater Britain.
The chapter on “The Armies” was a translation into specific shape, with full details and calculations, of Dilke's idea of a separation between the British and Indian systems. It was argued that the militia and volunteers should be organized into army corps with permanent fully paid commanders and the necessary auxiliary troops, and it was pointed out that the volunteer department of the War Office ought to be entrusted to volunteer officers. A chapter on “The Management of the Home Army” asserted that “Any system proposed for the better management of the army must satisfy three distinct conditions: It must be framed with a view to the preparation of the army for war; it must secure unimpaired the authority of the Cabinet; and it must provide for an efficient control over expenditure by the House of Commons.” The first requirement of a sound system was a general who could be entrusted with the duty of advising the Cabinet upon the conduct of war and with the actual management of campaigns. He ought to have a proper general staff and the field troops at home should be organized into localized autonomous army corps. “The British army at home has no generals, and can have none until its battalions are settled and grouped into brigades, divisions, and army corps.” There must be a second general charged with all branches of supply.
Any satisfactory Admiralty system, it was pointed out, would provide a competent naval adviser for the Cabinet. But it was doubted “whether it will be possible to secure unity of design in defence so long as the War Office and the Admiralty are separately represented in the Cabinet. The difficulty would be overcome if it became the practice for one Minister to hold both offices.” Dilke had long had the common-sense idea that a single Minister ought to have general charge of all the preparations for war and its conduct by sea and land.
He had made excisions and additions in the chapters as they had reached him, and had closely scrutinized the expression throughout. The whole book was read through by the two men together, and each point discussed to complete agreement. Dilke then proposed that it should appear in Wilkinson's name, as it was substantially Wilkinson's work, and that he himself might write a preface. Wilkinison said that it was a joint work, that the idea of the book was Dilke's, that its substance was the outcome of the intimate exchange of views between them, and that it ought to bear both their names. In his diary Dilke wrote: “Wilkinson's part in it was far greater than mine, though we argued out the whole.” When the book appeared, Admiral Colomb wrote to Dilke: “On reading the introduction and the first and second chapters, I am inclined to sing 'Nunc dimittis,' for, as far as I can understand the matter, you put forward all the views for which I have contended; and coming thus from your hands, I think they will henceforth be current views.” Dilke sent the letter to Wilkinson, noting on it: “Colomb thinks he has converted me. I reply, he couldn't. You did—after he had failed.” He regarded his collaboration with Wilkinson as an intellectual partnership in regard to defence, and hardly ever spoke or wrote on the subject without referring to it.
The development of Sir Charles Dilke's thoughts on defence has now been fully traced and his method of work revealed. His mind was unreservedly open to take in the thoughts of others, and he was incessantly trying to know the best that was thought and said concerning the subjects that interested him. He assimilated the substance of a vast correspondence, and on every topic the ideas which he received became a part of him. His intellectual life was thus an incessant dialectic with the best minds of his time. But he never accepted ideas from others without the most generous acknowledgment, and did not, as so many men do, proceed, after assimilating another man's thought, to imagine that it was his own invention. This intellectual candour, involving a rare modesty and absence of affectation, was one of his finest characteristics.
I.
In 1892, when Sir Charles Dilke returned to the House of Commons as member for the Forest of Dean, his mind was made up in regard to the subject of national defence, and from that time on he worked in and out of Parliament to bring about an organization for war of the resources of the nation and of the Empire.
At that time the management of both services was hampered by the accumulated changes made by three generations of statesmen intent upon home affairs, under which were buried and hidden the traditions of an earlier period of wars. In 1857 the Duke of Cambridge had been appointed Commander-in-Chief in deference to the belief of the Prince Consort, inspired by Baron Stockmar, that in order to avert revolution the royal authority over the army must be exercised through a Prince, and not through the channel of a Minister responsible to Parliament. The Duke thought it his mission to resist changes, and his obstruction had been the bane of successive Ministers. Accordingly, the statesmen of Cabinet rank and experience were anxious at all cost to establish the supremacy of the Cabinet over the army, and for this purpose had welcomed the proposal of the Hartington Commission to abolish the office of Commander-in-Chief whenever the Duke of Cambridge should cease to hold that post. The Commission had not considered that a change of persons might solve the difficulty, and was led astray by the proposal to appoint “a Chief of the Staff,” who was to be, not the strategical adviser of the head of the army, but rather its administrator in chief. In every modern army there is a Chief of the General Staff to assist the Commander-in-Chief, the principal executive officer, as well as an Administrator-General to manage the business of supply. The Hartington Commission proposed to give the name “Chief of the Staff” to an Administrator-General. It further proposed the creation of a Committee of the Cabinet to hold the balance between the requirements of the War Office and those of the Admiralty.
Dilke recognized as fully as the occupants of either front bench the necessity for the paramount authority of the Cabinet. He also felt the need for co-ordination between the War Office and the Admiralty, and considered that both these needs would best be met by a single Minister, the Prime Minister, supervising or taking charge of both offices. The essence of co-ordination would consist in framing the arrangements for both services with a single eye to victory in war.
Dilke's first step was to get into touch with those members of Parliament who were most keenly interested in the army and navy.
'On February 21st (1893) I had a meeting, which I had suggested,
with Lord Wolmer, General Sir George Chesney, and H. O.
Arnold-Forster, and agreed on joint action in all service
matters,
and to attend the meeting of the service members fixed for the
next
day, to which, although civilians, Arnold-Forster and I were
asked.
We wrote Wolmer's motion for him.'
At this time Campbell-Bannerman was Secretary of State for War. On March 9th the House was to go into Committee of Supply, and on the motion “that Mr. Speaker do now leave the chair” Lord Wolmer moved “that in the opinion of this House the present system of military administration fails to secure either due economy in time of peace or efficiency for national defence.” Lord Wolmer in his speech referred to the breakdown in the system of recruiting which had been disclosed in the report of Lord Wantage's Committee. He was supported by Sir George Chesney, who referred to the report of Sir James Stephen's Commission as “a scathing exposure of mismanagement,” and to that of the Hartington Commission as “an unqualified and alarming denunciation of our military system.” Arnold-Forster also supported the resolution, in favour of which Dilke made a short and incisive speech. Campbell-Bannerman declined to take the discussion seriously. “The first observation,” he said, “that must occur to anyone reading the motion is, What in the world has the report of Lord Wantage's Committee to do with the present system of military administration? It is as if the noble lord were to call attention to the Tenterden Steeple, and to move that the Goodwin Sands are a danger to navigation.” But the breakdown of recruiting was the crucial evidence of the weakness of the military administration.
In September, 1893, the question of the then recent appointment of the Duke of Connaught to the command at Aldershot was raised in the House of Commons by Mr. Dalziel. It was defended by Campbell-Bannerman on the ground that the Duke possessed sufficient qualifications for the post. If that had been the sole question, said Dilke, he should have supported the Government.
“But there was another point. Aldershot was a training-school
not
only for the men and regimental officers there employed, but
also
for the Generals commanding. It might be said to be the only
school
in the United Kingdom where a general officer could obtain
experience in commanding men in battle, and therefore only
officers
who were likely to command armies in case of serious war ought
to be
put in command of such a place. Was it likely that the Duke of
Connaught, under the circumstances, would be called upon to
take the
chief command against a European enemy in case of war?”
In the division Dilke voted against the appointment.
On December 19th Lord George Hamilton moved a resolution “that a considerable addition should at once be made to the navy.” Mr. Gladstone regarded this proposal as a vote of censure on the Government, and delivered an indignant reply. Dilke deprecated making the navy a subject of party controversy, and made an appeal to his Liberal friends:
“All naval experts who have been consulted on the question have
always laid it down that, for safety, you must have a supremacy
of
five to three in battleships, that you require that supremacy
for
the policy of blockade.... If ever we engage in war ... it is a
necessity of the position of this country that our frontiers
should
be at the enemy's ports.... I know this is not a popular
policy, but
the existence of the Empire depends upon it.... Liberals should
give
up thinking of this question of national defence as a hateful
one,
and as one against which they ought to close their eyes and
ears. I
know that, in these days of great armaments on the Continent,
the
old tradition of the Liberal party, that they should look to
the
possibility of using the forces of this country on behalf of
Continental freedom, has become a dream of the past. They must
remember that our liberties at home depend upon the efficiency
of
our fleet, and that, beyond this, the very existence of our
Empire
is concerned in the question which the House is at this moment
debating.”
The sequel to this debate was Mr. Gladstone's retirement in February, 1894.
Early in the autumn of 1893 Dilke had talked over with Spenser Wilkinson the line to be taken in Parliament by the service members. Wilkinson had urged as a preliminary some effort to obtain agreement among the “experts,” suggesting that Chesney as the ablest of them all should first be approached. On November 8th Chesney and Wilkinson dined at Sloane Street, and, Chesney having expressed his general concurrence in the views as to administration explained in Imperial Defence, Dilke proposed that Wilkinson should draft a letter to the Prime Minister, embodying the main points, to be signed by all three and by Arnold- Forster, if he should be in accord with them, and to be sent not only to Mr. Gladstone, but to the leaders of the Opposition. The result was the following letter, which was eventually signed and sent on February 12th, 1894, to Mr. Gladstone (then Prime Minister), to Lord Salisbury, the Duke of Devonshire, Mr. Balfour, and Mr. Chamberlain:
Sir,
The late debate in the House of Commons on the subject of the
navy
was one of many symptoms of a widespread uneasiness with regard
to
the defences of the Empire. There is a doubt of the sufficiency
of
the naval establishments and of the efficiency in some respects
of
the systems under which the navy and the army are administered.
This
failure of confidence has been of gradual growth. Those who
think it
justified do not attribute the responsibility for it to any one
administration or to either party in the State. Yet it seems
difficult to discuss these doubts in Parliament without, at
least,
the appearance of censure upon the Government of the day, a
result
which is unfortunate, for the subject should unite rather than
divide parties, and upon its paramount importance there is no
difference of opinion.
For this reason a service may perhaps be rendered by the
communication to the Prime Minister and to the leaders of the
Opposition of suggestions which commend themselves to men of
different parties who have from different points of view for
many
years given attention to questions relating to national
defence.
No arrangements which aimed at or resulted in a subversion of
the
principles which experience has shown to be essential to the
working
of constitutional government could be seriously considered. But
no
system of defence, however constitutional, can avail unless it
be
shaped with a view to war. It is to the conciliation of these
two
necessities, that of compatibility with the constitution and
that of
adaptation to the purpose of war, that our attention has been
directed.
If the preservation of peace depended upon the goodwill of the
British Government, there would perhaps be little need for a
navy or
an army. The existence of these services implies that this is
not
the case, and that safety in time of war depends upon
forethought
and preparation in advance. Such preparation involves a view of
the
nature of a possible war and an estimate of the intensity of
the
effort it would impose, this view and this estimate furnishing
the
standard for the quantity and quality of the means to be kept
available.
The design, without which even a defensive war cannot be carried
on,
and in the absence of which preparations made during peace must
fail
to serve their purpose, is properly the secret of the
Government.
Yet, where the Government is responsible to a Parliament, it is
indispensable either that so much of the design should be
communicated to Parliament as will enable it to judge of the
necessity and of the sufficiency of the preparations for which
supplies must be voted, or that Parliament should know who are
the
professional advisers upon whose judgment the Government
relies.
Neither of these conditions seems to us at present to be
fulfilled,
and as a consequence of the omission there has arisen in the
public
mind that distrust to which we have alluded.
The leading decision in the administration of the national
defence,
governing the whole course and character of any future war, is
that
which settles the total amount of expenditure upon preparation
and
apportions it between the naval and military services. For this
decision the Cabinet is, and must ever be, responsible. Yet in
the
distribution of the business of the Cabinet into departments
there
appears to be no office specially entrusted with the
consideration
of war as a whole, embracing the functions both of the navy and
of
the army. Of the sums usually devoted each year to warlike
preparations, the larger part is spent upon the army, and only
a
lesser part upon the navy, upon which the maintenance of the
Empire
and the security of Great Britain must ever chiefly depend. It
is
difficult to believe that this apportionment is the result of
deliberate examination of the requirements of war. It would
seem
more probable that the separate existence of a department of
the
navy and a department of the army leads in practice to the
management of each for its own sake rather than as an
instrument
serving a more general purpose.
In order to secure the special consideration by the Cabinet of
national defence as distinct from and superior to the
administration
either of the navy or of the army, we would suggest the
appointment
of one and the same Minister to the two offices of Secretary of
State for War and First Lord of the Admiralty, or the
amalgamation,
with the consent of Parliament, of these two offices.
We would further suggest that the Cabinet should select for each
service an officer whose professional judgment commands its
confidence, to be at once the responsible adviser of the
Cabinet
upon all questions regarding the conduct of war so far as his
own
service is concerned, and the principal executive officer of
that
service.
We understand by a responsible adviser one who stands or falls
by
the advice which he gives. He would, of course, have at his
disposal, in the formation of his views, the best assistance
which
the professional staff of the navy or of the army could supply.
But
the opinion which, after mature consideration, he would submit
to
the Cabinet, and formally record, would be his own and would be
given in his own name. It follows that a difference of opinion
between the Cabinet and its naval or its military adviser upon
any
important matter of naval or military policy would lead to the
resignation of the latter. In our view, the essence of
responsibility for advice is that the officer giving it is
identified with it, and remains in the post only so long as his
judgment upon the professional matters with reference to which
he is
consulted is acceptable to the Cabinet which he serves. In
order to
facilitate his independence in this respect, provision should
be
made, in case of his resignation, for his employment in another
post
or for his honourable retirement.
If these suggestions were adopted, the passage in case of need
from
peace to war would take place without personal or
administrative
change. The adaptation of the whole service, whether naval or
military, to the necessities of war, as understood by a
competent
officer studying them with full responsibility, would be
assured.
The House of Commons and the public would have in the person of
the
naval and of the military adviser a guarantee of the
sufficiency and
of the efficiency of the navy and of the army. The authority of
the
Cabinet and the control of the House of Commons would be
unimpaired.
We are, sir,
Your obedient servants,
Charles W. Dilke.
George Chesney.
H. O. Arnold-Foster.
Spenser Wilkenson.
In December, 1893, Dilke had communicated to Mr. Balfour the draft of this letter and his plan for sending it to the leaders of both parties. Mr. Balfour thought the best plan for co-ordinating the two services would be by a Defence Committee of the Cabinet, of which Dilke put his finger on the weak point, that it gave no guarantee of meeting the requirements of war. [Footnote: The letters printed in Appendix I., p. 451, embody the substance of previous conversations between Dilke and Mr. Balfour. In Appendix II., p. 456, are given the replies of Mr. Gladstone and the other leaders to the joint letter, which was afterwards published in the newspapers.—Ed.] It was after these communications that Mr. Balfour made his speech at Manchester on January 22nd, 1894, in which he said:
“It is responsibility which is chiefly lacking in our present
system. If anything goes wrong with the navy, you attack the
First
Lord of the Admiralty. If anything goes wrong in the army, you
attack the Secretary for War. If anything goes wrong in the
Home
Department, you attack the Secretary to the Home Department.
But if
the general scheme of national and imperial defence is not
properly
managed, there is nobody to attack but the whole Cabinet; and
the
Cabinet as a whole is not, in my opinion, a very good body to
carry
on the detailed work of that, any more than of any other,
department
of the State.”
These private discussions between Dilke and Mr. Balfour foreshadowed the actual course which reform was to take. It began in 1895 with the adoption of Mr. Balfour's plan of a Committee of the Cabinet; it ended in 1904 by Mr. Balfour as Prime Minister adopting Dilke's plan, and undertaking himself, as chairman of that Committee, the co-ordination of the two services. Then and not till then the fundamental principle of the primacy of the navy in the defence of the Empire was formally recognized.
The next step of the signatories to the joint letter was action in Parliament. Dilke gave notice that, on the introduction of the Army Estimates, he would move the following resolution:
“That this House, before voting supplies for the maintenance of
military establishments in the United Kingdom, seeks an
assurance
from Her Majesty's Government that the estimates for that
purpose
submitted to it are framed upon consideration of possible war
by sea
and land, and upon a consideration of advice tendered in that
behalf
by such officer of either service as is fitted to command in
war Her
Majesty's forces of that service.”
The debate took place on March 16th, 1894. In the course of his speech Dilke said:
“What I want to know, and what the Cabinet in framing the
estimates
ought to know, is this: Are the proposals before the House
those
which alone are capable of securing the safety of the country
and of
the Empire?... I wish to know whether the Government present
these
estimates as representing the least, but still what is
sufficient,
for the needs of the country for the next twelve months, not
only
for the protection of the whole country and the Empire, but for
the
protection of our trade in all parts of the world....
“The Cabinet must obtain the best advice possible. I, for my
part,
should prefer that the advice should be concentrated for each
service, because I think it is far more responsible advice if
it
comes mainly on the responsibility of a single man as regards
the
army and navy respectively than if you dispersed it among a
great
number of people.... As far as I am concerned, form in this
matter
is immaterial. I have stated what I want to secure, and I will
put
two or three different ways of securing it which would very
often
come to the same thing. What I ventured to suggest at first was
that
the Prime Minister should be brought to take more personal
concern
in the defence of the country than is the case at the present
time;
that he should consider himself mainly responsible for the
joint
consideration of the whole defence proposals; that he should
hear
the Secretary for War, the First Lord of the Admiralty, and
their
advisers, if he is doubtful, and that they together, more
seriously
than has been the case in the past, should go into the
difficulties
of the problem, and he should then advise with them as to the
estimates.... There was another suggestion made—that a Defence
Minister, a Minister who should represent the army and navy,
should
be the person charged specially with the responsibility to this
House.... But I am not wedded to any particular form. Whether
the
Prime Minister specially undertakes the duty, whether it is
undertaken by a Defence Minister, or whether the suggestion is
adopted—which, I believe, is that of the Leader of the
Opposition
(Mr. Balfour)—that a Defence Committee of the Cabinet, which I
have
heard was instituted by the late Government, should be provided
with
a more avowed and distinct position, armed with permanent
responsible advisers, and equipped with records so as to hand
over
its work to those by whom they might be succeeded in
office—all
these plans would come at the present moment to very much the
same
thing.”
The resolution was seconded by Arnold-Forster, and supported in a clear and relevant speech by Sir George Chesney. In the debate which followed, Mr. Balfour expressed his adherence to the third of the plans described by Sir Charles Dilke. “I rather contemplate,” he said, “that the Prime Minister, with or without his colleagues, or a Committee of the Cabinet, with or without the Prime Minister, should constitute themselves a body with permanent records and confidential advisers.” Campbell-Bannerman expressed general agreement with the object Dilke had in view, and added: “I entertain almost identically the opinion which has been expressed by the Leader of the Opposition.” Having thus obtained the concurrence of both parties to one of the plans which, it was thought, might fulfil the purpose in view, Dilke withdrew the motion.
In 1895 (March 11th) a resolution couched in the precise words of that of 1894 was moved by Mr. Arnold-Forster on the introduction of the Navy Estimates. In supporting it Dilke said:
“The sole purpose of all this very large expenditure was to
enable
us to achieve victory at sea, which was essential to our very
existence as a nation; and what the resolution asked was an
assurance that the Government had had under its consideration
the
nature of the efforts that would be called for to secure
victory and
the distribution of these efforts between the land and sea
forces.”
On March 15th, in the discussion of the Army Estimates, Dilke raised a doubt “whether there was in our system of military administration any security that those we put into positions of high command, where they were able to get military experience, were only those men who were fitted for such posts and would hold command in time of war.”
On June 21st, 1895, Campbell-Bannerman announced the retirement of the Commander-in-Chief, the Duke of Cambridge, and his own intention to adopt the main lines of the scheme of the Hartington Committee. He would appoint a Commander-in-Chief with reduced powers who would be the principal military adviser of the Secretary of State, and he, with the other heads of departments, who would each be directly responsible to the Minister, would constitute a deliberative Council, so that the Secretary of State, when he gave his decisions, would be guided and supported by the express opinions of all the experienced officers by whom he was surrounded.
Thereupon Mr. Brodrick, now Lord Midleton, moved to reduce the salary of the Secretary of State by way of a vote of censure on the insufficiency of the supply of cordite ammunition. A brief debate followed in which Campbell-Bannerman failed to convince the House that the supply was adequate, and in the division this vote of censure was carried by 132 against 125. This division overthrew the Liberal Ministry. Dilke took no part in the debate, but voted in the majority. For this vote Campbell-Bannerman never forgave him.
In the new Ministry formed by Lord Salisbury as Prime Minister, Mr. Balfour became First Lord of the Treasury and Leader of the House of Commons, Lord Lansdowne Secretary of State for War, Mr. Brodrick Under-Secretary of State for War, and Mr. Goschen First Lord of the Admiralty. The first act of the new Government was to remodel the general arrangements for national and imperial defence. The scheme was described in general terms by Lord Lansdowne in the House of Lords on August 26th, and more specifically by Mr. Brodrick in the House of Commons on August 31st. There was to be a Defence Committee of the Cabinet under the presidency of the Duke of Devonshire. Mr. Brodrick's words implied that the creation of this body was due to the action of Sir Charles Dilke, who, in the debate on the Address, had again urged his views on this subject.
Of the army Lord Wolseley was to be the new Commander-in-Chief. But, instead of being at the head of the military departments of the War Office, he was to have charge only of the intelligence and mobilization departments, and to be the President of an Army Board of which the other members were to be the Adjutant-General, the Quartermaster-General, the Director of Artillery, and the Inspector-General of Fortifications, each of whom was to be directly responsible for his own department to the Secretary of State. “The main principle of the change,” said Mr. Brodrick, “is the separate responsibility of the military heads of departments to the Secretary of State for their departments, and the focussing of military opinion by means of the Army Board presided over by the Commander-in-Chief.” When Mr. Brodrick had finished his statement, Dilke immediately rose and said that
“he had listened to the statement with something like dismay,
for
some of the changes made had been in his view entirely in the
wrong
direction.... There certainly had not been, during the many
years he
had been in the House, any debate in which the issues presented
to
the House had been so momentous.... To that portion of the
Government's scheme which involved the position of the Duke of
Devonshire in relation to Imperial defence he was fully
favourable.
He believed he was the original suggester of the proposal in
1888.
What had been said by the Undersecretary went to suggest the
creation of a Committee of the Cabinet only, which had been
formed,
they were told, by the late Government. If so, the matter was
minimized, and there was less security given to the country
than
they had hoped. The first thing to be secured was that there
should
be the individual responsibility of one great member of the
Cabinet
rather than the collective responsibility of a considerable
number.
“In regard to the reorganization of the War Office itself, he
viewed
with dismay the further explanations given to-day by the
Under-Secretary. What had been the main objection to the past
management of the army in this country? It had been that
responsibility had been frittered away among a great number of
different Boards.... He hoped that the new man chosen to be the
head
of the army would be in practice the real head of the army and
the
real adviser of the Secretary of State. What he feared they
were
doing was to create a copy of the Admiralty in those particular
points in which the Admiralty itself had been the subject of
criticism.... The Government, he contended, ought to recommend
the
one man, the Commander-in-Chief, and in the first instance take
his
opinion and regard him as ultimately responsible. Having picked
out
the most competent man, he hoped the Government would put the
arrangement under that man and not under the civilian Secretary
of
State.... It was a mistake to give the Commander-in-Chief a
department; he ought to be above the departments, and the
departments ought to report to him. He had ventured for many
years
to ask in the first place that the Cabinet should consider the
whole
problem of Imperial defence, and in the second place that they
should pick out the best man and trust him.”
In reply to Dilke, Mr. Balfour said:
“If you put the Secretary of State for War in direct
communication
with the Commander-in-Chief alone, I do not see how the
Secretary of
State for War can be anything else than the administrative
puppet of
the great soldier who is at the head of the army. He may come
down
to the House and express the views of that great officer; but
if he
is to take official advice from the Commander-in-Chief alone,
it is
absolutely impossible that the Secretary of State should be
really
responsible, and in this House the Secretary of State will be
no
more than the mouthpiece of the Commander-in-Chief. It seems to
me
that the differences in this branch of the subject between the
right
hon. gentleman (Sir Charles Dilke) and the Government are of a
more
fundamental character than I anticipated.”
The difference was indeed fundamental, for Dilke was thinking about war, and Mr. Balfour was thinking only of Ministerial responsibility. In case of a war in which the welfare, possibly the independence, of the nation would be at stake, what civilian Secretary of State would wish to be personally responsible for victory or defeat, or to be more than the mouthpiece of a great soldier at the head of the army?
The Commander-in-Chief had been a military officer whose function was to co-ordinate the work of the heads of the several military departments. The change made in 1895 transferred to the Secretary of State this duty previously performed by the Commander-in-Chief. Sir James Stephen's Commission had reported in 1887 that it was morally and physically impossible that any one man should satisfactorily discharge the functions which at that time belonged to the Secretary of State. To them in 1895 the Government added those of the Commander-in-Chief. The result was that in 1899 the Secretary of State failed to fulfil the most important of all his functions, that of maintaining accord between the policy of the Cabinet and the military preparations. The Committee of Defence, which was appointed in 1895, might perhaps have performed this essential function if it had ever taken a serious view of its work. But it in doubtful whether it ever did any work at all.
II.
In the new Parliament, Dilke moved on March 5th, 1896, for a return of the number of British seamen available for service in the navy in time of war.
“One difficulty,” he said, “that had to be faced was that in debates like the present they had no real opportunity of engaging in a collective review of the whole defensive expenditure of the country on the army and navy taken together.... They expected from the Government a policy which could be explained to the House—either a policy of alliances, to which he himself was rootedly opposed; or the policy, which was the only true policy for this country, of keeping up such a fleet as would make us safe against any probable combination. The point to which he wished to draw most urgent attention was that the real reserve of England was disappearing very fast. The British sailor was becoming more and more a rare article of luxury. He was used on the first-class liners, and not used elsewhere.... There was another point of importance. Among these foreigners there were many masters of ships, and they were taught the pilotage of our rivers. That was a very serious matter, and might become a great danger in time of war.”
It soon became evident that the changes made in 1895 had not produced improvement either in the Government's arrangements for national defence or in the management of the army. In November, 1896, Lord Lansdowne, Secretary of State for War, and Sir Michael Hicks Beach, Chancellor of the Exchequer, made speeches the same evening at Bristol. The Secretary of State expressed the intention to make a slight increase in the number of battalions in the army, while the Chancellor declared that he would consent to no increase in the Army Estimates until he could feel more confidence in the manner in which the money was expended. This disagreement between members of the Cabinet led to inquiries, through which Dilke became aware that the Commander-in-Chief, Lord Wolseley, wished for a larger increase in the number of battalions than the Secretary of State was willing to propose. The opportunity seemed suitable for raising the question whether or not the military measures proposed by the Government were those suggested by their military adviser—a fundamental question. Lord Lansdowne having explained in the House of Lords in February, 1897, that his proposal was to add two battalions to the Guards and one to the Cameron Highlanders, and that he hoped in this way to restore the equilibrium between the number of battalions at home and the number abroad, Dilke in the House of Commons pointed out (February 8th) that the measure proposed would not establish the desired equilibrium, and that the proposal was anonymous. Who, he asked, were the military authorities on whose advice the Government relied? Mr. Brodrick, in reply, said that the proposals of the Government, taken as a whole, had been gratefully accepted by one and all of the military heads of the War Office, as, in the words of the Commander-in-Chief, “such a step forward as has not been made for many years.” Thus it became clear that the military heads, including the Commander-in-Chief, were as ready to be overruled in regard to their views as to what was necessary for the army as the civilian Minister was to overrule them.
In the Christmas recess of 1897-98 Dilke prepared for the next Session by writing a pamphlet on Army Reform in which he reviewed the position. He and the other reformers had steadily asserted that the home army could not take the field until it had drawn heavily on the reserve; that it was terribly short of artillery; that the seven to eight years' enlistment was a hybrid, and that the sound course was to have a short-term service with the colours at home followed by a choice between a long term in the reserve and a long term in the Indian or Colonial army; and, lastly, that the administration was over-centralized at the War Office, to the detriment of the authority, the efficiency, and the character, of the generals. The critics had further urged that the linked-battalion system and the hybrid term, bad as they were, could not be worked at all without a large increase of the number of battalions at home. In 1897 the War Office had replied that an increase of three battalions would suffice.
The new estimates were introduced in the House of Commons on February 25th, 1898, by Mr. Brodrick, who admitted that, in order to put 50,000 infantry into the field, it would be necessary to call out 28,000 reservists. In order to have artillery enough for a fraction of the army he asked for fifteen more batteries. He had to admit that the three battalions added in 1897 were not enough, and to ask for six more. The speech was an admission of all the contentions of the critics, though it began by abusing them.
In the debate Dilke moved: “That no scheme for the reorganization of the army will be satisfactory which involves the sacrifice of one unit to secure the efficiency of any other.” He referred to the admitted breakdown of the eight-years and linked-battalion system. Mr. Brodrick, quoting Lord Wolseley, had reassured the country by telling them that they could despatch two army corps abroad.
“Two army corps!” exclaimed Dilke, “when it is twenty army corps which this country pays for!... Out of the men at home, if cavalry and artillery were provided, twenty corps instead of two corps might be made.... In the last three years the cost of the army has been considerably increased, and there has been an increase in numbers voted. Yet there has been a decrease not only in the militia, but also in the regular army and in the army reserve as well during that period—an additional evidence of breakdown.... The territorial system here can never be anything more than a sham so long as we have to provide for India and garrison coaling-stations, and so long as the battalions are constantly moved about.... We have year by year made our statements with regard to artillery to the House. Nobody believed a word we said, and it was only last year, when three batteries were sent out to the Cape, and twenty batteries wrecked in men and horses to provide them, that the War Office at last admitted that we had all along been right.... On this occasion we see some results, in the speech of the right hon. gentleman to-night, of our action in the past.”
The Navy Estimates were introduced in July. Lord Charles Beresford in his argument had pointed out that the cost of the navy bore a much smaller proportion to our mercantile marine than that of the navies of other countries. Dilke said:
“The position of the British Empire is such that, if by the
mercantile policy of other countries our mercantile marine were
wholly to disappear, or if it were to disappear as the result
of a
war in which our carrying trade passed, say, to the United
States,
it would be just as necessary as now for us to have a
predominant
fleet.... If the pressure of taxation on the poorer classes, if
the
unrest in this country on the subject, were so great that it
was not
possible to make the sacrifices which I for one think it
necessary
to make, I would sooner give up the whole expenditure on the
army
than give way upon this naval programme.... This matter of the
fleet
is vital to our position in the world. The army is an arguable
question.”
Dilke continued steadily to press for a strong navy. In 1899 he once more supported Mr. Goschen's proposals, and again urged that, if the cost of the army and navy should be too great, we must save on the army, but not on the navy. His chief criticism of the Admiralty was that “we have got into the vicious position of beginning our building programme each year at the extreme end of the financial year.”
The keynote of his speech was: “This Empire is an Empire of the seas, and the navy is vital to our existence, but our army is not. Our Indian army is vital to our possession of India, but India pays the full cost of it, perhaps rather more.”
III.
During the winter of 1898-99 the opposition of purposes between the British Government and the Government of the South African Republic was causing grave apprehension to public men. The High Commissioner, Sir Alfred Milner, paid a visit to England, and on his return to the Cape was authorized in May, 1899, to meet President Kruger in a Conference at Bloemfontein. On June 7th the failure of the Conference was announced, and was thought by many to be the equivalent of a diplomatic rupture, the prelude to hostilities. No serious military preparations were made by the British Government, though various measures were suggested by the Commander-in-Chief, Lord Wolseley, and by Sir Redvers Buller. It was not until September 10th that 10,000 men were ordered from India to Natal, and not until October 7th that orders were issued for the calling out of the reserve and for the mobilization of an army corps and other troops for South Africa. The Boers began hostilities on October 11th, and the operations were unfavourable to the British until the middle of February, when Lord Roberts began the advance towards Kimberley.
At the end of January, 1900, the Prime Minister, Lord Salisbury, said in the House of Lords: “I do not believe in the perfection of the British Constitution as an instrument of war ... it is evident that there is something in your machinery that is wrong.”
In the debate on the Army Estimates on February 1st, Dilke, with his usual courage, raised the question of responsibility, in a speech to which little attention was paid at the time, but which will now, in the light of subsequent events, be better appreciated.
“The country,” he said, “has gone through an awful winter, and under our constitutional system there are persons responsible, and we have to examine the nature of their responsibility. Some Government speakers, who during the recess have addressed the country, have drawn certain comparisons between the occurrences in this war and those of the Crimean War.... I confess that I believe the present war has been far more disgracefully conducted than the Crimean War had been, and that the mourning is far more applicable to this case. Now, with regard to the checks or reverses—that is the accepted phrase—we are really afraid in these days to talk about 'disasters.' The First Lord of the Treasury at Manchester distinctly stated there had been 'no disaster.' There has been no single great engagement in which we have met with an absolute disaster, but for the first time in our military history there has been a succession of checks or reverses—unredeemed as they have been by a single great military success in the whole course of the war—in many of which we have left prisoners in the enemy's hands. We began with the abandonment of the entrenched camp at Dundee, and of the great accumulation of stores that had been made there, of the wounded, and of the dying General, and we lost the headquarters of a regiment of cavalry that tried a cavalry pursuit. We lost the headquarters of two battalions at Nicholson's Nek; we lost the headquarters of one battalion and a very large portion of another battalion in the repulse at Stormberg; we lost the Colonel, most of the field officers, and the whole of one company of the Suffolks, on another occasion. These headquarters of cavalry, and the principal portion of the remaining men of five battalions of British infantry, are now prisoners at Pretoria—not to speak of what happened to the Highland Brigade at Magersfontein, or of the loss of the guns in the repulse at the Tugela, or of the fact that thirteen of our field guns, besides a mountain battery, are now in the enemy's hands. The loss of guns in proportion to our small strength of guns is equivalent to the loss of some 300 guns by the German army. None of these events constitutes what the First Lord of the Treasury calls a disaster. Probably he is right. But can any member of this House deny that the net result of these proceedings has been disastrous to the belief of the world in our ability to conduct a war? Therefore, if there has been, as the right hon. gentleman says, not one disaster, surely the result of the proceedings has been one disastrous to the credit of this country. There has been one immense redemption of that disaster, which is that all the Powers, however hostile, have very frankly acknowledged on these occasions the heroism of the officers and men. Our military reputation, which undoubtedly never stood lower in the eyes of the world than at the present moment, is redeemed in that respect, and the individual courage of officers and men never stood higher in the estimate of the world than it does now. It seems to me to be a patriotic duty of those who have in the past discussed in this House the question of Cabinet responsibility for military preparations to discuss the question now; to see who is responsible, whom—I will not say we will hang, but whom we are to hold blameworthy in the highest degree for what has occurred. I believe that the opinion is attributed to the Prime Minister that the British Constitution is not a fighting machine. I am told that he has thrown doubt upon the working of the British Constitution as a Constitution which will allow this country successfully to go to war. That is a very serious matter. The Constitution of this country has been maintained as a fighting machine by the members of this House who are now responsible for the Administration. No one has ever put the doctrine of Cabinet responsibility for the preparation for war higher than it has always been put by the present Leader of the House (Mr. Balfour), and anything more direct than the conflict on that point, as on many others, between his opinion and the opinion of the Prime Minister it is impossible to conceive.... On Thursday last the right hon. member who preceded me in this debate—the Under-Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs (Mr. Brodrick)—delivered a speech and said that all that had been done in this war had been 'solely dictated by military advice,' and 'military advice alone determined all that had been done.' I should like the House to consider what that statement means. The right hon. gentleman was the member who, on three occasions, brought the question of the ammunition supplies of this country before the House: it was he who moved the amendment which turned out the Rosebery Administration on the cordite vote, and he led the discussion on two subsequent occasions on which we debated the same question. At the opening of the next Parliament the whole question of Ministerial responsibility for war preparation was thoroughly and exhaustively considered by this House. I confess that I did not expect to hear the right hon. gentleman—who on those three occasions so firmly pressed, to the very extinction of the Government itself, the doctrine of Cabinet responsibility—as it were sheltering the Cabinet behind military advice, advice which he rejected, as also did the Leader of the House, with scorn upon that occasion.... I feel it a duty to myself, and to all who hold the same opinion, to press home this doctrine of Cabinet responsibility on this occasion. In that debate the hon. member who seems likely to follow me in this debate—the present Under-Secretary for War (Mr. Wyndham)—took part. He was then a private member and warmly occupied his mind upon this question, and he used these words: 'If they were overwhelmed by disasters, the Minister for War would be held responsible.' Not only he, but the whole Cabinet are responsible, and the present Leader of the House, in following the hon. member in that debate, emphasized that fact, and pointed out the importance of complete Cabinet responsibility. That doctrine was emphatically maintained. There are practical reasons why this question should be pressed home on this occasion. This is obviously the time to press it home if ever it should be done, and it seems to me that such practical reasons are to be found in two considerations. We have been told that at the beginning of every war it is always fated that there should be muddling. We have been told it from both sides of the House, that we always begin by muddling our wars. If there is one fact more certain than another, it is that in future wars, not with Boer Republics, but with Great Powers, there will be no time for muddling at the beginning of war, and it is vital that this muddling should be guarded against. If we are to look forward as a matter of certainty that this country is always to muddle at the beginning of a war, then we may look forward with almost certainty to defeat.”
Dilke then examined the excuses that had been made for the Government, to the effect that the war took them by surprise and that they had no knowledge of the Boer preparations. He showed that both these pleas were inconsistent with the facts. Mr. Balfour had said that the Government had thought it their duty, during the negotiations which preceded the war, to abstain from unnecessary menace. Dilke pointed out that they did not so abstain. Lord Salisbury had said on July 28th, 1899, “the Conventions are mortal ... they are liable to be destroyed.” That could only be understood by the Boers as holding out the prospect of a war in which the independence of their country would be taken away. Were these words wise when used without the smallest preparation for war having been made? As regards knowledge of the Boer preparations, the Intelligence Department had admirably done its work. No Government was ever so well informed as to the resources of its opponents as the British Government in entering upon this war. Dilke went on to say:
“Both by those who would have anticipated war and by the
Government
it has been alleged that the existence of a Parliamentary
Opposition
was the reason why the military precautions of the Government
were
inefficacious. But the Government has been in power since July,
1895, and has been supported by overwhelming majorities, and it
would have had the cheerful acquiescence of the House of
Commons for
every measure of military precaution and all the military
expenditure which was asked. The Cabinet are responsible; but
if
there is to be any difficulty on account of the existence of a
constitutional Opposition—even a weak one—I say that by that
doctrine we are fated to be beaten on every occasion we go to
war.
The time for the reform of our military system will come when
this
war has ended. We cannot reform it in a time of war. We have
often
addressed the House upon this subject. We preached to deaf
ears. We
were not listened to before war. Shall we be listened to when
war is
over? While I admit that in a time of war you cannot reform
your
military system, what you can do is to press home to the
Cabinet the
responsibility.... For some years past there have been
discussions
as to Empire expansion which have divided some of us from
others on
military questions. There are some of us, who are strong
supporters
of the Government in preparing for war in the present situation
of
the world, who are not in favour of what is called the
expansion of
the Empire. We have resisted it because we believed the
military
requirements of the Empire were greater—as it was put by Lord
Charles Beresford, whom we see here no longer—than we were
prepared
to meet. And the Government now come down to the House and
quietly
tell us that that is so. They have put it in the Queen's
Speech. We
have it stated that, although the money we have to spend in
military
preparations is more than that of any other Power in the world,
we
are going to be asked to spend more. I should hope that good
may
come out of evil, and that a result of this sad war may be the
proper utilization of our resources in preparing, in times of
peace,
all the military forces of what people call Greater Britain....
I
venture to say that the Government went into this war without
the
preparation they should have made. Their neglect of that
precaution
has brought about the reverses we have met with, and the
natural
consequence is the failure of our arms I have described. As
regards
the Crimean War, which in some respects has been compared with
this,
one is reminded of the present Commander-in-Chief, who has
written
these momentous words: The history of the Crimean War shows
'how an
army may be destroyed by a Ministry through want of ordinary
forethought.' I confess that I think there is only one point in
which the two cases are exactly parallel—for there are many
distinctions between them—and that is in the heroism of
officers
and men.”
On July 27th, 1900, on the occasion of a supplementary estimate for the South African War, Dilke criticized the censorship of letters from the front, in consequence of which the truth about the military mistakes made remained unknown. He reviewed a series of blunders that had been made in the war, and quoted the opinion of an eminent foreign strategist to the effect that “the mistakes which had been made were mistakes on immutable and permanent principles.” Thus, there was a doubt whether the army had been properly trained for war in the past and was being properly trained at that moment. He asked for a full inquiry into these matters.
That inquiry was never made. The Royal Commission appointed after the war to inquire into its conduct began by disclaiming authority to inquire into the policy out of which the war arose, and by asserting its own incompetence to discuss the military operations.
In a paper contributed to the New Liberal Review of February, 1901, Dilke reviewed the South African War, and summed up:
“The war, then, has revealed deficiency in the war training of
the
Staff in particular, and of the army generally. It has shown
that
the recommendations of the Commander-in-Chief to the Cabinet
for the
nomination of Generals to high commands were not based on real
tests. It has called attention to the amateurishness of
portions of
our forces. It has proved that for years the reformers have
been
right, and the War Office wrong, as regards the number and
proportion of guns needed by us and the rapidity of the
mobilization
of our artillery.
“Remedies which will certainly be attempted are—Better training
of
the Staff, especially in the thinking out and writing of
orders;
weeding out of incompetent amateurs from among our officers;
better
pay for the men; careful preparation in time of peace of a
picked
Imperial force of mounted infantry from all parts of the
Empire. But
greater changes, urgently as they are demanded by the national
interest, will not be accomplished, as public excitement will
die
down, and triflers and obstructives will remain at the head of
affairs, in place of the Carnot who is needed as organizer to
back
the best General that can be found for the Commander-in-Chief.
“The greatest of the lessons of the war was the revelation of
the
neglect, by statesmen, to prepare for wars which their policy
must
lead them to contemplate as possible.... The long duration of
the
war, with all its risks to our Imperial interests, is to be
laid at
the door of the politicians rather than of the Generals. This,
the
greatest lesson, has not been learnt.”
IV.
After the General Election of December, 1900, there was a shifting of offices in the Cabinet, by which Mr. Brodrick succeeded Lord Lansdowne as Secretary of State for War, and Lord Selborne became First Lord of the Admiralty instead of Mr. Goschen. Lord Roberts was brought home from South Africa to become Commander-in-Chief, and the direction of the war was left in the hands of Lord Kitchener. The first important event in the new Parliament was a speech by Lord Wolseley in the House of Lords, in which he warned the nation against the dangerous consequences of the system introduced in 1895, which failed to give its proper place to the military judgment in regard to preparations for war. The warning was disregarded. Mr. Brodrick announced the determination of the Government to maintain the system set up in 1895, and to give to Lord Roberts as Commander-in-Chief the same position of maimed and crippled authority as had been given to Lord Wolseley six years before.
Mr. Brodrick, while carrying on the war in South Africa, attempted at the same time to reform the army. The results were the more unfortunate because on vital matters, both of organization at the War Office and of the reorganization of the army, Mr. Brodrick insisted on overriding the great soldier to whom, as Commander-in-Chief, was due whatever confidence the country gave to the military administration. Mr. Brodrick was much preoccupied with the defence of the United Kingdom against invasion. In the debate on the Army Estimates of 1901, Dilke said:
“I am one of those who hold that the command of the seas is the
defence of this country. I believe that the British Army exists
mainly for the reinforcement of the Indian garrison, and, if
necessary, as the rudiment of that army which, in the event of
a
great war, would be necessary.”
Dilke continued to support the Admiralty in its endeavours to strengthen the navy. In the debate on the Navy Estimates of 1901 (March 22nd) he said:
“The Secretary of State for the Colonies a few years ago made a
speech in favour of an alliance with a military Power.
[Footnote:
See infra, p. 491.] He said that the alternative was to
build up
so as to make ourselves safe against a combination of three
Powers,
and that that would entail an addition of fifty per cent. to
the
estimates. Since that time we have added more than fifty per
cent.
to our estimates. Of course the expenditure is very great; but
is
there a man in this House who believes that it is not necessary
for
us to maintain that practical standard which would lead even
three
Powers to hesitate before attacking? During the last year we
have,
happily, had friendship between ourselves and Germany; I
believe
that friendship may long continue, and I hope it will. But it
is
impossible to shut our eyes to the fact that there have been
distinctly proposed to the German Houses, by Admiral Tirpitz,
estimates which are based on the possibility of a war with
England.
Von der Goltz, who is the highest literary authority on this
subject, has said the same thing. We have seen also that
remarkable
preparation of strategic cables on the part of Germany ... in
order
to be entirely independent of British cables in the event of a
possible naval war. In face of facts of that kind, which can be
infinitely multiplied, it seems to me it would be monstrous on
our
part to fail to maintain that standard, and that it is our
bounden
duty to make up for the delays which have occurred, and to vote
programmes for the future which should be sufficient to keep up
that
standard.”
When the Navy Estimates for 1902 were introduced into the House of Commons by Arnold-Forster as Parliamentary Secretary to the Admiralty, Mr. Lough moved an amendment: “That the growing expenditure on the naval defences of the Empire imposes under the existing conditions an undue burden on the taxpayers of the United Kingdom.” Dilke, in opposing the amendment, deprecated the introduction of party considerations into a discussion concerning the navy. The time taken to build ships ought to be borne in mind. The usual period had lately been four years; many of the ships of the 1897 programme had not yet been commissioned; therefore it was necessary to remember that the country would go into a naval war with ships according to the programme of four or five years before war was declared. Mr. Goschen was a careful First Lord of the Admiralty, yet Mr. Goschen in his programme year after year alluded to the necessity of maintaining a fleet which would cause not two but three Powers to pause before they attacked us. To his (Dilke's) mind, it was infinitely more important to the country that its expenditure should be shaped, not towards meeting a sudden attack by two Powers, which was not going to occur, but towards meeting—not immediately, but in time to come—the possibility of an eventual joining together of three Powers, one of which was very rapidly building a magnificent fleet. From that point of view the programme of the Government this year was a beggarly programme.
In introducing the Navy Estimates for 1903 Arnold-Forster said that they were of a magnitude unparalleled in peace or war. Dilke, in supporting them, said (March 17th):
“The standard which Lord Spencer gave to this House was not a
fleet
equivalent to three fleets—not a fleet, certainly, on all
points
equivalent to the fleets of France, Germany, and Russia—but a
standard which gave us such a position in the world of fleets
as
would cause three Powers to pause before they entered into a
coalition against us. That was a position he had always
contended
was necessary for the safety of this country.... The only weak
point
that one could discern as really dangerous in the future was
the
training of the officers for high command and the selection of
officers, which would give this country, in the event of war,
that
real unity of operations which ought to be our advantage
against any
allied Powers.”
V.
On June 20th, 1902, Lord Charles Beresford had raised the question of the organization of the Admiralty, which he held to be defective for the purpose of preparation for war. “The administrative faculty,” he said, “should be absolutely separate from the executive faculty, but at present they were mixed up.” Campbell-Bannerman held that no change was necessary. Dilke supported Lord Charles Beresford, and after reviewing the cordite debates of 1895, to which both the previous speakers had referred, gave his reasons for holding that the duty of the Cabinet was to control both services in order to secure that each should take its proper share in defence. “If there was a very strong man, or even one who thought himself very strong, at the head of either department, the present system tended to break down, because, unless there was some joint authority in the Cabinet strong enough to control even a strong First Lord of the Admiralty, no joint consideration of the views of the two departments could be obtained. At the present moment the two services competed.” Lord Charles Beresford and Dilke were supported by Sir John Colomb, and in his reply Arnold-Forster said: “I cannot but reaffirm the belief I held before I stood at this table, and since I have stood here, that there is a need for some reinforcement of the intellectual equipment which directs or ought to direct the enormous forces of our Empire.” The question was raised again on August 6th by Major Seely, in a speech in which he commented on the lack of a body charged with the duty of studying strategical questions. Mr. Balfour thereupon said:
“We cannot leave this matter to one department or two
departments
acting separately. It is a joint matter; it must be a joint
matter.
I hope my honourable friend will take it from me that the
Government
are fully alive, and have, if I may say so, long been fully
alive,
to the difficulty of the problem which presents itself to his
mind
and which he has explained to the House; and that that problem
is
one always present to our minds. It is one which we certainly
do not
mean to neglect to meet and grapple with to the best of our
ability.”
In 1903, in an article contributed to the Northern Newspaper Syndicate, Dilke wrote:
“We are face to face with the fact that Mr. Brodrick's scheme is
admitted from all sides, except by those actually responsible
for it
who are still holding office, to be a failure; that under this
scheme the charge on the British Empire for defence in time of
peace
stands at eighty-six millions sterling, of which fifty-two
millions
at least are for land defence, nevertheless ill secured; that
without a complete change of system these gigantic figures must
rapidly increase; and that, while all agree that in our case
the
navy ought to be predominant, no one seems to be able to
control the
War Office, or to limit the expenditure upon land defence as
contrasted with naval preparations. The service members of the
House
of Commons, who used to be charged with wasting their own and
the
nation's time upon military details, or upon proposals for
increase
of expenditure, have shown their patriotism and their
intelligence
by going to the root of this great question. They brought about
the
declaration of the Secretary of the Admiralty, Mr.
Arnold-Forster,
on June 20th, 1902, and the complete acceptance of that
declaration
by the Prime Minister on August 6th. They have now forced on
Parliament and on the Prime Minister the necessity of taking
real
action upon his declaration that 'the problem of Imperial
defence
cannot be left to one department or two departments acting
separately.' The utilization of the resources of the British
Empire
for war must be the business of the Prime Minister, who is
above the
War Office and the Admiralty, and who alone can lead the
Cabinet to
co-ordinate the efforts of the two services.”
In October, 1903, Arnold-Forster was appointed to succeed Mr. Brodrick as Secretary of State for War. He had previously expressed, in conversation, his wish to see the whole subject of Imperial defence entrusted to a Committee of three men conversant with it, and had named Sir Charles Dilke and Sir John Colomb as two of the three whom he would choose if he had the power. In November a Committee of three was appointed by Mr. Balfour to report on the organization of the War Office. Its members were Lord Esher, Admiral Sir John (now Lord) Fisher, and Sir George Sydenham Clarke (now Lord Sydenham). The first instalment of this Committee's report, published on February 1st, 1904, proposed the reconstitution of the War Office on the model of the Board of Admiralty, and as a preliminary the dismissal of the Commander-in-Chief and the heads of the great departments at the War Office.
At the same time the Cabinet Committee of Defence was reconstituted under the presidency of the Prime Minister (Mr. Balfour). Thus at length, eleven years after Sir Charles Dilke's first conversations with Mr. Balfour on the subject, was adopted the suggestion he had urged for so many years, and so fully explained in his speech of March 16th, 1894, that a Prime Minister should undertake to consider the needs both of the army and navy, and the probable functions of both in war.
VI.
The result was very soon manifest in a complete change of policy, which was no doubt facilitated by the presence in the Cabinet, as Secretary of State for War, of Mr. Arnold-Forster, one of the signatories of the joint letter of 1894.
On March 28th, 1905, Arnold-Forster said:
“We have been adding million after million to our naval
expenditure.
Are all these millions wasted? If it be true, as we are told by
representatives of the Admiralty, that the navy is in a
position
such as it has never occupied before—that it is now not only
our
first line of defence, but our guarantee for the possession of
our
own islands—is that to make no difference to a system which
has
grown up avowedly and confessedly on the basis of defending
these
islands by an armed land force against an invasion? Is that to
make
no difference? Is this view some invention of my own
imagination?
No, sir, that is the deliberate conclusion of the Government,
advised by a body which has been called into, I believe, a
useful
existence during the last eighteen months, and which I regret
was
not called into existence much longer ago—the Committee of
Defence.... I have seen it stated that, provided our navy is
sufficient, the greatest anticipation we can form in the way of
a
landing of a hostile army would be a force of 5,000. I should
be
deceiving the House if I thought that represented the extreme
naval
view. The extreme naval view is that the crew of a dinghy could
not
land in this country in the face of the navy.”
This speech showed the conversion of the Government, for which Sir Charles Dilke had laboured so long, to the doctrine of the primacy of the navy and of defence by the command of the sea.
On May 11th, Mr. Balfour in the name of the Committee of Defence put forth the general view which that body had reached. In the first place, provided the navy was efficient, a successful invasion of the country upon a large scale need not be contemplated. Secondly, the Committee had gone on the broad line that our force should as far as possible be concentrated at the centre of the Empire. This had rendered unnecessary expenditure which had been undertaken under a different view of our needs, the most notable case being the works at St. Lucia, which had been made by Lord Carnarvon into a great naval base. Lastly, with regard to India, the Government adopted Lord Kitchener's view that in addition to drafts there should be available in the relatively early stages of the war eight divisions of infantry and other corresponding arms.
Dilke, who had described himself as a constant supporter of the blue-water view, agreed with the Government with regard to invasion, and welcomed Mr. Balfour's moderate view with regard to the needs of India. But he pointed out that vast sums of money had been spent in the fortification of places which were now discovered to be unnecessary.
“He asked the Committee to remember how far the responsibility
of
all this expenditure had been on the present occupants of
office. He
believed that the Defence Committee of the Cabinet was created
by
Lord Rosebery at the end of his Administration in 1895. That
was the
first form of the Committee. Immediately the new Government
came in
it assumed its second form, and the Defence Committee of the
Conservative Government, formed in 1895 under the presidency of
the
Duke of Devonshire, lasted for many years, and was composed of
substantially the same gentlemen as were in power now. It was
constantly vouched to the House as the great co-ordinating
authority, and as the body responsible for expenditure on an
enormous scale on principles diametrically opposed to those now
held. The third form of the Committee was that which was
adopted
when the Prime Minister acceded to his present office. The
right
hon. gentleman came to this House and at once explained the new
form
of the Committee on March 5th, 1903.... The Committee had heard
to-day the extent to which invasion at home was believed in by
the
Defence Committee.... It was firmly expected from the moment
that
the Government announced their naval view that the reduction
would
be under the military head. But instead of that the reduction
had
been on the Navy Estimates, and that had not been accompanied
by a
reduction on the army votes. That had been the amazing effect
of the
co-ordination. Had any member of the Committee calculated how
much
money had been wasted in the last nine and a half years by the
non-adoption in 1895, when virtually the present Government
came
into office, of the policy which had been adopted now?”
VII.
The Government which had thus tardily followed Sir Charles Dilke's lead had lost the confidence of the country. The General Election of 1905 gave the Liberals a large majority. Sir Henry Campbell-Bannerman, the new Prime Minister, had not forgotten Dilke's vote in the cordite division of 1895, and did not share his view of the necessity to be ready for war, and to rely, not upon arbitration, but upon the organization of defensive preparations. Dilke was not included in the new Ministry, in which Mr. (now Lord) Haldane was appointed Secretary of State for War. Mr. Haldane undertook a fresh reorganization of the military forces of the country, taking the Committee of Defence and the Army Council as they were left by Mr. Balfour after the changes proposed by the Esher Committee. The Order in Council gave the Secretary of State the power to reserve for his own decision any matter whatever, and to impose that decision upon the Army Council, a power not contemplated by the Esher Committee's report. Mr. Haldane availed himself of this power and of the assistance of Colonel Ellison, who had been Secretary to the Esher Committee, but was not a member of the Army Council, to prepare his scheme. It consisted in the organization of an expeditionary force, which was to be composed of six divisions and a cavalry division, with a total field strength of 160,000 men, fully equipped for war, together with additional troops at home to make good the losses of a campaign. This force was to be made up of the regular army (of which the establishments were reduced by some 20,000 of all arms), of its reserve, and of the militia, renamed special reserve, also with a reduced establishment, and with a liability to serve abroad in case of war. The Volunteer force was to be renamed the Territorial force, and its officers and men to be brought under the Army Act, the men to be enlisted for a term of years and paid. It was to be organized, as the Norfolk Commission had suggested, into brigades and divisions. But the further suggestion of the same Commission, that a member of the Army Council familiar with the volunteer system should be charged with its supervision, was not adopted. Mr. Haldane's view was that the territorial troops could not in peace receive a training which would prepare them for war, but that, as England was not a Continental Power and was protected by her navy, there would be six months' time, after a war had begun, to give them a training for war. The force was to be administered by County Associations to be constituted for the purpose. The scheme was gradually elaborated, and in its later stage improved by the transformation of the University and some other volunteer and cadet corps into officers' training corps. The works which, at the suggestion of Sir John Ardagh, had been prepared for the defence of London were abandoned.
Mr. Haldane first expounded his plans in March, 1906, and in the debate of March 15th Dilke said:
“There was a little too much depreciation of the Volunteers; and
although he had always been considered a strong supporter of
the
'blue-water' view, yet he had always believed in accepting from
the
Volunteers all the service they could give, as he believed they
would give an enormous potential supply of men.”
Mr. Haldane explained (February 25th, 1907) that the expeditionary force would require only seventy-two batteries, while the army actually had a hundred and five; there was therefore a surplus of thirty-three batteries which he would use as training batteries in which to train men for divisional ammunition columns. Upon this Dilke's comment was that “if the officer difficulty could be solved, then the real military problem would be solved.” We could raise men fast enough through the volunteer system, and turn them into good infantry, provided there was a sufficient supply of officers qualified to train them; but the infantry which could thus be produced in a few months would require to be supplemented by artillery and cavalry which could not be improvised. He would have faced the cost of keeping up these arms, and would not have saved by turning batteries into ammunition columns.
In the debate on Mr. Haldane's Territorial and Reserve Forces Bill (June 3rd), Dilke voted for an amendment of which the purpose was to establish a department at the War Office under an officer having special knowledge and experience with the militia, yeomanry, and volunteers, ranking as third member of the Army Council. This amendment, however, was not carried.
In an article in the Manchester Guardian of June 6th, 1907, Dilke explained his main objections to Mr. Haldane's scheme and to the Bill which was to lay its foundation.
“The cost,” he wrote, “must undoubtedly be large, and it is difficult to see where the substantial saving on Army Estimates, twice promised by Mr. Ritchie when Chancellor of the Exchequer, but not yet secured, is to be obtained. As an advocate of a strong fleet, I have a special reason, equivalent to that of the most rigid economist, for insisting upon the reduction in our enormous military charge, inasmuch as the money unexpectedly needed for the army will come off the fleet.”
Dilke thought that the defence of Great Britain depended upon the navy; that so long as the navy was equal to its task invasion was not to be feared. The function of the military forces would be to fight an enemy abroad. He, therefore, held it a mistake to increase expenditure on troops which it was not proposed to train to meet foreign regulars. The Territorial army would be the volunteers under a new name, but without an improved training. As the linked-battalion system and the long term of service were retained, the regular army would still be costly, and its reserves or power of quick expansion less than they might be. Mr. Haldane would be compelled to retain a high rate of War Office expenditure, and this would involve a reduction on the outlay for the navy, which was all-important. Mr. Haldane, however, had the support of a very large majority, and argument was of little avail. Sir Charles Dilke therefore threw his weight into the debates on the Navy estimates, in which he consistently supported the Admiralty in every increase.
Year after year he persevered in the effort to counteract the tendency to exaggerate the importance of military schemes and military expenditure, especially upon troops not fully trained and not kept ready for action abroad, and to point out that the effect of such schemes could not but be to reduce the amount of attention and of money devoted to the navy. In 1904 (March 1st) he had said:
“It was an extraordinary fact that, in all calculations on the
subject of the expenditure of the army, the cost of the army
outside
the United Kingdom was never taken into account. We were
spending
vastly more upon the land services than we were upon our naval
services, and so long as that was so he confessed that he
should
view with more than indulgence what was called the extravagant
policy in regard to the navy.”
In 1907 (March 5th) he expressed his disapproval of the sweeping change by which the defence of ports by submarine mines had been abolished. “Newcastle had been defended by means of an admirable system of submarine mines which had no equal in the world. So good was it that the volunteer submarine miners of the Tyne division were employed to do the laying of electric mines at Portsmouth and other naval ports. Newcastle was now without that defence.” He explained that these mines, which had cost a million, had been sold. Had they fetched L50,000? He was not content with Mr. Haldane's account of the steps taken to prepare for defence against possible raid. On this subject, writing for the United Service Magazine of May, 1908, a paper entitled “Strong at all Points,” which enforced his view of the supreme importance of the navy, he said:
“The provision for time of war, after complete mobilization of
the
Territorial army, may be perfect upon paper; but the real
question
is, how to obtain the manning of the quick-firing guns, say on
the
Tyne, in time of political complication, by trained men, who
sleep
by the guns and are able to use them when awakened suddenly in
the
dead of night.”
In the discussion of the estimates of July 31st, 1907, he said that, “bearing in mind the enormous importance in naval matters of a steady policy, he should resist any reduction that might be moved.” On the same occasion he pointed out that, “if there was any danger from Germany, it was not the danger of invasion or from the fleet, but it was her growing superiority in the scientific equipment of her people.” Yet he declined to encourage panic, and in the debate of March 22nd, 1909, when the Opposition moved a vote of censure because of a supposed unforeseen start gained by Germany in shipbuilding, pointed out the reasons for not indulging in a scare.
Dilke closely watched the new developments in armament and construction, and from time to time pressed them upon the attention of the Government. As early as 1901, in an article reviewing the progress of war in the nineteenth century, he had said: “The greatest change in the battlefields of the future, as compared with those of a few years ago, will be found in the developments and increased strength of the artillery.” In 1907, in the debate on the Navy estimates, he suggested that “the reserve of guns was a matter which needed the utmost diligence.” Docks, he thought, were proportionately more important than battleships. In 1907 (April 25th) he said: “A base was needed east of Dover—Rosyth or Chatham: he need not suggest or criticize the spot that should be chosen. Whether the Hague Conference prohibited floating mines or not, they would be used; and that being so, they must contemplate either the extension of Chatham or the creation of an establishment at a different point of the east coast.” To this subject he repeatedly returned. In 1908 (March 3rd): “The necessity for a large establishment in a safer place than the Channel had been raised for many years, and was fully recognized when Rosyth was brought before them. Both parties had shirked the expenditure which both declared necessary.” On March 10th: “There were important works, docks and basins in which big ships could be accommodated, and these by universal admission should be made as rapidly as possible. Big ships were worse than useless if there was no dock or basin accommodation for them.... The limited instalment of one dock and one basin contemplated was only to be completed in eleven years. He believed that was bad economy.... The need for this expenditure had long been foreseen.” Again, in 1909, on July 1st, he pointed out that the Governments of both parties had shirked the expenditure on Rosyth, of which the need had been known as early as 1902. The delay had been enormously grave. The report which contained the whole scheme had been presented to Parliament in January, 1902; the land had been bought in 1903, and the contract was made only in March, 1909.
Sir Charles's command of detail made his hearers apt to suppose that he was mainly concerned with technical matters. But no impression could be farther from the truth. Never for a moment did he lose sight of the large issues, and of the purpose to which all measures of naval and military preparation are directed. It was to the large issues that his last important Parliamentary speech on the subject of defence was directed.
“We talk a little,” he said on March 7th, 1910, “about the possibility of invasion when we talk of our Territorial army, but we do not—the overwhelming majority of us—believe the country is open to invasion, or that the fleet has fallen off in its power of doing its duty as compared with days past.... No one of us who is prepared to pay his part, and to call upon others to pay their part, to keep the fleet up to the highest standard of efficiency and safety which we at present enjoy—no one of us ought to be prepared to run the Territorial army on this occasion as though it were the main and most costly portion of the estimates that are put before the House. The Territorial army is defensible as the Volunteers were defensible. It is an improvement on the volunteer system, and it might have been made without the statute on which it is based, but that it will add an enormous expenditure to our army is not the case. Our Territorial army, in fact, cannot be kept in view as the first object which we have to consider in the course of these debates.... It is supposed to be the one certain result of the last General Election that there is a large majority in favour of maintaining our naval position; but we cannot maintain that naval position without straining every nerve to do it, and we shall not be able to put all our energy into maintaining that position if we talk about invasion, and tell the people of this country that the fleet cannot do its duty.... If you put the doctrine of invasion so high, and if you tell them that in any degree their safety depends upon the Territorial army trained and serving here at home, then you run a great risk of compromising your naval defence and taking money out of one pocket and putting it into another, and of being weak at both points, and creating a Territorial army which could not face a great Continental force landed on our shores, and at the same time detracting from the power of your fleet.... The Territorial army, like the Volunteers, is really defended by most of us, in our hearts if not in our speech, as a reserve of the regular, expeditionary, offensive army for fighting across the seas.... My right hon. friend Mr. Haldane has always maintained the view that your army and army expenditure must depend upon policy. It is no good fighting him; he has both Houses of Parliament and both parties in his pocket. He is a man of legions political as well as military. The school represented by myself and the dominant school represented by him have differed, not upon the question of policy dictating your armaments, but upon the question of how your policy and your armaments together would work out.”
Sir Charles Dilke's last utterance on defence was a review of Sir Cyprian Bridge's Sea-Power, and Other Studies, in July, 1910. It was a plea for reliance upon the navy to prevent invasion and upon a mobile military force for a counter-stroke. “I confess,” Dilke ended, “that, as one interested in complete efficiency rather than especially in economy to the national purse, I join Sir Cyprian Bridge in asking to be shown, at least, the mobile, efficient, regular force ready for immediate service across the seas.”
In the effort of a quarter of a century to have his country prepared for the struggle which was to come Dilke was associated with others, many of them conspicuous for knowledge and zeal; the services of Arnold-Forster, of John and Philip Colomb, and of Chesney, have been too little appreciated by their countrymen. Of their common endeavour Dilke was the chief exponent. At every stage of the movement his was its most characteristic and most comprehensive expression, marking the central line of thought. Some of the dominant ideas were his own. From him came the conception of defence as not merely national but imperial. He first pointed out the true function of the Prime Minister in relation to it. The actual development proceeded along the lines which he drew—a strong navy; a general staff at the War Office; a regular army of first-rate quality, that could be sent abroad at short notice, most likely for the defence of Belgium against attacks from Germany; expansion to be sought, in the first instance, from the numbers furnished by the volunteer system. There were points which he failed to carry—the provision of arms and ammunition for the multitude of soldiers who would be forthcoming from the Empire, as well as of that modern artillery which must play so great a part in a future campaign; the search for generals capable of command in war; the enforcement of the responsibility of Ministers for preparations neglected. What was accomplished and what was left undone give the measure of Sir Charles Dilke as the statesman of Imperial Defence.
APPENDIX I
'“December 21st, 1893.
'“Dear Mr. Balfour,
'“I have been thinking over the matter which you mentioned in
the
tea-room yesterday. I am absolutely convinced of your own
detachment
from party in connection with it, and I write as one not likely
at
any time to act generally in connection with your party, unless
in
the (I hope most improbable) event of doubtful or unfortunate
war.
'“The suggestion that I am inclined to make is that a letter
should
be written, to be signed by Sir George Chesney as a
Conservative, by
myself as a Gladstonian Liberal, by Arnold-Forster as a Liberal
Unionist, and Spenser Wilkinson as a civilian expert, to Mr.
Gladstone as Prime Minister, you and Chamberlain as leaders of
your
parties in the House of Commons, and Lord Salisbury and the
Duke of
Devonshire as leaders of the same parties in the House of
Lords;
that a copy should be sent by me confidentially to the Prince
of
Wales, it not being right, of course, that we should in any way
address the Queen; that this letter should not be made public
either
at the time or later; that this letter should press for the
joint
consideration of the naval and military problem, and should
point to
the creation of a Defence Ministry, of which the War Office and
the
Admiralty would be the branches, or to a more active control of
the
Secretary of State for War and the First Lord of the Admiralty
by
the Prime Minister personally. We should be put in our places
by Mr.
Gladstone, but I fancy, probably, not by the other four.
'“I had sooner discuss this matter first with you, if you think
there is anything in it, than with Chamberlain, because he is,
oddly
enough, a much stronger party man than you are, and would be
less
inclined (on account of national objects which to him are
predominant) to keep party out of his mind in connection with
it. I
have not, therefore, as yet mentioned the matter to him. If you
think ill of the whole suggestion, and are not even disposed to
suggest modification of it, it can be stopped at the present
point.
'“The addition of Spenser Wilkinson to a member of each party is
because I owe to him the clearing of my own mind, and believe
that
he is probably the best man on such questions who ever lived,
except
Clausewitz. When I first wrote upon them in The Present
Position of
European Politics in 1886-87, and in The British Army
in 1887-88,
I was in a fog—seeing the existing evils, but not clearly
seeing
the way out. In the Defence chapter of Problems of Greater
Britain
I began to see my way. Admiral Colomb, and Thursfield of The
Times, who are really expositors of the application to our
naval
position of the general principles of military strategy of
Clausewitz, helped me by their writings to find a road. I then
set
to work with Spenser Wilkinson, whose leaders in the
Manchester
Guardian (which he has now quitted, except as an amateur)
struck me
as being perfect, to think out the whole question; and we
succeeded,
by means of a little book we wrote together—Imperial
Defence,
published in February, 1892—in afterwards procuring the
agreement
of Lord Roberts in views widely different in many points from
those
which Lord Roberts had previously held. We are now in the
position
of being able to declare that in naval particulars there is no
difference of opinion among the experts, and that in military
there
is so little upon points of importance that the experts are
virtually agreed. This is a great point, never reached before
last
year, and it is owing to Spenser Wilkinson, and in a less
degree to
Arnold-Forster, that it has been reached.
'“The question of the length at which the proposed letter should
develop the existing dangers and the remedies is, of course,
secondary.
'“The dangers are much greater than even the alarmist section of
the
public supposes. For example, the public have not in the least
grasped the fact that we were on the brink of war with France
at the
moment of the Siam blockade, nor have they realized the great
risk
of the fall of the monarchy in Italy and of a complete change
in
Italian policy, leading more or less rapidly to an alliance
with
France and Russia. The adoption of Lefevre's policy by the
Liberal
party, which is possible at any time, and the announcement that
we
do not hope to hold the Mediterranean, might attach to the
Franco-
Russian combination even the present advisers of King Humbert.
'“With regard to Siam, neither the English nor the French
Government
dare publish the despatches which passed about the blockade,
and
they have not been able to come to an agreement as to what
portion
of the papers should be published, although both Governments
have
long since promised publication. The words used in the House of
Commons by Sir Edward Grey were altered by the French
Government
into meaningless words, and the words actually used excluded by
Governmental action from every newspaper in France.”'
[Footnote: On December 25th, 1913, M. d'Estournelles de Constant
wrote to the Frankfurter Zeitung an article warning
Europe against
the chance of war breaking out, not because it is desired, but
“by
chance, by mistake, by stupidity,” and he cited an instance
from his
experiences in 1893:
“The stage was Siam, where British India and French Indo-China
were
seeking to push, one against the other, their rival spheres of
influence. Lord Dufferin, British Ambassador in Paris and
ex-Viceroy
of India, was upholding the British claim, but it was in London
that
the negotiations were carried on. The irreparable conflict
broke out
on the day when the French Admiral, the bearer of an ultimatum,
anchored his ships in the very river of Bangkok. I was
negotiating,
but during this time the British Government telegraphed to the
Admiral commanding the Pacific station to proceed also to
Bangkok
with his whole fleet, which was far superior in numbers to
ours.
“I knew nothing about it; no one knew anything about it. I was
negotiating, and it was war almost to a certainty without
anybody
suspecting it. I only knew this later. Happily, wireless
telegraphy
did not then exist, and the orders of the Admiralty did not
reach in
time the British squadron, which was then sailing somewhere in
the
Pacific. Thanks to this chance delay, the negotiations had time
to
come to a successful conclusion, and the agreement was
concluded.”]
On the same day Dilke received the following reply:
“I shall be most pleased to have a further conversation with you
on
the all-important subject on which we had a brief talk
yesterday,
and which is dealt with in your letter of to-day.
“I should like, however, to discuss the matter first with Lord
Salisbury (whom I shall see to-morrow), and, if you will allow
me,
to show him your letter.
“I may, however, say at once that I have always been in
favour of
a Defence Committee of Cabinet, with expert advisers and
permanent
records carrying on the work from Government to Government; and
that, oddly enough, I pressed the idea on Asquith last week. I
think
he and Rosebery would be in favour of the plan; not so the
older
members of the Cabinet.”
'On Friday, January 5th, 1894, I had a long interview with
Balfour
upon my letter, and wrote on it to Wilkinson as follows:
'“Confidential.
'“76, Sloane Street, S.W.,
'“January 5th, 1894.
'“Dear Wilkinson,
'“I saw Balfour (in a full discussion) this afternoon. We
provisionally agreed, with Lord Salisbury's consent, that Sir
George
Chesney, Arnold-Forster (if he agrees), you, and I, should sign
a
letter which we should address (with the view to publishing it
with
the replies) to Mr. Gladstone as Prime Minister and leader of
my
party, to Lord Salisbury and to Balfour as leaders of Sir
George
Chesney's party, and to the Duke of Devonshire and Chamberlain
as
leaders of Arnold-Forster's party, and of which I should
privately
send a copy to the Prince of Wales in the hope of its reaching
the
Queen. In this letter we should press for the joint
consideration of
the naval and military problem, and point either to the
creation of
a Defence Ministry, of which the War Office and Admiralty would
be
the branches—to which the objection is that Parliamentary
consent
would be necessary—or to a more active control over the
Secretary
of State for War and the First Lord of the Admiralty, and their
Estimates, by the Prime Minister personally, or to that which
is
Balfour's own scheme and which has the support, among our
people, of
Rosebery and Asquith: the creation of a Defence Committee of
the
Cabinet, ordinarily to consist of the Prime Minister, of the
leader
of the other House, of the Secretary of State for War, the
First
Lord, and (doubtless) the Chancellor of the Exchequer (?), with
expert advisers and permanent records which would carry on
their
work from Government to Government. Mr. Gladstone would snub
us. The
other four would not, and our proposal (that is, our third
proposal,
which is Balfour's) would probably be adopted when the
Conservatives
came in, and continued by the Liberals.
'“Balfour would be very willing to express his favourable
opinion of
our view in debate in the House of Commons, should we raise one
next
Session, and Lord Salisbury is less inclined to make a strong
and
distinctly favourable reply to our letter than is Balfour.
'“Balfour would go more willingly, if possible, than he does
into
the schemes if he could see his way beforehand to the saving of
money on the army for the purpose of devoting it to the navy.
He
says that he himself cannot put his finger on the waste which
he
knows must exist, that Buller has to some extent his confidence
and
tells him that there is none, although Balfour is not convinced
by
this. We discussed our Indian army scheme, to which he sees no
objection, and (very fully) the Duke of Cambridge and the
extent to
which he will be supported by the Queen.
'“Balfour sees immense difficulty in the absence of a
sufficiently
commanding expert, and in the consequent jealousy between the
Admiralty and War Office officials.
'“Will the letter which Sir George Chesney has do as a base, or
would it be better to write a shorter and a fresh letter? If
the
latter, will you try your hand at it, if you approve? And after
noting this will you return it to me, that I may send it to Sir
George Chesney and then to Arnold-Forster?
'“Balfour had in reading us [Footnote: “Us” refers to the
joint
work on Imperial Defence. One of the recommendations was to
substitute marines for soldiers in the small garrisons, such as
Bermuda.] asked questions through George Hamilton, who agrees
with
us, on the point of further employment of marines, and has been
told
that they would be sadly costly.
'“Yours very truly,
'“Charles W. Dilke.”'
APPENDIX II
In reply to the joint letter, Chamberlain wrote to Dilke:
“I have received the interesting paper on the subject of
National
Defence which you have communicated to me on behalf of yourself
and
the other signatories. One of the greatest difficulties which
any
politician must feel in dealing with this question has been the
apparent difference of opinion among those best qualified to
speak
authoritatively on the subject, and it is an important advance
to
find practical proposals agreed to by some of those who have
given
special study to the problems involved. Without venturing at
the
present state of the inquiry to commit myself to any specific
proposal, I may say that I am favourably inclined to the main
lines
laid down in your paper—namely, the closer union between the
two
great departments of national defence, and the recognition of
the
responsibility of the professional advisers of the Cabinet on
all
questions of military and naval provision and administration.”
Mr. Balfour wrote:
“I beg to acknowledge the receipt of your letter of February
12th,
dealing with certain very important points connected with the
problem of National Defence. Though it would be inopportune for
me
to pass any detailed judgment upon the scheme which you have
laid
before me in outline, and though it is evident that
difficulties of
a serious kind must attend any effort to carry out so important
a
change in our traditional methods of dealing with the Admiralty
and
the War Office, I may yet be permitted to express my own
conviction
that the evils that you indicate are real evils, and that the
imperfections in our existing system, on which you insist,
might
under certain not impossible contingencies seriously imperil
our
most important national interests.
“That four gentlemen of different training, belonging to
different
parties in the State, approaching this subject from different
points
of view, and having little, perhaps, in common except a very
intimate knowledge of the questions connected with National
Defence,
should be in entire agreement as to the general lines along
which
future reformation should proceed, is a fact of which the
public
will doubtless take note, and which is not likely to be ignored
by
those responsible for the preservation of the Empire.”
'Our letter was in all the papers about February 28th (1894),
with
replies from Balfour and Chamberlain. Mr. Gladstone's reply,
written
just before he resigned, was in his own hand, and more than
usually
legible. Though it was not marked “Private,” I did not print
it, as
it seemed too personal and playful. It meant that he had
resigned,
but I did not know this till an hour after I had received it:
'“You will forgive my pleading eyesight, which demanded the help
of
others and thereby retarded operations, as an excuse for my
having
failed to acknowledge the paper on Naval Defence which you were
so
good as to send me. You will, I fear, find me a less
interesting
correspondent than some who have replied at length, for I fear
I
ought to confine myself to assuring you that I have taken care
it
should come to the notice of my colleagues.”
'On March 9th I sat near to Asquith at a dinner, and he told me
that
his Defence Committee of the Cabinet, favoured by Balfour and
Rosebery, would soon be “a fact.” The decision was made known
in a
debate which I raised on the 16th.'
A note adds: 'When the Tories came in in June, 1895, they adopted the scheme of a Minister (the Duke of Devonshire) over both army and navy, which had been put forward in the Dilke—Chesney—Arnold-Forster— Wilkinson correspondence with Balfour and Chamberlain, and originally invented by me. On the night of the Government (Liberal) defeat Campbell-Bannerman had promised a Commander-in-Chief who should be the Chief Military Adviser, a double triumph for my view.'
In 1903, Chamberlain, by raising the question of Tariff Reform and putting himself at the head of a movement for revising the Free Trade policy which had been accepted by both the great political parties since 1846, practically broke up the Conservative Government. It survived, indeed, under the leadership of Mr. Balfour; but it was only a feeble shadow of the powerful Administration which Lord Salisbury had formed in 1895.
On the motion for adjournment before the Whitsuntide recess (May 28th, 1903), Sir Charles raised the whole question of commercial policy, directing himself chiefly to the speeches that had been made by Mr. Balfour and by Mr. Bonar Law. But it was Mr. Chamberlain's policy that was in question. Years later, after the whole subject has been incessantly discussed, it is difficult to realize the effect produced by the sudden and unexpected onset of that redoubtable champion. Free Trade had been so long taken for granted that the case for it had become unfamiliar; what remained was an academic conviction, and against that Chamberlain arrayed an extraordinary personal prestige backed by a boldness of assertion to which his position as a business man lent authority. To meet an onset so sudden and so ably conducted was no easy task, and for Dilke there was the unhappy personal element of a first angry confrontation with his old ally. Mr. Chamberlain described Sir Charles's motion as gratuitous and harassing, “an affair of spies,” for a day had been fixed for the regular encounter. Yet what was needed then was to show on the Liberal side that confidence which anticipates the combat. The temper of the time is well indicated by a letter from an old friend, the Bishop of Hereford:
“I hope you will stick to the business, and protect ordinary
people
from the new sophistry both by speech and writing. So few
people
have any intellectual grip that everything may depend on the
leadership of a few men like yourself, who can speak with
knowledge
and authority, and will take the trouble to put concrete facts
before the public.”
Meanwhile Tariff Reform had begun to act as a disintegrant on the Unionist party, and by the end of October, 1903, Lord James was writing to Sir Charles Dilke as to the position of Unionist Free Traders: “Can nothing be done for these unfortunate men?” There is no evidence that their state moved Sir Charles to compassion, but it is clear that he feared lest a regrouping of parties should destroy the commanding position which Radicals had gained, and as soon as Parliament reassembled he took action.
'Thursday, February 11th, 1904.—I sought an interview
with John
Redmond, to whom I said that there seemed a rapidly increasing
risk
of the speedy formation of a Whig Administration dominated by
Devonshire influence, and that it might be wise that he, with
or
without Blake, should meet myself and Lloyd George for the
Radicals,
J. R. Macdonald for the Labour Representation Committee, and
with
him either Snowden or Keir Hardie. Redmond assented, and I then
saw
Lloyd George. Lloyd George was at first inclined to assent, but
on
second thoughts asked for time, which I think meant to see Dr.
Clifford.
'Friday, February 12th, 1904.—Lloyd George had not made
up his
mind either way, but thought that it would be wise to meet
except
for the fact that trouble might happen afterwards as to what
had
passed. I pointed out that this could be easily guarded against
by
his writing me a letter making any conditions or reservations
which
he thought necessary, which I should show to Redmond, and write
to
him that I had so shown. On this he promised to let me know on
Monday what he thought, and probably would prepare a draft
letter.
'February 18th, 1904.—Further talk with George. A little
afraid of
being attacked by Perks for selling the pass on education. I
said
that I must go on alone to a certain extent, and he then
consented
to come in, and on my suggesting reservations—as, for example,
on
education—he said: “No, I can trust the Irish as regards the
personal matter, and, as I come in, I will come in freely
without
any reservations.”'
Through the general unsettlement which Chamberlain's new policy had created, a dissolution and a change of Government were now possibilities of a not distant future, and speculations were rife as to the future position of Sir Charles. Lady Dilke, who regarded the admission of her husband to office as a proof of his public exoneration from the charges brought against his character, was ardently desirous that he should accept without reserve any offer of a place in the Cabinet, and it was much against her wish that Sir Charles imposed conditions, in conversation with a political friend who had been a member of the last Liberal Cabinet. So far as anxiety again to hold office existed on his part, it was more because of her wishes in the matter than from any strong political ambition of his own. [Footnote: He wrote to Mr. Deakin from Geneva, December 9th, 1904: “Only one word of what you say on 'too tardy rewards in higher responsibilities'! I was in the inner ring of the Cabinet before I was either a Cabinet Minister or a Privy Councillor, 1880-1882, and I am not likely to have the offer of the place the work of which would tempt me. The W.O. would kill me, but I could not refuse it. I have been told on 'authority' that it will not come to me.”]
But the motive which in this, as in all else, swayed him so strongly was now to be taken away.
Lady Dilke's wish for her husband's return to office was shared by many Radical politicians, and in the course of the summer Captain Cecil Norton, one of the Liberal Whips, in a speech expressed his opinion of the value of Sir Charles Dilke's services, and his anticipation that the fall of the Tory Government would bring back the Radical leader of 1885 to his full share of power. This utterance was enough to set the old machinery in motion against him. A series of meetings had been organized by the advanced Radical section of the House of Commons, and the first was to have been held in Newington, Captain Norton's constituency, with Sir Charles for the chief speaker. Threats of a hostile demonstration reached the Newington committee, and it was decided—though Sir Charles Dilke was opposed to any change—that the series should be opened with a speech from him in his old constituency, the place where he was best known and where he had most friends. It was fixed for October 20th, 1904.
Nothing of the reason for this change was told to Lady Dilke. Her health had given some cause for anxiety, though at Dockett Eddy in August and at Speech House in September she had been more bright, more gay, than ever. She herself wrote to friends that she had “never been so happy in her life,” but felt need of rest, and was going to Pyrford for a long rest.
She reached Pyrford with her husband on October 15th, and he wished her to see a doctor, but she refused. “He would stop my going up with you on Thursday, and I want to go. I think I ought to be there.”
It was long since Dilke had stood before those whom he once represented, and she was determined to be with him; she assisted at the triumphant success of this meeting; but the strain of coming up to London and the excitement justified her forecast of the doctor's opinion. That night she was taken ill, yet till the morning would make no sign, for fear of disturbing her husband. She admitted then that she was very ill; to Pyrford, however, she was set on returning; in London she “could not rest.” By Sunday she seemed to be on the highroad to recovery, but on that Sunday night the end came.
Those last days and hours have been fully described by Sir Charles in the memoir prefixed to her posthumous book. All that he has written in his own Memoir is this: 'October 23rd, 1904: Emilia died in my arms after one of our happiest Sunday afternoons.'
So ended the marriage which, contracted under gloomy auspices in 1885, had resulted in nineteen years of unbroken felicity. Her praise has been written in love and reverence by her husband, who was her equal comrade. The union between them was so complete as to exclude the thought of gratitude, but whatever man can owe to a woman Sir Charles Dilke owed to his wife; and though she died without achieving that end on which she had set her heart, of utterly and explicitly cancelling by public assent all the charges that had been brought against him, yet she had so lived and so helped him to live that he was heedless of this matter, except for her sake.
Over her grave many hands were stretched out to him. Chamberlain wrote from Italy:
“My Dear Dilke,
“I have just seen with the deepest sympathy and sorrow the news
of
the terrible loss you have sustained.
“Consolation would be idle in presence of such a blow, but I
should
like you to feel that as an old friend, separated by the
unhappy
political differences of these later years, I still share your
personal grief in losing a companion so devoted to you, and so
well
qualified to aid and strengthen you in all the work and anxiety
of
your active life.
“When the first great shock is past, I earnestly trust that you
may
find in the continued performance of your public duties some
alleviation of your private sorrow, and I assure you most
earnestly
of my sympathy in this time of trial.
“Believe me,
“Yours very truly,
“J. Chamberlain.”
Mr. Morley wrote also:
“My Dear Dilke,
“I did not hear the news of the unhappy stroke that has befallen
you
until it was a fortnight old. You need not to be told what a
shock
it was. I think that I had known her longer than anybody—from
the
time of a college ball at Oxford in 1859; a radiant creature
she
then was. To me her friendship was unwavering, down to the last
time
I saw her, when she gave me a long and intime talk about
the
things that, as you know, she had most at heart. I am deeply
and
sincerely sorry and full of sympathy with you. Words count
little in
such a disaster, but this I hope you will believe.
“Ever yours,
“John Morley.”
When after his wife's death Sir Charles again took up his life in London, those who saw him off his guard recognized keenly the effect of this last sudden blow, heavier because unexpected. The very mainspring of his life had been weakened. But he exerted himself to prepare Lady Dilke's unpublished writings, and to write the memoir which prefaced them. Of this he says:
'I put my whole soul into the work of bringing out her
posthumous
book with a proper memoir, and it nearly killed me. I was never
so
pleased with anything as with the success of the book. To
hundreds
of the best people it seems to have meant and said all that I
wished
it to say and mean.'
Probably, also, to many readers it gave for the first time a true image, not of her only for whose sake it was written, but of him who wrote. One letter of this moment deserves to be put on record. Mr. Arnold-Forster wrote:
“Dear Sir Charles,
“In a very few days the Session, with all its conflicts, its
misunderstandings, and its boredom, will be upon us. Before it
comes
let me take advantage of one of the few remaining days of calm
to
write a line to you.
“It is inevitable, and no doubt right, that you and I should
find
ourselves on different sides; we shall probably differ on a
good
many points, and on some we shall very likely express our
differences. But I trust that nothing in the rough and tumble
of
public work will interrupt the pleasant relations which have so
long
existed between yourself and me, and the existence of which I
have
so greatly valued.
“You have been a good and kind friend to me ever since I entered
the
House, and I have always valued both your friendship and your
good
opinion, when you could give it me. I have known well enough
that I
owed much to Lady Dilke's friendship and affection for my wife;
but
I shall never forget how generously that friendship was
extended to
me. I was very deeply sensible of the privilege of receiving
the
confidence and the good-will of a very noble and wonderfully
able
woman.
“But I must not weary you with too long a letter. All I want to
tell
you is that I cherish the hope that even now that this bond of
union, this comprehending and reconciling presence, is no
longer
here to keep our tempers wise and sweet, you may still count me
among your warm friends, and—despite the estrangement of party
politics—may continue to give me your good-will and may
believe in
the continuance of mine.”
The Administration of Mr. Balfour fell in the last days of 1905. Sir Henry Campbell-Bannerman was entrusted with the formation of a Liberal Government, and the question was at once eagerly asked, in political circles, whether Sir Charles Dilke would be a member of it. In February, 1905, he had written to Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice expressing a hope that he would be outside the next Government, so as to be free to oppose the deal with Russia which in his opinion Sir E. Grey was contemplating.
The feeling of the Conservative party on the question of his return to official life is sufficiently shown by the fact that he had previously been sounded as to his willingness to accept the chairmanship of the Royal Commission on the Poor Law. That the attitude of the Court towards him had changed is also clear. Not only was his attendance at Levees approved, but he and Lady Dilke had received the royal command to the Queen's Garden Party at Windsor. The attitude of his own party was, however, the determining factor.
Before the critical time actually arrived, there had been tentative conversations, and, although Sir Charles did not expect that any invitation would come to him, Mr. Labouchere thought otherwise, and a letter from him describes conversations which he had held with Sir Henry Campbell-Bannerman: “I thought then from his general observations that you would be War Minister.”
In Labouchere's opinion the determining factor was a public correspondence in which Dr. Talbot, then Bishop of Southwark, took the lead in protesting against any such appointment. But this was probably a mistaken view. There is no reason to believe that the Liberal leader had any wish to include Sir Charles in his Ministry. The Cordite vote was not forgotten by the members of the Liberal Administration of 1892-1895. No office was offered to Sir Charles. His answer to the letter written by Labouchere on January 6th was:
“I never thought C.-B. could possibly offer me the War Office,
and I
could not have refused it or made conditions for the post, and
it
would have killed me. I did not expect him to offer me any
place.
Had my wife lived, that would have hurt her, and, through her,
me.
As it is, I prefer to be outside—a thing which, though often
true,
no one ever believes of others.
“But when in office—April, 1880, to June, 1885—I was
exceptionally
powerful, and nearly always got my own way in my department.
That
could never have been repeated—a strong reason why I have all
along
preferred the pleasant front seat in the house to a less
commanding
position on the stage.”
When Mr. Haldane's name was announced for the War Office, Mr. Arnold- Forster sent a message agreeing with Sir Charles's high estimate of the new War Minister's abilities. “By far the best appointment they could possibly make—with the one exception.” And Mr. T. R. Buchanan, Financial Secretary to the War Office, wrote in reply to Sir Charles's congratulations:
“I have taken the liberty of showing your letter to Haldane, and
he
desires me to thank you for what you say about him, and he
values it
all the more highly because of your generosity. You would
certainly
have been the natural man to be now in his place, and it is a
public
loss that you are not in it.”
At the election which followed Sir Charles was re-elected by an enormous majority for his old constituency, after issuing this, the shortest of all his habitually short addresses:
“Gentlemen,—I solicit with confidence the renewal of your trust.
“Believe me, your devoted servant,
“Charles W. Dilke.”
In the autumn of 1905 he had delivered a series of addresses, mainly to audiences of Labour men, advocating a general co-operation of Radicals with the Irish and Labour groups. For Ireland he urged a return to the “Parnell-Chamberlain scheme of 1885,” but applied as a part of Home Rule all round. His proposal was that the Irish members should in the autumn sit in Dublin, the Scottish members in Edinburgh, the Welsh in Wales, and the English at Westminster, and should then transact local affairs, their decisions being ratified or rejected by the United House when it met in spring as an Imperial Parliament.
In December, 1905, he wrote to Mr. Deakin:
“The composition of the new Ministry seems to me, as to
everybody
else, good. The Imperial question will slumber, I think, until
the
Irish question has become again acute. The Ministry ought to be
able
to do very well in 1906; two Sessions up to Christmas. In 1907
I
expect a row with Redmond, in which I shall be more or less on
Redmond's side. The Liberal party will not face the fact that
they
cannot avoid dealing with the Irish question without the
certainty
of the Irish moderates, of whom Redmond is the most moderate,
being
forced to say: 'We can no longer keep Ireland quiet for you.'
The
Liberal party will not have coercion, and, that being so, they
have
no alternative except to do what they ought to do. It would be
wiser
to do it before they are compelled; and if they did it before
compulsion was applied, they would have more chance of carrying
the
country with them.”
In a lighter vein he wrote to Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, commenting on the extraordinary predominance of Scottish members in the Cabinet, on December 15th, 1905:
“I had already, before I received your criticism on the Scotch,
suggested to Hudson (who is with me) the things that Labouchere
is
likely to say about his friends, and had yesterday got as far
as his
turning round and asking us in a loud whisper: 'Who is it who
represents England in this Government?'
[Footnote: The Cabinet consisted of nineteen persons. Of these, the Prime Minister (Sir H. Campbell-Bannerman); the Chancellor (Lord Loreburn); the Chancellor of the Exchequer (Mr. Asquith); the Secretary of State for the Colonies (Lord Elgin); the Secretary of State for India (Lord Morley); the Secretary of State for War (Mr. Haldane); the First Lord of the Admiralty (Lord Tweedmouth); the Chief Secretary for Ireland (Mr. Bryce); the Secretary of State for Scotland (Mr. Sinclair)—nine in all—were Scottish Peers or represented Scottish constituencies. It was also observed that Sir Edward Grey's constituency was the Scottish Borderland; and it was jestingly said that John Burns was put into the Cabinet because he had persuaded the Premier that he descended from the poet!
Mr. Birrell, when the Government was formed, was not in Parliament, but his last constituency had been Scotch, The Lord Lieutenant of Ireland was Lord Aberdeen.]
“We used to think that the value of Randolph was that he gave to
politics the constant pleasure of the unexpected. Rosebery now
does
this in the Lords, and Charles II.'s truthful saying about the
House
of Commons, 'It is as good as a play,' becomes on account of
Rosebery temporarily true of the House of Lords. We shall all
of us
be drawn there very often, and even such a House of Commons man
as
your humble servant, grumbling the while, will nevertheless
find
himself attracted to that 'throne.'“
When the new Parliament met in 1906, Labour had for the first time a really important representation. [Footnote: See Chapter LII., “Labour,” p. 346.]
Sir Charles noted in his Diary: 'The Labour party was my original scheme for the I.L.P. as developed in talks at Pyrford, before its formation, with Champion and with Ben Tillett. To join it or lead it was never my thought.'
His purpose was rather to be a connecting link between the varying groups in the development of a legislative programme which he forecast with shrewd prevision. On January 6th, 1906, he wrote to Labouchere:
“As I now seem to have the confidence of Balfour, Redmond, and
Keir
Hardie, the position will be difficult; but in the present year
Redmond and Keir Hardie will, I think, join with me in
supporting
Government. Next year it will be different, unless, as I
expect,
Grey goes for H.R. The small Budget of 1906 will be a
disappointment, and so, I fear, will be the big one of 1907.
“The really weak point is that the Government is damned unless
it
fights the Lords in 1907, and that the promise of 'five years
in
power' will prevent the hacks from fighting.”
Holding these views, it was natural that he should seek to maintain that organization of a Radical group which had existed continuously since Fawcett established, or rather revived, it on first entering the Parliament of 1865-1868. The Radical Club, of which Sir Charles himself was the first secretary, grew out of this, and was largely directed by him till 1880, when he ceased, on taking office, to be a member. [Footnote: For earlier mention of the Radical Club, see Vol. I., Chapter VIII., p. 100.] His brother succeeded him in the secretaryship; but with Ashton Dilke's death the club died also, being replaced by a loose committee organization which lasted till 1893, and then came to an untimely end because the party Whips attempted to pack the meeting which elected this committee. The elected body was then replaced by a virtually self-chosen group. In 1904 an emergency committee of this group was appointed; and when the new Parliament met, Sir Charles was the only member of the committee left. Mr. Harcourt and Captain Norton had taken office, Mr. Stanhope had gone to the Lords, Mr. Labouchere had retired. It therefore fell to Sir Charles to reassemble surviving atoms of this organism, to attract new ones, and to make known its nature and purpose.
It had always been essential, in his view, that there should be no “party,” no chairman, and no whips; but simply a grouping for the purpose of stimulating the Government by pressure as to practical and immediate Parliamentary objects on which advanced men think alike or harmoniously, and for current arrangements, such as balloting for motions and generally making the best use of private members' time.
There was at the outset a great influx of members, and three secretaries were appointed. At all meetings at which he was present Sir Charles took the chair, and through this centre exercised much influence, committing the House of Commons to a series of resolutions—abstract indeed, but none the less important.
The various objects which Radicalism should have before it in 1906 are sketched in a kind of shorthand summary:
“Good understanding with Irish Nationalist members, based on at
least the Parnell-Chamberlain National Council scheme of 1885,
and
with the Labour party for common objects.
“So far as further political reforms are needed no registration
reform worth having, but principle of adult suffrage of all
grown
men and women carries simplification and single vote.
“Payment of members and expenses.
“Single Chamber, or restriction of power of House of Lords
(i.e., no
'Reform' of = stronger). [Footnote: Sir Charles always
maintained
that “Reform” of the House of Lords would result in
strengthening
its position.]
“Fiscal reform, capable of being dealt with by Budget or
administratively, and money to be saved by ... increased
revenue
provided by increased graduation of death duties and by
relieving
the Imperial Exchequer of the local grants, substituting
taxation of
land values by the local authorities for the latter.
“This last point is closely connected with full power to local
authorities to acquire land for all purposes, and this with
municipal trading and other forms of municipal Socialism. The
heads
of the Labour policy are now so universally embraced as not to
be
specially Radical; Taff Vale, for example, being supported by
all
Liberals and some Tories, and the Miners' Eight Hours receiving
the
support of nearly all Liberals and of some Tories.”
On the question of electoral reform, and specially of woman's suffrage, all his action was guided by one conclusion thus expressed, and embodied in the Franchise Bill introduced by him each Session:
“The limited franchise, if it is ever carried, will be carried
as a
party Conservative measure intended to aid Conservative
opinions and
to rest the franchise upon an unassailable limited base, and it
will
be carried in that case against the counter-proposal of the
suffrage
of all grown men and women, made by those representing the
advanced
thought of the country.” [Footnote: Memorandum by Sir Charles
Dilke
on “Suffrage of All Grown Men and Women,” issued by the
People's
Suffrage Federation.]
It is unnecessary to emphasize the completeness with which political evolution has followed the lines here marked out by him. Others reaped the harvest. But no man then living had done more to sow the seed.
The Parliament in which he found himself was one of singular interest. He wrote:
“The old form of party divisions is, in the great majority of
constituencies, not yet much affected by recent events. In the
House
of Commons it is almost dead for the present year....
“The future cannot be foreseen, and in politics it is always
foolish
to attempt to prophesy. I have frequently myself made or quoted
the
remark that in politics a year is equivalent to eternity. I
have now
limited myself to 1906. Whether the party system, in which
British
statesmen of our time and of past generations have been
nurtured,
will ever be restored is another matter. Whether the birth of a
definite Labour party, in addition to a definite Irish
Nationalist
party, will be followed by any further division, or whether, as
I
expect, it will not, yet the division into four parties—of
which
three will compete actively for the favour of the British
electorate—will, I think, continue, and we follow here the
line of
political development in which first the Australian Colonies,
and
now the Commonwealth, have led the way.” [Footnote: Potentia,
1906.]
Writing in the Financial Review of Reviews for April, 1906, he spoke of the “extraordinarily interesting nature of the debates,” of which example had already been given, and he foreshadowed no less interesting action. The changes which he had in view, mainly financial, were “not likely to be popular in the City, with solicitors, with the organized representatives of the employing class,” but none the less they would probably be carried into law. The old assumption that democratic movements would be carried into legislation “by capitalist members steeped in Radical pledges” had ceased to correspond with the facts. A new type of member of Parliament had appeared, and Sir Charles welcomed the change.
“It is possible that the members are more Radical than the
constituencies. This is an arguable question; but that they are
convinced upon such questions, not by pressure, but by training
and
by thought, is a conclusion which no one who knows the present
House
of Commons can resist.
“There has probably never sat so interesting a House of Commons
in
the history of this country. With a good deal of experience of
Parliaments and of their inner life and thought, and with the
opportunity of frequent discussion with those who, like Mr.
Gladstone, remembered all the Parliaments back to the early
thirties, and those, like Mr. Vernon Harcourt, [Footnote:
George
Granville Vernon Harcourt, elected to the House of Commons as
member
for Oxford in 1831. He held his seat till 1859.] who remembered
much
earlier Parliaments, I am certain that there has never met at
Westminster an assembly so able and at the same time so widely
different in intellectual composition from its predecessors as
that
which is now there gathered. The development of opinion,
however, is
less of a surprise to those who have watched Australia and New
Zealand than to those who have confined their studies to the
United
Kingdom and the Continent.” [Footnote: In 1911, when Lord Hugh
Cecil
described with violent rhetoric the alleged degradation of the
House
of Commons, Mr. Balfour was moved to protest, and cited in
support
of his own view “a man whose authority had always been
admitted.” “I
remember,” he said, “talking over with Sir Charles Dilke the
question of general Parliamentary practice, and he said, and I
agree, that there has been no deterioration either in his or in
my
Parliamentary experience.”]
Payment of members he did not live to see, but he always regarded it as “an extraordinary anomaly that payment should have been discontinued in this country.”
“Members are paid in every other country in the world, and in
every
British colony (I believe without exception). Non-payment means
deliberate preference for moneyed oligarchy, as only rare
exceptions
can produce a democratic member under such a system. It
excludes all
poor men of genius unless they can get themselves paid by
parties
like the Irish, which makes them slaves. It throws undue power
into
the hands of the capital as the seat of the legislature, and it
leads to poor members selling their souls to rotten
compromises.”
Despite the advance of age and a growing weakness of the heart, the impression which he produced was always one of commanding vigour. His habit of fencing kept him alert and supple in all his movements. Notwithstanding his elaborate preparation for the work, no man's appearances in debate were less premeditated; he spoke when he felt inclined: had he spoken for effect, his interpositions would have been much less frequent. But when tactics required it, no man was more willing to efface himself. Especially was this so in all his relations with Labour; when he could leave to the Labour party the credit of moving an important amendment, he gladly left it to them. Yet when he was more likely than they to secure Liberal support, he was prepared to move against the Government, and in one notable amendment on the Trade Disputes Bill brought down their vast majority to the bare figure of five. [Footnote: For a fuller account of Sir Charles's work connected with the Taff Vale Decision and the Trade Disputes Act, see “Labour,” Chapter LII, pp. 345 and 365.]
The work which in these last years cost him most labour—in view of his failing health, it would have been well for his friends had he never undertaken it—was that given to the Committee on the Income Tax, of which he became chairman in 1906. Sir Bernard Mallet (now Registrar-General) writes in 1916:
“In the spring of 1906 the Government decided to appoint a
strong
Committee to inquire into the questions of graduation and
differentiation of the income tax, which had for some Sessions
been
coming into prominence in consequence of the financial
difficulties
caused by the South African War. Mr. Asquith, then Chancellor
of the
Exchequer, offered the chairmanship to Sir Charles Dilke, who
had
never claimed to be an expert in finance, and only accepted it
after
strong pressure, and the Select Committee set to work
accordingly
early in May. Having taken up the work, which occupied most of
the
summer, Sir Charles threw himself into it with immense energy.
He
familiarized himself with all the literature bearing on the
question, and he made a point of calling, as witnesses, not
only the
usual officials, but also as many outside economists and
statisticians as might be able to throw light upon questions
which,
as he rightly conceived, lay at the root of any proper
consideration
of the problem before the Committee. He attached special
importance
to all the evidence bearing upon foreign and colonial methods
and
principles in the taxation of income and property, and to the
endeavour he made to get at statistics bearing on the
distribution
of income—two vitally important factors introduced by him, for
the
first time, into any official handling of the subject.
“But the result of all the knowledge, thoroughness, and
enthusiasm,
which, as his friends could testify, he lavished without stint
(and,
it is to be feared, to the serious detriment of his health)
upon the
work, must have somewhat disappointed him. Sir Charles's
attempts to
deal with the matter in a comprehensive spirit and produce a
report
which would rival in interest the famous reports of two
previous
Select Committees on the subject, those of 1851 and 1861, were
hampered by the necessity, under which the Committee lay, of
devising a means to increase the yield of the income tax with
the
least political friction. The two expedients which came most
prominently before the Committee were those of differentiating
the
rate of the income tax in favour of earned or precarious
incomes,
and of imposing a supertax upon the larger incomes. Both of
these
were included in the recommendations of the report which was
ultimately adopted, [Footnote: Report of the Select Committee
on
Income Tax, II. of C. 365 of 1906.] and carried into effect in
the
Budgets of 1907 and 1909 respectively. [Footnote: See
British
Budgets, by Bernard Mallet (1913), pp. 262, 263, 274,
277-281, and
305, where also some comments on the recommendations of the
Committee are to be found.] Sir Charles's own view was opposed
to
both these methods. He would have preferred to differentiation,
even
in the limited form (up to L2,000 a year) in which it became
law,
the method of separate taxation of property, or income from
property, as in Prussia and Holland, if death duties were not
considered as sufficient taxation upon property.
“He was certainly impressed by the unscientific character of the
proposed differentiation; by the difficulty of distinguishing
between 'earned' and 'unearned' incomes, and by the
possibilities of
abuse which this method of dealing with the question offered.
Supertax he would have reserved for a national emergency, but
it
should not be supposed that his opposition to it implied
opposition
to graduation either in principle or in practice. He was,
indeed,
strongly in favour of a graduated income tax, but, in his
judgment,
a supertax was a somewhat clumsy way of effecting the purpose
aimed
at. In his opinion the universal declaration of all taxable
incomes
was an indispensable preliminary to the full and just
graduation of
the income tax, and written notes of his are in existence
showing
how much importance he attached to this point.
“Holding these views, he could not produce a report sufficiently
decisive in its acceptance of the methods favoured by the
majority
of his colleagues.
“The stupendous increases which have taken place in the rates of
the
income tax owing to the present war, increases far surpassing
anything contemplated by the Committee over which Sir Charles
presided ten years ago, have thrown all such controversies as
these
into the shade; but apart from the practical results of its
recommendations, which for good or ill left at the time a very
decided mark on fiscal legislation, this investigation
succeeded,
owing mainly to his influence, in eliciting a quantity of
evidence
which will always make it of historical interest to students of
taxation.”
Even before his return, in July, 1892, to Parliament, Sir Charles Dilke was still a powerful critic of the country's foreign policy. It is a curious commentary on the wisdom of those who believe that, except at moments of special excitement or of public danger, it is impossible to interest the electorate in foreign affairs, that during this period he was constantly able to gather large public audiences in the North of England and in Wales, and induce them to listen to careful criticisms on questions such as the delimitation of the African continent, the Newfoundland fisheries, British policy in the Pacific, and the future of the Congo State. This was achieved, although no party appeal could be made or was attempted, and although there was a deliberate effort by an influential section of the London Press to boycott the speaker. In these speeches Sir Charles pointed out that a perhaps too general acquiescence existed on the part of most Liberals in the foreign policy of the Government, merely because Lord Salisbury had made no attempt to continue or to revive the pro-Turkish and warlike policy which had distinguished the Government of Lord Beaconsfield in 1878. Lord Salisbury was now mainly intent on settling outstanding questions with France and Germany, especially in Africa, dealing with them one by one. The ordinary Conservative partisan still said in public that nothing could be worse than the foreign policy and practice of the Liberal party; but he was also saying in private that the policy of his own party was little better, that the army both at home and in India was neglected, and that the fleet was probably insufficient. Dread, however, of Mr. Gladstone and of the possible return of the Liberal party to power, made him with rare exceptions silent in Parliament; while, on the other hand, the mass of the Liberal party had become supporters of Lord Salisbury's foreign and colonial policy. “The fact that Lord Salisbury had not been an active Turk or an active Jingo had proved enough to cover everything.” [Footnote: “The Conservative Foreign Policy,” Fortnightly Review, January, 1892, by Sir Charles Dilke.] But the absence of any well-sustained criticism in Parliament had evident disadvantages, and Sir Charles's speeches at this time supplied the deficiency.
The political fortunes of France between 1887 and 1895 were at a low ebb. The financial scandals which led to the resignation of President Grevy in 1887, the serio-comic political career of General Boulanger, dangerous and constant labour disturbances in the great centres of industry, the Panama financial scandals of 1893, the assassination of President Carnot in 1894, and the impossibility of forming stable Ministries, caused a general lack of confidence in the future of the Republic both at home and abroad, which the facile glories of the Paris Exhibition of 1889 could not conceal. The foreign policy of the country seemed to consist in a system of “pin-pricks” directed against Great Britain, and in hostility to Italy, which culminated in anti-Italian riots in the South of France, a tariff war, and the entry of Italy into the alliance of the Central Powers. The letters of Sir Charles during this period are full of expressions of despair at the condition of French politics and at the general lack of statesmanship. The suspicion which he entertained of Russian intentions caused him also to look askance at the newly formed friendship of France with Russia, which, commencing with the visit of a French naval squadron under Admiral Gervais to Cronstadt in August, 1891, was finally sealed by a treaty of alliance signed in March, 1895, though the precise terms were not known. [Footnote: In a letter to M. Joseph Reinach written after the appearance of The Present Position of European Politics, Sir Charles says: “I did not say Gambetta had been a great friend to the Poles. I said he hated the Russians. He told me so over and over again. He held the same view as Napoleon I. as to Russia, and said, 'J'irais chercher mes alliances n'importe oui—meme a Berlin,' and, 'La Russie me tire le pan de l'habit, mais jamais je n'ecouterais ce qu'on me fait dire.' But, in searching for my own reasons for this in the first article, I said that as a law student he had been brought up with a generation which had had Polish sympathies, and that perhaps this had caused (unconsciously, I meant) his anti-Russian views. I know he did not believe in setting up a Poland.”]
In Germany the position was different. The Dual Alliance devised by Prince Bismarck between Germany and Austria-Hungary had become the Triple Alliance by the accession of Italy, and had been further strengthened by an assurance of naval support given to Italy by Lord Salisbury in the event of the status quo in the Mediterranean being disturbed. The presumable disturber aimed at was evidently France. [Footnote: “In 1903 Lord Lansdowne explained that in February, 1887, there had been that exchange of notes between Italy and ourselves of which I had written in that year. In The Present Position of European Politics I made allusion to Disraeli's proposal, before his defeat in 1880, of a league of the Powers for the defence of the status quo in the Mediterranean. The notes of February, 1887, nominally dealt only with the Mediterranean status quo desired in common, it was said, by Italy and Great Britain. Cynics might be tempted to ask whether all Italian Ministers desired the maintenance of a status quo in a 'Mediterranean' which included the coast of Tunis, the coast of Tripoli, and even, Lord Lansdowne added, the Adriatic.” (Sir Charles Dilke in the English Review, October, 1909: “On the Relations of the Powers.”) On this subject see Crispi Memoirs, vol. ii., chap. v.] The meddlesome intrigues of Russian partisans, and a long series of political outrages culminating in the murder of M. Stambouloff, were gradually forming an Austro-German party in Bulgaria; while the wise and progressive administration of Bosnia and the Herzegovina by Herr von Kallay had encouraged a belief that some good thing might even yet come out of Austria, notwithstanding the famous expression of a belief to the contrary by Mr. Gladstone.
In the circumstances Lord Salisbury determined to base his policy on a good understanding with Germany, and he had his reward. The African settlement of 1890 was a comprehensive scheme which undoubtedly made great concessions to German wishes, but, taken in connection with subsequent enlargements and additions, it was hoped that it had at least removed any real danger of collision between the two Powers principally concerned. A treaty with France, recognizing a French protectorate over Madagascar, was defended by its authors as the complement of the arrangements of 1890, as to Zanzibar, with Germany. Subsequent treaties with Portugal and Italy made the period decisive as to the future division of the African continent. Both in Great Britain and Germany the arrangements of 1890 were attacked as having yielded too much to the other side. But looking at the treaty from an English point of view, Sir Charles said there had been too many graceful “concessions” all round, and of these he made himself the critic. He did not, however, identify himself with the extreme school of so-called “Imperial” thought, which seemed to consider that in some unexplained manner Great Britain had acquired a prior lien on the whole unoccupied portion of the vast African continent.
But in the treaty of 1890 there was one clause—the last—which stood out by itself in conspicuous isolation, and this Sir Charles never ceased to attack and denounce. It decreed the transfer of Heligoland to Germany. The importance of the acquisition was not fully appreciated at the time even in Germany. What the surrender might some day mean was not understood in Great Britain. On both sides the tendency was to belittle the transaction. [Footnote: Reventlow, 38-51. Hohenlohe Memoirs, ii. 470-471.] Apart from some minor interests possessed by British fishermen, Lord Salisbury described the value of the island as mainly “sentimental,” in the speech in which on July 10th he defended the transaction in the House of Lords.
He supported the proposal by arguing that the island was unfortified, that it was within a few hours' steam of the greatest arsenal of Germany, that if the island remained in our possession an expedition would be despatched to capture it on “the day of the declaration of war, and would arrive considerably before any relieving force could arrive from our side.” “It would expose us to a blow which would be a considerable humiliation.” “If we were at war with any other Power it would be necessary for us to lock up a naval force for the purpose of defending this island, unless we intended to expose ourselves to the humiliation of having it taken.” This argument, Sir Charles Dilke showed by a powerful criticism of the whole treaty in the columns of the Melbourne Argus, went a great deal too far. It could be used for the purpose of defending the cession of the Channel Islands to France. “The Channel Islands lie close to a French stronghold, Cherbourg, and not very far from the greatest of French arsenals, at Brest. They are fortified and garrisoned, but they are feebly garrisoned, and they have not been refortified in recent times, and could not be held without naval assistance, and the argument about locking up our fleet applies in the case of the Channel Islands, and in the case of many other of our stations abroad, as it was said to apply in the case of Heligoland.” [Footnote: Melbourne Argus, September 10th, 1890. As to Heligoland, see Life of Granville, ii, 362, 363, 425; Holland Rose, Origins of the War, p. 18.]
Lord Salisbury went on to point out that we had obtained a consideration for the transfer of Heligoland to Germany “on the east coast of Africa,” a consideration which consisted mainly in an undertaking from Germany that she would not oppose our assumption of the protectorate of Zanzibar. But, said Sir Charles, the protectorate, when it included not only the island of Zanzibar, but the strip of coast now forming the maritime fringe both of British and of German East Africa, had been over and over again refused by us. “I was one of those,” Sir Charles continued, referring to a still earlier chapter of Lord Salisbury's policy during the short-lived Government of 1885-86, “who thought that the policy of 1885 with regard to Zanzibar was a mistaken policy, and that we should have insisted on supporting our East Indian subjects, who had and have the trade on that coast and island in their hands. We had joined with France in arrangements with regard to the whole Zanzibar coast, and when we concluded an agreement with Germany about that coast it became necessary for us to force that agreement upon the French on behalf of Germany. A most mistaken policy, in my opinion, as we should otherwise have had the support of France in resisting a German occupation of any portion of the coast, an occupation which it is safe to say would not have been attempted in face of a distinct statement on our part.”
Lord Salisbury expressed his inability to understand on what ground those interested in South Africa objected to our recognizing an imaginary German right over a strip of territory giving the Germans access to the upper waters of the Zambesi. He said that our chief difficulty about this territory was that we knew nothing about it; but this consideration, Sir Charles said, “told against the agreement, inasmuch as we had given up a territory which seemed naturally to go with those which have been assigned to the South Africa Company, and which might, for anything we knew to the contrary, be of high value in the future.” It was amazing to note how obediently the great majority of the Conservative party followed Lord Salisbury's lead in accepting the cession of Heligoland for no consideration at all, as Sir Charles thought—in any case, for a consideration which must seem inadequate. Contrast, he said, the grounds upon which the cession of Heligoland was defended with those, welcomed by shouts of triumph from the Conservatives, upon which the occupation of Cyprus was justified. It was inconceivable that any man possessed of reasoning powers could support holding Cyprus (which must be a weakness in time of war), and yet argue that Heligoland must be a weakness of a similar kind, and therefore had better be ceded. In the case of Heligoland the vast majority of the islanders were opposed to union with Germany. In the case of Cyprus the vast majority of the islanders were hostile to our rule, while the majority of Heligolanders were favourable to our rule. To cede it against the wish of the population was a step which should not be taken, except for overwhelming national advantage, and that advantage most certainly could not be shown.
“I am one of those,” Dilke wrote, summarizing the argument of his speeches, “who are sometimes thought by my own party to be somewhat unduly friendly to the foreign policy of our opponents, a fact which I mention only to show that I do not come to the present matter with strong prejudice. I had heard during the negotiations in Berlin, and some weeks before the publication of the agreement, the whole of its contents with the exception of the cession of Heligoland, and I had formed a strong opinion upon the facts then known to me—that it was a thoroughly bad agreement, most unfavourable to British interests. The only change since that time has been that Heligoland has been thrown in, so that to my mind we are ceding that British possession, for which a very high value might have been obtained, against the wish of the inhabitants, and ceding it for less than no consideration. Lord Salisbury seems to be subject to strange dimness of vision when Africa is concerned. He positively claimed it as a merit, in the course of his speech to the South African deputation, that while the Germans demanded an enormous slice of our Bechuanaland sphere of influence, he had induced them to put back their frontier; but I need hardly point out that no German traveller had ever entered the country in dispute, that we had for years acted on the assumption that it was within our sphere, and that the Germans might as reasonably have set up a claim to the whole sphere of influence and to all the territories previously assigned by us to the British South Africa Company....”
In South-East Africa, too, it was to be remembered that we were dealing with a country which is far less populated by natives and more open to European settlement than was the case with Central Africa. [Footnote: See supra, p. 84, as to the differences which had arisen in Mr. Gladstone's Cabinet on this subject in 1884-85.]
“There has been in the whole matter,” he declared, “a deplorable absence of decision. If, when Lord Salisbury came into power in 1885, immediately after the occupation by Germany of a slice of South Africa and of the Cameroons, and at the moment of German activity at Zanzibar, he had let it be clearly understood that we should support the policy of Sir John Kirk, our Consul, and the Zanzibar Sultan's rule, and had at the same time abstained from taking steps to facilitate the operations of the Germans in Damaraland, we certainly should have occupied at the present moment a stronger position than we do. But, instead of this, Lord Salisbury allowed our Indian subjects established along the coast to be ruined by German bombardments to which the British fleet was sent to give some sort of moral support. Our explorers have carried the British flag throughout what is now German East Africa and the Congo State. They had made treaties by which the leading native sovereigns of these countries had submitted to our rule, and the Germans are too anxious for our countenance in Europe to have been willing to have risked the loss of Lord Salisbury's friendship had he taken a very different line.” [Footnote: Melbourne Argus, September 6th, 1890.]
Though not professing to be himself an “African,” Sir Charles also asked how those who professed to come within that description, and speak as advocates of an Imperial policy in the vast and undeveloped regions of the Dark Continent, could quietly accept, as they seemed prepared to do, the break in the so-called Cape to Cairo route which had been allowed to form part of the great agreement of 1890.
“What, then,” he asked in 1902, “have the Tories done with the free hand that has been given them? Above all, they have 'made up to' Germany, and this apparently for no definite object and with no definite result. They have given to Germany as far as they could give; they have certainly helped her to procure the renewal of the Triple Alliance, by inducing sanguine Italians to believe that the British fleet will protect them against France, though as a fact we all know that the House of Commons will not allow a British fleet to do anything of the kind. France has wholly given up the Temporal Power, and would not have threatened Italy had Italy held aloof from the Triple Alliance; and, in spite of a recent speech by the Minister of Austria-Hungary which was intended to 'pay out' Italy for her talks with Russia, it is not Austria that would have raised the question. Our Government have given Germany, so far as they could give, a vast tract in Africa in which British subjects had traded, but in most of which no German had ever been. They have also given Germany Heligoland, which they might have sold dear, and which, if Mr. Gladstone had given, they would have destroyed him for giving.... All this for what? What have we gained by it?” [Footnote: Fortnightly Review, January, 1902.]
The policy of Lord Rosebery and Lord Kimberley from 1892 to 1895 resembled that of Lord Salisbury in so far as it aimed at the settlement of outstanding questions with Germany and France. The apprehensions of trouble with France were still serious, because a constant succession of short Ministries at Paris made any permanent agreement difficult if not impossible. The few Foreign Ministers who were occasionally able to keep their place for any length of time at the Quai d'Orsay were also generally those who as a rule were indifferent, if not actually hostile, to friendship with this country, such as the Duc Decazes in the early days of the Republic, and M. Hanotaux at a later period, who, however, was quite ready to invite Great Britain to join in reckless adventures. [Footnote: Sir Charles notes in November, 1896, that Mr. Morley reported that 'Hanotaux had told him that he could not understand why England had refused to join in a France, Russia, and England partition of China. “China is a dead man in the house who stinks.”'] Towards France Lord Rosebery's Government twice took up a firm stand: first in regard to her aggressive action in Siam; and secondly by the clear warning, given through Sir Edward Grey in the House of Commons, that if the expedition of Major Marchand, which was known to be crossing Africa from west to east, reached the Nile Valley, as it eventually did at Fashoda, British interests would be held to be affected. The gravity of this warning was at the moment very inadequately comprehended by the House and by the country, notwithstanding the repeated attempts of Sir Charles to reinforce it before rather unconvinced audiences.
A firm attitude towards France was greatly facilitated through the friendly position adopted towards Great Britain by Count Caprivi (the successor in 1890 of Prince Bismarck in the Chancellorship of the German Empire) and his Minister of Foreign Affairs, Baron Marschall. This period indicates the high-water mark of friendly relations between Germany and Great Britain; and though Count Caprivi retired in 1894, when he was succeeded by Prince Hohenlohe, who had special ties with Russia, these friendly relations may be said to have been prolonged, so far as the official relations of the two Governments were concerned, though with ever-diminishing vitality, up to the retirement of Baron Marschall from the Foreign Office in 1897. [Footnote: See the observations of Reventlow, 115-118, and Buellow, Imperial Germany, 31, 34.] In this period German commercial policy took a strong turn towards freer trade, to the great wrath of the feudal and military parties in Prussia, who were the centre of the forces hostile to a good understanding with Great Britain. The secret treaty also which Bismarck had negotiated with Russia, behind the back of his allies, was allowed to lapse, and a more conciliatory attitude was adopted towards the Poles, which gratified Liberal opinion, especially in this country. But even in the time of Baron Marschall there were evidences of the existence in Germany of currents of opinion of a less friendly character, which were able from time to time to assert themselves in African affairs. As Sir Charles Dilke pointed out, Germany had joined with France in 1894 in objecting to, and thereby nullifying, the Congo Treaty of that year with Belgium; and some of the territories which had been handed over to Germany in the neighbourhood of the Cameroons in 1893, with the express object, apparently, of barring a French advance in that region, had been handed over by Germany to France by another treaty in 1895. [Footnote: Reventlow, pp. 52, 53, admits this. For the treaties themselves, see Hertslet, The Map of Africa by Treaty, ii. 658, in. 999, 1008.]
Throughout the period from 1892 to 1895 a Liberal Ministry was in office, but hardly in power. For the next ten years a strong Tory Administration possessing unfettered freedom of action was in real power, with an Opposition weakened by internal dissension. It was not unnatural that, under such discouraging conditions as to home affairs, Sir Charles should have again devoted most of his time to foreign questions and army reform.
“I recognize,” Mr. Balfour wrote to him, in regard to some arrangements as to the business of the House, “that no man in the House speaks with greater authority or knowledge on foreign affairs than yourself, and that no man has a better right to ask for opportunities for criticizing the course in respect of foreign affairs adopted by this or any other Government.” [Footnote: March 31st, 1897.]
This recognition was general, so much so that what he spoke or wrote on foreign affairs was constantly translated, reproduced verbatim and commented upon in foreign newspapers—a distinction enjoyed as a rule only by official speakers, and not always by them; while original contributions from his pen were eagerly sought for not only at home, but abroad, especially in France and in the colonies, “Il a pese constamment sur l'opinion francaise,” the Figaro wrote at the time of his death; and his known friendship for France and everything French made plain- speaking at times possible without exciting resentment. Even those—and there were many in England—who disagreed with his criticisms of the details of Lord Salisbury's policy, felt the comprehensive grasp of his facts, and the vast store of knowledge on which he drew; and the members of his own party, many of whom did not altogether go with him, or sometimes, perhaps, quite grasp his standpoint, nevertheless enjoyed, especially while their own oracles were dumb, the sound of the heavy guns which, after his return to Parliament, from time to time poured political shot and shell into the ranks of the self-complacent representatives of the party opposite. In those ranks, too, there were men who at heart agreed very largely with the speaker, while compelled by party discipline to maintain silence. On the other hand, there nearly always came a moment when Conservative approval passed into the opposite, for Sir Charles had no sympathy with the vast if rather confused ideas of general annexation which prevailed in Conservative circles: the policy of mere earth-hunger which Mr. Gladstone had denounced in 1893.
[Footnote: See above, p. 256.]
When Lord Salisbury returned to the Foreign Office in 1895, the policy of “graceful concessions” to France seemed to Sir Charles to have begun again—concessions in Tunis, concessions in Siam, concessions all round—and he returned to the attack. Tunis, he again pointed out, dated back to 1878, when M. Waddington received, in his own words as given in his own statement, a spontaneous offer of that country in the words “Take Tunis. England will offer no opposition.” But at least certain commercial rights and privileges were then reserved. Now they were gone. Even the nominal independence of Madagascar had finally disappeared.
Sir Charles also drew attention to the one subject of foreign affairs upon which, during the last Parliament, Mr. Curzon never tired of attacking, first Mr. Gladstone's and then Lord Rosebery's Government: this was the advance of the French in Siam. Lord Rosebery had gone to the verge of war with France in checking the French proceedings, and when he left office France was under a promise to evacuate Chantaboon and the provinces of Batambong and Siamrep, and to set up a buffer State on the Mekong. We were then in military occupation of British Trans- Mekong Keng-Cheng. Lord Salisbury came to an arrangement which left France in Chantaboon and these provinces, thus giving away, against our interests, what was not ours to give—as he had done in Tunis—and he evacuated and left to France British Trans-Mekong Keng-Cheng, in which a 50 per cent, ad valorem duty had just been put on British goods (from Burmah), a duty from which French goods were free. Not only did Lord Salisbury himself make this arrangement, but he had to submit when France, in alliance with Russia, forced the Government of China to yield territory to France, in direct derogation of China's treaty engagements. Lord Salisbury had since made what was known as the Kiang-Hung Convention with China; and it commenced by setting forth the cession by China to France of territory which had been ceded to China on the express condition that it should not be so ceded to France. This action on the part of China was brought about by the violent pressure of France and Russia at Pekin, which Lord Salisbury passed over. “The defence of his Siam arrangements in the House of Commons consisted in Mr. Curzon, who had become the representative of the Foreign Office, informing the House that the provinces (which he had formerly declared most valuable) were unimportant to British trade, and in pacifying assurances that the Upper Mekong was not navigable, although a French steamer was actually working on it where Mr. Curzon said no ship could go.” [Footnote: Letter to the Liverpool Daily Post, December 2nd and 5th, 1898.]
In the days of these petty collisions in West Africa and all the world over—the “policy of pin-pricks” to which at this time Mr. Chamberlain made fierce allusion in a public speech—Sir Charles arranged to publish a dialogue between himself and M. Lavisse of the French Academy discussing the international situation. “I shall be answering the Temps article which replies to you,” he wrote to Chamberlain on December 26th, 1898. “Lavisse, being of the Academy, wants a month to polish his style. The dialogue will not appear till February 1st or 15th. There will be nothing in it new to you. What is new and important is that the French, impressed by the fleet, and pressed by their men of business, such as Henri Germain, the Director of the Credit Lyonnais, and Pallain, now Governor of the Bank of France, want to be friends. I've told these two and others that it is useless to try and settle things unless they will settle Newfoundland. These two came back after seeing Ministers, including the Foreign Minister and the Minister for War, Freycinet, and independently said that they want to settle Newfoundland. They've quite made up their minds that Germany does not want them and will not buy their friendship. I have not seen Monson (the British Ambassador) since my second interview with them, but I told Austin Lee last night to tell him the terms on which I thought that Newfoundland could be settled if you want to settle it. I do not put them on paper as I am sending this by post.”
The Newfoundland dispute as to rights of fishing under the Treaties of Utrecht and Paris was one to which Dilke always attached special importance, and immediately after this letter to Chamberlain he wrote upon it in the Pall Mall Magazine (February, 1899), describing it as “the most dangerous of all international questions, as it is also one of the most difficult.” [Footnote: This dispute was mainly concerned with the question whether the French fishermen possessed an “exclusive” or only a concurrent right in the so-called French shore, under the above- mentioned treaties (see Fitzmaurice, Life of Shelburne, 2nd ed., ii. 218). It was finally settled in the Lansdowne-Delcasse agreement of 1904, with other then pending questions. Sir Charles Dilke gave a useful summary of the history of the question and its numerous developments after 1783, in a small volume entitled The British Empire, published in 1899.] Great Britain appeared to him to “have gone infinitely beyond the strict terms of the treaty in the concessions to France made for the sake of peace,” and to have made proposals which “would not be tolerated for an instant if any of the other ten self-governing colonies were in question,” and were only considered because of the “poverty and feebleness of Newfoundland.” Lord Salisbury was, in his eyes, no worse a sinner in this respect than the Liberal Government of 1893, except that Lord Salisbury had also made concessions in giving up the existing situation secured by treaty in Madagascar, in Tunis, and in Siam, against which there might have been set off a settlement of this “really dangerous question.” He said that in Newfoundland the British navy was being used to coerce British colonists into submission to the French demands; and he foresaw peril to the colonial relation, as well as peril in the international field.
Whether it was possible during the period now under consideration to make an alliance, or even to establish friendly relations with Germany on a solid and permanent basis, is a question which will never fail to be the subject of discussion and controversy: for on it hinged the future of Europe. With an unfriendly France and a German Chancellor— Prince Hohenlohe—aiming, and for a time with some partial success, at re-establishing friendly relations with Russia, the advantages of a good understanding between Great Britain and Germany were obvious; for hardly had the difficulties on the North-West frontiers of India been for the time quieted by the “Pamir” Treaty of 1895, [Footnote: This Treaty was made while Lord Kimberley was Foreign Secretary.] when the war between Japan and China opened up the long series of events in the Far East which culminated later on in the Russo-Japanese War. In those events all or nearly all the European Great Powers were taking a hand; Germany was aspiring to take a leading part, and had to a certain extent obtained it by the command-in-chief of the Allied Forces being given to Count Waldersee, and by the expedition to relieve the Legations in Pekin. But the Jameson Raid and the congratulatory telegram of the Emperor to President Kruger in January, 1896, showed that Germany might intend also to have a South African policy, which in the hands of a less skilful or a less friendly Foreign Secretary than Baron Marschall might open, notwithstanding all the previous treaties, a new chapter of diplomacy. Meanwhile Baron Marschall, with the hand of a skilful jurist, softened down the meaning of the famous telegram, by a close and minimizing interpretation of the words, and, as a practised diplomatist, went out of his way to meet the wishes of Lord Salisbury, who had proposed that the cost of the recent British Expedition to Dongola should be a charge on the funds of the Egyptian Caisse.
But Baron Marschall's tenure of his post was becoming precarious, and Sir Charles did not believe in the possibility of any alliance or permanent understanding with Germany. He feared, on the contrary, that one result of the policy of concession might be ultimately to tempt France, Germany, and Russia, to form a practical and informal union against Great Britain, similar to that which had proved so great a cause of anxiety in 1884-85. This, though not a formal alliance, had been almost as dangerous as one more specific and avowed, and it was now, he thought, likely to be found to exist with reference to events in China.
After the defeat of China by Japan in 1895, every year brought some new and dangerous development, and the break-up of the Chinese Empire seemed near. Any understanding on the part of Great Britain with Russia, in regard to China, Sir Charles believed to be unreliable, and probably impossible, and Lord Salisbury's policy, which seemed to have gone out of its way to let Russia into Port Arthur, showed in his opinion deplorable weakness.
Mr. Chamberlain in a speech in the winter of 1898—which was followed by others in the same strain—had seemed almost to propose an alliance with Germany. Following him at Birmingham, Sir Charles pointed out that the Secretary of State for the Colonies had said: “If the policy of isolation which has hitherto been the policy of this country is to be maintained in the future, then the fate of the Chinese Empire may be—probably will be—hereafter decided without reference to our wishes and in defiance of our interests;” and went on to say: “If, on the other hand, we are determined to enforce the policy of the open door, to preserve an equal opportunity for trade with all our rivals, then we must not allow jingoes to drive us into a quarrel with all the world at the same time, and we must not reject the idea of an alliance with those Powers whose interests most closely approximate to our own.” No doubt, Sir Charles replied, the Government were pledged to pursue the policy of “equal opportunity for trade,” but they had not successfully maintained that policy in action. What were the Powers, he asked, which Mr. Chamberlain had in view when he went on to say: “Unless we are allied to some great military Power, as we were in the Crimean War, when we had France and Turkey as our allies, we cannot seriously injure Russia”? Mr. Chamberlain must have referred to an alliance with Germany. Personally, Dilke said that he “was entirely opposed to a policy of standing and permanent alliances; but was there any prospect that Germany would ever agree to bear in Europe the brunt of defending for us—for that was what it would come to—the most dangerous of our responsibilities? Prince Bismarck's policy on the subject had been avowed over and over again; he had foreseen these suggestions, and had rejected them in advance. Speaking in 1887, Prince Bismarck said: 'Our friendship for Russia suffered no interruption during the time of our wars, and stands to-day beyond all doubt.... We shall not ... let anyone throw his lasso round our neck in order to embroil us with Russia.' And again in 1888: 'No Great Power can, in the long-run, cling to the wording of any treaty in contradiction to the interests of its own people. It is sooner or later compelled to say, “We cannot keep to that,” and must justify this announcement as well as it can.' [Footnote: See, too, Bismarck Memoirs, ii., pp. 258, 259.] In 1890 the present German Emperor renewed the Triple Alliance, and the relations also of Germany and Russia had never, he believed, been closer than they were at the present time. Any notion of a permanent or standing alliance with Germany against Russia was, in short, a Will-o'-the-wisp. Opposed as he was to the whole policy of alliances as contrary to the true interests of this country, he was specially opposed to this particular proposal, because it was calculated to lead our people to think that they could rely on the strong arm of another Power instead of only on their own strong arm.” [Footnote: The speech of Mr. Chamberlain referred to above was made at Birmingham. It was followed by speeches at Wakefield on December 8th, 1898, and at Leicester on November 20th, 1899.]
Yet a strong action in the Near East, Sir Charles thought, might have compensated for a feebler policy on the Pacific Coast. In Armenia, Christians for whom Great Britain was answerable under the Treaty of Berlin were being massacred, but Lord Salisbury did nothing to help them. In November, 1896, there was a faint stir of public opinion, but many of the suggestions made in regard to what ought to be done were unwise. [Footnote: November 4th, 1896.—'Morley told me that in order to force the hand of the Turks, before July, 1895, Kimberley had proposed to force the Dardanelles, and that Harcourt had stopped it. Mr. Gladstone had written to Morley to insist on his speaking about Armenia and to complain of his lukewarmness. I said: “But Mr. G. in 1880, when something could have been done, confined himself to what he called 'friendly' words to the Sultan.'“ See on the whole subject Crispi Memoirs, vol. ii., chap. ix.]
“No one,” Sir Charles had said in 1896, “would protest more emphatically than he did against some of the advice which had been given. One of the ablest journalists and highest of financial authorities, Mr. Wilson, had suggested the landing of a few troops and the deportation of the Sultan to Cyprus. The defences of the Dardanelles were not such as could be very easily forced even by the British fleet.... No British Admiral, even if he succeeded in forcing the Dardanelles, would have troops to land who could overcome the Turkish guard, an army corps, and the excited Turkish population.” Elsewhere, with prophetic foresight, he showed that the forcing of the Dardanelles could not be carried out without “heavy loss, possibly tremendous loss, and that the loss of a first-class British ironclad is equivalent to the loss of an army corps with all its guns.” [Footnote: Letter to the Macclesfield Chronicle, September 19th, 1896.]
Crete was now again in a state of chronic rebellion against Turkish rule; and Turkish methods of repression only stimulated the popular demand to be joined to Greece. Sir Charles Dilke thought that, if the Powers really wished to coerce Turkey to bring about better government within its dominions, coercion could most safely begin in the Greek islands, where European fleets could absolutely control the issue and no question of Continental partition need arise. In Crete the Sultan could, Sir Charles believed, have been compelled to accept a nominal sovereignty, such as he retained over Cyprus; and the aspiration towards Hellenic unity, the need for Hellenic expansion, might thus have been satisfied.
If England had taken “instant and even isolated action,” France would, he thought, not have thwarted British policy. “The effect would ultimately have been the addition of Crete to the Greek kingdom under the auspices, perhaps, of all the Powers, perhaps of the Powers less Germany, perhaps of only three or four of them.” [Footnote: Ibid.]
The occasion was missed, and war, declared by Turkey against Greece, followed, and years of anarchy in Crete. The Ministers of the Powers “even in the free Parliaments of the United Kingdom and France” “used pro-Turkish language,” and attacked those who, because they upheld the traditional Liberal policy of both countries, were accused of abetting the Greeks.
“The blockade by the fleets of the Powers became pro-Turkish,
and
Europe took sides against Greece in the war. If Greece had been
allowed to hold Crete, she could have exchanged it against
Thessaly,
if the worst had come to the worst, without those financial
sacrifices which are now necessary. [Footnote: Such a proposal
had
actually been made in 1881 by Prince Bismarck. Life of
Goschen, i.
214; Life of Granville, ii. 226.] The very claim of the
Powers to
have localized the war by stopping the Slav States from
attacking
Turkey is in itself a claim to have interfered on one side.”
When Greece was defeated, “the majority in the Parliament of the United Kingdom, if not of the British people,” Sir Charles wrote, “professed that their burning sympathies for Greece had been destroyed by Greek cowardice, although the stand, at Domoko, of ill-supplied young troops against an overwhelmingly superior force of Turkish veterans deserved fairer criticism.” He interpreted his own duty differently, and when the Hellenic cause was most unpopular he continued to express his faith in the “rising nationalities of the Eastern Mediterranean,” and looked forward with confidence to a future in which Palmerston's generous surrender of the Ionian Islands should be emulated by a new act of Liberal statesmanship. “There can be little doubt that Cyprus, as a part of a great scheme for strengthening the elements of the Eastern Mediterranean that are hopeful for the future, will not be kept out of the arrangement by any reluctance on the part of the United Kingdom to let its inhabitants follow the tendencies of their race!” [Footnote: The above Notes on Crete relate to the period when war broke out, in 1897, between Greece and Turkey, and the Turks invaded Thessaly.]
“Oh for an hour of Canning or of Palmerston!” he said, at a great public meeting in the North in October, 1898. “Canning was a Tory, a Tory Foreign Secretary of State, a Tory Prime Minister, although at odds with the Duke of Wellington upon some subjects. Lord Palmerston was looked upon by many Radicals as a Whig, but in foreign affairs he had never exhibited that carelessness and that absence of a willingness to run risks for the sake of freedom which no doubt marred his conduct of home affairs. Canning had seen the interest of Great Britain in maintaining the Greek cause, as Palmerston had seen her interest in strengthening Greece by allowing the Republic of the Ionian Isles, of which we had the protectorate, to join her after the downfall of the Prince called by Palmerston 'the spoilt child of autocracy, King Otho.' Canning had consistently refused in circumstances of far greater difficulty and danger than those which attended the Greek or Cretan questions in our times, to be dragged at the heels of the great despotic Powers. Canning resolved not only to assist the Greek cause, but in doing so to maintain the superiority of British influence in the Eastern Mediterranean; and, seeing the course which was clear in the interest of Europe and in our own interest, he determined to settle the question in his own way, as he at the same time settled that of South America to the immense advantage of this country, which now had found in South America one of the best of all markets for her trade. There never was a greater loss to England than when Canning died as Prime Minister and was succeeded in office by one of those fleeting figures who, in the language of Disraeli, were but transient and embarrassed phantoms. [Footnote: Lord Goderich, Prime Minister from August 8th, 1827, to January 8th, 1828.] The deeds of Canning in the questions of Greece and South America, his regard at once for liberty and for Britain, might be read in all the lives of that great Minister, and what Palmerston did of the same kind in the case of Italy was perfectly known.”
In consequence of observations of this kind, he had to defend himself more than once against the charge of “Jingoism,” as the cant term of the day had it; and more particularly in the debate on foreign policy on June 10th, 1898, when it was made by an old political friend, Mr. Leonard Courtney.
“I am one of those,” Dilke replied, “who are in favour of large armaments for this country, and believe in increasing the strength of our defences for the sake of peace; and one of the very reasons why I desire that is because I repudiate the idea of making our policy depend upon the policy of others. I have always repudiated, and never ceased to repudiate, the policy of grab which is commonly associated with the name of Jingo.... I submit that the worst policy in these matters is to have regard to our own rights only, and not to the rights of others. We want our country to be viewed with that respect which men will ever cherish for unbending integrity of purpose. We should be more scrupulous with regard to asserting nominal rights which we do not intend to maintain.
“When such transactions are criticized, the Government always
reply
by asking: 'Would you have gone to war at this or that
particular
point, for this or that particular object?' It always appears
to me
in these cases that there is some confusion in our minds about
this
risk of war on such occasions. If the intention of the other
Power
is to avoid war, war will be avoided when you quietly hold your
own.
But if the intention of the other Power is war, there will be
no
lack of pretexts to bring it about.”
His policy, therefore, would have been to advance no claims but such as could be made good, if need arose, by England's own carefully measured resources in connection with those of France.
It was, however, impossible at this time to focus public attention upon events in the Mediterranean, or even in the Nile Valley. The eyes of all politicians alike were becoming fixed upon a different part of the African continent.
Mr. Chamberlain had taken the Colonial Office in 1895, and it was in reply to a short speech from Sir Charles Dilke during the brief Autumn Session of that year that he expressed himself glad to outline his general policy, and spoke of finding in the Colonies an undeveloped estate, which he was determined to develop. His phrases caught the popular imagination then as always. Colonial enterprise was the theme of all pens and tongues. Then on New Year's Day of 1896 had come the Jameson Raid. But in the stormy chapters of Parliamentary life which followed Sir Charles took little part, beyond commending Mr. Chamberlain's promptitude in condemning the Raid. The speech which he made in the vote of censure on the colonial policy of Mr. Chamberlain, moved on January 30th, 1900, as an amendment to the Address, by Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice on behalf of the Opposition, was of an independent character, dealing more with the military and naval aspects of the position than those purely political. But, though standing rather apart from the general line of attack, the speech was recognized as one of the most weighty contributions to the debate, as it brought home to the country on how dangerously narrow a margin of strength the policy of Mr. Chamberlain rested, and how entirely it owed its success to the maintenance of the navy of this country, which German Navy Bills were about to threaten. Four years later, when the German naval preparations were assuming a definite shape, he repeated these warnings in a still more decisive manner by a speech which attracted great attention in Germany itself, as well as at home. [Footnote: “Der fruehere Unterstaatsecretaer des Auswaertigen, und sehr angesehene Sir Charles Dilke, wies damals auf Deutschland bin und sagte: man vergroessere dort die Flotte mit einer ausgewohnten Schnelligkeit und richte sich damit oeffentlich gegen England.” (Reventlow, p. 242).]
Sir Charles disapproved of the Boer War, [Footnote: “I am myself opposed to the Milner policy, which led up to the South African War. But in spite of the Natal events I do not share the opinion either that the war itself will be a long one, or that foreign complications will arise.” (“Risk of European Coalition,” Review of the Week, November 4th, 1899).] but he held that when the country was seized by the war-fever interposition was useless: it did more harm than good both at home and abroad. Staying in Paris, in the early days of the contest, when we were suffering and beaten for the moment, he told those who commiserated us and threatened European complications to “wait and see,” laughing at the idea that England could be permanently at a disadvantage, but not entering into the abstract merits of the question. If forced to speak, he admitted that the war was “unwise,” but his utterances were very few. It, however, raised a general principle, inducing him to recall facts which had been too frequently forgotten. The party which was now opposing government by Chartered Company was, he said, the party which had revived it in 1881 in the case of North Borneo; while the Tories, who then had condemned that method of colonization, were now enthusiastic for it. Sir Charles, who had opposed the system in regard to Borneo, where it was attended by little danger, now pointed out that not only had it produced the Jameson Raid in South Africa, but that on the West Coast the Niger Company threatened to involve England in differences with France by action which England could not control. These were conclusive proofs that the principle which in 1881 he had resisted to the point of seriously differing from his official chief was fraught with inconvenience and dangers. The Niger Company's position, however, was the affair of political specialists; South African policy was embroiled with the fortunes of a gigantic gambling speculation. [Footnote: This is recalled by a fact in Sir Charles's personal history. His son became entitled on coming of age in September, 1895, to a legacy of L1,000. Sir Charles offered him in lieu of that bequest 2,000 “Chartered South African shares.” Had he accepted, he could, when the legacy became due, 'have sold them for L17,000 and cleared L16,000 profit! But he refused them when offered, and,' says Dilke, 'not thinking them things for a politician, I sold them, and (purposely) at a loss.']
The Transvaal War destroyed whatever prospects there might have been of a permanent understanding with Germany, and Mr. Chamberlain before the war was over had to make at least one speech which brought on himself the fiercest denunciations of the German Press, when he replied in vigorous language to the charge of cruelty brought against the British military authorities in Africa. The absolute mastery of the sea possessed by Great Britain probably alone prevented the Emperor forcing his Ministers into some imprudent act; and it was clearly seen that Count von Buelow, who had succeeded Baron Marschall as Foreign Secretary in June, 1897, and afterwards succeeded Prince Hohenlohe as Chancellor in 1900, though not desiring a conflict, and convinced, as he has since told the world, that none need come, was nevertheless less friendly than his predecessors, and intended to pursue rigidly the policy of a free hand with a strong navy behind it. [Footnote: Buelow, Imperial Germany (English translation), p. 47. A later edition, with considerable alterations and additions, was published in 1916.] Events were visibly fighting on the side of those who saw that France was the only possible ally of Great Britain, and that the only other alternative was, not an alliance with Germany, but a return to the policy of “splendid isolation.” The apologist of Prince von Buelow has himself told the world that the policy of an absolutely “free hand” now inaugurated by the new Chancellor was evidently one, in itself, of great difficulty, because Germany might frequently be compelled to change front; and, to use an expression attributed to Bismarck, might have to “face about” until friendship with this country became impossible. The prognostication was soon to be justified. [Footnote: Reventlow, p. 159.]
It was perhaps the decisive moment in the relations of Great Britain and Germany, when Count von Buelow, with the ink hardly dry on the Anglo- German treaty of October, 1900, which was supposed to be intended to protect China against further Russian advances on the north, cynically went out of his way to make a statement in the German Parliament that the treaty did not apply to Manchuria. The reply of the British Government was the Anglo-Japanese treaty of February 11th, 1902. [Footnote: Reventlow (German Foreign Policy, 1888-1914) speaks of this incident as the “Wendepunkt der Britischen Politik und der Deutsch- Englischen Beziehungen.” (p. 168). See, too, Berard, La Revolte de l'Asie, pp. 192-194, 208, 209, 293.]
In February, 1901, a typical article from Sir Charles's pen appeared in the Figaro, strongly urging the absolute necessity for the creation of really cordial relations between Great Britain and France, which he considered were the sure and sufficient guarantee of European peace. It was true, no doubt, that the increasing strength and efficiency of the French army were a guarantee, up to a certain point, of peace with Germany, just as the weakness of the French army had been an active temptation to Germany in 1870 to attack France. The joint action of the Powers in China at the moment was also itself a sign of improved relations. Nevertheless, as Moltke had said, Germany would remain armed for half a century after 1870, if she intended, as she did intend, to keep Alsace-Lorraine; and as Europe had for the present to remain an armed camp, more could hardly be hoped than to maintain peace, however burdensome the cost. Europe, Sir Charles urged, should try to realize that a great war would probably be fatal, whoever might be the victor, to her commercial world-supremacy—as the great and ruinous burdens, which would everywhere result, would surely cause that supremacy to pass to America. There the development of the resources, not of the United States only, but also of the Argentine Confederation, ought to give pause to those who did not look beyond the immediate future and seemed unable to realize that a Europe laden with all the effects of some gigantic struggle would prove a weak competitor with the New World on the other side of the Atlantic. To remind Frenchmen that the English have not always been victorious in war was no very difficult task; but he ventured to remind Englishmen also that, as the English army was quite inadequate to take a large part in a Continental war under the changed conditions of modern warfare, Great Britain and France, while united, should more than ever walk warily, and distrust the counsels of those who occasionally in Great Britain spoke lightly of war. It was easy to talk about the victories of Marlborough and Wellington; but the military history of England was really a very chequered one, and of this Englishmen were, unfortunately, mostly unaware. Our military prestige had never been great in the commencement of our wars, and, as he had said in the recent debates on the Boer War, [Footnote: House of Commons, February 1st, 1900] we had too often had to “muddle through.” On more than one occasion—in America, for example, during the Seven Years' War, and more recently in New Zealand—we had only been got out of our difficulties by the help of our own colonists. Here at least was a great future source of as yet undeveloped strength. The disastrous Walcheren Expedition was on record; even Wellington had had to retire over and over again in the earlier period of the Peninsular War; in the Crimea we had not shown any great military quality beyond the bravery of our troops. These were truths, unpalatable truths, but they had to be uttered, if on the one hand the cause of army reform in Great Britain was to prosper, and if on the other France was not to reckon too much on the assistance of a British army on the Continent of Europe, especially in the earlier stages of a war. [Footnote: Figaro, February 11th, 1901.]
In a cordial understanding with France, therefore, Sir Charles Dilke considered to lie the sheet-anchor of British foreign policy and the best guarantee of peace. In 1898 the arrival of the French force at Fashoda, on the Nile, had brought things to a crisis, and the firm attitude then adopted by Lord Salisbury at length convinced France, as Sir Charles always believed it would, that she must make her choice between Germany and Great Britain. In the action of Lord Lansdowne, who had succeeded Lord Salisbury at the Foreign Office in 1900, and in the policy eventually embodied in the Anglo-French agreement of 1904, Sir Charles recognized the views which persistently, but not always successfully, he had urged for many years on his own friends in France and England. But the new departure was only rendered possible by the appearance at the French Foreign Office of a statesman who, after the bitter experience of the final failure of the policy of “pin-pricks" before Lord Salisbury's firm stand in the Fashoda affair, boldly threw his predecessors overboard, and managed to make himself the inevitable Foreign Minister of France for a long period of years, successfully maintaining himself in office against every competitor and every rival, while other Ministers came and went. Late, perhaps too late, the policy of Gambetta was revived by M. Delcasse, and it held its own.
By 1903, owing to the complete change in the attitude of France, matters had so much improved as between England and the Republic that Sir Charles could write in the Empire Review of “An Arrangement with France” as possible, basing himself on recent articles in La Depeche Coloniale, which had been the extreme anti-British organ. “That the French colonial party should have come frankly to express the desire which they now entertain for an arrangement of all pending questions between the English and the French is indeed a return towards relations better than any which have existed since Gambetta's fall from power.” But this improvement in the relations of the two countries was materially aided by the influence of the personality of King Edward VII., which Sir Charles fully recognized, as he also did one of the consequences, which was perhaps not so fully seen by others. “The wearer of the crown of England plays in foreign affairs,” he wrote, “a part more personal than in other matters is that of the constitutional King. No one can deny that there are advantages, and no one can pretend that there are never drawbacks, attendant on this system. It is not my purpose to discuss it, but it makes the adoption in this country of control by a Parliamentary Committee difficult, if not impossible.” [Footnote: English Review, October, 1909. Article by Sir C. Dilke.] “The great and sudden improvement in the relations between the English-speaking world and France is largely due to the wisdom and courtesy with which the King made clear to France that there was no ground for the suspicions which prevailed.”
[Footnote: Quarterly Review, July, 1905, p. 313. Article by Sir C. Dilke. With France Sir Charles had for the moment again a certain official relation, having been placed on the Royal Commission charged with British interests at the Paris Exhibition—an honour due to him not only in his own right, but as his father's son. At this moment also, when relations between the neighbouring countries were severely strained, he gave to the Luxembourg the reversion of Gambetta's portrait, and sent the portrait itself to be placed among the works of Legros on exhibition in June, 1900. M. Leonce Benedez, curator of the Luxembourg, in writing to press for the chance of exhibiting the picture, said:
“Je m'excuse vivement de mon importunite, mais je serais tres
desireux que notre public peut etre admis a juger Legros sur
cette
belle oeuvre. De plus, je serais, en meme temps, tres heureux
que
les amis de votre grande nation, plus nombreux que la sottise
de
quelques journalistes ne voudrait le laisser croire, fussent a
meme
d'apprecier la pensee elevee et delicate de l'illustre homme
d'etat
anglais qui, au milieu des circonstances presentes, a tenu a
donner
a notre pays une marque si touchante de sympathie en lui
offrant le
portrait d'un de ses plus glorieux serviteurs.”
The exhibition drew Sir Charles and Lady Dilke for a summer visit to Paris, and it was during this visit that the sculptor Roty executed his medallion of Sir Charles.]
But wisdom and courtesy were not a little aided by the royal habit of mixing easily with men at home and abroad, just as, on the other hand, the long retirement of Queen Victoria had been injurious in an opposite direction. This feeling finds expression in the fragment of commentary in which Sir Charles dealt with the change of Sovereigns:
'The Accession Council after the Queen's death was a curious
comment
on history. History will tell that Victoria's death plunged the
Empire into mourning, and that favourable opinion is more
general of
her than of her successor. Yet the Accession Council, attended
almost solely by those who had reached power under her reign,
was a
meeting of men with a load off them. Had the King died in 1902,
the
Accession Council of his successor would not have been thus
gay;
there would have been real sorrow.'
Sir Charles thought hopefully of the situation at this moment, and there is a letter dated as far back as 1900 in which Mr. Hyndman noted the “unusual experience” of finding an Englishman who took a more favourable view of France than he himself, and expressed his fear that Sir Charles underrated “the strength of the National party.” [Footnote: How well he understood France may perhaps best be judged by an article written, at the desire of M. Labori, for the Grande Revue in December, 1901. It is called “Torpeur Republicaine,” and begins with the observation that English Radicals are tempted to think French Republicans more reactionary than any English Tories, for the reason that all English parties had practically, if not in theory, accepted municipal Socialism. “In France,” he said, “the electors of certain cities return Socialist municipal councils. They are all but absolutely powerless. We, on the other hand, elect Tory or Whig municipalities, and they do the best of Socialist work.”] But, notwithstanding the alliance of France with Russia, the action of Russia in the Far East in the period covered by the events which ended in the Japanese War had not diminished Sir Charles's rooted dislike of any idea of entente or alliance between Russia and Great Britain. He considered that Sir Edward Grey meant to be Foreign Secretary in the next Liberal Government, and was intent on making an arrangement or alliance with Russia to which he would subordinate every other consideration. “Grey,” he wrote early in 1905 to Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice, “has always favoured the deal with Russia. I hope I may be able to stay outside the next Government to kill it, which I would do if outside, not within. This,” he said, alluding to the recent death of Lady Dilke, “assumes that I regain an interest in affairs which I have wholly lost. I am well, but can at present think of nothing but of the great person who is gone from my side.” [Footnote: February 2nd, 1905.] At this time the old controversy was again raging, both at home and in India, over the question of the defence of the North-Western Frontier of India; and a recent Governor-General and his Commander-in-Chief in India, it was believed, had not altogether seen eye to eye. The latter was credited with very extensive views as to the necessity of an increase in the number of British troops, with a view to the defence of the frontier against Russian attack. Sir Charles put neither the danger of a Russian invasion nor the general strength of Russia as a military nation so high as did some who claimed to speak with authority; and he did not believe that we had any reason for constant fear in India or elsewhere, or to seek alliances, in order to avoid a Russian attack on India. The vulnerability of Russia on the Pacific, which he had always pointed to, was demonstrated in the Japanese War; as well as the miserable military administration of Russia, which he had indicated thirty-eight years before as a permanent source of weakness, certain to be exposed whenever Russia undertook operations on a large scale at any great distance from her base. [Footnote: In Greater Britain, ii. 299-312.] The Japanese alliance, he believed, could never be directly utilized for resisting in Afghanistan an attack by Russia on India. Happily, as he considered, the facts had demonstrated that there was no need for such a display of timidity as would be involved in marching foreign troops across India to defend it on the frontier. [Footnote: Monthly Review, December, 1905. It is to be observed that this argument does not involve any criticism of the Anglo-Japanese Treaty considered as a defensive measure elsewhere.]
But if he thought that an alliance with Russia was not a necessity for a sound British foreign policy, on the other hand he was equally convinced that a good understanding with the United States of America was such a necessity. He believed that if fresh subjects of difference were not created, and any remaining questions of difference—like the Fisheries— were settled, as the Alabama and Alaska questions had been settled, the old Jeffersonian tradition of suspicion of English policy would die out, even in the Democratic party, and that no obstacle would then remain to prevent the co-operation of all the branches of the race in a common policy.
In a speech made in June, 1898, he had referred to the improved relations with the United States in terms which gave credit for the improvement mainly to Sir Julian Pauncefote, then Ambassador at Washington, for whose services he had the greatest admiration. [Footnote: Sir Julian Pauncefote had previously been Permanent Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs for many years.] When, in 1896, the question of Venezuela had threatened to make trouble between the two English-speaking Powers, he counted the claims of Great Britain in respect of the frontiers of Guiana as “dust in the balance” when weighed against the advantage of not “running across the national line of policy of the United States.” He desired to sink all such petty affairs in a policy of Anglo-American co-operation in the Far East. Rivals for trade in China they must be, but the interest of both lay in working for the “open door” which admitted a friendly rivalry. He wrote in the American Independent for May 1st, 1899: “The will of the United States, if it be in accordance with the will of Great Britain and of the Australian Commonwealth—the will, in other words, of the English-speaking peoples—will be paramount in the Pacific if they are united”; and he was never weary of urging the improvement in England's relations with the United States which would follow from a friendly settlement with Ireland. [Footnote: In Present Position of European Politics, 1887, he had said: “I, for one, still have hope that the causes of strangement between Great Britain and the chief of her daughter-countries, which are mainly to be found in the friction produced by the Irish Question, may even within our lifetime be removed, and the tie of blood, and tongue, and history and letters, again drawn close.” And in a note written later in his own copy are the words: “It is for the Americans of the United States to decide how far towards firm alliance this shall be carried.” Cf. Life of Beaconsfield, iv. 231.]
Bearing in mind all these considerations, he believed, notwithstanding all the wars and the rumours of wars, that the Great Armageddon so much dreaded could be avoided by diplomacy combined with proper measures of defence. The long chain of events formed by the Sino-Japanese War, the Boer War, the Boxer Rebellion, the Anglo-Japanese Treaty, and the Russo- Japanese War, were in his opinion “secondary events,” however important, appearing to threaten the peace of Europe from time to time—very disquieting, no doubt, and ominous occasionally of yet worse things—but things such as diplomacy had conjured away before, and ought to be able to conjure away again. He did not think that Morocco, long regarded at the Foreign Office as a danger-point, would ever prove a sufficient object to induce Germany to break the general peace. She would threaten, take all she could get, and then withdraw with the spoils, just avoiding the danger-point; and so it no doubt turned out to be in 1905-06 at the time of the troubles which ended in the Algeciras Conference. But he recognized the personal character of the German Emperor as a new factor of danger in the situation.
The essential point since 1871, he wrote in 1905, had been that there never had existed a serious and settled intention of making the much- dreaded “European War” on the part of any of those with whom the great decision rested. There was, he said, to the good this main consideration—that, if any Power had intended war, a sufficient pretext could always have been found, yet the war had not come. The security for the maintenance of the long “armed peace” was, in fact, this: that no Power had really intended war, or intended it now. What the consequences would be was too well known by the responsible leaders. The sudden heats which most seemed to jeopardize peace had arisen in regard to questions not of European importance, mostly outside Europe, where sometimes on one side or the other, and sometimes upon both, tactful treatment in advance, and what might be styled “a long view,” would have saved the world from trouble altogether, and ought to do so in future under analogous circumstances, whenever the question of the Bagdad Railway and the remaining questions relating to Africa came up for final settlement. [Footnote: English Review, October, 1909.]
The guarantee of peace he believed to lie in the policy of ententes, but on condition that the policy begun by Lord Lansdowne and M. Delcasse should aim at agreement between two Powers only, and be limited to specific objects. [Footnote: See the same opinion expressed in 1871, Vol. I., p. 133.] Beyond this it was dangerous to go. An entente between more than two Powers, as distinct from one between two only, reminded him of an American game of cards which he had seen played in the Far West. This game when played by two persons was called euchre, but when played by three persons was called by another and very disagreeable name, because it so frequently ended in the use of knives. The Franco-Italian agreements of 1898 and 1900, the Anglo-French agreement of 1904, the Franco-Spanish agreement of 1904, the agreements between Japan and Russia which had followed and grown out of the Portsmouth Treaty of September, 1905, the Anglo-Japanese Treaty which followed, and the Anglo-Russian agreement of 1907 as to Persia, were guarantees for peace, because they came within the above definition. It does not appear, however, that he considered the alliance of France and Russia, dating so far as was then known from 1895, as a real guarantee for peace, or that he shared the later views attributed to Gambetta, of the desirability of an entente between Great Britain, France, and Russia.
[Footnote: “M. Gaston Thomson publishes in the Matin extracts from letters by Gambetta to M. Ranc. In one letter, written apparently at the time of the crisis of 1875, Gambetta says:
“'You must know that the forger of the Ems despatch is about to
commit another act of treachery. But our calmness and
self-possession will prevent us from falling into the same trap
as
in 1870. The croakings of a sinister raven will not plunge us
into
folly this time. He has understood his mistake. He has been
able to
transform a divided and impotent Germany into a great, strong,
disciplined Empire. For us and for himself he was less well
inspired
when he exacted the annexation of Alsace-Lorraine, which was
the
germ of death for his work.... Until they have remedied this
error
no one will disarm. The world's peace, which is so necessary
for all
peoples, will remain always at the mercy of an incident.' In
order
to prepare France to meet the future, Gambetta strove to bring
about
the alliance which to-day unites France, Great Britain, and
Russia.
In a striking passage he writes:
“'The number and importance of Russia's difficulties grow every
day.
L——keeps the Prince of Wales informed day by day of the
difficulties of that Power. The political ambitions of Russia
will
be impeded by Austria, who is already assuming a hostile
attitude.
She is exerting pressure upon Rumania. Do you see, as a
consequence,
Austria allying herself with Rumania and Turkey against Russia?
What
a conflict!
“'The Prince of Wales, however, foresees it. He does not share
the
hostility of a section of the English nation against Russia.
With
all his young authority he fights against measures which may be
prejudicial to Russia. I see in him the makings of a great
statesman....
“'I desire that our enemies should be Russia's enemies. It is
clear
that Bismarck wants an alliance with the Austrians. Russia must
therefore be made to see that we might be her ally.... Since
the
Revolution our country exerts great influence in Europe. Before
long
I see Russia and England at our side, if we only have a proper
internal policy.'“ (Times, December 30th, 1915).]
He was strongly convinced that the improvement of the French army since 1871 had been so great that it afforded by itself a sufficient reason to give Germany pause, and he believed that the German Emperor considered the French army better in some respects than his own. [Footnote: Baron Beyens says that in 1911 it was the general opinion that in many respects the French was in advance of the German army ( L'Allemagne avant la Guerre, p. 229). Ibid., p. 220.] An alliance between the two Western Powers and Russia might, in given circumstances, on the one hand encourage the party of revanche and push the country into dangerous adventures, and on the other tempt the war party in Germany to try again some extreme course, as it had in 1875.
From this point of view Dilke regarded with suspicion and anxiety the journeys of the King on the Continent after 1905, unaccompanied by a Secretary of State according to the ancient constitutional practice, but accompanied by the Permanent Under-Secretary of State from the Foreign Office, a former Ambassador to St. Petersburg. This gave plausible opportunities for encouraging the belief then prevalent in Germany that some mysterious policy was being devised, outside the ordinary channels of diplomacy and Parliamentary knowledge—a policy which, with the aid of France and Russia, was to take the shape of encircling Germany with enemies, and cutting her off from legitimate development. These anxieties were stimulated by a considerable amount of foolish writing in London newspapers, and still more foolish and unauthorized talk.
“France and Russia,” he wrote in 1908, “are drawn together by geographical considerations—given the detachment of French territory to the benefit of Germany in 1871. It did not need the parade of an alliance to cause Kings and statesmen to recognize the fact. War was made impossible in 1875—the last occasion when the well-informed thought renewed German attack on France probable—by the absolute refusal of the German Emperor; but behind that refusal lay the certainty that Russia would not forward the aims of the Prussian military party, as she had done, for a consideration, in 1870. It is, perhaps, too trivial a suggestion, but one which comes inevitably to the mind, that the householder is apt to be friendly with the man who lives next door but one, on account of their common dislike of their next-door neighbour. During the 'reign of force,' still extant upon the Continent of Europe, a more appropriate simile may be found in the proverbial habit of each of two men, in a street fight, frightening his opponent by recognition of a personage in the background. That Germany, however ambitious, and however boastful of her military strength, should be rendered nervous by the menace of Franco-Russian co-operation is a consideration modified only by the universal recognition of the desire of France for self-respecting peace. As soon as another Power is suspected of any intention of making use of the Franco-Russian co-operation for the purpose of isolating Germany, a dangerous situation has arisen.
“We are so confident in our own profound knowledge of our wish
for
European peace that we hardly realize the extreme danger for
the
future which is caused by all suggestion that we have succeeded
in
isolating Germany, or are striving to bring about that result.
The
London articles written in violent support of a supposed
alliance
did the harm; and to anyone who keeps touch for himself of
Continental opinion the harm was undoubted, and tended to
produce
several undesirable results.
“There is a word to be addressed to those who believe that our
navy
is our true defence, until the progress of pacific thought in
the
working classes of all countries has rendered the other Powers
as
peaceful as France. Those who crowed over the isolation of
Germany
took the best means of increasing the German Fleet, and
contributed
at the same time, by the proposed inflation of our
expeditionary
force, to the weakening of the British Navy.
“The true explanation of the entente, and it needs no
better, is
to be found in the defence of its essentially pacific nature by
one
of its original authors, M. Delcasse. [Footnote: M. Delcasse
had to
resign office in 1905, under German pressure, in connection
with the
controversies about Morocco.] He had his faults as a Minister,
and
on two occasions provoked alarms or dangers, which afterwards,
however, he did more than any other man to allay. Should
circumstances change and European war become likely, as it has
not
in fact been likely since 1871, the basis for our alliances, if
we
needs must have them, lies in our peaceful policy, our vigour,
and
our fleet.
“Thanks to the alarm itself, which the harum-scarum articles
excited, prudence will once more gain control of our foreign
affairs. The entente will continue: Italy, we may hope,
will not
once more be scared out of her improved relations with Powers
outside the Triplice. Recent occurrences may be turned to
useful
end, by courage in speaking out displayed by those who insist
that a
policy, profoundly peaceful in fact, shall not be exposed to
being
represented as directed against any one of the European
Powers.”
Italy, he believed—and events have justified the forecast—would be compelled by the pressure of circumstances to leave the Triple Alliance. How far Germany would be able to keep a permanent hold on Austria- Hungary might also, he thought, be doubtful, as it would largely depend on the developments of home issues in Austria itself, as to which prophecy was always rash. Like other statesmen of an older school, he still probably clung to the hope that the Dual Empire might yet be gradually converted into a Federal State, in which the Slavonic populations of the Empire would play a larger part and would not submit to take marching orders from Berlin in regard to policy in the Balkans. [Footnote: A short time before his death, in 1902, Lord Kimberley said to Lord Edmond Fitzmaurice: “If ever there is another Liberal Government—which is perhaps doubtful—Grey or you, or both of you, may have something to say to foreign affairs. Now, remember, there is on no account to be any quarrelling with Austria. She has been the only steady friend we have had in Europe—I mean since 1866. The Hungarians have always been our friends. So, I repeat, no quarrelling with Austria. I have said the same thing to Grey.” (Notes communicated by Lord Fitzmaurice). See, too, the opinion of M. Ribot, cited in Rene Henry's Questions d'Autriche-Hongrie, pp. 176-178: “Quant a l'Autriche, nos rapports avec elle ont toujours ete bons; ils ont ete pleins, non seulement de courtoisie, mais de quelque chose de plus; parceque l'Autriche sait que, de toutes les puissances europeennes, la France est la derniere qui pourrait souhaiter que l'Empire d'Autriche, garantie necessaire de l'equilibre europeen, se brisat et disparut pour le malheur de l'Europe.” (Speech in the Senate, March 11th, 1903). An interesting collection of opinions on the development of Austria into a federal State, and the probable results on the Balkan Peninsula, will be found in the last chapter of the work of Dr. Aurel Popovici, Die Vereinigten Staaten von Gross-Oesterreich (Leipzig, 1906).]
Both in 1908 and 1909, in the debates on the Foreign Office Votes in the House of Commons, Sir Charles had expressed apprehensions of the development of Great Britain's entente with Russia, in regard to Persia, into something far more extensive, and therefore dangerous—into something, in fact, very like an “alliance.” He feared that in the Bosnian question it had been pushed to extreme limits. The result, he said, had been to lead to a diplomatic humiliation. He claimed also that recent debates in the French Chamber, which had taken place at the time of the fall of M. Clemenceau's Ministry in the later half of 1909, showed that a large body of French opinion shared this view. [Footnote: See, for a summary of these views, an article by Sir C. Dilke in the English Review of October, 1909, p. 495; and Hansard for 1908, cxviii., 955-970; and for 1909, vol. viii., 621-635.]
With these preoccupations present to his mind he spoke on the last occasion on which he addressed the House of Commons at any length on foreign affairs—on July 22nd, 1909—when the policy of Sir Edward Grey in regard to the final annexation of Bosnia and the Herzegovina by Austria-Hungary was discussed on the Foreign Office Vote. He attacked this policy because it seemed to confirm the belief in the alleged tendency of the Foreign Office to extend the Anglo-Russian arrangement in regard to Persia into a general entente, with the probable result of producing exactly the opposite of the result intended, and of thereby strengthening the consolidation of the Central Powers. The diplomatic admissions and confessions of Lord Salisbury, both before and at the time of the Berlin Congress of 1878, had, he thought, made it difficult for the Foreign Office to take any decided stand against the final annexation, which the existing position had been certain to cause sooner or later. Turkey and Servia both complained. He did not deny that the Turkish Revolution brought about by the so-called “Young Turks,” who were the cause of the crisis in the Balkans, held out some possible prospect of a future less hopeless than the previous state of things; but this might have been conceded without expressing “unreserved approval of a military pronouncement attended by a good deal of hanging.” Servia also, no doubt, might be said in some degree to represent democratic principles upon the banks of the Danube; but he thought it difficult to reconcile the expression before a rather cynical Europe—and in very strong language, too—of our official horror at the conduct of the Servians in the barbarous murder of their King and Queen, with our joining Russia so very soon afterwards in a support of Servia against Austria-Hungary too absolute even for French concurrence.
Lord Salisbury, he fully believed, had become acquainted in 1877, if not before, with the substance of an agreement between Russia and Austria which contemplated, amongst other things, the annexation by the latter of the Provinces; and it was perfectly clear, from what passed at the Berlin Congress, that in 1878, before the meeting, Lord Salisbury must himself have concluded an engagement with Austria-Hungary, though the word “annexation,” no doubt, did not appear in it, and more general terms probably were used, but containing no reservation, and promising support to the Austrian policy in those Provinces. Technically the engagement might have lapsed with the treaty, and probably it had; but the fact remained, with its moral consequences. Meanwhile Lord Beaconsfield had taken Cyprus from Turkey, and had given a greater shock to Europe, by the form and the secrecy of the proceedings, than could possibly attach to the recent unilateral action of Austria-Hungary. During the proceedings at Berlin, it must also be remembered, Lord Salisbury had practically promised Tunis to France. Turkish sovereignty was technically, indeed, still maintained in Cyprus, as it also had been for thirty years in Bosnia and the Herzegovina, [Footnote: See, on the whole subject. Hanotaux, La France Contemporaine, vol. iv., pp. 314, 363-370; Etudes Diplomatiques: La Politique de l'Equilibre, by the same author, p. 184. A secret clause was signed on July 13th, 1878, by the Austro-Hungarian Plenipotentiaries, in which the occupation was described as temporary and ordered to be the subject of a special arrangement with Turkey. The secret clause was really made to save the face of the Turkish Plenipotentiaries on their return to Constantinople.] and as it was at that time in the Sudan; but at no time did the Turks expect to see those territories again under their effective sovereignty. Insistence on the letter of the treaty also weakened our position in regard to Crete, where, as he had so frequently contended, nobody could wish or believe the position made by the treaty to be permanent. Lastly, he insisted that the policy into which we had been drawn by M. Isvolski had been damaging to our interests, not only because it had strengthened the ties between the members of the Triple Alliance, but because it assisted the popularity in Germany of a naval rivalry, which oppressed us with the cost of ever-increased armaments at sea.
Sir Edward Grey, he went on to say, had taken for his text the declaration of the London Conference of 1871 as to the denunciation by Russia, in 1870, of the Black Sea clauses of the treaty of 1856. But Russia got her way, and had practically been told she would get it on the main question before the Conference met. When in 1885 Eastern Roumelia was swallowed by Bulgaria, all the Great Powers theoretically protested, but nothing came of their remonstrance. In 1886 Russia broke the article of the treaty which related to the port of Batoum; and Lord Rosebery, no doubt, wrote a despatch based on the same doctrine as that now adopted by Sir Edward Grey. But Lord Rosebery at least avoided introducing new matters. His final despatch concluded with the words: “It must be for other Powers to judge how far they can acquiesce in this breach of an international engagement.” Russia again succeeded. Why, then, have complicated the original issue in the present case by joining with Russia and France, at the instigation of the former, in putting forward suggestions to be considered at a European Conference for the territorial expansion of Servia, if possible to the Adriatic, and in regard to the Danube, that thorniest of diplomatic subjects? [Footnote: “L'independance des bouches du Danube est pour nous un dogme” were the words attributed to Count Andrassy in June, 1877 (Hanotaux, La France Contemporaine, iv. 315). See, too, the opinion of Radetzki, quoted by Rene Henry, Questions d'Autriche-Hongrie, p. 128.]
“Our action,” Dilke argued, “in such matters ought to be, as it generally is, to bring people together for public peace, and not to interfere with matters where our interfering in details is certain to be resented. Of course, there was more than this in the German resistance. That resistance was always, I think, certain. It was certain to be provoked by common action on the part of the three Powers in such matters, but it was doubly caused by the indiscreet language used, not by us, but by the Press, in support of the three Governments, and officially in Russia. We heard talk about Russia having at last completely joined two Western Powers in an anti-Austrian movement, and articles headed 'Revelations of a New Triple Alliance' were calculated to intensify opposition on the part of Austria and Germany.
“The net result has been a set-back, not so much for us as for
our
supposed and suspected client, Servia. Servia has had her
position
very much worsened by our interference on her behalf. It is
unfortunate that small Provinces in the Balkans should be in
this
position, that when Powers who are not going to fight appear to
take
up their cause against neighbouring Powers, however natural and
wise
it may be in the abstract, the result is almost certain to be
to
make their position worse; and undoubtedly there has been a
set-
back, caused by us and Russia, to Servia. We have not even with
us
our Mediterranean ally Italy, because Italy herself abstained
from
supporting us in this matter, as she was bound to abstain under
her
engagements. I therefore end this part of the matter by saying
I
think we have set the doctrine of the sacredness of the Treaty
of
Berlin, in the circumstances, too high. We have had two
previous
examples of the risk of setting up that doctrine, and pressing
it
too far, in such a case. We have tried to set it up on two
previous
occasions, and have failed. The second of those two occasions,
in
1886, is very clear. There was a distinct violation of an
article of
the Treaty of Berlin, and of the protocol outside that article.
Lord
Rosebery wrote a strong despatch with regard to that violation,
and
he raised the same comparison of 1871 as we raised on this
question,
but nothing happened. That is a very long time ago, and the
Treaty
of Berlin has not become more sacrosanct since 1886 than it was
at
that time, which was more near its conclusion. My main point
is, we
have supported principles that we could not justifiably or
wisely
support. If we had had any political or European idea behind
us, any
idea of improving the conditions of peoples, or of giving
greater
liberty to the peoples, the country would have been more
inclined to
give support than it is on the mere bare doctrine of the
sacredness
of a treaty. On the last occasion when these matters were
discussed,
the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs made a most
brilliant
speech on the Naval Vote of Censure. In that speech he defended
what
is very near the old doctrine of the balance of power in
Europe. No
one will take exception to his statement of the effect of the
existing balance upon our position in Europe. The danger is
now, as
it was 100 years ago, and still more 120 or 130 years ago, that
you
may be tempted by these understandings, which are good, to
convert
them into something very near, but not quite, an alliance, and
to
pursue a policy in support of the balance of power which will
keep
you in permanent hot water all round with everybody, and will
risk
war.”
How far the belief in the existence of a policy of encirclement, as the current phrase went, which existed in Germany from 1905 to 1909, [Footnote: See Hanotaux, La Politique de l'Equilibre, chap, xxiii.; Reventlow, 279, 296-305; Baron Beyens, L'Allemagne avant la Guerre, pp. 220-221.] was justified is a matter which the historian of the future will have to discuss. Certain it is, however, that the British Foreign Office after 1909 gave no just cause of offence to Germany. The disappointing outcome of supporting Russia in the negotiations connected with Bosnia; the failure at this time of the Entente to produce any satisfactory results in Crete and in various negotiations at Constantinople, where French policy was deemed to be influenced by considerations more financial than political; the friendly reception of King Edward VII. at Berlin in February, 1909, and the great changes which death or retirement brought about, in the years immediately succeeding, in the personnel of the Ministries of Germany, France, Austria-Hungary, Russia, and Italy—amongst others the retirement of the German Chancellor—produced a new situation. [Footnote: Hanotaux, La Politique de l'Equilibre, chap, xviii.; Reventlow, p. 339. Prince von Buelow resigned on July 20th, 1909; M. Clemenceau on July 14th, 1909; M. Isvolski and M. Tittoni in October, 1910; and Count Aerenthal in February, 1912.]
In 1910 things seemed to point again to the possibility of clearer skies. The negotiations between Germany and Great Britain in regard to the Bagdad Railway and the still outstanding African questions were resumed, and proceeded without any serious hindrance. Favourable results seemed, and with good reason, to be in sight. There were also negotiations between Germany and Russia. Thus it was that, a few days before he passed away, Sir Charles was justified in still writing in a hopeful strain that the Great War could and would be avoided—fortunate at least in this, that he did not live to see the breaking up of the foundations of the great deep. [Footnote: In his recently published work, England and Germany, 1740-1914, Mr. Bernadotte Schmitt says, speaking of the beginning of the year 1911—prior, it is to be remembered, to the Agadir incident: “In the early summer of 1911, Anglo-German relations, if not cordial, had lost much of the animosity engendered by the Bosnian troubles of 1908 and the naval scare of 1909. The German Emperor had been well received when he attended the obsequies of his uncle, Edward VII., and again on the occasion of the unveiling of the national monument to Queen Victoria in May, 1911. On the 13th of March of the same year, Sir Edward Grey had remarked upon the friendly relations obtaining with all the Powers.... In Germany the death of Edward VII., who passed for the inspirer of the Einkreisungs Politik, caused a feeling of relief.” Speaking of the period immediately preceding the outbreak of the war, the same author observes: “Whatever Germany's motives may have been, the fact remained that in July, 1914, Anglo-German relations were more cordial than they had been at any time since the Boer War.... The tragedy of the Great War lies in the fact that early in the summer of 1914 a substantial agreement had been reached between Great Britain and Germany on those matters about which they had previously disagreed” (pp. 195, 373). This book, by an American Rhodes Scholar of the Western Reserve University, is a very valuable and impartial contribution to the history of recent events. On the condition of things in 1911 and 1912, see also the despatches of Count Lalaing and Baron Beyens, from London and Berlin, to M. Davignon, the Belgian Minister for Foreign Affairs, published in the official German White book, Belgische Actenstuecke, 1905-1914, pp. 85, 113.]
I.
Call no man happy or unhappy, said the philosopher, till you see his end. With Sir Charles Dilke's life clear before us, if the question be put, “Was he happy?” only one answer can be given. He was happy. With a power of suffering which made bereavement poignant, with tragic experience of disappointment and distress, he never lost the faculty of enjoyment: he touched the world at many points, and his contact was complete and vital.
Therefore, in the life that he lived after his second wife's death there was nothing gloomy or half-hearted. At Pyrford and Dockett the same interests continued to hold their charm, though in his home of homes, the home that he did not make, but was born into, there was a change. At 76, Sloane Street, he still slept, breakfasted, and did his morning's work; but he would never willingly return there for dinner, except on very rare occasions when he entertained guests, or spend the evening there.
He still enjoyed the life of the House of Commons. Old friends were a pleasure, new-comers a fresh spring of interest, and the younger men naturally drew round this most willing teacher. One of the young Liberals [Footnote: Mr. A. F. Whyte, M.P.] who came within his influence describes the amazing interest of his talk, with its personal memories of the leading personalities in Europe during half a century past. But the true attraction was something simpler than that. “He made you extraordinarily fond of him.”
What is implied in that very simple phrase has been set out by another friend of an opposing political school, brought into touch with him by a common interest in Social Reform: [Footnote: Mr. J. W. Hills, M.P.]
“What first brought us together I forget; I think it was some
action
I took with regard to sweated trades. At any rate he asked me
to
stay for a Sunday at Dockett Eddy; and after my first visit I
went
often. For one thing, we were both devoted to rowing; he was,
of
course, a far more distinguished and accomplished oarsman than
I,
but he and I went extraordinarily well together in a pair.
Everyone
who has rowed knows that pair-oar rowing is the most difficult,
as
it is the most fascinating, form of the art. We had many long
rows
together.
“The life at Dockett Eddy had an atmosphere and a colour
different
from that of other houses. Breakfast was at a fairly early
hour.
After breakfast, Dilke was invisible till lunch. Lunch was at
12.30,
French in character, and always, wet or fine, took place on the
broad verandah which ran along one side of the house. During
the
afternoon Dilke rowed on the river, walked about the green and
winding paths of his beloved willow-clad island, and talked to
his
friends. The prevailing recollection that I shall always have
of
Dockett Eddy is good talk. No one who did not talk to Dilke
knew the
man. His speeches—at any rate, from 1906 to his death—did not
give
all his qualities. These came out in his talk. His amazing
knowledge, which occasionally overloaded his speeches and
diverted
them from their main argument, wove itself naturally into the
texture of his talk and gave it a wonderful richness and depth.
And
he talked to everybody and on all subjects; and to all he
brought
his tremendous vitality and his vivid and many-sided
personality.
You always felt that the whole force of the man was behind what
he
said—the active, eager, questioning mind, determined to master
all
facts that gave true knowledge, and when this was done, when
all
facts were noted and weighed, coming to a conclusion which was
both
clear-cut and unalterable. He was most tolerant of the views of
others, and never overwhelmed with greater knowledge; but all
that
he had in him he gave freely and without stint. The talks I
recollect best are either on industrial conditions in other
countries, or on French history from 1848 onwards, or on
English
politics. On French history I always listened to him with
delight;
he not only knew literally every fact and every date, but he
also
knew personally most of the great men who had latterly played
leading parts. On English politics it was characteristic of the
man
to have a tremendous belief in the present. For instance, I
said
something about the decadence of Parliament and Parliamentary
speaking. He at once burst out: 'You are quite wrong. The men
of
to-day are much greater than their predecessors'; and then he
went
through all our prominent politicians and compared them with
the men
of the past. The only comparisons I remember are Winston
Churchill
with his father, and Asquith with Disraeli and Gladstone, in
each
instance to the advantage of the present generation.
“Dilke was a great man, if ever there was one. He was a man of
big
ideas, too big for prejudice or suspicion or self-interest. His
mind
was at once imaginative and matter-of-fact, making him that
rare
combination, a practical idealist. But the abiding memory which
I
shall retain of him as long as I live is not his wide
knowledge, his
singleness of purpose, his vital energy and driving force, so
much
as the friendship he gave me. He put the whole of himself into
his
friendship, and gave himself abundantly and without reserve. He
was
so great a man, and meant so much to his friends, that he
played a
large part in the lives of all he honoured with his regard.
Though I
only knew him during the last three years, he filled so big a
place
in my life that his death left a wide and empty gap. I regarded
him
with love and veneration.”
“He talked to everybody and on all subjects,” and he talked to everybody on a common ground of fellowship. Newman, the cabdriver at Shepperton, beside whom he always insisted on sitting when he came to Dockett; Jim Haslett, his ferryman; Busby, his old gardener and lodge-keeper at Pyrford: these no less than “Bill” East who rowed with him, and “Fred” Macpherson with whom he fenced, keep the same memory of his friendliness and of the pleasure that they had in being with him. For his constituents he was more than a representative: he was their friend, a personal influence, a centre of affection in the lives of many among them. “I hardly know what to do or say,” wrote one of them after his death. “For one man to say of another it seems strange, but I loved Sir Charles.”
Into this affection there entered that peculiar tenderness of loyalty to the wronged which finds fit expression in these words of his old comrade, Judge Steavenson, who had known his life since they were young athletes together in the Trinity Hall boat: “I loved him, my oldest and best friend, and how I mourn him! The tragedy of his life has been pain and suffering to me for more years than I care to remember. Some say a little band of friends never wavered in their belief in his innocence. I am one, and so believing in good time I shall go to my grave.”
Many a brave man has under the sense of injustice grown hard and bitter; it was not so with Sir Charles. After his death a friend's widow wrote to one who mourned him: “I should like to tell you how divinely kind he was to me in my great grief.” A lady who for long years had been on a bed of pain said of his visits to her: “He seems to take your suffering from you and give it back to you on a higher plane. I think he understands because he has suffered so much himself.”
In these last years after Lady Dilke's death, Sir Charles resumed, in some moderate degree, the old habit of travel. From 1906 it grew to be an institution that, when the Trade-Union Congress closed its sittings in autumn, he should meet the editor of this book and her friend Miss Constance Hinton Smith, [Footnote: Who attended these Congresses as visitors representing the Women's Trade-Union League.] and with them proceed leisurely from the trysting-place to Dean Forest for his annual visit to the constituency. Thus in different years they set out from Tewkesbury, from Bath, from Leicester, from Ipswich, and explored towns and country places of beauty or historic interest, under the guidance of one who had the gift for placing every detail in its setting, whether on the physical map of England or on that crowded chart which depicts the long course of British history. For him these journeys were each a revisiting of places seen before—seen, as he would often recall, under his grandfather's guidance in boyhood.
The annual Christmas visit to Paris, where his son often joined him, was revived in company of his secretary, Mr. Hudson, and his wife. In more than one autumn, after his stay in the Forest of Dean was completed, he made a journey through Switzerland to the Italian lakes. He journeyed under a resolution not to visit any gallery of pictures, for these must recall too poignantly the companionship which had made the special joy of all his picture-seeing. But he sent his companions that they might compare their impressions with his memory, always astonishingly vivid and exact. The sights to which he gave himself were sun and air, mountain and lake. Here, as in England, trees especially appealed to him, and in the famous garden of the Isola Madre on Lago Maggiore he amazed the gardener by his acquaintance with all the collection, from the various kinds of cypress and cedar down to the least impressive shrub. But what gave him most pleasure was the actual journeying, awakening not only associations with the places seen, but memories of other places in far-off corners of the earth.
In the last year of his life the International Association for Labour Legislation met at Lugano, and he stopped there on his autumn tour. His health was already failing, he attended no meetings and received few visitors; but experts in the subject, Ministers and ex-Ministers of Labour from Prussia, France, Canada, and other countries, sought him, to consult him on points of international policy. Two years later, when the Congress met again at Zurich, M. Fontaine recalled the memory of Sir Charles and the “conseils precieux" which other workers drew from him in their interviews. It was only when the Congress was over that the holiday really began, with a day on Maggiore and two days on Orta, before the travellers made for their real destination, Aosta among its hills, a scene new to him as to them, that filled him with fresh life. All about it charmed him: the mountains, the Roman gateways, the mediaeval cloisters, the long procession of the cattle coming down from the hill-slopes during the night; the keen air gave him energy to walk as he had never thought to walk again; and, for a touch of familiar humours, the landlord of the rough little inn where they stayed had been in his day a waiter in Willis's Rooms and remembered his guest among the diners there.
An accident to one of his companions had caused him to go on alone, and, accordingly, when he came back to Turin to fetch them it was as a guide already fully qualified. On the drive up from Ivrea, in a valley whence can be seen at the same moment Mont Blanc, Monte Rosa, and the glacier of the Gran Paradiso, he could show them the fort of Bard, blocking the gorge just as in the days when it checked Napoleon on his road to Marengo. But the memories awakened in him were not only of Napoleon; the valley of the Dora Baltea was a complete image of the Khyber Pass, and Bard the very counterpart of Ali Musjid.
As they came home through France, halt was made at Lyons, and, though he refused to see the gallery, he could describe almost every canvas and the place where it hung; but best of all he remembered Charlet's great picture of the retreat from Moscow and the army that “dragged itself along like a wounded snake.” In Paris, too, on that homeward journey a stop was made, and since few of his friends were yet back from the country, there was more theatre-going than usual. Guitry, his favourite actor, was not playing, but Brasseur and Eve la Valliere amused him, and he found special delight in the Mariage de Mademoiselle Beulemans. Yet not even the acting of Jaques as the good-natured, choleric old Belgian brewer could induce him to depart from his practice of going away after the first act.
Three times in the last years of his life he went back to Provence. The first of these visits was in the January of 1909, and he with his companions set out from Paris on the last day of the old year, travelling by motor-car in defiance of heavy snow and frost. These made obstacles which only gave piquancy to his journey through scenes where stories of the Franco-German War crowded to his tongue, and when difficulties delayed the car he struck up wayside intimacies—once with an old non-commissioned officer now transformed into a Garde Champetre, anon with a peasant couple from whose cottage he begged hot water to make tea. In one such household, arriving with beard and moustache frozen white, he announced himself to the children of the family group as Father Christmas, and made good his claim with distribution of little gifts.
At Hyeres he was rejoined by the old servant, once his gardener and vine-dresser, who had marketed the produce of La Sainte Campagne in the days when Sir Charles was trading, like any other petty Provencal landowner, in grapes and artichokes, mimosa and roses and violets, for the Toulon market. That former life lived again in his talk as he recalled those whom he had known in his Provencal home: neighbours, servants, local politicians; and from his hotel at Hyeres he never failed to make excursions to Toulon, and to visit his old friend and sometime man of business, M. Bertrand, who would carry him to the cafe frequented by the leading citizens, to feast on a Provencal dejeuner with red mullet and bouillabaisse. Another recurring visit was to Emile Ollivier at La Moutte, his beautiful seaward-facing house on the promontory beyond Saint Tropez.
“Sir Dilke” had friends everywhere in that corner of the world. His near neighbour at Cap Brun, M. Noel Blache, leader of the local bar, a famous teller of Provencal stories and declaimer of Provencal verse, said of him: “He knows our country and our legends better than we know them ourselves.” In the years during which he lived for part of the twelvemonth at Toulon he had followed every winding of the coast, had explored all the recesses of the hills.
“It is my boast, probably vain,” he wrote to M. Andre Chevrillon in 1909, “to have invented the Mountains of the Moors. Sizeranne had been staying there for six weeks before he came into the British Hyeres, but, he, only on the coast. When I first showed that coast to Emile Ollivier, Noel Blache, then President of the Conseil-General of the Var, and Felix Martin, the latter advised the narrow-gauge railway which ruined the politicians of the Var, and became 'le Panama du Midi.' My journey this time was to assure myself that the road and railway along the coast had not spoilt the interior. They have improved indeed, and I was glad, a road from the entrance to the forest on the main road from Hyeres to Cogolin, turning to the north over two cols to Collobrieres. The T.C.F. has made a road from Collobrieres up the hill to the south-east, whence the walk to La Chartreuse de la Verne is easy. I used to have to reach that spot from Campo, the police post on the stream, called Campeaux upon the maps. The whole forest is unharmed. It is unknown to the British inhabitants of Hyeres. Not one had been there, or, I think, heard of it; and I met no human creature upon some twelve miles of the finest parts of the improved road. Grimaud, at the other end, I have no doubt you know. It was the Moorish capital. I went there the day that I lunched with Emile Ollivier this time. There was a foot of ice on the top, at La Garde-Freinet, and one looked back, down on to Grimaud, standing baked by an African sun, and could make out the ripe oranges and the heads of the great cactus.”
“Why does not someone 'discover' France?” he writes to M. Joseph Reinach. “How few Frenchmen know the sunset view north from St. Tropez in January!” And again to M. Chevrillon in 1909: “I adore the solitude of Sainte Baume, and believe in Marie Madeleine—except her head and tomb at St. Maxime, where Brutus Bonaparte helped keep the inn. [Footnote: The eldest of the Bonapartes was not the only person of the Napoleonic days as to whom stories were told in the neighbourhood. Desiree Clary was said to have lived at the inn of St. Maxime, and Sir Charles wrote to Mr. Morley concerning La Sainte Campagne: “My old cottage is supposed to be that where Murat was concealed after the 100 days.”] Intellect is represented here by Robert de la Sizeranne, but it is only two and a half hours in motor or two and a half by rail to La Moutte, where I make E. Ollivier read his fourteenth volume!”
All the little hill towns were known to him, and their history; he could show the spot at Cavalaire where the Moorish lords of Provence trained their famous horses; he knew the path at Le Lavandou, worn into the solid rock by the bare feet of countless generations. It irked him that the plain of Frejus was spoilt by the intrusion of white villas on what had once been called “a better Campagna.” But these changes were of the surface only. Provence was still Provence, its people still unchanged from the days when Gambetta said to Sir Charles of one who projected a watercourse at Nice: “Jamais il ne coulera par cette riviere au tant d'eau qu'il n'en depensera de salive a en parler.” There was still the local vintage in every inn, still the beurre du berger, the cheese and the conserves of fruit which every housewife in Provence sets out with pride in her own making; still the thin breeze of the mistral through the tree-tops, still the long white roads running between fields of violets and narcissi, and still white farmhouses among the terraced oliveyards and vines. All these things were an abiding joy, but a greater joy than all, and still more unchangeable, was the daily oncoming of light, the subtle flush and gradations of colour before the sun rose from that beloved sea.
II.
In the year 1908 Sir Charles's health had been very bad, and he risked his life in attending the annual miners' meeting at the Speech House, leaving Dockett Eddy, as his custom was, at six in the morning, and returning home the same night. But by the following year he had regained his physical condition and his cheerfulness. The aspect of politics, too, had been transfigured. Speaking to his constituents in September, 1909, he reminded them how a year earlier the Liberal party had been despondent.
'This year all of them felt that the Government, with the
country
behind it—for the country was thoroughly behind the Government
in
the matter of the Budget—had taken, not only a new lease of
life,
but had adopted an attitude which on the whole, apart from any
little doubts in reference to particular details, commanded a
confident and an enthusiastic support on the part of a wider
majority of people than any other movement of modern times.'
He told them of his own objections to the famous Budget—one in regard to the cider duty, upon which he had carried his point, the other to the increased tax on tobacco, which he had unsuccessfully resisted. So long as tea and tobacco were taxed as they were, the working classes, in his judgment, paid more than their just proportion. Still, a great stride forward had been taken. As for the House of Lords throwing out the Budget, “those who did not like that Chamber wanted that fight, but it did not seem to him natural that the House of Lords would desire it, because it appeared to him to be a fight in which the Peers were perfectly certain to be beaten.” Nevertheless it came to pass, a General Election followed, and the huge independent Liberal majority disappeared. Sir Charles was active to keep together the various sections which most desired to limit the power of the House of Lords, and on February 22nd, 1910, he, on behalf of the Radicals, held an interview with the Labour and Irish leaders together, to ascertain and discuss the line of action contemplated. Also, since there was a proposal that Government should, as a matter of urgency, oust private members and take all the time of the House, he saw Mr. J. S. Sandars, Mr. Balfour's chief private secretary, and in Sir Charles's phrase “factotum,” to find out what the Opposition was going to do.
In the debates upon the Government's Resolutions which laid the foundation for the Parliament Act, Sir Charles took no part. The matter had gone as he desired.
By April the Resolutions were adopted; but before action by Bill could be begun, the Parliamentary struggle was suspended by the death of King Edward. In that national loss Sir Charles Dilke felt special sorrow. Whether as Prince of Wales or as King, the dead Sovereign had consistently shown him, not merely consideration, but friendship. It was among the satisfactions of Sir Charles's last years of life that the principle, for which he had incurred odium by contending forty years earlier, now came to be fully recognized as that most respectful to the Crown. Lord Knollys writes that on the accession of King Edward VII., Sir Charles had called and “offered to support any reasonable Civil List which might be proposed.” A Civil List Committee was appointed, on which Sir Charles served, and the result of its deliberations was to recommend a discontinuance of occasional grants from Parliament to members of the Royal Family. It did not, indeed, go to the length of making adequate provision for the family and leaving its distribution to the King, which was what Sir Charles always recommended; but it moved far in that direction, and to that extent carried out his views.
The royal funeral brought to London another Sovereign with whom Sir Charles had friendly personal relations, and the last page in his Memoir tells of a 'long talk with King George of Greece at Buckingham Palace.' The King was inclined to deprecate the summoning of a National Assembly for that autumn. He called it “stupid,” whereat, says Sir Charles, 'blank look on my part.' Then, after a pause ('whereas till then we had talked in a perpetual duet'), the King went on to admit that the National Assembly was his own creation.
“Well, I was against it at first because we can do by law already everything that is to be done by the National Assembly. But I saw that it was the only way out.”
“I am glad, Sir,” Sir Charles quickly rejoined, “that I was not 'stupid,' for I attributed the invention to” (and he pointed) “its author.”
The King, however, was afraid that some might “blame him,” and when Sir Charles answered, “No one,” he quoted the phrase once applied to him: “Bon petit roi, manque d'energie.” The reply was: “I don't know who said that, Sir! Your prestige is exactly opposite to the German Emperor's prestige, but equally important to your country and to peace. It may have been a fool who said it, but it was probably chaff.”
“... My family?”
“Oh, well, that is chaff—that is what I meant by chaff.”
But Sir Charles took occasion to tell a very important member of the “family” that “Berlin and Athens were different.”
When autumn came, the sitting of the Constitutional Conference silenced Sir Charles and all men who desired a fair field for that great experiment. Its failure precipitated a new General Election.
By this time there was no doubt in Sir Charles's mind as to the gravity of his physical condition. To a friend, who in October was setting out for extended travel in West Africa, he wrote these words in a letter wishing him God-speed:
“You are much more likely to come back alive than I am to be
alive
to welcome you. Yet I hope that the less likely survival
may be,
and of the other I feel pretty sure.”
Knowing what he did of his own health, knowing the loyalty of his constituents, who had within a few months returned him by a majority of over two thousand, he might well have consented, as his friends wished, to fight the new election by deputy. It was not his way. Haggard and physically oppressed, he spent a fortnight in that bitter December going the round of meetings, addressing his supporters as best his bodily weakness allowed that strong will and fine courage to have their way. The result was foregone: his majority was triumphant; but the exertion killed him. None the less, he came out of the fray jubilant; his side had won, the victory had been decisive. In Paris, where he went with Mr. Hudson, the journalists came to him for his accustomed review of the total situation. “Depuis que je suis au Parlement, je n'ai pas connu un Ministere aussi solide que le Ministere preside par M. Asquith,” was his emphatic word to M. Leudet in the Figaro.
The strain had in no way impaired his intellectual vitality. Those of his old friends who saw him, such as M. Reinach, had never known him more animated. To M. Andre Chevrillon, a newer friend by whom he had been greatly attracted, he wrote:
“I see in the Times that you are writing on Russian
literature and
music. Please, then, include Bell music: a
saint's eve at
Troitsa Sergeifski! The silver notes floating in the dusty—or
the
frozen—air. I've been there in September, and I've been there
in
December.
“Any chance of seeing you—without moving, for I'm suffering
from
weak heart, after two winter-contested elections in one year?
I'm
extraordinarily better to-day, but am apt to 'blow' in other
than
the Australian sense.”
M. Chevrillon has written his impression of the gravity which lay behind that cheery tone.
“J'allai le voir a l'Hotel St. James. Je n'oublierai jamais
l'impression que m'a laissee cette visite. II etait d'une
paleur de
marbre; il m'a dit brievement qu'il se savait en danger
immediat,
que le medecin l'avait averti; et tout de suite, quittant ce
sujet,
il m'a parle avec son animation, sa verve et sa precision
habituelle
de la situation politique en Angleterre. II y avait ce jour—la
sur
cette noble figure toute bleme, une dignite, j'ose dire une
majeste,
extraordinaire; il etait deja marque par la mort; il la
regardait
venir avec une tranquillite et un courage absolu; j'emportai de
cette visite le douloureux sentiment que je ne le reverrais
pas, et
une admiration qui me restera toujours pour ce que je venais
d'entrevoir de son caractere.”
From Paris he insisted on moving South once more. He travelled now as an invalid; but when morning light came into the compartment where he lay, he made his way to the window and beheld again cypress and olive, sun-baked swarthy soil, little hills with rocky crests fantastically chiselled, all bathed in the dazzling sunshine of the South. Leaning his face against the window, he said: “Provence always plays up.”
At Hyeres he was kept in bed. But he still read the books that came to him by post, still dictated his reviews for the Athenaeum, and still enjoyed the reading aloud of French plays, which had become a habit of holiday time. And, above all, from his window as he lay he watched with delight unjaded the spectacle of sea and sky. “Am I not a fortunate invalid,” he said, “to have the most beautiful view in the world to look at?”
Now and then his shout of laughter would be heard and the old spirit of fun would assert itself. When the journey home in January, 1911, had to be faced, he rallied for it, came to the restaurant on the train, and during the crossing sat on deck with Miss Constance Smith, who writes:
“At that time his thoughts seemed to stray from this last
journey
back to that which we had taken in the autumn. 'It is worth
while,'
he said, 'to have seen Aosta. I am glad to have done it. It is
not
often at my age that one can get so much pleasure out of a new
thing.' I think he had a double motive in mentioning Aosta. He
put
it forward partly to obliterate for me the sadness of the past
three
weeks by raising the memory of the pleasant times that lay
behind.”
When he reached London he was happy to be again at home and he felt better. Those with him had no fear for the immediate future, and he himself fully expected to take his place in Parliament when it met. Friends would have induced him to consider what part of his work could be abandoned, but his answer was peremptory: “I won't be kept alive to do nothing.” Confined to bed as he was, work still went on; he received and answered letters, read and annotated Blue-books. Curiously and almost dramatically, the occupations of these last days sifted themselves out in such fashion that the very latest things he handled became, in some sort, an epitome of his life's work. M. Michelidakis, President of the Cretan Executive Committee, had written to complain, on behalf of the Cretan people, that the last note of the Powers seemed to reverse their policy of slowly transferring Crete to a local government. On January 24th Sir Charles answered this appeal for his help. It was the last letter that he signed with his own hand—fit close to a lifelong championship.
Other clients were knocking at his door that same day, other voices from that strange retinue of petitioners who brought from all quarters of the world to this one man their cry for protection and redress. What they asked was no romantic action, nothing stirring or picturesque, but simply the weight of his authority exhibited on their side, and the wisdom of his long practice in public life for their guidance. He was to fix a date for introducing a deputation concerning certain grievances of the coloured people in Jamaica, and was to advise upon the best way to raise a number of minor West African questions in the new Parliament. His answer was sent from 76, Sloane Street:
January 24th, 1911.
“I am still lying up, but I think that I could answer any
ordinary
call to duty, and I am trying a small private meeting to-morrow
afternoon, though I shall return to bed here.
“I will note Thursday, 2nd, at noon, on the chance of being well
enough.
“The questions which personally interest me the most are those
affecting the concessionary companies, and I should be glad if
you
would ask Wedgwood to keep very close touch with me on these.
He
likes me, and is quite willing to show me things; but he does
too
much and, like myself, is always tired, and the result is that
he
has to be reminded as to consultation in advance, though he
does not
mind this being done.
“I doubt there being much danger about the Gambia. As for the
Southern Nigerian ordinances, I am not competent, and have a
general
impression that as a rule we do best on more general lines,
though
some of the concessionary companies make such 'cases' as to
form
exceptions.”
His strength was far spent. This letter, says Mr. Hudson, writing two days later to the President of the Aborigines' Protection Society, “he asked me to sign, after wishing to sign himself.”
Yet the brain was clear and the will unshaken. The “small private meeting” of which he wrote was a committee of directors of the Gardeners' Chronicle, and on the 25th he was preparing to rise and dress to attend this, but was persuaded to go back to bed. In bed, he was still busy reading and marking Blue-books which bore upon the case of the unorganized workers. The papers so prepared were, by his direction, set aside for the service of the Women's Trade-Union League. They were delivered next morning, but the messenger who took them carried with them the tidings of Sir Charles Dilke's death. He had slipped suddenly out of life, his heart failing, soon after four o'clock on the morning of Thursday, January 26th, 1911.
* * * * *
To the funeral service at Holy Trinity, Sloane Street, on January 30th, there came from the House of Commons members of the Cabinet and of the Ministry, representatives of Liberalism and Labour, the Irish leader with several of his colleagues, while from the Unionist benches also men paid this tribute to an honoured opponent. But the Parliamentary figure of most interest was Mr. Austen Chamberlain, who carried from a sick-room to the graveside the farewell of old comrade to old comrade.
Among the congregation were men who had been official representatives of great dominions of the Empire or of foreign Governments. These came in their private capacity, but one nation as a nation was represented there. The King of the Hellenes sent his Minister in London to be his deputy, and the Greek Government ordered a wreath, the token of their sorrow and gratitude, to be laid upon the bier.
Tributes poured in from the great mass of his fellow-countrymen; from philanthropic societies; from those who, in or out of Parliament, had worked with his help and guidance. But above all there were messages from every trade union and organization of wage-earners, letters from men and from women in every kind of employ, testifying of service done, of infinitely varied knowledge, of devotion that knew no limit, and that had not gone without the one reward acceptable to the man they honoured, their responsive love and gratitude.
So closed a life across which many commentators of the moment wrote, some lightly, some in sincere regret, the word Failure. It was ill-chosen. They should have written Loss. His career had not fulfilled the promise of its opening; his abilities had never found the full scope which once seemed assured to them; he had done for his country only what his country permitted him to do. Over this it was natural, it was reasonable, to speak words of sorrow. Those who said—and there were not a few who said it—that he had accomplished more out of office than he could ever have achieved in office, paid a tribute to the greatness of his work, but they did not understand the force which had been wasted. He combined two gifts rarely found in combination—the gift of Parliamentary leadership and a profound knowledge of foreign affairs. Amongst the men of his time he stood out as essentially a House of Commons man, but he was also a European personality. In these characteristics he recalls Lord Palmerston. Whether to foreign or to domestic affairs, he brought a knowledge, a judgment, and a mastery of detail, which none of his contemporaries surpassed and few equalled; and he added to these the priceless gift of tact in dealing with men and with bodies of men. In the only Parliament which knew him as an administrator his advance was rapid and decisive: five years placed him by universal admission in the front rank; and yet the general opinion was not less clear than that of the few great ones. Beaconsfield and Bismarck singled him out by their special interest; Gladstone looked to him as probably his own ultimate successor.
Then came the day when there was taken from him for ever the opportunity of directing great affairs, and Sir Charles Dilke's career must be numbered among things that might have been. Yet was his “the failure”? “It was England's misfortune, and perhaps her fault,” wrote one [Footnote: Mr. Spenser Wilkinson.] who knew him intimately and shared but few of his political opinions, “that she could thus have been deprived of the services of one of her best statesmen.”
All that he could do to repair the misfortune to his country was done without stint. Dismissed from his high command by a scandal, the truth of which he persistently denied, when a life of ease was open to him he chose, in spite of obloquy, to return to the ranks. Of what he accomplished in the ranks some outline has been given; its record stands as an answer to those who think, as many are tempted to think, that work in Parliament without office is, in these days, foredoomed to futility.
Yet not in the external results of his wisdom and his labour, but in another sphere, lies his supreme achievement. The same fate which obscured the statesman's greatness revealed, what prosperity must have hidden, the full measure of the man. To have requited public contumely with public service; in the midst of humiliation to have kept his nature unspoilt, unimbittered, every faculty bright and keen; to have abated no jot of his happiness; and at the last to have passed away in serene dignity, all the voices of reproach hushed and overawed—this was not defeat, but victory; this, complete in its fulfilment, was the triumph of Sir Charles Dilke's life.
[Footnote: By Miss Constance Hinton Smith.]
No view of Sir Charles Dilke's life can be complete which fails to take account of his literary interests and activities. He disclaimed the title of man of letters. [Footnote: 'Except in editing some of my grandfather's papers, I never myself at all ventured into the paths of pure literature; but I have lived near enough to it and them ... to be able to enjoy.'] Except for the little memoir of his second wife, all the books he gave to the world, as well as the larger part of his periodical writing, were inspired by political, though not by party, considerations. And throughout the years of his public career the pressure of daily work inside and outside Parliament left him small leisure for reading other than that through which he kept himself acquainted with every movement, and as far as was humanly possible with every fact, that seemed to bear upon the wide range of subjects handled by him. So prodigious was his industry, however—only Dominie Sampson's adjective will serve—and so quick his faculty for detecting at a glance the quality of a book and extracting from it the pith and marrow, that even in the busiest periods of his life he contrived to keep abreast of the things best worth knowing, not only in English, but also in French literature. From the time when, by his father's death, he inherited the proprietorship of the Athenaeum, he exercised, through that journal, a definite if indirect influence in the maintenance of the high standards of literary honesty, accuracy, and taste in which he had been brought up. This was done partly by means of his own contributions to the paper, which covered a field which included history, travel, art, poetry, and archaeology in two languages, and partly through “his comments and suggestions on the proofs,” of which Mr. C. A. Cook, a former acting editor, writes with abiding gratitude. Other newspaper proprietors have doubtless done as much to preserve uniformity of tone and principle; few, if any, have probably brought such close and unwearied care to bear upon those details in which tone is audible and principle expresses itself.
Sir Charles Dilke's attitude towards literature, like his attitude to politics and art, was peculiar to himself. He judged books, as he judged men, not by the conventional verdict of the world—in this case the world of critics—but by the quality his own mind discerned in them. His judgments, therefore, were personal judgments, uncoloured, as far as human judgments can be, by traditional respect or prejudice. This does not mean that he had no literary canons: his grandfather's pupil could hardly have left old Mr. Dilke's hands so unfurnished; but he never became the slave of a rule or the docile worshipper of any reputation, however well established. This mental freedom was partly due to intellectual courage. The humour of Lamb, for example, delights the majority of educated Englishmen: it had no charm for Sir Charles, and he was not afraid to say so. But his liberty of appreciation owed something also to the circumstances of his education. The fact that he had never been at a public school—thus missing, in the plastic years of a sensitive boyhood, the influences which make most strongly for conventionality of outlook among men of a certain class—made it easier for him than it might otherwise have been to examine literary questions with his own eyes, and not through the medium of special glasses imposed by authority. By the time he went up to Cambridge this habit of judging for himself was already formed; and although Cambridge did much to mould, she did not remake him.
The catalogue of his published writings, apart from those contributed to magazines and newspapers, is brief. It consists practically of the early book that made him famous as a political thinker, Greater Britain; the brilliant satire, Prince Florestan, published anonymously in 1874, of which he subsequently acknowledged the authorship; and the few volumes written after the close of his official career, each of which deals with large questions of public and international interest. Problems of Greater Britain and Imperial Defence (the latter written in collaboration with Mr. Spenser Wilkinson) were the most important of these works, which do not represent fully the literary ambition of his earlier years. There is plenty of evidence in the Memoir to show that, at the time of that journey round the world of which Greater Britain was the result, he had not only formed, but had begun to carry out, several literary projects. Some of these, essays in verse, story- writing, and metaphysical speculation, belong to the category of experiment or amusement, and represent nothing more than the natural activity of a fertile mind trying its powers now in this direction, now in that. Others are more characteristic: a History of Radicalism, a Political Geography, a book to be called The Anglo-Saxon Race or The English World, and a work on International Law. [Footnote: See Chapter VI. (Vol. I.)]
As late as 1878 he was 'working hard at' a History of the Nineteenth Century 'for three or four months' in Provence, 'besides managing to do some little work towards it when I was in London.' At this time he was engaged upon the History of Germany in the early part of his chosen period, and was corresponding with Professor Seeley as the highest authority on that subject.
'My history of events began with 1814. I showed that the
doctrine of
nationality had been made use of for their own purposes by the
Kings
in 1812-13, and crushed by them at congresses between 1814 and
1822,
and then appealed to by the revolutionary party in 1823, and in
a
less degree in 1848. That doctrine of nationality was described
even
in our own times by Heine as a dead thing, when it was yet
destined
to prove, in 1859 and 1866 and 1870 and 1878, the phenomenon of
the
century, and nowhere to work such change as in Heine's own
Germany.
Heine thought that the idea of the emancipation of nationality
had
already in his day been replaced by the emancipation of
humanity;
but, whatever may be the case in the long-run, the emancipation
of
nationalities was destined to prove the more lasting side of
the
movement of 1848.'
After stating that the nineteenth century must be held to have begun in 1814, he writes:
'History to me was one and could know no commencements, yet in
the
development of a concerted action of the Powers I found 1814 so
convenient a starting-point as to be as good as a real
beginning. In
the rise of the new society, the social revolution,'
he found himself less fortunate. There was no clear starting-point, and when he selected August 4th, 1789, as his,
'I felt that I chose only the moment of the springing of the
plant
from the soil ... and stood in some danger of neglecting the
previous germination of the seed beneath the soil.'
After delivering a lecture on “Old Chelsea,” in which 'I made a considerable attempt to clear up some points in the life of Sir Thomas More, for whom I have a great admiration ... I conceived ... the idea of writing a Life of More, whose life has never been well told since it was written by his son-in-law at the time; but the immense difficulty of writing any Life which would stand a comparison with the son-in-law's notes ultimately deterred me.'
It is easy to understand why the foregoing projects were dropped; but why Sir Charles never published the book on Russia which he was known to have had in preparation is not so apparent. He had paid four protracted visits to the country, travelled over a great part of it, and was intimately acquainted with Russians of the most widely differing opinions. Obviously he would have enjoyed writing the book that he had planned. He had actually fixed the date of publication, when he found that Mr. Hepworth Dixon had come, almost at the same time, to a decision to write on his subject. On August 3rd, 1869, he wrote to Mr. Dixon:
“My Dear Dixon,
“In reference to your request that in good feeling and
friendship
towards you I should defer the publication of my Russia
from
February 1st, 1870 (the date fixed with Macmillan), to a later
period, I have carefully thought the matter over, and have
decided
to do as you wish. The only condition that I make is that you
will
write to me by return of post saying whether, if I fix January
1st,
1871, as my day, you will date your preface not later than
February
1st, 1870, and issue your first edition not more than a week
after
that date.”
Dixon wrote back on the same day:
“My Dear Charles,
“I am more pleased at your resolution than words can say. It is
more
than right. It is friendly and noble.”
'Mr. Dixon immediately went to Russia, where we met in the
course of
the autumn, and speedily published his New Russia, a
remarkable
book considering the haste with which it was prepared. After
five
visits to Russia, I handed over the whole of my notes to my
brother,
who spent two years at one time in that country, and who
finished
the book.' [Footnote: Only two chapters ever appeared—in
magazines.]
Sir Charles's contributions to the Athenaeum began while he was still at Cambridge. His article of October 22nd, 1864, [Footnote: See Chapter V. (Vol. I.)] was the first of a long series of reviews and notices, which continued unbrokenly till within a week of his death. It was natural that, as years went by, his knowledge and experience should be drawn upon for reviews of important political biographies, and of books on imperial and colonial questions or military history. But he did not confine himself entirely to such grave topics. The files of the Athenaeum contain many columns from his hand dealing with the lighter matters of topography (especially in France), travel, and fiction. The fiction was mainly French, modern English novels commending themselves little to his liking, though he was among the earliest and steadiest, if also among the more discriminating, admirers of Mr. Rudyard Kipling, and Robert Louis Stevenson's Prince Otto had a place with his favourite books. Another subject which attracted his pen was the local and legendary history of his beloved Provence. His intimate acquaintance with the beliefs and fancies of that region could be gathered from his slightest notice of an ephemeral book on the country, as readily as his store of political knowledge and familiarity with the events that made history in his time from an extended review of a volume of L'Empire Liberal or the life of a leading contemporary in the House of Commons. In neither case could his hand be hid.
In influencing the choice of contributors to his paper, he threw his weight always on the side of the man who had complete knowledge of his subject. No brilliancy of style could make up in his eyes for lack of precision in thought or inaccuracy in statement. Next in order he appeared to value in a reviewer a judicial quality of mind, as essential to a sane and balanced criticism. “He disapproved”—to quote Mr. C. A. Cook again—“of anything fanciful in expression or any display of sentiment;” but, so long as writers kept clear of these literary pitfalls, he let them go their own road of style, with ready appreciation for any freshness or liveliness they exhibited on the journey. Reviews of French books were a special object of care, and for the Athenaeum's annual survey of French literature he bestirred himself to secure the best hand available. In a letter to M. Joseph Reinach, dated July, 1888, he gives a list of the distinguished men—including MM. About, De Pressense, and Sarrazin—who had written this survey in past years, ending with a suggestion that M. Reinach himself might perhaps be willing to undertake the task.
In his writing, as in his speaking, his object was always either to place facts before his audience, or to develop a closely reasoned argument based upon the facts. He took no trouble to cultivate literary graces in this connection; rather he seemed to distrust them, as in his speeches he distrusted and avoided appeals to the feelings of his hearers. But it would be a great mistake to infer from his own practice that he was insensible to beauty of form and style. The literature he cared for most, that which roused his enthusiasm and provoked the expression of emotion so rare with him in the later years of his life—the literature of France before the Renaissance, the poetry of Keats and Shelley, some of the lyrics of the Felibres—is of the kind in which content owes so much to beauty of form that it is impossible to conceive of the one without the other; and he certainly took quite as much delight in the sound as in the sense of his favourites. Even in those favourites he was quick to detect a flaw. His grandfather's introduction of him to the best in literature had not been wasted; and his own early reading had given him a touchstone of taste which he used freely as a standard, although it was powerless to obtain admission to his accepted company of men of letters for those who made no appeal to him individually. The Memoir shows that his self-training in literature (for the grandfather did no more than indicate the way) was carried out in youth; it was at Cambridge, while still an undergraduate, that he read Shakespeare 'for pleasure.' And this was true also of the great authors of his own time. The results of that reading remained with him through life.
The Memoir dwells little upon his literary interests, and contains few literary judgments. He himself gives the reason:
'They do not pretend to be critical memoirs.... I have known
everyone worth knowing from 1850 to my death; but, as I knew
the
most distinguished of my own country in childhood or early
manhood,
my judgments have changed. I have either to give crude
judgments
from which I dissent, or later judgments which were not those
of the
time. I have omitted both.... I knew the great Victorian
authors.
Thackeray I loved: Vanity Fair delighted me, and
Esmond was
obviously a great work of art; the giant charmed me by his
kindness
to me as a boy. But Dickens was to me a sea-captain with a
taste for
melodrama, and the author of Pickwick. It is only in old
age that
I have learnt that there was real beauty and charm in David
Copperfield. So, too, Mill I worshipped; and Carlyle,
though I knew
him, I despised—perhaps too much. Mat. Arnold was to me, in
his day
and my day, only a society trifler, whereas now ... after for
years
I have visited his tomb, I recognize him as a great writer of
the
age in which he lived.'
Here and there in the Memoir are glimpses of the world of literature with which he was often in touch. He discusses with Swinburne a much-disputed reference in Shelley's Epipsychidion. In 1872 Browning reads his Red Cotton Nightcap Country at 76, Sloane Street. There are admiring references to the work of George Eliot, and to Mrs. Lynn Linton—'perhaps the cleverest woman I know.' When he goes to the United States, we get his warmly drawn picture of the Boston group—Emerson, Agassiz, Oliver Wendell Holmes, Asa Gray, Longfellow, Lowell, Dr. Collyer, and Dr. Hedge.
[Footnote: See Chapter VI. (Vol. I., p. 60).]
Recording Stepniak's suggestion that Bismarck, Mazzini, and Oliver Wendell Holmes were the three greatest conversationalists of our times, 'I said that, having known all three, I agreed that they were remarkable, although I myself found Mazzini a little of the bore. Disraeli was sometimes very good, although sometimes singularly silent; but there were once two Russians that I put in the first rank—Herzen and Tourgenief.'
Questions relating to one literary personality alone receive full-length treatment in the Memoir. On any point that concerned Keats Sir Charles was always keenly interested. He may be said to have inherited the Keats tradition and the Keats devotion from his grandfather, and anyone connected with Keats found easy way to his sympathy and attention. It was his intervention which finally obtained for Keats's sister, Mme. Llanos, a regular Civil List pension in 1880. When the Lindon family sold to Mr. Buxton Forman Keats's letters to Miss Brawne, Mme. Llanos wrote 'from Madrid saying how greatly she was vexed that her brother's love-letters should have been placed before the world,' and 'I had a good deal of correspondence with Lord Houghton over this matter.... [Lord Houghton] wrote:
'“My Dear Dilke,
'“Since the Athenaeum fixed my place in poetical
literature
between Rogers and Eliza Cook, I have naturally not read that
journal, but I have been shown a capital flagellation of those
unfilial wine-merchants. [Footnote: Miss Brawne married Louis
Lindon, a wine-merchant.] I thought I had even gone too far in
my
elegant extracts—with which you furnished me. I have, alas! no
poetical amours to be recorded, out of which my family can make
anything handsome.”'
The letter ends with an invitation to lunch and 'talk Keats.'
Sir Charles notes further:
'About this time (1878) Mr. Buxton Forman announced for
publication
the Keats Love-Letters, which I certainly thought I had in a
vague
way bought for the purpose of preventing publication. They had
been
long in my possession, but the son of Fanny Brawne had claimed
them,
and I, having no written agreement, had found it necessary to
give
them up—although what I had bought and paid for, unless it was
the
right to prevent publication, I do not know.'
About this time Mr. John Morley proffered a request that Sir Charles would write a monograph on Keats for his English Men of Letters. Lord Houghton thought that a “new view” from Sir Charles “would have great interest”; but he decided to decline the undertaking.
The Memoir records at length the course of a correspondence with Joseph Severn, on the subject of his portraits of Keats, about which the old man's memory, in his last days at Rome, had grown very hazy. He thought that the miniature from which the engraving for Mr. Buxton Forman's edition had been made was the original presented to Fanny Brawne, whereas it was the copy made for old Mr. Dilke from that original, which itself was afterwards 'bought by my grandfather to prevent its being sold by auction.' There was also at Pyrford a copy in oils made for Mr. Moxon, which Sir Charles had obtained by exchange from Mr. Frederick Locker-Lampson.
'After completing my investigations as to the portraits, I
placed
them on record in a letter to my old friend Scharf, the Keeper
of
the National Portrait Gallery, who replied: “Thanks for your
interesting note, which we will duly place upon record. The
portrait
which we have here is posthumous. Severn painted it in 1821,
and we
hold a very curious letter from him describing the
circumstances
under which he painted it.” Here, therefore, is another
undoubted
Severn in addition to the three which I possess. But I know
myself
of at least one other.'
The gift of his collection of Keats relics to Hampstead has been elsewhere recorded. In deciding on Hampstead for its resting-place, he brought it within the circle of local associations with Keats himself, and with the grandfather who had been Keats's friend. [Footnote: The Memoir records, in 1878, a visit paid with his great-uncle, William Dilke, to Wentworth Place, 'the little house at Hampstead in which for a time Mr. C. W. Dilke and his brother were Keats's next-door neighbours.']
Modern French authors interested him more than their English contemporaries. In the former case he found, perhaps, less declension from the standard of the giants of whom he had been an eager student in his early manhood, when he read “all Balzac,” and recorded his admiration for the “dignity” of Mme. de Stael's Germany. Dumas he loved then and always, returning to him with ever new delight, and utilizing the rare periods of inaction imposed upon him at intervals by illness to read the whole of The Three Musketeers series 'through again—properly.' Where other writers who held sway over the mind of France during the nineteenth century were in question, his independence of taste came into play. Sainte-Beuve he could 'make nothing of.' For Chateaubriand he felt something like contempt: 'Equally feeble as a maker and a writer of history ... the inventor of a drawing-room Christianity without Christ;' but he recognized the high quality to be found in the early writings of Senancour. In later days the revival of a Stendhal cult filled him with wondering amusement. To the best work of Renan his affections were always faithful: Souvenirs d'Enfance et de Jeunesse was among his favourite volumes. Anatole France gave him exquisite pleasure, and it is hard to say whether he most enjoyed the wit, the irony, or the style of that great writer. He had his favourites, too, among the minor gods, and was always ready to introduce a new-comer to the charms of Francois de Barbizanges or the fun of Alfred Capus.
In French poetry his taste was eclectic. His feeling for Charles d'Orleans and his contemporaries barely stopped on this side idolatry; but the classics of the seventeenth century had no message for him, and Victor Hugo as a poet left him, for the most part, unmoved. Indeed, he asserted that all French verse between Ronsard and Verlaine was purely rhetorical, and without genuine poetic quality. But in some modern poets, he thought, the true spirit of French poetry had revived. Early he proclaimed the genius of Charles Guerin, whose claim to high place in his country's literature remained unrecognized till after his death; early, too, he hailed a new poetic star in Francois Porche. The star seemed to him later to wane in brilliancy, but the disappointment with which he read the poems of M. Porche's second period never weakened his admiring recollection of the splendour of the poet's Russian verses and the searching pathos of Solitude au Loin.
His familiarity with French literature, his hearty affection for it, his understanding of the national spirit by which it is informed and quickened, constituted one of the strongest ties which bound him in sympathy to his French friends. The literary forms which have had so much attraction for the best French minds both before and after 1789— the chronicle and the memoir—were precisely those to which his unfailing interest in human nature led him by choice. Paradin and Froissart were companions of whom he never grew tired; and it would be difficult to decide whether he found more absorbing matter of entertainment in Sully or Mme. de Dino.
But if he read these authors for delight, he read them also as a serious student. On this point the testimony of one of the most learned men in contemporary France is clear. M. Salomon Reinach writes: [Footnote: In a letter addressed to the editor, and written in English.]
“Talking with Sir Charles Dilke about Renaissance and modern
history, I soon perceived that he had taken the trouble of
going to
the sources, and that he had read and knew many things of
importance
which a man of letters, and even a scholar, are apt to ignore.
It
was Sir Charles, to give only one instance, who revealed to me
the
value of Guillaume Paradin's Histoire de Notre Temps and
Chronique de Savoie, which he admired to such a degree
that he put
the now forgotten author (the name of whom is not in the
British
Encyclopaedia) on the same level as Guicciardini and the great
historians of antiquity. I would like to know how he discovered
Paradin, and if copies of his rare works were in his library.
When I
happened to get hold of Major Frye's manuscript, afterwards
published by me (thanks to Sir Charles Dilke's recommendation)
at
Heinemann's, he was the first to appreciate its interest, and
gave
me much information about abbreviated names and other allusions
which occur in that diary. He chanced to dine with me the very
evening when I first had brought the manuscript to my house,
and he
remained till past one in the morning, picturesquely seated on
the
edge of a table, reading passages aloud and commenting upon
them. He
also knew many secret and unrecorded facts about recent French
history; some of them have been given by him in unsigned
articles of
the Athenaeum, in reviews of books relating to the
Franco-German
War. I hope he may have left some more detailed notes on that
subject. I would have had the greatest pleasure in
corresponding
with him, and regret I did not do so; but his handwriting was
as
mysterious as his mind was clear, and I soon found that I could
not
make it out.”
After Lady Dilke's death, the Rev. W. and Mrs. Tuckwell, her brother- in-law and her elder sister, made their home with Sir Charles Dilke at Pyrford; and notes of his talk put together from memory and from diaries by the old scholar give a vivid impression of the statesman as seen in intimacy. Mr. Tuckwell says:
During the last five years of his life I breakfasted alone with
Sir
Charles whenever he was at Pyrford. It was his “softer hour,”
and
showed him in a specially endearing light. Not only was he
fresh
from his night's rest, full, often, of matter interesting or
amusing
in his letters which he had just read, but the tete-a-tete
brought
out his finest social nature. In large companies, as we saw him
at
Dockett, he was occasionally insistent, iterative, expressing
himself, to use a term of his own, with a “fierceness"
corresponding
to the strength of his convictions. With me at our breakfasts
he was
gentle, tolerant, what Sydney Smith called “amoebean,” talking
and
listening alternately. I was told that before his death the two
experiences to which he referred in anticipating a return to
his
Pyrford home were the forestry among his pines and the early
breakfast table.
Much of his talk was, of course, Parliamentary, bearing on
incidents
or persons from the House. He often spoke of Harcourt, whom he
dearly loved. When Harcourt's death was announced to a party at
breakfast in Speech House, several in the company told
anecdotes of
the dead man or commented on his character. One lady spoke of
him
harshly. Sir Charles remained silent, but more than once during
the
meal his eyes filled with tears. He told me on another occasion
that
“Lulu” promised to be a greater man than his father, just as
Winston
Churchill is a greater man than Randolph. Lulu resembles his
father
curiously in all things except in the paternal habit of
swearing.
Once, when an attempt by the Opposition to snatch a victory in
a
thin House had been foiled, Harcourt said savagely across the
table:
“So that d——d dirty trick has failed!” Hicks Beach sprang up
to
ask the Speaker if such language were Parliamentary. Speaker
Gully
was too discreet to have heard the words. Dilke remembered
being in
company with Harcourt and Mrs. Procter, amongst several more.
As she
left the room, Harcourt said: “There goes one of the three most
charming women I ever knew; the other two”—a pause, during
which
the ladies present looked keenly expectant—“the other two are
dead!”
He turned to talk of Dizzy, to whom he had first been introduced
in
his early days by Lady Lonsdale, the great man wishing to know
him.
He quoted some of Dizzy's sayings. Dizzy called Spencer Walpole
and
Russell Gurney “those two whited sepulchres of the House of
Commons.” Walpole, consequential and lugubrious, he spoke of as
“the
high-stepping hearse-horse of public life.” Of deaf Mr.
Thomasson,
who, ear-trumpet in hand, was wont to place himself near every
speaker, he said that “no man had ever so neglected his natural
advantages.”
Of Gladstone Dilke rarely spoke, but used to describe the
periodical
entrance of Mrs. Gladstone into the meetings of the Cabinet
with a
large basin of tea for the old man. [Footnote: In the last
years of
Sir Charles's life, at a party given by Mr. and Mrs. Herbert
Gladstone at Downing Street, he stopped in the room where
Cabinet
meetings used to be held, and pointed out to the editor of this
book
the door through which Mrs. Gladstone used to enter bearing the
bowl
of tea. For Sir Charles's recollections of Mr. Gladstone, see
appendix at end of this chapter.] Once he had to work out with
his
chief some very difficult question. As they sat absorbed,
Hamilton,
the private secretary, entered with an apologetic air to say
that
——, a well-known journalist, had called, pressingly anxious
to see
the Prime Minister on an important subject. Without raising his
head, Gladstone said: “Ask him what is his number in the
lunatic
asylum.”
He told of a Cabinet in 1883 at which ——talked a great deal,
“and
I told Chamberlain that at the Political Economy Club, where I
had
been dining on the previous night, there was a closure of
debate in
the shape of the introduction of hot muffins, which I thought
would
be excellent for Cabinets.” At this Cabinet Lord Granville
said: “We
all agree that ——is a bore, but I have never been able to
make up
my mind whether that is a drawback or a qualification so far as
public service is concerned.”
Asquith he looked upon as one of the greatest Parliamentarians
he
had known, much superior in that capacity to Gladstone. His
allocution on the King's death was noble; still finer his
introduction of the Veto Bill in December, 1909. “His speech
was
perfect: forcible in manner, statesmanlike in argument,
felicitous
in epithet and phrasing.” Balfour on the same occasion was at
his
worst: “hampered by his former contrary declarations, trivial
in
reasoning, feeble in delivery.” He was ill, and ought not to
have
come. I asked if Balfour's frequent inconsistencies and
vacillations
were due to carelessness. He said no, but to the necessity
imposed
upon him, not of proclaiming principles, but of keeping
together a
divergent party. I asked what other notable recent speeches he
could
recall. He said the Archbishop of Canterbury's [Footnote: Dr.
Randall Davidson.] on the Congo scandal, in the House of Lords:
“a
marvellous performance, nothing said which should not have been
said, everything said which required saying; the speech of a
great
statesman.” Bishop ——followed him with a mere piece of
missionary
claptrap. In the Commons on the same occasion our charming
friend
Hugh Law distinguished himself, silencing some of his
compatriots,
the Irish Roman Catholics, whose line was to support Leopold
because
the Protestant missionaries abused him. Leopold II. Sir Charles
called “the cleverest—and wickedest—man living.” He broke off
to
speak of the Archbishop, whom he met weekly at Grillion's, as a
delightfully instructive talker, not only full, that is, of
light
agreeableness, but supporting the opinions he advances with
convincing, cogent, logical force, yet never boring his
hearers. As
another powerful speech he instanced T. P. O'Connor on Sir R.
Anderson's indiscretions, “most terribly crushing in its grim,
ruthless exposition,” Anderson sitting in the Gallery to hear
it.
In his own great speech on Army Reform in April, 1907, Sir
Charles
said that Haldane was “all things to all men.” His hearers
perceived
it to be a quotation (which in fact I had furnished), but no
one
localized it! An amusing misquotation was Arnold-Forster's in
the
same debate: he said that Haldane was like King David, who
drilled
his men by fifties in a cave. In March, 1909, Sir Charles told
me
sadly of Arnold-Forster's sudden death, which he had just
learned.
“With some defects of manner, he was very clever, writing and
speaking well. As War Minister Balfour gave him no chance. His
last
speech in the House, a fortnight before his death, just
preceded
mine. 'I must speak,' he said to me, 'on those damned Special
Reservists;' and speak he did for a good, well-sustained
half-hour,
going out as soon as he had finished.” He had been with us at
Dockett. He and Sir Charles sparred continually and amusingly,
both
equally aggressive, imperious, stentorian, iterative, each
insistent
on his own declamation and inattentive to his opponent's.
Sir Charles, while on this topic of oratory, went on to quote
with
much hilarity a speech by Lord ——in the Lords: “This Liberal
Government injures friends no less than enemies. Look at me! I
am a
passive resister; I belong to the National Liberal Club; I have
married my deceased wife's sister; and none of my children are
vaccinated; yet they are meddling with my rights as a
landlord.” The
Lords did not see the fun, the papers did not report it, but it
is
to be found in Hansard.
I asked Dilke how my old pupil, Sir Richard Jebb, comported
himself
in Parliament. He said: “Handsome, beautifully groomed, with a
slight stoop, slow delivery, speaking rarely and on subjects
which
he thoroughly understood, his phrasing perfect, manner
engaging: a
man reserved and shy, not seeking acquaintance, but, if sought,
eminently agreeable.” University members, he added, should come
always in pairs: one to represent the high University ideal,
embodied only in a very few; his colleague reflecting the mob
of
country parsons who by an absurd paradox elect to Parliament.
Jebb
was the ideal Cantab.; didactic, professorial, the Public
Orator;
seeming incomplete without a gown: but for his rare and apt
appearances, he might have overdone the part.
He told a story of Major O'Gorman. A professed Roman Catholic,
he
was dining in the House one Friday on a devilled chicken, when
his
parish priest was announced. “Waiter,” he said, “take away the
devil, and show in the priest.”
When Sir Charles first took office, he was cautioned by his
colleague, Lord Tenterden, not to read the newspapers: “If you
do,
you will never distinguish between what you know and what you
have
just read.”
He mentioned ——. I said that his elaborate manners and
bridegroom
dress marked him out as natus convivio feminali, meant
by nature
to be a guest at ladies' tea-tables. Dilke assented, adding
that he
was less bland to men than to women. “Tommy” Bowles said of him
in
the House: “The right honourable gentleman answers, or, rather,
does
not answer, my questions with the pomposity of a Belgravian
butler
refusing twopence to a beggar.”
He spoke of the decadence in costume characteristic of the
present
day. I said that, according to Wraxall, we must go back for its
beginnings to Charles Fox, who came down to the House in boots.
I
added that, when I first went up to Oxford, a frock-coat and
tall
hat were imperative in walking out; that a “cut-away” coat, as
it
was called, would have been “sconced” in Hall; that men even
kept
their boating-dresses at King's or Hall's, changing there; that
a
blazer in the High would have drawn a crowd. He said that till
very
lately—he was speaking in 1907—the custom of dress in
Parliament
had been equally rigid; that Lord Minto had recently
scandalized his
peers by wearing a straw hat; that when, some years before, a
member
whose name I forget had taken the same liberty in the Commons,
the
Speaker sent for him, and begged that he would not repeat the
offence.
In February, 1908, we talked of the Sweating Bill. Two years
before,
he said, it could command so little support that, having
obtained
for it the first private members' night, he withdrew it. Now it
was
accepted with enthusiasm, and the second reading passed without
a
division—the change, he added, entirely due to the Women's
Trade-Union League.
He expressed satisfaction with the stiffening procedure rules of
April, 1906, but added that they would make great Parliamentary
orations impossible. I said: “All the better, we want business
in
the Commons; for oratory there are other occasions.” He said
how
transient is the public interest in men and questions; the
community
is like a kitten playing with a cork: so soon as it is tempted
off
by something else, the cork becomes dead to it. He instanced
Rosebery; the Aliens Act; Tariff Reform, in spite of
Chamberlain's
galvanizing efforts. Of Campbell-Bannerman, then alive and
well, he
said that all his work was done for him by his subordinates:
“he had
only to read novels, prepare jokes, look inscrutable and
fatherly.”
In July, 1909, he attended the memorial service for Lord Ripon
at
the Roman Catholic Cathedral. Knowing that the leading
statesmen on
both sides, Protestant to a man, would be present, the
ecclesiastics
made the show as fine as they could, bringing out all their
properties. All the monks and priests in London attended; the
Archbishop, in gorgeous attire, sat on a stool, with two boys
behind
holding up his train. The music was exquisite; Sir Charles had
never
heard anything so sweet as the warbling of the Requiem by the
chorister boys. But the whole was palpably a show, the actors
intent
on their acting, never for a moment devotional; where changes
in the
service involved changes in position, they were prepared while
the
part before was still unfinished, so that the stage might never
be
empty nor the transformations lag: the whole thing a Drury Lane
pageant; while the richly decorated catafalque in the centre,
on
which the ceremonial supposed itself to converge, was empty—
sepulchri supervacuos honores—the body being at
Studley. Of Ripon
himself, whom everyone loved, he spoke affectionately.
Of talks on miscellaneous topics I recall the following. We
spoke of
the Tilsit Secret Articles, revealed mysteriously to the
English
Government. Sir Charles thought the informant was a Russian
officer,
betraying it with or without the connivance of the Tsar.
Evidence
has since come out connecting the disclosure with a Mr.
Mackenzie,
who is supposed to have obtained the secret from General
Benningsen.
Or Canning may have learned it through the Russian Ambassador
in
England, who was his intimate friend, and strongly adverse to
his
master's French policy. [Footnote: See for a recent discussion
of
the evidence J. Holland Rose's Life of Napoleon, ii.
135-140.] Sir
Charles went on to say that in history lies find easier credit
than
truth. All the books have said and say that England refused to
buy
Delagoa Bay from Portugal. He always denied this alleged
refusal;
and now Lord Fitzmaurice has caused search to be made, and
finds no
confirmatory evidence. Again, he maintained in Paris, against
all
the experts, that Nigra engineered the Franco-Prussian War. His
words were repeated to the Empress Eugenie, who said, “Yes, he
is
right: Nigra was a false friend.”
He talked of the Japanese, whom he had known in England and
lived
with in Japan.... Their only religion is patriotism, and their
prayers to the Emperor are formal merely, yet they are reckless
of
life and eager to die for Fatherland; indeed, so incapable of
retreating before an enemy as sometimes seriously to damage
strategic plans. Were they launched against the West, they
would go
through any European army.
He spoke of the durability of the Third French Republic. It will
be
unbroken while peace lasts. War may bring a temporary
Dictatorship,
but the republic will of necessity revive again. The immense
majority of Frenchmen are opposed unalterably to a monarchy.
He quoted what was said to be Napoleon's only joke. In opening
negotiations with the British Government, he found it to be
demanded
as a preliminary that, as matter of principle and without
prejudice,
he should formally recognize the Bourbon rights, “Most
certainly,”
he said, “if, also as matter of principle and without
prejudice, the
British Government would formally recognize the Stuart rights.”
Dilke spoke of the old Political Economy Club, to which he was
introduced by John Stuart Mill. The President was Lord
Bramwell; its
dominant member William Newmarch, a rough man of powerful
intellect,
of whose ferocious criticisms everyone stood in awe, and who
was
habitually hard on Mill.
He told a story of a well-known dandy, now a peer. The talk
turned
on “Society” in the second intention of the word ——had
enumerated certain houses in which you must be at home if
pretending
to the exclusive social set. It was objected that the inmates
of
some amongst these houses were persons whom the Queen
(Victoria)
would not receive. “The Queen!” said ——in a tone of pained
surprise—“the Queen was never in Society.”
I had been to church unwittingly on “Empire Day,” and reported a
sermon stuffed with militarism. He poured cold water on the
idea.
“Ireland won't have it; Canada won't have it; South Africa
loathes
it; India has an Empire Day of its own. Only Australia cares
for it.
It is a vulgar piece of Tory bluff, and a device for annoying
the
Dutch.”
He had lately visited Dropmore: said how frequently the Dropmore
Papers upset accepted history, but that the historian will
answer,
Mon siege est fait. He explained the phrase. A man had
written a
history of some famous siege; after it was published fresh
facts
were brought to his notice: he declined them—“Mon siege est
fait.”
[Footnote: Ascribed to the Abbe Dubois.]
He talked of Marlborough's victories: he hummed the opening
verse of
“Malbrook s'en va-t-en guerre.” I said it was our “For he's a
jolly
good fellow”: he said yes, but the tune goes back to the time
of the
Crusaders. I asked who wrote the words. He said an unknown
French
soldier on the night of Malplaquet, when Marlborough was
believed to
have been killed. Napoleon, who knew no music, often mounted
his
horse at the opening of a campaign singing the first line as he
put
his foot into the stirrup.
He spoke often of Grillion's which he habitually frequented and
much
enjoyed. He told of its formation in 1812; of old members whom
he
had known—Sir Robert Inglis, Chenery of the Times,
regal old Sir
Thomas Acland, Fazakerley, Gally Knight, Wilmot Horton; of its
effect in socially harmonizing men bitterly opposed in
politics. He
told the story of “Mr. G.” dining there by accident alone, and
entering himself in the club book as having drunk a bottle of
sherry
and a bottle of champagne. He said what care was taken to
exclude
undesirables, preserving thereby a high tone of company and of
talk.
I asked him what was the finest conversation to which he had
ever
listened. “In Boston,” he said; “at Lowell's breakfast-table;
the
company Lowell, Wendell Holmes, Longfellow, Agassiz, Asa Gray.”
[Footnote: See Vol. I., Chapter VI.]
We talked of precious stones, recalling the Koh-i-noor in its
small
gas-lighted tent at the 1851 Exhibition. He said that modern
paste
is more beautiful and effective than diamonds. The finest
pearls
known belonged to the Duchess of Edinburgh: she showed Sir
Charles a
collar valued at two millions sterling. I named the Hope
jewels,
shown also in 1851. He knew the “rich Hope,” Henry, who built
the
house in Piccadilly. The “poor Hope,” Beresford, had only
L30,000 a
year. They were a Dutch family, “Hoop” by name. Beresford's
wife,
Lady Mildred, aped the Queen, driving in the Park dressed in
black,
with a large hat, and finely mounted outriders. The same thing
was
done by Mme. Van de Weyer. Beresford bought the Morning
Chronicle
in order to promulgate his High Church views, writing under the
signature D.C.L. He ruined the paper.
He more than once sang the praises of Sir George Grey—honoured
in
South Africa, Australia, New Zealand; statesman, aristocrat,
Radical, creator of the Australian Labour Party, terror of our
Colonial Office at home; one of the few men who have done great
things by themselves. Bismarck told Sir Charles that Cavour,
Crispi,
Kruger, were greater than himself. “I had the army and the
State
behind me; these men had nothing.” Amongst Bismarck's minor
desires
was a hope that he might outlive his physician, Dr.
Schweininger,
who plagued him with limitations as to diet. “To-day potatoes
will
we eat; to-morrow comes Schweininger.” He owned to having
over-eaten
himself once, and only once: “Nine nine-eyes (lampreys) did I
eat.”
“People,” he said, “look on me as a monarchist. Were it all to
come
over again, I would be republican and democrat: the rule of
kings is
the rule of women; the bad women are bad, the good are worse.”
Sir Charles spoke of Botha, whom he met here in 1907. People
were
unexpectedly charmed with him: they anticipated a replica of
old
Kruger; instead of that they beheld a handsome man, with the
most
beautiful eyes and mouth ever seen. His daughter with him was
very
pretty; fashionably dressed, in the style of a French American.
He told of an Indian official under the old East India Company
stationed in a remote place, a “Boggley Wallah,” who for
several
years sent in no reports, money, or accounts. An emissary,
commissioned to bring him to book, found him living in great
luxury
on the borders of a lake. He said that he did his work and kept
his
papers on an island in the lake, and sent a boat for them; but
the
returning boat somehow sank in mid-water, and books and papers
went
to the bottom. The Company dismissed him without a pension: he
came
to London, took his seat daily in ragged clothes just outside
the
offices in Leadenhall Street, standing up to salaam when any
Director or official passed in or out, but speaking no word.
People
gathered to look at him, and at last the Company gave him
L1,000 a
year. He drove down in a carriage and four, and handed in a
letter
stating that he had already amassed L5,000 a year in their
service,
that they had now raised it to L6,000, and that he desired to
express his gratitude.
I quoted from some book I was reading a dictum that no woman
nowadays can be called perfectly beautiful. He said he had
known
only two, Lady Dudley and Madame Castiglione. The latter was in
the
pay successively of Victor Emanuel and Louis Napoleon; in the
second
capacity supposed to have been a spy employed by Cavour.
He spoke of John Forster, biographer of Dickens, an intimate
friend
of his own grandfather and father, as a man of violent, noisy
passions, but very lovable; his attitude towards Dickens
pathetically affectionate.
He described two German Princesses whom he had met at lunch;
dowdy
and of the ordinary Teutonic type, looking on their brother
“Billy"
as the greatest of mortals. They had been shopping up and down
Oxford Street, delighted with their purchases, and with their
escape
from Court ceremonial. He went on to say how common every
Prussian
officer looks when in plain clothes. Wearing them very rarely,
the
officers never look at ease in them; and the swagger which they
adopt in uniform is highly ridiculous in mufti.
When Napoleon's death was known, one of George IV.'s Ministers
went
to his master with the news: “Sir, your greatest enemy is
dead.”
“Good G—-! they told me she was better,” was the royal answer.
Sir
Charles spoke of Jerome Bonaparte, whom he knew; a dull man, a
thorn
in the side of Napoleon III. “You have nothing of the great
Napoleon
about you,” Jerome said one day. “I have his family,” answered
the
worried Emperor. From him we passed to the death of the Duc
d'Enghien. The Princes were notoriously plotting against
Napoleon's
life; by slaying a Prince of the blood he made it clear that
two
could play the game. The first copy of Mme. de Remusat's book
was
thought to deal too plainly with this and other topics; it was
destroyed, and rewritten in a softer tone.
In November, 1909, Sir Charles spent some days in the Record
Office,
coming back each time in much need of a bath, after rummaging
amongst papers which had not been disturbed for a century. He
found
amongst other papers a letter from a Grand Duke of Modena to
Castlereagh, written just after Napoleon's fall, saying how
exultant
were his subjects at his return to them, and asking Castlereagh
to
lend him L14. With the letter was the draft of Castlereagh's
answer,
congratulating the Duke's subjects and himself, but adding that
there would be difficulty in applying to Parliament for the
loan.
Sir Charles remarked on my Athenaeum review of Francis
Newman's
Life. He said that when he himself was in bad odour for his
early
Civil List speeches, so that he had been exposed to serious
disturbances, and a break-up of his intended meeting at Bristol
was
threatened, Newman, from sheer dislike to mob tyranny, came
forward
to take the chair; and through a tempest of shouts and rushes,
and
amid the stifling smell of burnt Cayenne pepper, sat in lean
dignity, looking curiously out of place, but serene in
vindication
of a principle. [Footnote: See Vol. I, Chapter IX.]
The publication of the Life of Goldwin Smith led us to talk of
University reform. I said how by means of it my own college had
become ex humili potens, had arisen from depths to
heights, from
obscurity to fame. Of his, he said, the contrary was true: his
college had been ruined by Parliamentary interference. Trinity
Hall
was founded for the study and teaching of jurisprudence, the
old
Roman canon and civil law, on which all modern law is based. It
was
the only institution of the kind, a magnificent and useful
monopoly.
This exclusive character was destroyed by Parliament;
scholarships
in mathematics and classics were instituted; it is now like
other
colleges, and men who wish to study law at its source no longer
frequent it. He talked to me of Cambridge, and related with
mimicry
anecdotes of “Ben” Latham, Master of Trinity Hall. Dining at
Trinity
Hall one Sunday in 1883, he said Latham told him that he had
lately
been sitting on an inter-University committee with Jowett, and
that
Jowett was so sharp a man of business that “it is like sitting
to
represent the Great Northern against the London and
North-Western.
His one idea is to draw away passengers from the rival line.”
Latham
went on to say that the students for India who were made to
stay two
years at Cambridge or Oxford, under Jowett's scheme, “the first
year
learn Sandford and Merton in Tamil, translated by a
missionary;
and the second year Sandford and Merton in Telugu,
translated by
the same missionary. Thus they acquire a liberal education.”
He talked of Waterloo, the battlefield being known to us both.
It
was, he said, as the Duke always owned, a wonderfully near
thing. If
Napoleon had had with him the two army corps left in France to
overawe insurrectionary districts, who would have joined him in
a
week; and if at Ligny he had persevered in so smashing the
Prussians
as to leave them powerless—if these two “if's” had become
realities, Napoleon must have driven Wellington back on
Brussels.
Then the Belgians would have joined him, and the Austrians
would
have forsaken the Allies, Metternich wishing well to Bonaparte
for
the sake of his wife and child. The mystery of his escape from
Elba,
which the English fleet might easily have prevented, remains
still
to be explained: for the Vienna Congress was riddled with
intrigue.
[Footnote: Sir Charles Dilke discussed the whole question of
Napoleon's escape from Elba in an article in the Quarterly
Review,
January, 1910, entitled “Before and After the Descent from
Elba.”]
He made me laugh at a parson who in moments of provocation used
to
say “Assouan!” His friends at last remembered that at Assouan
was
the biggest dam in the world.
He gave me a recipe for beefsteak pudding: no beef, fresh
kidney,
fresh mushrooms, fresh oysters, great stress laid on the
epithet:
serve the pudding in its basin.
He came in to breakfast one morning whistling an attractive air.
I
asked what it was; he said from Carmen, and hummed the
air
through. He went on to say that he had well known the composer,
Bizet, who founded his opera on Merimee's romance. It fell
flat, and
Bizet died believing it a failure; afterwards it became the
rage.
This whistling of music was a favourite practice with him. His
accurate ear enabled him to reproduce any tune which had at any
time
impressed him. He would give Chinese airs, would go through
parts of
a Greek Church service, would sing words and music of the
Dies Irae.
On the Sunday following the death of Florence Nightingale our
Chertsey organist played Chopin's Funeral March. Sir Charles
said
its motifs were Greek rustic popular airs, each of which
he
hummed, showing how Chopin had worked them in.
The dinner given to him in April, 1910, in connection with the
Trade
Boards Bill was a great success, and much delighted him. He
said
Bishop Gore had made a splendid speech. Sir Charles had a long
chat
with Gore, and was, as always, delighted with his information
and
bonhomie.
He talked of a Parisian jeweller who lived by selling jewels and
by
lending money to the great Indian native potentates, and had
establishments for that purpose in India. This man wished to be
employed by our Government as a spy: Sir Charles applied on his
behalf to Lord George Hamilton, who handed to him the man's
dossier, an appalling catalogue of crimes and
misdemeanours. He
had an extraordinarily noble presence; Sir Charles said to him:
“You ought to be Amir of Afghanistan.” “No,” he replied;
“I should
never have the patience to kill a sufficient number of people.”
Of a French gentleman who had come to tea, recommended by the
French
Ambassador, Sir Charles said that he was a French fool, the
worst
kind of fool, corruptio optimi.
He showed the number of peerages having their origin in
illegitimacy, although the official books conceal the fact
where
possible. The facts come out in such memoirs as Lady Dorothy
Nevill's. He went on to talk of divorce in the Roman Church,
and to
scout their boast that with them marriage is an indissoluble
sacrament. The Prince of Monaco was for years the husband of
Lady
Mary Hamilton. They tired of each other, wished for a divorce;
the
Pope, with heavy fees for the transaction, declared the
marriage to
have been for some ecclesiastical reason null and void. Each
married
again; but the son of the nominally annulled union succeeded
his
father as legitimate heir.
Sir Charles spoke—this was in 1906—of Buelow's speech in the
German
Parliament, as one of the best ever made by any statesman, and
creating universal astonishment. Its appreciation of France and
of
Gambetta was magnificent as well as generous. The French, after
the
debacle, behaved as a nation self-respecting and
patriotic ought
to have behaved. His hint at the bad feeling between the Kaiser
and
King Edward was dexterous; it was real and insuperable; none of
our
Royal Family can forgive the seizure of Hanover by Prussia; and
added to this was our King's indignation at the Kaiser's
treatment
of the Empress Frederick, a member of his family for whom he
felt
strong affection.
Of Morny he said that he was very handsome, but in an inferior
style. His beautiful Russian wife never cared for him, but in
obedience to Russian custom cut off her wonderful hair to be
laid
with him in his coffin.
He spoke of the brothers Chorley, one the supreme musical critic
of
his time, the other a profound Spanish scholar, shut up through
life
in his library of 7,300 volumes.
Dilke told me one morning that he had been writing since five
o'clock an article for the United Service Gazette, and
had
finished it to his satisfaction, adding that papers dashed off
under
an impulse were always the best. I demurred. “Those papers of
mine,”
I said, “specially praised by you have been always the fruit of
long
labour.” “Ah!” he answered, “but you have style—a rare
accomplishment; that is what I have admired in yours.” “Would
you,”
I said, “admire the style if the matter were ill considered?”
“Yes.”
He often talked admiringly of the Provencal language, declaiming
more than once what he called a fine Homeric specimen:
“Pesto, liona, sablas, famino, dardai fou,
Avie tout affronta.”
(Pestilence, lions, sandy deserts, famine, maddening sun-heat,
Ye have all this faced.)
He was fond, too, of quoting Akbar's inscription on the Agra
bridge:
“Said Jesus, on whom be peace, Life is a bridge: pass over!”
He described the French Foreign Legion: two regiments employed
by
the French chiefly among the natives in the Tonquin
settlement—
desperate men most of them, many of high social position and of
army
rank, who had “done something” and had gone wrong; disgraced,
hiding
from society, criminals escaped from justice, with a sprinkling
of
young adventurers and riotous Germans. No enormity they would
not
commit, no danger they would not court; some even seeking
death; all
knowing that if left wounded in the bush by retreating comrades
they
would be tortured horribly by the Tonquin women. They had a
hospital
served by Roman Catholic nurses, to whom they paid every
respect.
When a man newly joined once whistled rudely while the Sister
was
praying, as was her custom before leaving the ward, his
comrades
severely punished him. Intra-regimental offences, such as
theft,
were visited with death.
He mentioned one morning that he had just received a Privy
Council
summons. I asked why the Bidding Prayer held a petition for the
Lords and others of Her Majesty's Privy Council: old
Regius
Professor Jacobson used to tell us that it was a mistake, that
all
Privy Councillors were “Lords” of the Privy Council. He thought
that
the word “others” represented the Lord Mayor, who attends
Accession
Councils and signs the parchment, but, not being a Lord of
Council,
is then required to leave, while other business proceeds.
Twice in these years he dined at Oxford—once at All Souls as
the
guest of Mr. Spenser Wilkinson, again on the invitation of some
undergraduates, sons mostly of his political acquaintances. He
greatly enjoyed both; the young men were the pick and flower of
Oxford; the All Souls high table was full of young teachers and
professors. What a change from the aristocratic college of my
time,
whose head was Lewis Sneyd, its Fellows William Bathurst, Henry
Legge, Sir Charles Vaughan, Augustus Barrington, etc.! Anson
very
charmingly presided; the talk was everything except political.
He was extraordinarily impressed by the funeral of the King—a
wonderful and novel ceremony he called it. As a senior Privy
Councillor he had an excellent place with Asquith close to the
coffin. The most magnificent figure in the show was Garter
King-of-Arms, but all the heralds were splendid. The
Archbishop,
with the Dean of Westminster and a cross-bearer, was the only
prominent ecclesiastic, the Bishops in their places as peers
being
crowded out of sight. The colouring was most effective, black
setting off the scarlet. The singing was somewhat drowned by
the
Guards' bands, but the Dead March came in grandly through the
windows from Palace Yard. He mentioned a curious fact: that
Westminster Hall is controlled, not by Parliament, not by any
Government department, but by the Great Chamberlain. It is the
sole
remaining part of the royal palace, which was lent to
Parliament by
our early Kings. I said that it had not witnessed such a scene
since, on Mary's accession, the Sovereign and the two Houses
met
there to receive Papal absolution from the Legate Pole. He
wished I
had told him so before.
He recalled the Cambridge Union debates of his time: the best he
ever heard was on a personal question, the impeachment of a man
named Harris for some breach of rule. Henry Sidgwick was in the
chair, the speaking extraordinarily animated and well
sustained. The
finest orator of his time was a man called Payne. [Footnote:
Payne
belonged to the same college as Dilke, Trinity Hall, and was
bracketed Senior in the Law Tripos of 1868. He had begun to
make his
mark both at the Bar and in the Press, when, still a very young
man,
he was killed in a mountaineering accident in Wales.] I said
our
best speaker in my day was Goschen; his Union reports caused
Gladstone to pick him out and bring him forward. He said yes,
but
that Goschen never fulfilled his promise until his really
powerful
speech on Free Trade in 1903.
He enumerated the Jewish types in England. There is (1) the
sallow
Jew with a beak; (2) the same without a beak; (3) the “hammy"
Jew,
with pink face like a cochon-a-lait. The Florentine
type, with
fair hair and beautiful clear face, is not seen in England.
His criticism of a certain lady led me to ask who, of people he
had
known, possessed the most perfect manners. He said Lord
Clarendon,
who had the old carefully cultivated Whig manners, yet with the
faintest possible tendency to pomposity. This style became
unfashionable, and was succeeded by what he called the “early
Christian” or “Apostolic” manners, of which the late Lord
Knutsford
was a perfect exemplar. The best-mannered woman he had known
was the
late Lady Waterford. Domestic servants too, he said, have
manners;
he instanced as magnificent specimens Turner, Lady Waldegrave's
groom of the chambers, and Miss Alice Rothschild's Jelf. Lady
Lonsdale once spoke of the latter as “Guelph, or whatever
member of
the Royal Family it is that waits on Alice.”
Sir Charles talked about the Wallace Collection. Sir Richard was
not
the natural son either of the fourth Lord Hertford, or of his
father
the third Lord, Thackeray's Steyne and Disraeli's Monmouth. He
was
brought up by the fourth Lord Hertford, under the name of
Monsieur
Richard, not by any means as the expectant heir; yet, excepting
the
settled estates, which went to the fifth Marquis, all was left
to
him. Part of the great art collection remained at Bagatelle,
which
became the property of a younger Wallace, an officer in the
French
army; the rest has come to the English nation through Lady
Wallace,
to whom her husband left the whole. Why Sir Richard assumed the
name
Wallace no one knows. He was French, not English, speaking
English
imperfectly: a kind, cheery, polished gentleman.
Apropos of the Education Bill: old Lady Wilde from her window in
Tite Street heard a woman bewailing herself in the street—her
son
had been “took away,” to gaol that is. “He was a good boy till
the
Eddication came along;” then, kneeling down on the pavement and
joining her hands, she prayed solemnly “God damn Eddication.”
Sir Charles contrasted the idiosyncrasies of some politicians:
Grey
reserved, Balfour telling everything to everybody;
Arnold-Forster
closely “buttoned up,” Gorst dangerously frank. On Gorst he
enlarged: a nominal Tory, in fact a Radical, ever battering his
own
side for the mere fun of the operation; old in years, young in
activity of brain and body; a poor man all his life.
He said that the two incomparable sights which this country
could
show to a foreigner were (1) Henley in regatta week; (2) the
Park on
a fine summer day: everyone out riding, and the Life Guards'
band
going down to a Drawing-room.
I asked if he had heard a certain London preacher who was
drawing
large audiences. He said yes, and that he was well worth
hearing.
“He is High Church and anti-ritualist, Socialist and
aristocrat,
orthodox while holding every heresy extant, not cultured or
literary, slovenly and almost coarse; yet grasping his
listeners by
the feeling impressed on each that the preacher knows and is
describing his (the hearer's) experiences, troubles, hopes,
life-history.”
I questioned him about Leonard Montefiore, a memoir of whom had
caught my eye in one of the bookcases. He was a man of
brilliant
promise, unpopular at Balliol, giving himself intellectual
airs;
went unwashed, with greenish complexion and generally repulsive
appearance; would have been prominent had he lived; was much
petted
by Ruskin.
He said that, if London were destroyed to-morrow, in ten years'
time
its site would be covered with a forest of maple, sycamore,
robinia,
showing an undergrowth of Persian willow-herb.
He told of a man whom his groom pronounced to be “the footiest
gent
on a 'oss and the 'ossiest gent on foot as he ever see.”
He spoke of the “Local Veto Bill,” forced by Harcourt on a
reluctant
Cabinet; Harcourt was, he said, a genuine convert to the
principle—
a curious intellectual phenomenon, this development of a
belated
conviction in a mind hitherto essentially opportunist. It cost
him
his seat later on.
Sir Charles described Speaker Peel's farewell to the House: said
that it was quite perfect in every way. He thought Gully
undesirable
as his successor, and should not vote for him.
Of the rising I.L.P. he said once, in early days, they had done
wrongly in formulating a programme. Their name was a sufficient
programme; now they would indirectly help the Tories.
He had an extraordinary insight into the mental habits and
emotions
of domestic animals, interpreting the feelings and opinions of
his
horses when out riding, of his Pyrford dog Fafner, of his
Sloane
Street cat Calino, in a manner at once graphic and convincing.
His
love for cats amounted to a passion; a menagerie of eight or
ten
tailless white or ginger Persians was kept in an enclosure, at
Pyrford. Once, when exploring a fine Ravenna church, we missed
him,
returning from our round to find him near the door, caressing a
cat
belonging to the custodian, which he had inveigled into his
lap.
His literary dislikes and preferences were numerous and frankly
expressed, deeply interesting as the idiosyncrasies of a rich
and
highly trained intelligence, even when to myself somewhat
unaccountable. While keenly appreciating the best in modern
French
literature, he could see no charm in Corneille or Racine. Quite
lately Rabelais, reopened after many years, appealed to him
strongly, as keen satire and invective veiled by wit, and, so
only,
tolerated by those scourged. To be laid hold of and temporarily
possessed by a book was as characteristic of him as of old
Gladstone; in their turn, Pantagruel, Anatole France's
Penguins,
most of all The Blue Bird, which he read delightedly,
but would
not see acted, formed of late the breakfast equipage as
certainly as
the eggs and toast: any utterance of conventional apology or
regret
was expressed by, “Voulez-vous que j'embrasse le chat?”
His acquaintance with English literature was intermittent. He
was
apparently a stranger to our eighteenth-century authors, both
in
poetry and prose; of those who followed them in time, he
undervalued
Scott, disliked Macaulay, admired Napier, admired Trollope.
Wordsworth he condemned as puerile, inheriting the Edinburgh
Review estimate of his poetry, and often called on me
ecstatically
to repeat Hartley Coleridge's parody of Lucy. Of Keats
he was
immeasurably fond, drawn to him by the poet's relation to his
family, declaiming his lines often—as he did sometimes those
of
Shelley, whose verses in his own copy of the poems are heavily
and
with wise selection scored—in tones which showed a capacity
for
deep poetic feeling. A quotation would accidentally arrest him,
and
he would call for the book, usually after short perusal
discarding
the author as a “poopstick,” a favourite phrase with him. I
remember
this occurring with the Rejected Addresses, though he
knew and
loved James Smith. A travesty of Omar Khayyam, called The
Rubaiyat
of a Persian Kitten, he read delightedly, much preferring
it to the
original. He professed contempt for the study of English
grammar,
more especially for the scientific analysis of English
sentence-structure, which plays so large a part in modern
education.
The contempt was certainly, as Osborne Gordon said, not bred of
familiarity. I fear that, like most University or public school
men,
he would have been foiled by the simplest Preliminary Grammar
Paper
of a University Local Examination to-day.
But his knowledge of political history, foreign and domestic,
during
the last centuries was marvellously extensive and minute. In
earlier
history he was oblivious often of his own previous knowledge,
argumentatively maintaining untenable propositions. Though
fortified
by Freeman and Bryce, I could never get him to admit that all
the
historic “Emperors,” from Augustus Caesar in 27 B.C. down to
Francis, King of Germany, who gave up the Empire in A.D. 1806,
were
Emperors, not of Germany or Austria, but of Rome; or that the
Reformed English Church of Tudor times, with all its servility,
had
never relinquished, but steadily held and holds, its claim to
continuous Catholicity. But a query as to the French
Revolution, the
Napoleonic dynasties, the Vienna Congress, the South African or
Franco-Prussian War, or the developments in India, Canada,
Egypt,
would draw forth a stream of marshalled lucid information,
which it
was indeed a privilege to hear.
“Neque ille in luce modo atque in oculis civium magnus, sed
intus
domique praestantior. Qui sermo! quae praecepta! quanta notitia
antiquitatis! quae scientia juris! Omnia memoria tenebat, non
domestica solum, sed etiam externa bella. Cujus sermone ita
tunc
cupide tenebar, quasi jam divinarem, id quod evenit, illo
exstincto
fore unde discerem neminem” (Cicero, De Senectute).
The difficulty in the way of furnishing reminiscences of Mr. Gladstone in Cabinet is in part the Privy Council oath, but still more the fact that, where the matters that would be touched are of interest, they often affect individuals or parties. I saw the most of Mr. Gladstone between 1880 and 1886, and to this period the restrictions imposed by the considerations named are most highly applicable. In the earlier days when I sat in Parliament with him, from 1868 to 1880, we were, though sitting on the same side of the House, frequently opposed to one another, for I was often fighting for the claims of independent Radicalism as against his commanding personality. This was especially the case from 1868 to 1874; and his retirement after his defeat in 1874, when Lord Hartington became the leader of the Liberal party, was so complete that it was not until Mr. Gladstone was aroused by the development of the Eastern Question in 1877 that we again saw much of him in the House of Commons. An interesting reminiscence of the great struggle of 1878 is afforded by the copy in my possession of the Whips' list of the Liberal party marked by Mr. Gladstone and myself. I was acting for him, against the party Whips, in the preparations for the division upon his famous Resolutions. We daily went through the promises of the members who had undertaken to support his Resolutions, of those who remained steadfast in adhesion to Lord Hartington and who were prepared to vote against the Resolutions, and of those who would vote neither way. The changes from day to day in the ascertained opinions of the party were most strange. Family was divided against family—for instance the family of Cavendish—and the cleavage followed no line that corresponded with shades of Liberalism. The pro-Turks upon the Liberal side were joined in their support of Lord Hartington by the “peace at any price” section of the Radicals. Curiously enough, the division of the party was exactly equal, and remained equal through all the changes of individual promises. On the day on which peace was made, and (to Mr. Gladstone's immense relief) the chances of a complete disruption averted, the number of members pledged to Mr. Gladstone was 110, and an exactly equal number of members was pledged to Lord Hartington and the Whips.
Coming to later times, a reminiscence is one of April, 1893, when Mr. Gladstone sent for me to discuss a motion of which I had given notice upon the Egyptian occupation. He talked on that occasion with that absolute frankness which accompanied the confidence he always placed in others. It was not peculiar to him, but belongs more, perhaps, to the old days in which he received the training of his mind than to present times. We are told that democratic diplomacy is to be outspoken. But, so far as Parliament is concerned, the older leaders were, I think, like Mr. Gladstone, more given to outspokenness than the newer men, who find themselves forced by the ubiquity of the Press to a greater reserve than was formerly necessary to be maintained. Mr. Gladstone was always of a playful mind, and it would be impossible ever to fully relate any of his conversations without recalling the manner in which, however absorbed in his subject, he always would break off to discuss some amusing triviality. Sir William Harcourt has touchingly recalled Mr. Gladstone's old-world courtesy, which was in private life his distinguishing characteristic.—Daily News, May 24th, 1898.